Mammoth Book of Special Forces - Jon E. Lewis
Mammoth Book of Special Forces - Jon E. Lewis
E.	Lewis	is	a	writer	on	military	affairs	and	history.	His	many	previous	books	include
the	bestselling	The	Mammoth	Book	of	the	Edge,	The	Mammoth	Book	of	Polar	Journeys,
The	 Mammoth	 Book	 of	 True	 War	 Stories,	 World	 War	 II:	 The	 Autobiography,	 The
Mammoth	 Book	 of	 Combat,	 Voices	 from	 D-Day,	 A	 Brief	 History	 of	 the	 First	 World	 War,
SAS:The	 Autobiography,	 The	 Mammoth	 Book	 of	 Covert	 Ops,	 The	 Mammoth	 Book	 of
Vietnam,	 Spitfire:	 The	 Autobiography,	 Voices	 from	 the	 Holocaust	and	A	 Brief	 History	 of
the	First	World	War.
	
	
	
Recent	Mammoth	titles
The	Mammoth	Book	of	Undercover	Cops
The	Mammoth	Book	of	Antarctic	Journeys
The	Mammoth	Book	of	Muhammad	Ali
The	Mammoth	Book	of	Best	British	Crime	10
The	Mammoth	Book	of	Conspiracies
The	Mammoth	Book	of	Lost	Symbols
The	Mammoth	Book	of	Body	Horror
The	Mammoth	Book	of	Steampunk
The	Mammoth	Book	of	New	CSI
The	Mammoth	Book	of	Gangs
The	Mammoth	Book	of	One-Liners
The	Mammoth	Book	of	Ghost	Romance
The	Mammoth	Book	of	Best	New	SF	25
The	Mammoth	Book	of	Horror	24
The	Mammoth	Book	of	Slasher	Movies
The	Mammoth	Book	of	Street	Art
The	Mammoth	Book	of	Ghost	Stories	by	Women
The	Mammoth	Book	of	Best	New	Erotica	12
The	Mammoth	Book	of	Unexplained	Phenomena
The	Mammoth	Book	of	Futuristic	Romance
The	Mammoth	Book	of	Best	British	Crime	11
The	Mammoth	Book	of	Combat
The	Mammoth	Book	of	Erotic	Quickies
The	Mammoth	Book	of	Dark	Magic
The	Mammoth	Book	of	Zombies
The	Mammoth	Book	of	The	Lost	Chronicles	of	Sherlock	Holmes
The	Mammoth	Book	of	SF	Stories	by	Women
SPECIAL	FORCES
TRAINING
Edited	by	JON	E.	LEWIS
	
	
	
ROBINSON
First	published	in	Great	Britain	in	2015	by	Robinson
Copyright		J.	Lewis-Stempel,	2015
The	moral	right	of	the	author	has	been	asserted.
All	rights	reserved.
No	part	of	this	publication	may	be	reproduced,	stored	in	a	retrieval	system,	or	transmitted,	in	any	form,	or	by	any	means,
without	the	prior	permission	in	writing	of	the	publisher,	nor	be	otherwise	circulated	in	any	form	of	binding	or	cover
other	than	that	in	which	it	is	published	and	without	a	similar	condition	including	this	condition	being	imposed	on	the
subsequent	purchaser.
A	CIP	catalogue	record	for	this	book
is	available	from	the	British	Library.
ISBN	978-1-47211-087-9	(paperback)
ISBN	978-1-47211-178-4	(ebook)
Robinson
is	an	imprint	of
Constable	&	Robinson	Ltd
100	Victoria	Embankment
London	EC4Y	0DY
An	Hachette	UK	Company
www.hachette.co.uk
www.constablerobinson.com
First	published	in	the	United	States	in	2014	by	Running	Press	Book	Publishers,
A	Member	of	the	Perseus	Books	Group
All	rights	reserved	under	the	Pan-American	and	International	Copyright	Conventions
This	book	may	not	be	reproduced	in	whole	or	in	part,	in	any	form	or	by	any	means,	electronic	or	mechanical,	including
photocopy,	recording,	or	by	any	information	storage	and	retrieval	system	now	known	or	hereafter	invented,	without
permission	from	the	publishers
Books	published	by	Running	Press	are	available	at	special	discounts	for	bulk	purchases	in	the	United	States	by
corporations,	institutions	and	other	organizations.
For	more	information,	please	contact	the	Special	Markets	Department	at	the	Perseus	Books	Group,	2300	Chestnut	Street,
Suite	200,	Philadelphia,	PA	19103,	or	call	(800)	810-4145,	ext.	5000,	or	email	special.markets@perseusbooks.com.
US	ISBN:	978-0-7624-5233-0
US	Library	of	Congress	Control	Number:	2014943439
Digit	on	the	right	indicates	the	number	of	this	printing
Running	Press	Book	Publishers
2300	Chestnut	Street
Philadelphia,	PA	19103-4371
Visit	us	on	the	web!
www.runningpress.com
CONTENTS
Introduction
PART	1:	SPECIAL	FORCES	UNITS
The	SAS
US	Navy	SEALs
US	Green	Berets
Sayret	Maktal
PART	II:	SELECTION
Special	Air	Service
Special	Boat	Service	(SBS)
Green	Berets
US	Navy	Seals
PART	III:	TRAINING
Fitness
Combat	Skills	and	Techniques
Booby	Traps
Weaponry
Medical	Skills
PART	IV:	SURVIVAL
The	Basics
The	Desert
The	Jungle
The	Arctic
PART	V:	MISSIONS
Landings	and	Raids	on	Enemy	Territory
Evasion,	Capture	&	Escape
Hijack	&	Hostage	Rescue
APPENDIX:
SPECIAL	FORCES	UNITS	OF	THE	WORLD
Sources	and	Acknowledgements
Bibliography
INTRODUCTION
There	 have	 been	 unconventional	 forces	 since	 the	 fires	 of	 war	 were	 first	 stoked.	 After
all,	 what	 did	 Odysseus	 do	 but	 use	 specially	 trained,	 equipped	 and	 organized	 forces	 to
gain	entry	into	Troy	by	concealing	them	inside	the	Wooden	Horse?	Think,	too,	of	Rogers
Rangers	 from	 the	 French	 and	 Indian	 War	 of	 1756,	 the	 British	 agents	 who	 played	 the
Great	Game	in	central	Asia	against	the	Russians	in	the	early	nineteenth	century	and	John
Singleton	Mosbys	Confederate	Cavalry	Raiders	from	the	Civil	War.
Modern	special	forces	date	back	to	the	First	World	War,	and	the	attempts	by	the	Allies
and	the	central	powers	to	break	the	military	deadlock	on	the	Western	Front.	One	stratagem
of	the	Allies	was	to	raise	an	irregular	Arab	army	under	Colonel	T.E.	Lawrence:	this	was	to
foment	trouble	against	the	Turks	and	so	draw	off	Central	Power	resources	from	the	main
show.	 The	 Germans,	 meanwhile,	 sought	 to	 break	 through	 the	 Allied	 trenches	 on	 the
Western	Front	by	creating	and	training	special	Stosstruppen.	These	shock	troops	caused
mayhem	during	the	Michael	Offensive	of	1918	until	Allied	might	overcame	them.
The	 Germans	 might	 have	 lost	 the	 Great	 War,	 but	 they	 saw	 clearly	 that	 the	 future	 of
warfare	lay	with	hard-hitting	mobile	formations,	be	they	of	men	or	machinery.	Hitler	liked
Special	Forces	because	they	could	be	wrapped	with	the	aura	of	the	superman	so	beloved
of	Nazi	philosophy.	It	was	no	coincidence,	then,	that	the	Second	World	War	opened	with	a
German	 Special	 Forces	 operation	 	 a	 simulated	 attack	 on	 the	 German	 frontier	 that
provided	 the	 Fhrer	 with	 the	 pretext	 to	 invade	 Poland.	 No	 surprise	 either,	 that	 the	 1940
German	invasion	of	the	Low	Countries	included	a	dazzling	airborne	assault	on	the	Belgian
fortress	 of	 Eben	 Emael	 by	 the	 Koch	 Assault	 Detachment	 that	 still	 causes	 military
historians	to	gape.
Whereas	 the	 Germans	 had	 become	 revolutionaries	 in	 warfare,	 the	 military
establishments	 of	 the	 major	 Allied	 powers	 had	 long	 been	 overtaken	 by	 a	 glacial
conservatism.	The	result:	in	1939	the	major	Allied	nations	were	entirely	bereft	of	Special
Forces.	Despite	the	late	start,	Special	Forces	soon	proliferated	amongst	the	Second	World
War	 Allies,	 both	 because	 the	 complexity	 of	 modern	 warfare	 made	 specialization	 an
inevitability,	 and,	 with	 no	 early	 prospect	 of	 a	 major	 offensive	 against	 the	 Germans	 or
Japanese,	because	morale-boosting	raids	by	a	small	elite	were	too	much	of	a	temptation.
Moreover,	 the	 sheer	 scale	 of	 the	 frontline	 	 stretching	 around	 Europe,	 North	 Africa	 and
the	 Far	 East	 	 simply	 invited	 clandestine	 behind	 the	 lines	 missions	 of	 reconnaissance
and	sabotage.
The	other	allure	of	Special	Forces	was	that,	for	a	relatively	small	commitment	of	men
and	means,	they	might	achieve	a	big,	even	strategically	important	result.	In	North	Africa
the	SAS,	which	began	with	seventy	soldiers,	destroyed	300	Axis	aircraft	on	the	ground	in
North	 Africa.	 And	 it	 is	 this	 understanding	 by	 the	 SASs	 founder,	 David	 Stirling,	 that
Special	Forces	could	play	a	strategic	role	in	war,	and	not	just	be	a	mob	for	a	particular	job,
that	makes	the	SAS	absolutely	the	prototype	of	the	modern	Special	Force.	That,	plus	the
SASs	tough	selection	process,	the	quality	of	its	training,	and	its	ethos:	Who	Dares	Wins.
Despite	 the	 success	 of	 Special	 Forces	 in	 the	 Second	 World	 War,	 with	 peace	 in	 1945
Special	 Forces	 were	 shut	 down	 almost	 everywhere.	 Why?	 The	 top	 brass	 had	 long	 been
distrustful	of	Special	Forces	because	they	were	too	independent	and	too	prone	to	creaming
off	 the	 best	 personnel	 and	 kit	 from	 regular	 formations.	 Expensive,	 wasteful	 and
unnecessary	was	the	complaint	of	Field	Marshal	Slim.	So	Special	Forces	were	disbanded.
Yet	the	face	of	war	after	1945	was	not	the	titanic	clash	of	arms	between	the	Soviet	Bloc
and	 the	 West	 expected	 by	 the	 general	 staffs,	 but	 a	 rash	 of	 savage	 little	 wars	 in	 colonial
places:	 Malaysia,	 Oman,	 Vietnam,	 Algeria,	 the	 Congo	 	 In	 these	 wars,	 conventional
forces	were	often	of	little	use.	Who	better	to	fight	guerrillas	than	highly	trained,	cherrypicked,	superbly	equipped	guerrillas	of	the	Special	Forces?	There	was	a	further	stimulus
to	 the	 rebirth	 of	 the	 Special	 Forces:	 the	 spread	 of	 terrorism	 from	 the	 1950s	 onwards,
particularly	that	emanating	from	the	Middle	East.	Indeed,	with	the	decline	in	Communist
meddling	in	the	Third	World,	the	main	burden	of	the	Special	Forces	mission	has	become
anti-	 and	 counter-terrorism.	 Counter-Terrorism	 speeded	 up	 exponentially	 after	 1972,
when	Palestinian	terrorists	attacked	Israeli	athletes	at	the	Munich	Olympic	Games.
Fighting	 shadow	 wars	 in	 ex-colonial	 countries	 and	 counter-terrorist	 operations	 does
not	 exhaust	 the	 capability	 of	 contemporary	 Special	 Forces.	 VIP	 protection,	 intelligence
gathering,	 reconnaissance,	 training	 forces	 from	 foreign	 nations,	 even	 humanitarian
assistance,	 have	 all	 fallen	 into	 the	 Special	 Forces	 brief.	 In	 short,	 Special	 Forces	 have
come	 to	 have	 utility	 across	 the	 whole	 range	 of	 conflict,	 which	 is	 why	 they	 are	 the
favourites	of	politicians.	Special	Forces	enable	politicians	to	secure	their	designs	with	risk
to	few	compatriots.	Electorates	like	it		the	sight	of	body	bags	being	flown	home,	as	in
Vietnam	and	the	recent	war	in	Iraq,	is	a	distinct	vote	loser.
The	enthusiasm	of	politicians	for	Special	Forces	has	ensured	that	they	have	escaped	the
financial	cutbacks	suffered	by	conventional	military	services.	Indeed,	since	the	end	of	the
Cold	 War	 most	 special	 units	 have	 seen	 their	 budgets	 grow.	 So	 too	 their	 responsibilities.
Send	for	the	SAS,	or	Send	for	the	SEALs,	has	become	almost	a	knee-jerk	response	by
the	 politicos	 at	 the	 first	 whiff	 of	 trouble.	 You	 are	 never	 going	 to	 be	 short	 of	 work	 as	 a
Special	Forces	soldier.
While	 you	 are	 reading	 this,	 Special	 Forces	 are	 in	 action	 somewhere	 in	 the	 world.	 It
takes	 a	 special	 kind	 of	 person	 to	 be	 a	 Special	 Forces	 soldier.	 All	 Special	 Forces	 have
stringent	selection	processes,	after	which	those	few	who	qualify	are	subjected	to	gruelling
training	 regimes	 intended	 to	 turn	 them	 into	 killers	 who	 are	 also	 able	 to	 master	 many
military	trades,	and	survive	in	some	of	the	most	hostile	places	on	earth.
This	book	tells	you	what	you	need	to	know	about	the	UK	and	the	USs	Special	Forces,
their	history,	their	training,	and	the	skills	you	will	be	expected	to	master.
PART	I
SPECIAL	FORCES	UNITS
THE	SAS
Of	 all	 unlikely	 places,	 the	 Special	 Air	 Service	 	 destined	 to	 become	 the	 worlds	 most
famous	Special	Forces	unit		was	conceived	in	a	hospital	bed	in	Egypt.	Injured	in	1941
while	 undertaking	 some	 unofficial	 parachute	 training,	 David	 Stirling,	 a	 twenty-six-yearold	 subaltern	 in	 No.	 8	 (Guards)	 Commando,	 used	 his	 enforced	 sojourn	 in	 15th	 Scottish
Military	 Hospital	 in	 Cairo	 to	 conjure	 a	 scheme	 for	 hit-and-run	 operations	 against	 the
Germans	in	the	North	African	desert.
On	 his	 release	 from	 hospital	 in	 July,	 Stirling	 decided	 to	 take	 his	 idea	 to	 the	 top.	 To
present	 the	 plan	 through	 the	 usual	 channels	 would	 only	 mean	 it	 getting	 buried	 in	 what
Stirling	 thought	 of	 as	 fossilized	 shit	 	 bureaucracy,	 in	 other,	 politer	 words.	 Although
generals	 are	 not,	 by	 and	 large,	 in	 the	 habit	 of	 granting	 interviews	 to	 second-lieutenants,
Stirling	 hobbled	 on	 crutches	 to	 General	 Headquarters	 Middle	 East	 in	 Cairos	 leafy
Tonbalat	 Street;	 after	 failing	 to	 show	 a	 pass	 at	 the	 security	 barrier,	 he	 went	 around	 the
corner,	 jumped	 over	 the	 fence	 and	 careered	 inside	 the	 building,	 the	 wardens	 bellowed
alarms	close	behind.	Up	on	the	third	floor,	Stirling	found	his	way	into	the	office	of	Major
General	 Neil	 Ritchie,	 Claude	 Auchinlecks	 Deputy	 Chief	 of	 Staff.	 Stirling	 breathlessly
apologized	to	the	surprised	Ritchie	for	the	somewhat	unconventional	nature	of	his	call,	but
insisted	 that	 he	 had	 something	 of	 great	 operational	 importance	 to	 show	 him.	 He	 then
pulled	out	the	pencilled	memo	on	small-scale	desert	raiding	he	had	prepared	in	hospital.
He	[Ritchie]	was	very	courteous,	Stirling	remembered	years	later,	and	he	settled	down
to	 read	 it.	 About	 halfway	 through,	 he	 got	 very	 engrossed,	 and	 had	 forgotten	 the	 rather
irregular	 way	 it	 had	 been	 presented.	 It	 was	 Stirlings	 turn	 to	 be	 surprised.	 Looking	 up,
Ritchie	said	matter-of-factly,	I	think	this	may	be	the	sort	of	plan	we	are	looking	for.	I	will
discuss	it	with	the	Commander-in-Chief	and	let	you	know	our	decision	in	the	next	day	or
so.	The	Commander-in-Chief	was	General	Claude	Auchinleck,	new	to	his	post	and	under
immense	pressure	from	Churchill	to	mount	offensive	operations.	Stirlings	plan	was	a	gift
for	 Auchinleck:	 it	 required	 few	 resources,	 it	 was	 original,	 and	 it	 dovetailed	 neatly	 with
Churchills	own	love	of	commandos.	Stirlings	memo	went	under	the	cumbersome	title	of
Case	for	the	retention	of	a	limited	number	of	special	service	troops,	for	employment	as
parachutists,	but	there	was	nothing	ungainly	about	its	concept;	on	the	contrary,	Stirling
understood	that	in	wartime	small	can	be	beautifully	lethal.	The	unit	Stirling	proposed	was
to	 operate	 behind	 enemy	 lines	 and	 attack	 vulnerable	 targets	 such	 as	 supply	 lines	 and
airfields	at	night.	What	is	more,	the	raids	were	to	be	carried	out	by	groups	of	five	to	ten
men,	rather	than	the	hundreds	of	a	standard	commando	force,	the	very	numbers	of	which
made	them	susceptible	to	detection	by	the	enemy.	Since	these	special	service	commandos
were	to	be	inserted	by	air,	they	had	greater	range	than	seaborne	troops	and	did	not	require
costly	(and	reluctant)	Royal	Navy	support.
While	 Auchinleck	 pondered	 Stirlings	 memo,	 Ritchie	 looked	 into	 David	 Stirlings
background.	 He	 was	 pleased	 and	 displeased	 in	 equal	 measure	 by	 what	 he	 found.	 On
graduation	 from	 the	 Guards	 depot	 at	 Pirbright,	 David	 Stirling	 had	 been	 classed	 as	 an
irresponsible	and	unremarkable	soldier.	He	was	dismissive	of	authority.	He	overslept	so
much	he	was	nicknamed	the	Great	Sloth.	In	Egypt	his	partying	had	become	legendary,
and	 he	 had	 more	 than	 once	 revived	 himself	 from	 hangovers	 by	 inhaling	 oxygen	 begged
from	nurses	at	the	15th	Scottish	Military	Hospital.
But	 it	 wasnt	 all	 bad.	 Born	 in	 1915,	 Stirling	 came	 from	 good	 stock:	 he	 was	 the
youngest	son	of	Brigadier	Archibald	Stirling	of	Keir;	his	mother	was	the	daughter	of	the
16th	 Baron	 Lovat.	 After	 Ampleforth	 and	 three	 years	 at	 Cambridge,	 Stirling	 had
enthusiastically	 joined	 the	 Scots	 Guards,	 before	 transferring	 to	 No.	 8	 Commando.	 Like
many	 a	 commando	 officer,	 he	 was	 recruited	 over	 a	 pink	 gin	 at	 Whites	 Club	 by
Lieutenant-Colonel	 Bob	 Laycock,	 8	 Commandos	 Commanding	 Officer.	 As	 part	 of	 the
Layforce	 brigade,	 No.	 8	 Commando	 had	 been	 dispatched	 to	 North	 Africa,	 where	 its
seaborne	 raids	 had	 been	 embarrassing	 wash-outs.	 On	 the	 disbandment	 of	 Layforce,
Stirling	had	jumped		literally		at	the	chance	of	joining	an	unofficial	parachute	training
session	 organized	 by	 another	 officer	 in	 No.	 8	 Commando.	 Many	 people	 over	 the	 years
mistook	Stirlings	diffidence,	abetted	by	the	slight	stoop	common	to	the	very	tall	(Stirling
was	six	feet	six	inches)	for	a	lack	of	ambition:	on	the	contrary,	Stirling	possessed	a	core	of
steely	 resolve.	 (Churchill,	 who	 met	 Stirling	 later	 in	 the	 war,	 borrowed	 an	 apposite	 line
from	Don	Juan	for	his	pen	portrait	of	the	SAS	leader	as	the	mildest	mannerd	man	that
ever	scuttled	ship	or	cut	a	throat.)	This	inner	determination	was	the	reason	why	Stirling
participated	in	the	impromptu	parachute	jumping	trials	at	Fuka:	he	wanted	to	get	on	with
the	war.	Unfortunately,	the	aircraft	used,	a	lumbering	Valencia	biplane,	was	not	equipped
for	parachuting	and	the	men	had	secured	the	static	lines	which	opened	the	silk	canopies	to
seat	 legs.	 Stirlings	 parachute	 caught	 on	 the	 door	 and	 snagged;	 he	 descended	 far	 too
rapidly	and	hit	the	ground	so	hard	that	he	was	temporarily	paralysed	from	the	waist	down.
Thus	he	had	ended	up	as	a	bed	patient	in	the	Scottish	Military	Hospital.
Three	 days	 after	 his	 meeting	 with	 Ritchie,	 Stirling	 was	 back	 at	 Middle	 East
Headquarters,	 this	 time	 with	 a	 pass.	 Auchinleck	 saw	 him	 in	 person.	 Stirling	 was	 given
permission	 to	 recruit	 a	 force	 of	 sixty	 officers	 and	 men.	 The	 unit	 was	 to	 be	 called	 L
Detachment,	SAS	Brigade.	The	SAS	stood	for	Special	Air	Service,	a	force	that	was
wholly	 imaginary	 and	 whose	 nomenclature	 was	 devised	 by	 Brigadier	 Dudley	 Clarke,	 a
staff	Intelligence	officer,	to	convince	the	Germans	that	Britain	had	a	large	airborne	force	in
North	Africa.	To	mark	his	new	appointment	as	the	Commanding	Officer	of	L	Detachment,
Stirling	 was	 promoted	 to	 captain.	 There	 were	 two	 particular	 officers	 Stirling	 wanted	 for
his	outfit.	The	first	was	John	Jock	Lewes,	whom	Stirling	found	at	Tobruk,	where	he	was
leading	raids	on	the	Axis	lines.	British	by	birth,	Lewes	had	been	brought	up	in	Australia,
and	was	an	Oxford	rowing	blue	who	had	led	his	university	eight	to	a	historic	win	over
Cambridge.	 It	 had	 been	 Lewes	 who	 had	 organized	 the	 parachute	 jump	 at	 Fuka	 during
which	 Stirling	 had	 crashed.	 Lewess	 influence	 on	 the	 formation	 of	 the	 SAS	 was
paramount:	 on	 a	 visit	 to	 Stirling	 in	 hospital,	 Lewes	 had	 voiced	 proposals	 and	 queries
which	 had	 done	 much	 to	 further	 the	 embryonic	 idea	 of	 a	 desert	 raiding	 force	 circling
around	in	Stirlings	head.
When	 Stirling	 asked	 Lewes	 to	 become	 the	 first	 recruit	 of	 L	 Detachment,	 however,
Lewes	 refused	 point	 blank.	 He	 did	 not	 trust	 Stirlings	 commitment.	 But	 Stirling,	 as
everyone	 agreed,	 could	 be	 very	 persuasive.	 Besides,	 he	 was	 displaying	 more	 grit	 than
Lewes	had	seen	in	the	party	boy	hitherto.	After	a	month	of	cajoling,	Lewes	agreed	to	join.
So	did	Captain	R.	B.	Paddy	Mayne.	Before	the	war,	Mayne	had	been	a	rugby	player	of
international	rank,	capped	six	times	for	Ireland	and	once	for	the	British	Lions.	He	was	also
a	 useful	 boxer	 and	 had	 reached	 the	 final	 of	 the	 British	 Universities	 Championship
heavyweight	division.	Unfortunately,	when	taken	by	drink	Mayne	was	not	too	fussy	whom
he	fought:	in	June	1941	hed	been	returned	to	unit	from	11	Commando	for	attacking	his
commanding	 officer.	 However,	 Paddy	 Mayne	 was	 much	 more	 than	 a	 six-feet-six-inch
drinker	and	brawler.	A	former	law	student,	he	had	a	Dr	Jekyll	side,	and	was	sensitive,
literate,	modest	and	painfully	shy.	Unquestionably	he	was	brave:	hed	won	a	Mention	in
Dispatches	for	his	baptismal	combat		1	Commandos	raid	on	the	Litani	River	in	Syria.	He
would	end	up	as	one	of	the	four	most	decorated	British	officers	of	the	Second	World	War,
with	a	Distinguished	Service	Order	(DSO)	and	three	Bars.	Nevertheless,	before	accepting
Mayne	into	L	Detachment,	Stirling	extricated	a	promise	that	he	would	not	attack	his	new
commanding	officer.
Like	Lewes	and	Mayne,	most	of	the	rest	of	the	officers	and	men	of	L	Detachment,	who
would	 later	 be	 known	 as	 the	 Originals,	 were	 volunteers	 recruited	 from	 commandos
beached	 at	 the	 Infantry	 Base	 Depot	 at	 Geneifa	 following	 the	 disbandment	 of	 Layforce.
Selection	was	based	on	Stirlings	personal	impression	of	the	men	at	brief	interviews.	He
also	told	them	that	if	they	failed	to	make	the	grade	in	training	they	would	have	to	return	to
their	units.
By	August	1941,	Stirling	had	established	a	base	at	Kabrit,	100	miles	south	of	Cairo	in
the	 Canal	 Zone.	 Equipment	 was	 conspicuous	 by	 its	 absence,	 due	 to	 the	 parsimony	 of	 Q
Branch.	 Arriving	 by	 truck	 at	 Kabrit,	 Johnny	 Cooper,	 recruited	 from	 No.	 8	 Commando,
found
only	two	medium-sized	marquees	and	three	180-lb	tents	piled	up	in	the	middle	of	the
strip	of	bare	desert	allocated	to	us.	No	camp,	none	of	the	usual	facilities,	not	even	a
flagpole.	A	wooden	sign	bearing	the	words	L	Detachment		SAS	was	the	sole	clue
that	this	was	base	camp.
Being,	in	his	own	words,	a	cheekie	laddie,	Stirling	had	a	plan	to	secure	the	necessary
equipment	 to	 complete	 the	 camp,	 which	 was	 to	 borrow	 it	 from	 a	 New	 Zealand	 camp
down	the	road.	Thus	the	first		and	highly	unofficial		attack	of	L	Detachment	was	a	night
raid	on	the	camp	of	2nd	New	Zealand	Division.	L	Detachments	one	and	only	three-ton
truck	was	filled	up	with	anything	useful	that	could	be	found,	including	tents	and	a	piano
for	the	sergeants	mess.	The	next	day,	L	Detachment	boasted	one	of	the	smartest	and	most
luxuriously	furnished	British	camps	in	the	Canal	Zone.
Training	then	began	in	earnest.	From	the	outset,	Stirling	insisted	on	a	high	standard	of
discipline,	equal	to	that	of	the	Brigade	of	Guards.	In	his	opening	address	to	L	Detachment
on	4	September,	he	told	the	men:	We	cant	afford	to	piss	about	disciplining	anyone	who
is	not	a	hundred	per	cent	devoted	to	having	a	crack	at	the	Hun.	L	Detachment	required	a
special	discipline:	self-discipline.	Stirling	told	the	L	Detachment	volunteers	that	control	of
self	 was	 expected	 at	 all	 times,	 even	 on	 leave:	 Get	 this	 quite	 clear.	 In	 the	 SAS,	 all
toughness	is	reserved	exclusively	for	the	enemy.	In	return,	the	usual	Army	bullshit	of
parades	and	saluting	officers	every	time	they	loomed	into	sight	was	to	be	dropped.	This
informal	style	was	to	become	a	hallmark	of	the	SAS.	Stirling	expected	personal	initiative,
independence	and	modesty.	Any	passengers	would	be	returned	to	their	units.
David	Stirling	also	demanded	the	utmost	physical	fitness,	but	it	was	Jock	Lewes	who
translated	the	masters	ideas	into	practicalities.	The	early	L	Detachment	training	devised
by	Lewes	was	in	essence	commando	training	adapted	to	desert	conditions,	especially	those
encountered	 at	 night.	 The	 emphasis	 was	 on	 navigation,	 weapons	 training,	 demolition
training	and	punishing	physical	training	sessions.	Endurance	marches	became	marathons
of	up	to	thirty	miles	a	night,	carrying	packs	crammed	with	sand	or	bricks.
Everyone	joining	the	SAS	had	to	be	a	parachutist,	since	Stirling	envisaged	insertion	by
air	 for	 his	 force.	 No	 parachute-training	 instructors	 were	 available	 (the	 only	 British
parachute-training	schools	extant	were	at	Ringway,	near	Manchester,	and	Delhi,	in	India),
so	 the	 SAS	 under	 Jock	 Lewes	 developed	 its	 own	 parachute-training	 techniques.	 These
involved	jumping	from	ever	higher	scaffold	towers	and	from	the	tailboard	of	a	112-pound
Bedford	 truck	 moving	 at	 thirty	 miles	 per	 hour	 across	 the	 desert.	 More	 than	 half	 the
Originals	 of	 L	 Detachment	 sustained	 injuries	 launching	 themselves	 off	 the	 back	 of	 the
Bedford.	 After	 this	 very	 basic	 parachute	 training,	 the	 L	 Detachment	 recruits	 made	 their
first	 live	 drop,	 from	 a	 Bristol	 Bombay	 aircraft.	 There	 were	 no	 reserve	 parachutes.	 Two
men,	Ken	Warburton	and	Joseph	Duffy,	died	when	the	snap-links	connecting	the	strops	on
their	 parachutes	 to	 the	 static	 rail	 in	 the	 Bombay	 twisted	 apart.	 Consequently,	 when	 they
jumped	 they	 were	 no	 longer	 attached	 to	 the	 aircraft	 	 and	 there	 was	 nothing	 to	 pull	 the
canopies	out.	Afterwards,	Original	Bob	Bennett	recalled:
We	went	to	bed	with	as	many	cigarettes	as	possible,	and	smoked	until	morning.	Next
morning,	every	man	(led	by	Stirling	himself)	jumped;	no	one	backed	out.	It	was	then
that	I	realized	that	I	was	with	a	great	bunch	of	chaps.
The	 drop	 on	 the	 morning	 of	 17	 October	 was	 a	 key	 moment	 in	 SAS	 history.	 Stirling
displayed	leadership;	he	took	the	men	through	the	doubt	and	the	darkness.
To	replace	the	faulty	clips	on	the	Bombay	had	been	straightforward;	however,	another
engineering	problem	facing	L	Detachment	proved	harder	to	solve.	What	bomb	should	the
patrols	carry	to	blow	up	German	aircraft?	The	bomb	had	to	be	small	enough	to	be	easily
transportable	but	powerful	enough	to	do	the	job	of	destruction.	Most	SAS	men	infiltrating
on	foot	from	a	drop	zone	could	only	be	expected	to	carry	two	of	the	widely	available	fivepound	 charges,	 which	 would	 only	 inflict	 superficial	 damage.	 Once	 again	 it	 was	 Jock
Lewes	to	the	rescue.	After	weeks	of	experiments	in	a	small	hut	at	Kabrit,	Lewes	invented
the	 requisite	 device,	 henceforth	 known	 as	 the	 Lewes	 bomb.	 A	 mixture	 of	 plastic
explosive,	thermite	and	aluminium	turnings	rolled	in	engine	oil,	the	device	was	sticky	and
could	quickly	be	placed	onto	the	side	of	an	aircraft.	Just	a	pound	of	Lewes	bomb	could
annihilate	an	aircraft,	meaning	that	each	trooper	could	carry	the	means	of	dispatching	ten.
By	the	end	of	August,	L	Detachment	was	ready	for	its	final	exercise,	a	dummy	attack	on
the	large	RAF	base	at	Heliopolis,	outside	Cairo.	Stirling	had	been	bluntly	told	by	an	RAF
group	captain	that	his	plan	to	sabotage	German	aircraft	on	the	ground	was	far-fetched.	So
far-fetched,	 indeed,	 that	 he	 bet	 Stirling	 10	 that	 L	 Detachment	 could	 not	 infiltrate	 the
Heliopolis	base	and	place	labels	representing	bombs	on	the	parked	aircraft.	Now,	Stirling
decided,	 it	 was	 time	 to	 pay	 up.	 The	 entire	 orbat	 (order	 of	 battle)	 of	 L	 Detachment,	 six
officers	and	fifty-five	men,	trekked	ninety	miles	across	the	desert	from	Kabrit	over	four
days,	 on	 four	 pints	 of	 water	 each,	 and	 carrying	 weights	 to	 simulate	 Lewes	 bombs.
Although	the	RAF	knew	the	SAS	were	coming,	and	even	set	up	air	patrols,	Stirling	and
his	 men	 successfully	 infiltrated	 the	 base	 on	 the	 fourth	 night	 and	 adorned	 the	 parked
aircraft	with	sticky	labels	marked	BOMB.	Stirling	collected	his	10.
The	 first	 operational	 raid	 by	 the	 SAS,	 Squatter,	 was	 planned	 for	 the	 night	 of	 17
November	 1941.	 Five	 parties	 were	 to	 be	 dropped	 from	 Bristol	 Bombays,	 to	 attack	 Axis
fighter	and	bomber	strips	at	Gazala	and	Timimi.	The	drop	zones	were	about	twelve	miles
from	 the	 objective,	 and	 the	 teams	 were	 to	 spend	 a	 day	 in	 a	 lying-up	 position	 observing
their	 targets	 before	 a	 night	 attack	 with	 Lewes	 bombs,	 to	 be	 detonated	 by	 time-delay
pencils.	After	the	attack,	the	teams	were	to	rendezvous	south	of	the	Trig	alAbd	track	with
a	motor	patrol	of	the	Long	Range	Desert	Group	(LRDG).	Reconnaissance	behind	enemy
lines	 was	 the	 stock-in-trade	 of	 the	 LRDG,	 which	 had	 been	 founded	 by	 Major	 Ralph
Bagnold,	 an	 amateur	 pre-war	 explorer	 of	 the	 Sahara.	 Stirlings	 attack	 had	 a	 purpose
beyond	the	destruction	of	enemy	aircraft:	it	was	designed	to	divert	enemy	attention	on	the
eve	 of	 Operation	 Crusader,	 Auchinlecks	 offensive	 to	 push	 Rommel	 out	 of	 Cyrenaica	 in
North	Africa.	The	same	evening	would	see	No.	11	Commando	attack	Rommels	house	in
Beda	 Littoria	 (now	 Al	 Bayd),	 a	 commando	 raid	 that,	 like	 so	 many	 previous,	 was	 a
seamless	 disaster	 resulting	 in	 the	 loss	 of	 thirty	 men	 for	 no	 gain	 whatsoever:	 the	 house
raided	had	never	even	been	used	by	Rommel.
Not	that	Stirlings	debut	raid	garnered	a	better	result,	though.	Following	a	Met	Office
forecast	of	thirty-knot	winds	and	rain	in	the	target	area,	Stirling	toyed	with	cancelling	the
Squatter	 mission,	 since	 airborne	 operations	 in	 anything	 above	 fifteen	 knots	 invariably
ended	in	the	scattering	and	injuring	of	the	parachutists.	On	further	thought,	though,	he	had
decided	to	go	ahead,	believing	that	a	cancellation	would	affect	L	Detachments	bubblingover	morale.	Moreover,	in	his	sales	talk	on	behalf	of	his	intended	parachute	force,	Stirling
had	 promised	 general	 headquarters	 that	 the	 unique	 quality	 of	 his	 unit	 was	 that	 the
weather	would	not	restrict	their	operations	to	the	same	extent	that	it	had	done	in	the	case
of	 seaborne	 special	 service	 troops.	 To	 Stirlings	 relief,	 the	 officers	 of	 L	 Detachment,
assembled	 ready	 to	 go	 at	 Baggush	 airfield,	 backed	 his	 decision	 to	 go	 ahead.	 So	 did	 the
enlisted	men.	Well	go	because	weve	got	to,	Stirling	told	them.	Any	man	who	wanted
to	could	leave.	No	one	did.
Of	the	fifty-four	SAS	men	who	jumped	out	into	the	windswept	night	of	16	November,
only	 twenty-one	 made	 the	 rendezvous	 with	 the	 LRDG.	 The	 plane	 carrying	 Lieutenant
Charles	Boningtons	stick	(team	of	parachutists)	was	hit	by	flak,	after	which	an	Me-109
fighter	 delivered	 the	 coup	 de	 grce;	 all	 the	 SAS	 men	 aboard	 were	 injured,	 one	 fatally.
Meanwhile,	Lieutenant	Eoin	McGonigal	had	been	killed	on	landing,	and	when	his	stick	set
out	towards	the	rendezvous	they	were	captured	by	an	Italian	patrol.	Nearly	every	man	in
Stirlings,	 Maynes	 and	 Lewess	 sticks	 suffered	 concussion,	 sprains	 or	 broken	 bones;
Maynes	 troop	 sergeant,	 Jock	 Cheyne,	 broke	 his	 back.	 Since	 all	 their	 gear	 had	 been
dropped	 separately,	 even	 the	 walking	 able	 found	 themselves	 lacking	 bombs	 and	 fuses.
What	 fuses	 were	 recovered	 were	 then	 wrecked	 by	 driving	 rain,	 the	 storm	 of	 16	 and	 17
November	1941	being	one	of	the	worst	of	the	war	in	the	Western	Desert.	Demoralized,	the
survivors	trekked	to	the	rendezvous	not	through	blistering	heat,	as	they	had	expected,	but
through	mud	and	floods.	Stirling	and	Bob	Tait	were	among	the	last	to	arrive.	Waiting	for
them	on	the	Trig	alAbd	was	Captain	David	Lloyd	Owen	of	the	LRDGs	Y	patrol:
One	very	interesting	thing	arose	from	my	meeting	with	David	Stirling	that	morning.
David	told	me	all	about	the	operation	and	that	it	had	been	a	total	failure.	He	was	a
remarkable	 man.	 He	 never	 gave	 in	 to	 failure	 and	 was	 determined	 to	 make	 the	 next
operation	 a	 success.	 I	 turned	 over	 in	 my	 mind,	 Why	 the	 hell	 do	 this	 ridiculous
parachuting,	why	didnt	they	let	us	take	them	to	where	they	wanted	to	go?	We	could
take	them	like	a	taxi	to	do	the	job.	We	could	push	off	while	they	did	their	task,	and
then	pick	them	up	at	an	agreed	rendezvous.
The	LRDG	had	just	got	themselves	a	job	as	Stirlings	taxi	company.
Although	 Stirling	 thought	 his	 L	 Detachment	 SAS	 might	 be	 killed	 off	 as	 a	 result	 of
Squatters	 failure,	 no-one	 at	 general	 headquarters	 seemed	 to	 care	 much.	 General
headquarters	 had	 bigger	 problems	 on	 its	 mind	 than	 the	 loss	 of	 thirty-four	 parachutists:
Rommel	 was	 making	 his	 famous	 dash	 to	 the	 wire	 and	 a	 counter-thrust	 was	 needed.	 It
would	help	the	counter-thrust	if	the	Axis	aircraft	at	Tamet,	Sirte,	Aghayala	and	Agedabia
aerodromes	 were	 destroyed.	 Stirling	 was	 given	 another	 chance	 and	 he	 took	 it	 with	 both
hands.	This	time	there	was	to	be	no	parachute	drop:	the	SAS	were	to	be	taxied	to	the	target
by	the	LRDG.
On	8	December,	Stirling,	Mayne	and	eleven	other	SAS	men	departed	their	temporary
headquarters	 at	 Jalo	 oasis	 accompanied	 by	 the	 LRDGs	 Rhodesian	 patrol	 under	 the
command	of	Captain	Gus	Holliman.	Stirling	and	Mayne	were	set	to	raid	Sirte	and	Tamet
airfields,	which	were	about	350	miles	from	Jalo,	on	the	night	of	14	December.	At	the	same
time,	 Jock	 Lewes	 was	 to	 lead	 a	 section	 in	 an	 attack	 on	 Aghayla.	 A	 fourth	 SAS	 patrol,
comprising	 four	 men	 under	 Lieutenant	 Bill	 Fraser,	 was	 to	 raid	 Agedabia	 a	 week	 later.
Sitting	 aboard	 the	 LRDGs	 stripped-down	 Ford	 trucks,	 the	 SAS	 men	 were	 overcome	 by
the	 vastness	 of	 the	 Sahara.	 There	 was	 no	 sign	 of	 life,	 and	 Stirling	 found	 the	 brooding
solitude	 like	 being	 on	 the	 high	 seas.	 Courtesy	 of	 dead-on	 navigation	 by	 the	 LRDGs
Corporal	 Mike	 Sadler,	 the	 SAS	 were	 just	 forty	 miles	 south	 of	 Sirte	 by	 noon	 on	 11
December.	 Then	 their	 luck	 changed:	 an	 Italian	 Ghibli	 spotter	 plane	 appeared	 out	 of	 the
haze	to	strafe	and	bomb	them.	Holliman	ordered	the	patrol	to	make	for	cover	in	a	thorn
scrub	two	miles	back,	and	there	they	lay	as	two	more	Ghiblis	came	hunting,	but	failed	to
see	the	patrol.	The	element	of	surprise,	the	sine	qua	non	of	the	SAS,	was	lost.	Even	so,
Stirling	was	determined	to	press	on,	and	the	obliging	LRDG	dropped	the	SAS	off	not	at
the	 agreed	 twenty	 miles	 from	 Sirte,	 but	 a	 mere	 three	 miles.	 Knowing	 that	 a	 reception
committee	 was	 likely	 to	 be	 waiting,	 Stirling	 chose	 not	 to	 risk	 his	 whole	 section	 but	 to
instead	infiltrate	the	airfield	with	just	one	companion,	Sergeant	Jimmy	Brough.	The	rest	of
the	 team,	 under	 Mayne,	 was	 sent	 to	 a	 satellite	 airfield	 five	 miles	 away	 at	 Wadi	 Tamet.
Unfortunately,	 during	 their	 recce	 of	 the	 airfield	 Stirling	 and	 Brough	 stumbled	 over	 two
Italian	sentries,	one	of	whom	began	firing	off	bullets,	causing	the	SAS	men	to	sprint	away
into	the	desert	night.	Next	day,	as	they	lay	up	near	the	base,	Stirling	and	Brough	watched
in	 bitter	 frustration	 as	 one	 Italian	 Caproni	 bomber	 after	 another	 flew	 away.	 Alerted	 and
suspicious,	the	Italians	were	evacuating	the	airfield.
At	nightfall,	Stirling	and	Brough	tramped	in	silence	to	the	rendezvous	with	the	LRDG.
Once	again,	an	SAS	operation	had	been	a	wash-out.	Stirling	knew	that	unless	Mayne	and
Lewes	 triumphed,	 the	 disbandment	 of	 the	 SAS	 was	 likely.	 Maynes	 attack	 was	 to	 take
place	at	11	p.m.:	the	hour	came	and	went,	unlit	by	explosions,	and	then	there	was	a	great
whumph	and	a	bolt	of	flame	in	the	west,	followed	by	explosion	upon	explosion.	The	SAS
was	in	the	sabotage	business.	Stirling	and	Brough	almost	danced	with	delight.	Jock	Lewes
had	not	enjoyed	good	hunting,	but	when	Bill	Frasers	party	reached	their	rendezvous	they
reported	 the	 most	 astounding	 success	 of	 all.	 They	 had	 blown	 up	 thirty-seven	 aircraft	 at
Agedabia	aerodrome.	In	this	week-long	sequence	of	raids,	the	SAS	had	accounted	for	no
less	than	sixty-one	enemy	aircraft	destroyed,	together	with	petrol,	stores	and	transport.
His	tail	up,	Stirling	could	not	wait	to	have	another	go	at	the	enemy.	On	the	presumption
that	the	enemy	would	not	expect	another	attack	so	soon,	Stirling	and	Mayne	set	off	from
their	 Jalo	 desert	 base	 on	 Christmas	 Day	 1941	 to	 revisit	 Tamet	 and	 Sirte.	 Their	 second
attack	 was	 a	 mirror	 image	 of	 the	 first.	 Mayne	 destroyed	 twenty-seven	 aircraft	 at	 Tamet;
Stirling	 was	 unable	 to	 reach	 the	 airfield	 because	 of	 the	 crush	 of	 German	 armour	 and
vehicles	around	it.	He	was	fortunate	to	escape	with	his	life:	an	Italian	guard	tried	to	shoot
him,	only	to	discover	he	had	a	faulty	round	in	the	barrel	of	his	rifle.	Meanwhile,	Fraser
and	Lewes	were	taken	by	Lieutenant	Morriss	LRDG	patrol	to	raid	airstrips	at	Nofilia	and
Ras	 Lanuf.	 At	 the	 latter	 location,	 Mussolini	 had	 built	 a	 grandiose	 triumphal	 arch	 to
commemorate	his	African	conquests;	to	the	Tommies	it	looked	similar	to	the	arch	at	the
end	of	Oxford	Street,	and	Marble	Arch	it	became	known	to	one	and	all	throughout	the
British	 Army.	 Lewes	 had	 a	 difficult	 time	 at	 Nofilia	 when	 a	 bomb	 he	 was	 placing	 on	 an
aircraft	exploded	prematurely.	Withdrawing	under	heavy	fire,	he	and	his	party	were	picked
up	by	their	LRDG	escort,	only	to	come	under	attack	by	Messerschmitts	and	Stukas	in	the
open	desert.	Jock	Lewes	was	killed,	the	survivors	scattered.
The	death	of	Lewes	was	a	heavy	blow	to	Stirling,	as	there	was	no	one	else	on	whom	he
so	heavily	relied.	There	was	more	bad	news:	Captain	Frasers	patrol	was	missing		but	to
this	episode,	at	least,	there	was	a	happy	ending.	On	finding	the	Marble	Arch	strip	bereft	of
aircraft,	Fraser	and	his	section	had	waited	for	Morriss	LRDG	patrol.	When,	after	six	days,
Morris	failed	to	arrive,	the	SAS	men	decided	to	walk	the	200	burning	miles	to	Jalo.	Their
walk,	which	took	eight	days,	was	the	first	of	several	epic	peregrinations	in	the	SAS	annals,
to	rank	alongside	that	of	Trooper	Jack	Sillito	the	following	year	(again,	200	miles	in	eight
days,	 drinking	 his	 own	 urine	 for	 hydration).	 Frasers	 walk	 and	 the	 units	 bag	 of	 nearly
ninety	 aircraft	 in	 a	 month	 were	 an	 emphatic	 vindication	 of	 Stirlings	 concept	 of	 smallscale	raiding	by	a	volunteer	elite.
It	was	Stirlings	gift	as	a	leader	to	see	the	big	picture,	and	where	the	SAS	fitted	into	it.
He	was	also,	due	to	his	social	background	and	boundless	confidence,	possessed	of	friends
in	the	highest	places.	Both	attributes	came	together	in	early	January	1942,	when	Stirling
sought	a	personal	interview	with	Auchinleck,	the	Commander-in-Chief,	during	which	he
proposed	that	L	Detachment	should	switch	from	striking	airfields	to	ports.	Although	the
Crusader	offensive	had	pushed	Rommel	westwards,	 the	 Afrika	 Korps	 remained	 a	 potent
force,	not	least	because	it	continued	to	receive	supplies	of	Panzer	tanks	through	the	coastal
harbours.	Stirling	pointed	out	to	Auchinleck	that	Bouerat	would	become	the	likely	main
supply	harbour	for	the	Afrika	Korps,	and	that	the	fuel	dumps	there	could	and	should	be
blown	up.	Auchinleck	agreed.	When	Stirling	asked	for	men	for	L	Detachment,	Auchinleck
gave	him	permission	to	recruit	a	further	six	officers	and	thirty	to	forty	men,	some	of	whom
could	 be	 drawn	 from	 the	 Special	 Boat	 Section	 of	 No.	 8	 Commando.	 For	 good	 measure,
Auchinleck	promoted	Stirling	to	major.
There	was	one	final	thing:	Stirlings	enemies	in	general	headquarters	(the	kind	of	literalminded	men	who	considered	irregular	forces	a	diversion	from	the	real	war)	had	bluntly
informed	him	that	L	Detachment,	because	it	was	a	temporary	unit,	could	not	have	its	own
badge.	 Nonetheless,	 Stirling	 brashly	 wore	 SAS	 wings	 and	 cap	 badge	 to	 meet	 the
Commander-in-Chief.	Stirling	had	calculated	correctly:	Auchinleck	liked	and	approved	of
the	badge.	The	SAS	badge	was	more	than	a	mark	of	an	elite	unit		it	was	a	debt	Stirling
felt	 he	 owed	 Lewes,	 who	 had	 been	 instrumental	 in	 its	 design.	 The	 so-called	 Winged
Dagger	 was	 modelled	 by	 Bob	 Tait	 on	 King	 Arthurs	 sword	 Excalibur,	 while	 the	 wings
were	probably	taken	from	an	ibis	on	a	fresco	in	Shepheards	Hotel	in	Cairo.	The	colours	of
the	wings,	Oxford	blue	and	Cambridge	blue,	were	selected	because	Lewes	had	rowed	for
Oxford,	 and	 Tom	 Langton,	 another	 early	 L-Detachment	 officer,	 for	 Cambridge.	 It	 was
Stirling	himself	who	came	up	with	the	motto	Who	Dares	Wins.	The	badge	was	worn	on
berets,	 which	 at	 first	 were	 white,	 but	 changed,	 when	 these	 attracted	 wolf	 whistles,	 to	 a
sand	colour,	which	they	still	are.
On	 the	 way	 back	 to	 Jalo,	 Stirling	 came	 across	 fifty	 French	 parachutists	 at	 Alexandria
who,	 after	 some	 vigorous	 appeals	 to	 the	 Free	 French	 commander	 in	 Cairo,	 General
Catroux,	 Stirling	 annexed	 for	 the	 SAS.	 He	 also	 recruited	 Captain	 Bill	 Cumper	 of	 the
Royal	 Engineers,	 a	 Cockney	 explosives	 expert	 who	 would	 take	 on	 the	 vacancy	 of
demolitions	 instructor	 left	 open	 by	 Lewess	 death.	 But	 Cumper	 could	 not	 take	 on	 the
whole	gamut	of	training	the	SAS	recruits	who	were	now	so	numerous	the	camp	at	Kabrit
was	 overflowing	 with	 them;	 that	 mantle,	 Stirling	 resolved,	 should	 be	 taken	 by	 Paddy
Mayne.	 Sitting	 in	 his	 tent,	 Stirling	 explained	 his	 thinking	 to	 Mayne,	 who	 accepted	 with
bad	 grace	 verging	 on	 insubordination.	 He	 would	 only	 do	 his	 best,	 and	 then	 only	 on	 a
temporary	 basis.	 Mayne	 even	 hinted	 that	 Stirling	 was	 green-eyed	 about	 his	 success	 in
blowing	up	aircraft,	and	pinning	him	to	a	desk	was	a	way	of	stealing	the	glory.
With	a	moody	Mayne	left	sulking	in	Kabrit,	on	17	January	Stirling	launched	a	raid	on
Bouerat	from	Jalo.	Taxiing	the	SAS	team	out	was	the	Guards	patrol	of	the	LRDG,	led	by
Captain	Anthony	Hunter.	As	on	previous	missions,	Stirling	seemed	chained	to	ill	luck.	On
the	sixth	day	out,	the	patrol	was	strafed	and	bombed	in	the	Wadi	Tamrit,	with	the	loss	of
the	radio	truck	and	three	men.	Then	Stirling	instructed	the	two	Special	Boat	Section	men
in	the	party	to	assemble	their	folbot	(a	type	of	collapsible	canoe)	before	the	final	approach,
the	plan	being	for	the	SBS	men	to	paddle	out	and	set	limpet	mines	on	ships	in	the	harbour.
As	their	1,680-pound	Ford	truck	neared	Bouerat,	it	lurched	down	a	pothole	and	the	folbot
shattered.	 Not	 that	 it	 mattered:	 there	 were	 no	 ships	 in	 the	 port.	 Instead,	 Stirling	 had	 to
satisfy	himself	with	detonating	petrol	bowsers	and	the	wireless	station.
Picked	up	by	a	LRDG	truck	driven	by	Corporal	Flash	Gibson,	Stirling	and	his	crew
rode	around,	stopping	to	plant	bombs	on	parked	trucks.	They	then	made	off	to	the	main
rendezvous.	 Mounted	 on	 the	 back	 of	 the	 Ford	 V-8	 truck	 was	 a	 novelty	 	 a	 Vickers	 K
aircraft-type	machine-gun,	whose	.303-inch	barrels	could	spew	out	bullets	at	1,200	rounds
per	minute.	Johnny	Cooper	was	the	man	with	his	finger	on	the	trigger:
As	we	motored	at	speed	along	the	track,	we	suddenly	noticed	flashing	lights	up	ahead
of	us	and	a	few	isolated	shots	whizzed	through	the	air.	Whether	they	were	warning
shots	or	the	enemy	clearing	their	guns	we	did	not	know,	but	as	our	truck	accelerated
down	a	slight	incline	it	became	painfully	obvious	that	an	ambush	had	been	set	up		I
slipped	 off	 the	 safety	 catch	 and	 let	 fly	 with	 a	 devastating	 mixture	 of	 tracer	 and
incendiary,	amazed	at	the	firepower	of	the	Vickers.	At	the	same	time,	Reg	[Seekings]
opened	 up	 with	 his	 Thompson,	 and	 we	 ploughed	 through	 the	 ambush,	 completely
outgunning	 and	 demoralizing	 the	 Italians.	 Gibson,	 with	 great	 presence	 of	 mind,
switched	on	the	headlamps	and	roared	away	at	about	40	mph,	driving	with	absolute
efficiency	and	coolness	to	extricate	us	from	a	difficult	position.
Gibson	 was	 awarded	 the	 Military	 Medal	 (MM)	 for	 the	 operation,	 and	 Johnny	 Cooper
the	Distinguished	Conduct	Medal.	The	Vickers	K,	fired	for	the	first	time	in	action	by	the
SAS,	became	the	units	weapon	of	choice	for	the	rest	of	the	war.
Aside	from	the	constant	struggle	with	Middle	East	Headquarters	to	preserve,	let	alone
expand,	 L	 Detachment,	 Stirling	 threw	 himself	 into	 the	 planning	 of	 another	 raid	 	 one
which	tested	the	soundness	of	his	strategic	vision.	This	raid	was	intended	to	assist	in	the
battle	 of	 Malta.	 Perched	 in	 the	 middle	 of	 the	 Mediterranean,	 British-controlled	 Malta
posed	 a	 mortal	 threat	 to	 Rommels	 line	 of	 supply	 back	 to	 Italy.	 Consequently,	 the	 Axis
forces	were	trying	to	bomb	and	blockade	the	island	into	submission.	Announcing	that	the
loss	 of	 Malta	 would	 be	 a	 disaster	 of	 the	 first	 magnitude	 to	 the	 British	 Empire,	 and
probably	 fatal	 in	 the	 long	 run	 to	 the	 defence	 of	 the	 Nile	 Valley,	 Churchill	 decreed	 that
two	 supply	 convoys	 must	 get	 through	 in	 the	 June	 dark-phase.	 Since	 these	 convoys
would	almost	certainly	be	attacked	by	Axis	aircraft	operating	from	Cyrenaica	and	Crete,
Stirling	proposed	that	L	Detachment	mount	a	synchronized	attack	on	Axis	aerodromes	in
these	locations	on	13	and	14	June	1942.	Fortunately	for	L	Detachment,	its	ranks	had	been
modestly	 enlarged	 by	 the	 annexation	 of	 the	 Special	 Interrogation	 Group.	 This	 had	 been
formed	by	Captain	Buck	and	consisted	of	German-speaking	Jews	and	a	couple	of	Afrika
Korps	deserters,	all	of	whom	were	prepared	to	masquerade	in	German	uniform,	knowing
all	too	well	their	fate	if	caught.
The	 various	 L	 Detachment	 teams	 who	 were	 to	 carry	 out	 the	 raids	 in	 North	 Africa
gathered	at	Siwa,	before	being	escorted	to	within	striking	distance	of	their	targets	by	the
LRDG.	Stirling,	accompanied	by	his	familiars,	Cooper	and	Seekings,	headed	for	Benina
aerodrome.	 For	 once,	 Stirling	 had	 good	 hunting.	 Bombs	 planted,	 the	 SAS	 men	 sneaked
away	 to	 watch	 what	 Cooper	 remembered	 as	 a	 fantastic	 fireworks	 display.	 He	 found	 it
difficult	 to	 believe	 that	 just	 three	 men	 and	 the	 contents	 of	 their	 knapsacks	 had	 wrought
such	destruction.
In	what	was	destined	to	be	the	last	phase	of	the	SASs	war	in	the	Western	Desert,	the
SAS	 were	 charged	 with	 four	 tasks,	 all	 intended	 to	 aid	 and	 abet	 Montgomerys	 offensive
against	Tripoli	in	January	1943.	One	party	was	to	operate	west	of	Tripoli	to	facilitate	the
8th	Armys	advance;	another	was	to	reconnoitre	the	defensive	Mareth	Line	with	a	view	to
discovering	 a	 way	 around	 it;	 a	 third	 operation	 consisted	 of	 raiding	 the	 enemys	 supply
lines	between	Gabs	and	Sfax;	lastly,	Colonel	Stirling	would	lead	a	patrol	as	far	north	as
northern	Tunisia,	where	it	would	cut	the	Sousse	railway	line.	Stirling	also	intended	to	link
up	with	his	brother,	Bill,	who	had	formed	the	2nd	SAS	Regiment,	which	was	advancing
eastwards	as	part	of	the	1st	Army,	following	the	Torch	landings	in	Algeria	in	November.
The	link-up	with	Bill	Stirling	had	more	than	fraternal	importance:	David	Stirling	intended
to	 build	 the	 SAS	 (which	 some	 wags	 now	 said	 stood	 for	 Stirling	 and	 Stirling)	 up	 to
Brigade	strength.
David	Stirling	set	out	for	northern	Tunisia	on	10	January.	After	successfully	completing
his	reconnaissance	of	the	Mareth	flank,	he	sped	towards	Sousse.	Rommels	position	was
deteriorating,	and	haste	in	knocking	out	his	communication	lines	seemed	sensible.	Instead
of	 taking	 the	 slower,	 safer	 route	 south	 of	 Chott	 el	 Djerid	 salt	 marsh,	 Stirling,	 with	 five
jeeps	 and	 fourteen	 men,	 headed	 for	 the	 Gabes	 gap.	 Stirling	 was	 captured	 by	 a	 German
parachute	battalion.
Following	 Stirlings	 capture	 1	 SAS	 was	 placed	 under	 the	 command	 of	 Major	 Paddy
Mayne	 and	 renamed	 the	 Special	 Raiding	 Squadron	 (SRS),	 while	 2	 SAS	 continued	 to	 be
commanded	 by	 Lieutenant	 Colonel	 Bill	 Stirling.	 Both	 units	 functioned	 independently	 of
each	 other.	 Meanwhile,	 the	 SBS	 was	 unshackled	 from	 a	 brief	 marriage	 to	 the	 SAS	 and
rebranded	the	Special	Boat	Squadron	and	placed	in	the	care	of	Major	the	Earl	Jellicoe.
Reorganization	 was	 all	 well	 and	 good,	 but	 what	 was	 the	 British	 Army	 to	 do	 with	 the
abundance	of	Special	Forces	at	its	disposal	now	the	war	in	North	Africa	was	all	but	over?
In	truth,	there	was	no	place	else	for	the	SAS	but	the	Mediterranean.	Direct	cross-channel
attack	 on	 Nazi-occupied	 France	 was	 more	 than	 a	 year	 away,	 and	 the	 Far	 East	 campaign
had	 its	 own	 Special	 Forces	 in	 Orde	 Wingates	 Chindits.	 Accordingly,	 the	 SRS	 and	 2
SAS	were	warned	for	action	in	the	forthcoming	invasion	of	Sicily	(to	be	followed	by	the
invasion	 of	 Italy	 proper),	 where	 they	 were	 used	 wantonly	 as	 assault	 troops	 rather	 than
Special	 Forces.	 Not	 until	 early	 September	 1943	 and	 Operation	 Speedwell	 was	 the	 SAS
used	 strategically.	 To	 stop	 the	 flow	 of	 German	 troops	 down	 Italy	 following	 Mussolinis
surrender,	 SAS	 parachutists	 were	 tasked	 with	 derailing	 trains	 by	 blowing	 up	 railway
tunnels.	 For	 the	 size	 of	 the	 force	 dropped	 	 thirteen	 men	 	 the	 Speedwell	 operation
achieved	 a	 significant	 result,	 and	 Bill	 Stirling	 pressed	 Supreme	 Allied	 headquarters	 in
Italy	to	action	more	such	deep	behind-the-lines	sabotage	by	SAS	units.	For	the	most	part,
Bill	Stirlings	pleadings	fell	on	deaf	ears,	beginning	a	disillusionment	with	the	top	brass
that	 would	 see	 his	 eventual	 resignation	 as	 2	 SASs	 commanding	 officer.	 Even	 if	 not
deployed	 to	 its	 best	 advantage,	 however,	 the	 SRS/SAS	 contributed	 substantially	 to	 the
campaign	 in	 Italy	 in	 1943,	 with	 detachments	 taking	 part	 in	 significant	 battles	 at	 Taranto
and	Termoli.
The	 SRS	 was	 withdrawn	 from	 Italy	 in	 Autumn	 1943,	 but	 detachments	 of	 2	 SAS
continued	 to	 operate	 in	 Italy	 until	 the	 end	 of	 the	 war	 in	 Europe.	 The	 Regiments	 most
effective	 actions	 in	 the	 twilight	 of	 the	 Italian	 campaign	 tended	 to	 be	 those	 jointly
undertaken	 with	 the	 partisans,	 as	 with	 3	 Squadrons	 Tombola	 operation.	 Newly	 raised,
mainly	 from	 volunteers	 from	 the	 1st	 and	 6th	 Airborne	 Divisions,	 3	 Squadron	 was
commanded	 by	 Roy	 Farran,	 now	 promoted	 to	 major.	 The	 idea	 behind	 Tombola	 was	 to
insert	 a	 well-equipped	 SAS	 party	 into	 the	 enemy-held	 province	 of	 Emilia-Romagna,
where	 it	 would	 co-operate	 with	 partisan	 brigades	 (Commando	 Unico)	 in	 operations
against	 the	 German	 defensive	 position	 to	 the	 south	 known	 as	 the	 Gothic	 Line.	 The
centrepiece	of	Tombola	was	an	attack	on	the	German	corps	headquarters	at	Albinea	in	the
Po	Valley.	One	notable	feature	of	Tombola,	and	similar	operations	in	Italy,	was	that	junior
non-commissioned	officers	and	private	soldiers	were	put	in	charge	of	partisan	teams.	It
was	 extraordinary,	 Farran	 wrote,	 how	 successful	 the	 British	 common	 soldiers	 were	 as
detachment	commanders.	In	this	respect	Tombola	and	its	counterparts	anticipated	22	SAS
operations	in	Oman	in	the	1960s,	when	the	Regiment	fought	alongside	tribal	levies.
Tombola	aside,	Italy	was	a	minor	theatre	for	2	SAS	from	mid-1944,	since,	alongside	the
SRS,	it	was	preparing	for	the	main	invasion	of	Europe:	the	D-Day	landings.	Both	2	SAS
and	 SRS	 became	 part	 of	 SAS	 Brigade	 commanded	 by	 Brigadier	 R.W.	 McLeod,	 under
Lieutenant	 General	 Frederick	 Brownings	 1st	 Airborne	 Corps.	 To	 the	 undisguised
irritation	of	the	SAS,	Boy	Browning	made	them	exchange	their	sand-coloured	berets	for
the	red	ones	of	Airborne.	There	were	other	changes.	The	SRS	reverted	to	its	former	name
of	1	SAS,	and	expanded	to	regimental	strength.	Paddy	Mayne	remained	as	commanding
officer.	The	remainder	of	the	Brigade	comprised	two	French	parachute	battalions,	3	and	4
SAS	(also	known	as	2me	and	3me	 Regiment	 de	 Chausseurs	 Parachutistes),	 a	 Belgian
squadron,	 and	 F	 Squadron	 GHQ	 Liaison	 Regiment	 (Phantom).	 Almost	 inevitably,	 there
was	 an	 argument	 as	 to	 how	 the	 SAS	 Brigade,	 of	 some	 2,500	 troops,	 should	 be	 used.
Despite	 two	 full	 years	 of	 SAS	 activity,	 most	 top	 brass	 continued	 to	 be	 blind	 to	 the
proper	 employment	 of	 the	 SAS	 as	 saboteurs	 behind	 the	 main	 battle	 area.	 It	 was	 at	 this
juncture	 that	 the	 exasperated	 Bill	 Stirling	 resigned	 his	 command.	 He	 was	 replaced	 by
Lieutenant	 Colonel	 Brian	 Franks,	 a	 founder	 member	 of	 No.	 8	 Commando.	 Eventually,
there	was	an	outbreak	of	wisdom	and	Bill	Stirlings	concepts	were	adopted.	In	brief,	it	was
decided	that	the	SAS	Brigade	would	carry	out	three	types	of	operation	during	the	invasion
of	France.	First,	the	SAS	would	identify	targets	for	the	RAF,	as	well	as	sabotaging	such
targets	 themselves.	 Second,	 the	 SAS	 would	 train	 the	 French	 Resistance,	 to	 enable	 the
Resistance	to	help	delay	the	flow	of	German	reinforcements	to	the	front.	Third,	the	SAS
would	undertake	offensive	patrols	deep	behind	the	lines	in	armoured	jeeps.	Any	SAS	men
caught	would	most	likely	be	executed:	Hitler	had	decreed	that	these	men	are	dangerous
and	 needed	 to	 be	 ruthlessly	 exterminated.	 Hitlers	 notorious	 Commando	 Order,
however,	did	little	to	put	off	recruits	to	the	expanding	SAS.
On	5	June	1945,	the	eve	of	D-Day,	the	first	SAS	patrols	were	dropped	into	France.	By
the	time	of	the	German	surrender	11	months	later,	SAS	Brigade	had	completed	more	than
50	 operations	 in	 northwest	 Europe.	 Operation	 Houndsworth	 was	 typical	 of	 the	 early
offensive	patrols	of	its	mission	in	France.	Over	three	months,	153	jeep-raiding	troops	from
A	 1	 SAS	 Squadron	 (with	 some	 2	 SAS	 and	 Maquis)	 made	 twenty-two	 railcuts	 on	 the
DijonParis	line,	derailed	six	trains,	destroyed	seventy	vehicles	and	caused	more	than	200
enemy	casualties.	A	dramatic	validation	of	the	Regiments	motto,	Who	Dares	Wins,	was
Major	 Roy	 Farran.	 His	 squadron	 of	 sixty	 men	 and	 twenty-three	 jeeps	 was	 loaded	 onto
Dakota	airfield	on	19	August	1944	and	flown	to	Rennes	airfield,	from	where	they	slipped
through	 the	 frontline.	 So	 began	 Farrans	 remarkable	 Jeep	 operation	 Wallace,	 which
covered	more	distance	behind	the	lines	than	any	other	2	SAS	mission	of	the	war.	The	party
drove	200	miles	through	enemy	lines	in	four	days,	joining	the	base	set	up	by	the	earlier
Operation	Hardy	near	Chatillon,	north	of	Dijon.	His	operation,	ending	on	September	17,
resulted	 in	 500	 enemy	 casualties,	 the	 destruction	 of	 ninety-five	 vehicles,	 a	 train	 and
100,000	gallons	of	petrol.	On	the	way	back	through	France,	Farrans	squadron	took	illicit
leave	in	Paris.	Operation	Wallace	brought	him	a	DSO.
The	 SAS	 became	 the	 victim	 of	 the	 success	 it	 had	 helped	 deliver:	 the	 removal	 of	 the
Germans	from	France	left	little	for	the	SAS	to	do.	Field	Marshal	Model,	one	of	Hitlers
ablest	soldiers,	had	stabilized	the	front	in	north-west	Europe,	roughly	along	the	Rhine,	and
operations	 in	 Germany	 behind	 the	 lines	 were	 not	 quite	 unthinkable	 (indeed,	 they	 were
entertained)	but	were	eventually	ruled	out	as	being	suicidal.	So	far	in	Europe	the	SAS	had
worked	 in	 arenas	 where	 some	 support	 could	 be	 expected	 from	 the	 locals;	 in	 Hitlers
Deutschland	that	would	not	be	the	case.
Throughout	the	winter	of	194445	the	SAS	became	preoccupied	with	finding	a	role	for
itself.	 One	 squadron,	 as	 we	 have	 seen,	 was	 detached	 under	 Major	 Farran	 for	 Operation
Tombola	in	Italy;	otherwise	the	SAS	had	to	wait	until	fluidity	came	to	the	north-west	front
in	March	1945	to	re-join	the	fighting.	At	that	point	the	SAS	Brigade,	now	under	control	of
Mad	Mike	Calvert,	was	employed	by	the	21st	Army	Group	for	reconnaissance	ahead	of
its	drive	into	the	heartland	of	Germany.	Once	again,	this	was	not	traditional	SAS	work.
As	 they	 probed	 into	 Germany,	 SAS	 units	 encountered	 fanatical,	 if	 sporadic,	 resistance
from	 Hitler	 Youth,	 the	 Wehrmacht,	 the	 SS,	 the	 Volkssturm	 (Home	 Guard)	 	 anybody,
indeed,	the	Nazi	authorities	could	place	in	the	Allies	way.	SAS	troopers	were	amongst	the
first	 to	 enter	 Belsen	 death	 camp:	 that	 L	 Detachment	 stalwart,	 Johnny	 Cooper,	 who	 had
been	commissioned	in	the	field,	recalled:
Once	 inside	 we	 realized	 the	 vast	 size	 of	 the	 camp,	 and	 I	 will	 never	 forget	 my	 first
sight	of	the	inmates.	Ostensibly	they	were	living	human	beings,	but	to	me,	the	men,
women	and	even	children	were	just	walking	skeletons.
Then	the	war	in	Europe	was	over.	The	SAS	was	ordered	to	disband.	On	the	morning	of	8
October	1945,	1	SAS	paraded	at	its	Hylands	Park	barracks	in	Chelmsford	for	the	last	time.
On	 the	 same	 day	 that	 1	 SAS	 was	 disbanded,	 2	 SAS	 took	 its	 farewell	 parade	 at	 its
Colchester	HQ.	The	French	and	the	Belgian	regiments	had	already	been	returned	to	their
respective	countries.
Officially,	on	8	October	1945	the	SAS	founded	by	Stirling,	Lewes	and	Mayne	ceased	to
exist;	 in	 actuality,	 it	 remained	 alive.	 Just.	 A	 team	 of	 SAS	 men,	 including	 L	 Detachment
Original	 Bob	 Bennett,	 were	 attached	 to	 the	 Military	 Reparations	 Committee	 in	 Greece,
where	 they	 proudly	 sported	 their	 winged-dagger	 badge.	 Brian	 Franks,	 still	 pained	 and
outraged	 by	 the	 murder	 of	 SAS	 soldiers	 during	 behind-the-lines	 operations	 in	 Occupied
Europe,	organized	a	team	to	investigate	the	crimes	and	bring	those	responsible	to	justice.
This	became	the	SAS	War	Crimes	Team,	which	operated	for	four	years	and	successfully
identified	several	Nazi	perpetrators.	Beyond	these	two	small	SAS	remnants,	the	regiments
veterans	kept	in	personal	contact.	Johnny	Cooper	was	invited	by	David	Stirling,	long	since
released	 from	 Colditz,	 to	 lunch	 at	 Whites	 in	 London.	 Stirling,	 thought	 Cooper,	 looked
none	the	worse	for	his	stay	at	Hitlers	pleasure.	Also	in	attendance	were	George	Jellicoe,
Fitzroy	Maclean	and	Randolph	Churchill.	Such	social	occasions	were	pleasant	chances	to
air	 memories.	 They	 were	 also	 opportunities	 for	 ex-SAS	 men	 to	 plan	 the	 regiments	 rise
anew.	Eventually,	lobbying	of	the	War	Office	by	SAS	veterans,	chiefly	Mike	Calvert	and
Brian	 Franks,	 brought	 its	 reward,	 and	 in	 1947	 an	 SAS	 unit	 was	 formed	 within	 the
Territorial	Army.	It	was	attached	to	a	former	officers	training	unit,	the	Artists	Rifles,	to
become	 21	 (Artists)	 TA,	 based	 at	 Dukes	 Road,	 Euston.	 The	 commanding	 officer	 was
Lieutenant	Colonel	Brian	Franks,	2	SASs	sometime	commander	during	the	Second	World
War.
Wartime	SAS	soldiers	flocked	to	the	new	TA	SAS,	so	many,	indeed,	that	Johnny	Cooper
found	 the	 first	 training	 camp	 a	 splendid	 reunion.	 This	 TA	 SAS	 unit,	 which	 still	 exists
and	is	complemented	by	another	TA	SAS	unit,	23	SAS,	provided	many	of	the	volunteers
for	a	long-range	patrol	Franks	raised	for	Korea,	where	the	first	major	war	since	1945	was
being	 fought	 between	 the	 Communist	 North	 and	 the	 UN-backed	 South.	 Before	 Franks
Jeep	 patrol	 could	 be	 sent	 to	 Korea,	 though,	 the	 UN	 commander,	 General	 MacArthur,
reckoned	a	drought.	Sores	festered,	clothes	and	boots	rotted	in	the	damp,	and	fevers	such
as	Weils	disease	abounded.	By	the	end	of	a	patrol,	a	soldier	would	on	average	have	lost
ten	pounds.	Despite	the	hardships,	however,	patrols	stayed	out	in	the	jungle	for	longer	and
longer	periods,	as	the	regiments	jungle	education	grew.
By	1956,	the	regiment	was	up	to	a	strength	of	560	men	and	making	a	real	contribution
towards	containing	the	Emergency:	its	tally	of	communist	terrorists	killed	was	eighty-nine.
Captured	Communist	terrorists	confessed	that	the	SAS	patrols,	even	when	failing	to	make
contact	 with	 the	 enemy,	 were	 so	 disruptive	 as	 to	 render	 guerrilla	 warfare	 all	 but
impossible.	Four	years	later,	the	Emergency	was	over.	The	leaders	of	the	MRLA	had	fled
to	 Thailand,	 and	 the	 murders	 of	 civilians	 had	 almost	 ceased.	 After	 its	 eight	 years	 in
Malaya,	the	regiment	had,	despite	an	inauspicious	start,	become	a	highly	professional	unit.
In	1957,	in	recognition,	22	SAS	was	placed	in	the	order	of	battle	of	the	British	Army,	and
as	a	result	was	able	to	re-adopt	both	the	beige	beret	and	the	winged-dagger	badge.	For	all
this,	 the	 future	 of	 the	 regiment	 was	 far	 from	 assured:	 the	 whispers	 from	 Whitehall	 were
that	22	SAS	would	be	disbanded	when	it	was	finally	pulled	out	of	Malaya.
History,	however,	was	on	the	side	of	the	SAS.	In	the	death	agony	of	empire	there	came
other	small	wars.	Malaya	was	not	a	one-off;	it	was	part	of	an	historic	trend.	Even	as	the
SAS	 was	 mopping	 up	 in	 Malaya,	 another	 little	 war	 in	 a	 British-dominated	 corner	 of	 the
world	was	beginning.	The	next	job	was	far	from	the	green	jungles	of	Malaya:	it	was	on	the
Green	Mountain,	the	Jebel	Akhdar,	in	Oman.
In	 1954	 a	 rebellion	 against	 Omans	 autocratic	 (but	 pro-British)	 Sultan,	 led	 by	 Ghalib,
the	 Imam	 of	 Oman,	 and	 his	 brother	 Talib,	 threatened	 to	 destabilize	 the	 country	 and
interrupt	the	oil	supply	to	Great	Britain.	With	understandable	realpolitik,	if	questionable
morality,	 the	 British	 government	 determined	 to	 back	 the	 Sultan.	 An	 RAF	 bombing
campaign	against	the	rebel	stronghold	on	the	Jebel	Akhdar	failed.	An	infantry	assault	on	it
failed.	A	plan	to	drop	the	Parachute	Regiment	was	cancelled,	because	the	Prime	Minister
thought	the	committing	of	a	world-famous	regiment	overemphasized	the	importance	of	the
situation.	 And	 so	 the	 shadow	 SAS	 was	 given	 the	 job	 nobody	 else	 could	 or	 should	 do.
Lieutenant	 Colonel	 Anthony	 Deane-Drummond,	 the	 commander	 of	 22	 SAS,	 was	 given
fifteen	 days	 to	 round	 up	 D	 Squadron	 from	 Malaya	 and	 deploy	 it	 in	 Oman,	 where	 it	 did
what	no	other	military	force	had	done	in	a	thousand	years:	it	captured	the	Jebel	Akhdar.
More	than	that,	the	Jebel	Akhdar	assault	had	secured	the	future	of	the	SAS.	As	Peter	de	la
Billire,	a	troop	commander	and	later	CO	of	22	SAS	wrote,	Oman,	more	so	than	Malaya,
was	a	turning	point	in	the	history	of	the	SAS:
We	 had	 shown	 that	 we	 were	 a	 flexible	 force	 capable	 of	 adapting	 quickly	 to	 new
conditions.	We	had	demonstrated	that	a	small	number	of	men	could	be	flown	into	a
trouble	spot	rapidly	and	discreetly,	and	operate	in	a	remote	area	without	publicity		a
capability	 much	 valued	 by	 the	 Conservative	 government	 of	 the	 day.	 Above	 all,	 we
had	proved	that	the	quality	of	the	people	in	the	SAS	was	high	indeed,	and	that	a	few
men	of	such	calibre	could	achieve	results	out	of	all	proportion	to	their	numbers.
The	SAS	would	return	to	Oman	a	decade	later,	to	counter	an	insurgency	by	Communists
in	Dhofar.	But	first,	the	drums	of	war	summoned	the	regiment	back	to	the	jungles	of	the
Far	East.
From	 1963	 to	 1966,	 Borneo	 was	 the	 scene	 of	 a	 bloody	 conflict	 between	 Malaya	 and
Indonesia,	 both	 of	 which	 claimed	 ownership	 of	 the	 mountainous	 island.	 To	 counter	 the
infiltration	 of	 guerrillas	 from	 the	 Indonesian	 side	 of	 the	 island	 (Kalimantan)	 into	 the
northern	 Malaysian	 side,	 the	 British	 	 Malayas	 former	 imperial	 masters	 	 organized	 a
border	guard	of	Malaysian,	British	and	Commonwealth	troops.	A	main	constituent	in	this
guard	was	22	SAS.	For	the	most	part,	SAS	effort	in	Borneo	consisted	of	the	insertion	of
four-man	 patrols	 into	 the	 jungle,	 often	 for	 weeks	 at	 a	 time,	 gathering	 intelligence	 and
implementing	hearts	and	minds	programmes.	As	the	Confrontation	wore	on,	however,
the	Indonesians	began	committing	units	of	their	army	to	the	frontier	war,	and	in	response
the	 SAS	 stepped	 up	 its	 activity	 with	 offensive	 patrols	 into	 Indonesia	 itself.	 Codenamed
Claret,	 these	 operations	 were	 top	 secret.	 The	 codename	 was	 apposite:	 much	 blood	 was
spilled.
Then	it	was	back	to	the	desert,	to	Oman,	where	on	the	morning	of	19	July	1972	there
occurred	one	of	the	most	storied	SAS	actions.	In	the	fishing	port	of	Mirbat,	Oman,	a	nineman	 SAS	 detachment	 known	 as	 BATT	 (British	 Army	 Training	 Team)	 slept	 in	 a	 small
mud-and-brick	 building,	 save	 for	 three	 troopers	 who	 were	 awake	 talking	 and	 keeping
guard.	In	command	of	the	detachment	was	twenty-seven-year-old	Captain	Mike	Kealy	of
B	Squadron,	known	as	baby	Rupert	because	of	his	inexperience.	As	the	smear	of	light	on
the	 eastern	 horizon	 grew	 brighter,	 250	 Communist	 guerrillas,	 known	 as	 adoo,	 stole	 to
within	400	yards	of	the	SAS	BATT	house	and	opened	fire	with	mortars,	machine	guns
and	small	arms.	For	six	hours	the	SAS	team	held	off	the	adoo,	until	reinforcements	arrived
in	the	shape	of	G	Squadron.	There	were	two	regimental	fatalities	incurred	during	22	SASs
hardest	test,	trooper	Tobin	and	Corporal	Labalaba.	For	this	loss	the	SAS	took	the	lives	of
more	 than	 thirty-nine	 adoo.	 Tragically,	 Mike	 Kealy	 died	 of	 hypothermia	 during	 an
exercise	on	the	Brecon	Beacons	in	1972.
As	the	1970s	wore	on,	the	SAS	increased	its	urban	counter-terrorist	capability,	although
the	 regiments	 first	 brush	 with	 such	 work	 lay	 in	 the	 backstreets	 of	 Aden	 in	 the	 previous
decade,	when	it	was	tasked	with	eliminating	Yemeni	insurgents.	Thereafter,	SAS	CounterRevolutionary	 Warfare	 (CRW)	 work	 had	 evolved	 through	 sheer	 Darwinian	 necessity.
Oman	 aside,	 the	 regiment	 was	 desperately	 short	 of	 work	 in	 the	 early	 1970s	 	 so	 short,
indeed,	that	training	the	bodyguards	of	foreign	VIPs	became	a	major	strand	of	regimental
activity.	In	the	same	period,	the	camp	of	22	SAS,	now	based	after	a	period	of	itinerancy	at
Bradbury	Lines	(later	christened	Stirling	Lines),	next	to	the	River	Wye	in	Hereford,	saw
the	construction	of	a	special	house	to	train	marksmen	in	the	skills	of	shooting	gunmen	in
the	 confines	 of	 a	 room	 without	 hitting	 VIPs	 or	 hostages.	 Formally	 called	 the	 CloseQuarter	Battle	House	(CQB),	the	building	is	more	usually	known	as	the	Killing	House.
One	significant	spur	to	the	development	of	CRW	work	came	in	September	1972,	when
Palestinian	terrorists	from	the	Black	September	group	seized	the	dormitory	occupied	by
Israeli	athletes	at	the	Olympic	Games.	The	West	German	government	allowed	the	gunmen
and	 hostages	 safe	 passage	 out	 of	 the	 country,	 but	 as	 the	 group	 moved	 through	 Munich
airport	the	German	security	forces	opened	fire.	In	the	wild	gun	battle	that	followed	they
mistakenly	 killed	 all	 the	 hostages.	 Alarmed	 by	 their	 incapacity	 to	 deal	 with	 terrorism,
European	governments	began	developing	elite	anti-terrorist	units.	The	British	government
was	no	exception.	Following	a	direct	request	from	the	Director	of	Military	Operations	in
September	1972,	the	new	commanding	officer	of	22	SAS,	Lieutenant	Colonel	Peter	de	la
Billire,	 reorganized	 the	 CRW	 cell	 into	 Op	 Pagoda.	 In	 charge	 of	 Pagoda	 was	 Captain
Andrew	Massey,	who	selected	twenty	troopers	from	all	sabre	squadrons	for	special	CRW
(sometimes	 CT,	 for	 Counter-Terrorist)	 training.	 The	 Pagoda	 team	 was	 put	 on	 constant
standby.	Later,	the	Pagoda	role	became	rotated	through	the	squadrons,	so	every	trooper	in
the	 Regiment	 had	 a	 turn,	 and	 the	 team	 was	 issued	 with	 black	 overalls	 and	 Ingram	 submachine-guns.	 However,	 following	 their	 observation	 of	 the	 successful	 German	 GSG9
storming	of	a	hijacked	aircraft	at	Mogadishu	airport	in	1977,	SAS	Major	Alistair	Morrison
and	Sergeant	Barry	Davies	recommended	adopting	the	GSG9s	main	firearm,	the	Heckler
&	Koch	MP5A2.	Tests	confirmed	its	superiority	over	the	American	Ingram	sub-machinegun,	and	the	650	rpm,	2	kg	Heckler	was	adopted	by	the	Pagoda	troop.
The	Pagoda	teams	first	major	call	to	action	came	in	1975,	when	an	IRA	active-service
unit	machine-gunned	a	restaurant	in	Mayfair,	London,	and	then	took	hostages	in	a	flat	in
Balcombe	 Street.	 On	 hearing	 on	 the	 radio	 that	 an	 SAS	 team	 was	 preparing	 to	 storm	 the
flat,	 the	 IRA	 gunmen	 surrendered	 without	 a	 fight.	 The	 Balcombe	 Street	 siege	 ended
without	bloodshed,	but	it	ignited	a	bloodbath	of	violence	in	Northern	Ireland,	starting	with
the	 Kingsmill	 Massacre	 in	 which	 IRA	 terrorists	 pulled	 Protestant	 line-workers	 from	 a
bus	and	mowed	down	ten	of	them	in	the	road	with	machine-gun	fire.	On	7	January	1976,
Prime	Minister	Harold	Wilson	publicly	committed	the	SAS	to	patrol	the	bandit	country
of	South	Armagh.
Northern	 Ireland	 would	 never	 be	 a	 happy	 hunting	 ground	 for	 the	 SAS.	 The	 orthodox
regiments	of	the	Army	already	assigned	to	the	province	were	suspicious	and	resentful	
after	all,	SAS	deployment	suggested	that	they	had	failed		and	there	was	little	possibility
of	 implementing	 the	 SASs	 by	 now	 stock	 hearts	 and	 minds	 campaign.	 Aside	 from
patrolling,	 the	 SAS	 men	 in	 Northern	 Ireland	 set	 up	 covert	 observation	 posts	 and
established	a	new	undercover	spying	squad	known	as	the	Army	Surveillance	Unit	(later	14
Intelligence	 Company).	 The	 regiment	 did	 not	 limit	 itself	 to	 these	 prescribed	 and	 lawful
activities.	In	March	1976	a	Provisional	IRA	(PIRA)	gunman	and	bomber,	Sean	McKenna,
was	abducted	from	his	home	in	southern	Ireland	by	masked	men,	almost	certainly	SAS,
holding	Browning	9	mm	pistols,	and	was	taken	over	the	border	to	Bessbrook	RUC	station.
Unfortunately,	SAS	soldiers	in	Northern	Ireland		eventually	organized	in	Ulster	Troop
	took	a	steady	toll	of	the	innocent.	By	the	end	of	1978	the	SAS	was	known	to	have	killed
at	 least	 ten	 people	 in	 Northern	 Ireland,	 of	 whom	 three	 were	 guiltless	 and	 one,	 a	 PIRA
quartermaster	 called	 Patrick	 Duffy,	 was	 shot	 twelve	 times	 in	 the	 back.	 The	 slaughtered
innocents	included	a	sixteen-year-old	boy,	John	Boyle,	exploring	a	churchyard	where	the
IRA	had	cached	arms,	and	a	Belfast	Protestant	pedestrian,	William	Hanna,	in	an	incident
in	which	the	Armys	rules	of	engagement	in	Ulster		by	which	soldiers	could	only	open
fire	 if	 they	 believed	 a	 person	 was	 about	 to	 fire,	 endanger	 life	 and	 if	 there	 was	 no	 other
means	of	stopping	them		were	ignored.	Even	the	SASs	greatest	ever	blow	against	PIRA
	 the	 killing	 of	 eight	 PIRA	 terrorists	 as	 they	 attacked	 the	 police	 station	 at	 Loughgall	 in
1987		was	marred	by	the	shooting	of	two	villagers	driving	by,	one	of	whom	died.	And	if
SAS	black	ops	against	PIRA	were	controversial,	they	were	also	deadly	dangerous	for	the
regiments	troopers,	with	at	least	two	KIA.
Until	1980,	the	SAS	waged	war	in	the	shadows.	In	that	year	it	hit	the	headlines	around
the	world.
At	l1.25	a.m.	on	the	morning	of	Wednesday	30	April,	the	tranquillity	of	Princes	Gate,
in	 Londons	 leafy	 Kensington	 district,	 had	 been	 shattered	 as	 six	 gunmen	 wearing
shemaghs	 over	 their	 faces	 sprayed	 the	 outside	 of	 No.	 16	 with	 machine-gun	 fire	 and
stormed	through	the	entrance.	The	leading	gunman	made	straight	for	an	astonished	police
constable	 standing	 in	 the	 foyer,	 Trevor	 Lock	 of	 the	 Diplomatic	 Protection	 Group,	 while
the	rest,	shouting	and	waving	their	machine	pistols,	rounded	up	the	other	occupants	of	the
building.	 The	 gunmen	 were	 members	 of	 Mohieddin	 al	 Nasser	 Martyr	 Group,	 an	 Arab
group	seeking	the	liberation	of	Khuzestan	from	Ayatollah	Khomeinis	Iran.	No.	16	was	the
Iranian	Embassy	in	Britain.	Just	after	2.35	p.m.	Salim,	the	head	Arab	gunman,	laid	out	his
demands	by	telephone:	autonomy	and	human	rights	for	the	people	of	Khuzestan,	and	the
release	of	ninety-one	Arab	prisoners	held	in	Iranian	jails.	If	his	demands	were	not	met	he
would	 blow	 up	 the	 Embassy,	 hostages	 and	 all,	 at	 noon	 the	 following	 day.	 The	 siege	 of
Princes	Gate	had	begun.
The	SAS,	meanwhile,	had	been	alerted	about	the	siege	within	minutes	of	its	start,	Dusty
Gray,	an	ex-SAS	sergeant,	now	a	Metropolitan	Police	dog	handler,	having	telephoned	the
Officers	Mess	at	Bradbury	Lines,	to	warn	that	its	assistance	would	probably	be	required
at	the	Iranian	Embassy.	That	night	SAS	troopers	left	for	London	in	Range	Rovers,	arriving
at	a	holding	area	in	Regents	Park	Barracks	in	the	early	hours	of	Thursday	morning.	The
official	authority	from	the	Ministry	of	Defence	arrived	at	Bradbury	Lines	to	approve	the
move	some	hours	after	they	had	already	left.
Over	 the	 next	 few	 days	 the	 Metropolitan	 Police	 continued	 their	 softly,	 softly
negotiating	 approach,	 while	 trying	 to	 determine	 exactly	 how	 many	 hostages	 were	 in	 the
embassy	 and	 where	 they	 were	 located.	 Scotland	 Yards	 technical	 squad,	 C7,	 installed
microphones	in	the	chimney	and	walls	of	No.	16,	covering	the	noise	by	faking	Gas	Board
repairs	 at	 neighbouring	 Ennismore	 Gardens.	 Gradually	 it	 became	 clear	 that	 there	 were
about	twenty-five	hostages	(at	the	end	of	the	siege,	the	exact	count	was	twenty-six),	most
of	them	Iranian	Embassy	staff.
Inside	 the	 SAS	 holding	 area	 a	 scale	 model	 of	 the	 embassy	 had	 been	 constructed	 to
familiarize	 the	 SAS	 troopers	 with	 the	 layout	 of	 the	 building	 they	 would	 assault	 if	 the
police	 negotiations	 were	 to	 break	 down.	 The	 breakdown	 came	 at	 1.45	 p.m.	 on	 Bank
Holiday	Monday,	5	May,	when	the	distinct	sound	of	three	shots	was	heard	from	inside	the
embassy.	The	news	of	the	shooting	was	immediately	forwarded	to	the	SAS	teams	waiting
at	their	holding	area.	They	would	be	used	after	all.	Operation	Nimrod		the	relief	of	the
Iranian	Embassy		was	on.	At	6.50	p.m.,	with	tension	mounting,	the	gunmen	announced
their	demands	again,	with	the	codicil	that	a	hostage	would	be	shot	every	forty-five	minutes
until	their	demands	were	met.	Another	burst	of	shots	was	heard.	The	door	of	the	embassy
opened,	and	a	body	was	flung	down	the	steps.	(The	body	belonged	to	the	Press	Attach
shot	earlier	in	the	day.	The	new	burst	of	shots	was	a	scare	tactic.)	The	police	phoned	into
the	 embassys	 first	 floor,	 where	 the	 telephone	 link	 with	 the	 gunmen	 was	 situated.	 They
seemed	to	cave	in	to	Salims	demands,	assuring	him	that	they	were	not	tricking	him,	and
that	 a	 bus	 would	 be	 arriving	 in	 minutes	 to	 take	 the	 gunmen	 to	 Heathrow	 Airport,	 from
where	they	would	fly	to	the	Middle	East.	But	by	talking	on	the	phone	Salim	had	signalled
his	whereabouts	to	the	SAS	teams	who	had	taken	up	their	start	position	on	the	roof,	and	in
the	two	buildings	either	side	of	No.	16,	the	Ethiopian	Embassy	and	the	Royal	College	of
Physicians.	 At	 around	 this	 time,	 formal	 responsibility	 	 via	 a	 handwritten	 note	 	 passed
Argentine	 mainland.	 In	 one	 fell	 swoop	 by	 the	 SAS,	 ran	 the	 thinking,	 the	 war	 would	 be
shortened.	Some	members	of	the	squadron	thought	the	operation	suicidal		the	airstrip	was
defended	 by	 1,300	 Argentinian	 marines	 and	 state-of-the-art	 anti-aircraft	 guns	 	 and	 the
squadron	sergeant	major	even	resigned	over	the	issue.	When	the	squadrons	commanding
officer,	 John	 Moss,	 showed	 less	 than	 requisite	 enthusiasm,	 de	 la	 Billire	 summarily
returned	 him	 to	 unit.	 Even	 if	 not	 a	 death	 wish,	 others	 in	 the	 squadron	 persisted	 in
considering	the	Paras	better	equipped	to	undertake	such	a	coup	de	main,	 and	 eventually
Mikado	was	aborted.
There	 was,	 though,	 plenty	 of	 old-style	 SAS	 stuff	 to	 come.	 On	 the	 night	 before	 the
main	Task	Force	landings	at	San	Carlos,	the	SAS	mounted	a	series	of	diversionary	raids.
These	included	the	landing	of	sixty	D	Squadron	men,	who	then	marched	for	twenty	hours
to	reach	the	hills	north	of	Darwin	and	attack	the	garrison	at	Goose	Green.	To	put	the	wind
up	 the	 Argentinians	 they	 simulated	 a	 battalion-sized	 attack	 (600	 men),	 raining	 down	 a
torrent	of	LAW	anti-tank	rockets,	Milan	missiles,	GPMG	(General-Purpose	Machine	Gun)
rounds	 and	 tracer	 into	 the	 Argentine	 positions.	 So	 ferocious	 was	 the	 barrage	 that	 the
enemy	failed	to	probe	the	SAS	positions	and	could	only	manage	desultory	return	fire.	By
mid-morning,	 the	 main	 landings	 accomplished,	 the	 SAS	 disengaged	 from	 Goose	 Green,
tabbing	 (only	 Marines	 yomp)	 north	 to	 meet	 up	 with	 2	 Para	 as	 they	 made	 their	 way
inland.
Over	the	next	fortnight	SAS	patrols	continued	their	recces	and	probing	missions.	At	the
end	of	May,	D	Squadron	seized	Mount	Kent,	forty	miles	behind	enemy	lines,	and	held	it
for	several	days	until	reinforced	by	42	RM	Commando.	This	was	despite	aggressive		and
courageous		patrolling	from	Argentine	Special	Forces	in	a	sequence	of	sharp	nocturnal
firefights.	Following	their	relief,	D	Squadron	was	in	action	again	when	five	teams	landed
on	West	Falkland.	The	considerable	enemy	garrisons	at	Fox	Bay	and	Port	Howard	enjoyed
excellent	 radio-direction-finding	 equipment	 and	 responded	 vigorously.	 Meanwhile,	 to
reinforce	 SAS	 numbers	 in	 the	 Falklands,	 a	 troop	 from	 B	 Squadron	 was	 flown	 from
Ascension	Island	in	Hercules	C-130s;	the	troop	was	to	join	the	Task	Force	by	parachuting
into	the	Atlantic,	from	which	they	would	be	plucked	by	Gemini	inflatables.	But	it	wasnt
to	 be	 B	 Squadrons	 war.	 It	 was	 tasked	 with	 ambushing	 the	 enemy	 reinforcement	 of	 the
garrison	at	Fox	Bay,	but	the	enemy	failed	to	turn	up.	By	now	it	was	becoming	clear	to	all
that	the	war	was	in	its	last	days.
There	remained	one	major	SAS	raid,	which	was	mounted	in	East	Falkland	on	the	night
of	 13	 June.	 To	 take	 the	 pressure	 off	 2	 Para,	 who	 were	 assaulting	 Wireless	 Ridge	 a	 few
miles	west	of	Port	Stanley,	the	SAS	volunteered	to	put	in	a	raid	to	the	enemy	rear		from
the	sea.	Two	troops	from	D	Squadron,	one	from	G	Squadron	and	six	men	from	3	SBS	rode
into	Port	Stanley	harbour	on	high-speed	Rigid	Raiders	with	the	aim	of	setting	fire	to	the
oil	 storage	 tanks.	 As	 troopers	 from	 the	 regiment	 later	 conceded,	 the	 raid	 was	 more
audacious	than	wise.	Searchlights	from	an	Argentine	ship	in	the	harbour	caught	them	as
they	approached,	and	the	Argentinians	opened	up	with	every	available	weapon,	including
triple-barrelled	 20	 mm	 Rheinmetall	 anti-aircraft	 cannon	 depressed	 to	 their	 lowest
trajectory.	 These	 spewed	 out	 a	 constant	 stream	 of	 metal,	 which	 obliged	 the	 raiders	 to
rapidly	withdraw	if	they	were	not	to	suffer	heavy	losses.
The	SAS	campaign	to	liberate	the	Falklands	had	its	price.	A	few	days	after	the	attack	on
coalition,	 which	 included	 several	 Arab	 members,	 would	 be	 blown	 apart.	 Israel	 declared
itself	to	be	in	a	state	of	war,	but	frantic	diplomacy	by	the	Allies	managed	to	dissuade	Israel
from	 taking	 immediate	 punitive	 action.	 Batteries	 of	 Patriot	 ground-to-air	 missiles	 were
dispatched	to	Tel	Aviv,	Jerusalem	and	Haifa.	The	Allies	diverted	30%	of	their	air	effort	to
Scud	hunting.	But	in	the	expanses	of	vast	Iraqi	desert	all	too	often	the	air	strike	arrived	to
find	 the	 Scud	 fired	 and	 the	 mobile	 launcher	 elusively	 camouflaged.	 Previously,	 the	 US
military	had	believed	that	its	hi-tech	satellite	observation	system	could	detect	Scuds	before
launch.	Now	it	was	finding	that	the	Scuds	could	be	many	minutes	into	flight	before	being
betrayed	by	the	flare	from	their	motors.	Asked	by	the	media	on	19	January	about	the	Scud
menace,	the	normally	upbeat	Schwarzkopf	was	obliged	to	say	that	the	picture	is	unclear,
and	 to	 grumble	 that	 looking	 for	 Scuds	 was	 like	 looking	 for	 the	 proverbial	 needle	 in	 the
haystack.
If	the	C-in-C	was	unclear	about	what	to	do,	the	Scud	factor	gave	22	SAS	an	absolutely
clear-cut	mission.	De	la	Billire	signalled	that	all	SAS	effort	should	be	directed	against
Scuds.	That	very	same	day,	19	January,	the	SAS	was	rushed	1,500	km	from	its	holding
area	to	an	FOB	(Forward	Operational	Base)	just	inside	the	Saudi	border	with	western	Iraq.
The	 move	 was	 made	 in	 a	 non-stop	 twenty-four-hour	 airlift	 by	 the	 RAF	 Special	 Forces
flight.	The	regiment	decided	on	two	principal	means	of	dealing	with	the	Scud	menace.	It
would	 insert	 into	 Iraq	 covert	 eight-man	 static	 patrols	 to	 watch	 Main	 Supply	 Routes
(MSRs)	and	report	on	the	movement	of	Scud	traffic.	There	would	be	three	such	patrols,
South,	Central	and	North.	When	Scud	sites	and	launchers	were	identified,	US	F-l5	and	A10	 airstrikes	 would	 be	 called	 down	 to	 destroy	 them,	 directed	 to	 the	 target	 by	 the	 SAS
patrol	using	a	tactical	air	link.	(Though	the	SAS	patrols	carried	laser-designators	to	paint
targets	 for	 Allied	 aircraft	 they	 only	 used	 them	 infrequently.)	 Alongside	 the	 road	 watch
patrols,	there	were	four	columns	of	heavily	armed	vehicles,	Pink	Panther	Land	Rovers
and	Unimogs,	which	would	penetrate	the	Scud	Box,	an	area	of	western	desert	near	the
border	with	Jordan	thought	to	contain	around	14	mobile	launchers.	As	is	traditional	in	the
SAS,	 the	 decision	 how	 to	 deploy	 was	 left	 to	 the	 patrol	 commanders	 and	 reached	 after
democratic	discussion.
The	South	and	Central	road	watch	teams	were	inserted	on	2l	January,	and	both	found
that	 the	 eerily	 flat,	 feature-less	 desert	 offered	 no	 possibility	 of	 concealment.	 The	 South
road	 watch	 patrol	 aborted	 their	 mission	 and	 flew	 back	 on	 their	 insertion	 helicopter.	 The
Central	 team	 also	 decided	 that	 the	 terrain	 was	 lethal,	 but	 before	 bugging	 out	 in	 their
Land	Rovers	and	stripped-down	motorcycles	called	down	an	air	strike	on	two	Iraqi	radars.
After	a	four-night	drive	through	140	miles	of	bitingly	cold	desert	the	patrol	reached	Saudi
Arabia.	Four	men	needed	treatment	for	frostbite.	Road	Watch	North,	codenamed	Bravo
Two	Zero,	had	the	most	isolated	insertion,	landed	by	RAF	Chinook	100	miles	north-west
of	Baghdad.	The	weather	was	appalling,	driving	wind	and	sleet,	the	worst	winter	in	this
part	of	the	Iraqi	desert	for	thirty	years.	Led	by	Sergeant	Andy	McNab	(a	pseudonym),	the
patrol	 took	 food	 and	 water	 for	 fourteen	 days,	 explosives	 and	 ammunition	 for	 their	 203s
(American	 M16	 rifles	 with	 40	 mm	 grenade-launchers	 attached),	 Minimi	 machine	 guns,
grenades,	extra	clothes,	maps,	compasses	and	survival	equipment.	Each	man	was	carrying
209	lbs	of	kit.	Watching	a	main	supply	route,	the	patrol	saw	a	Scud	launch	and	prepared	to
send	their	first	situation	report	(Sit	Rep)	to	base.	In	the	first	of	several	fruitless	efforts,
Bravo	 Two	 Zeros	 signaller,	 Trooper	 Steven	 (Legs)	 Lane,	 prepared	 the	 radio	 antenna,
encoded	 Sergeant	 McNabs	 message	 and	 typed	 it	 ready	 for	 transmission.	 There	 was	 no
answer,	 and	 no	 amount	 of	 adjusting	 the	 set	 got	 a	 response.	 On	 the	 second	 day	 an	 Iraqi
military	 convoy	 rumbled	 across	 the	 desert	 towards	 the	 team	 and	 sited	 a	 battery	 of	 lowlevel	anti-aircraft	guns	only	yards	from	where	they	were	hunkered	down.	The	team	got	off
a	 brief	 radio	 message	 to	 HQ:	 Enemy	 triple-A	 gun	 now	 in	 position	 immediately	 to	 our
north.	 The	 team	 was	 now	 in	 grave	 danger	 of	 compromise.	 In	 mid-afternoon	 the
compromise	 came.	 A	 young	 Iraqi	 goatherd	 looked	 down	 into	 the	 patrols	 lying-up	 place
(LUP),	a	shallow	wadi,	saw	the	troopers	and	ran	off	towards	the	Iraqi	soldiers.	Bravo	Two
Zero	rapidly	prepared	to	move,	checking	equipment	and	gulping	down	as	much	water	as
possible.	They	had	a	fearsome	tab(march)	in	front	of	them.	Further	frantic	attempts	to
radio	base	that	they	were	now	compromised	and	request	exfil	asap	were	to	no	avail,	the
HF	radio	rendered	near	useless	by	ionospheric	distortion.	The	men	loaded	their	Bergens
and	moved	quickly	westwards.	As	they	cleared	the	bottom	of	the	wadi	they	heard	tracked
vehicles	approaching	from	the	rear.	They	dropped	into	a	depression	and	turned	to	face	the
enemy.	An	Iraqi	Armoured	Personnel	Carrier	(APC)	opened	fire	with	a	7.62	machine	gun.
With	a	scream	of	Fucking	lets	do	it!	the	SAS	patrol	fired	off	a	fusillade	of	sixty-six
anti-armour	rockets,	rifle	grenades	and	Minimis.	They	held	off	the	Iraqis	twice;	it	started
to	get	dark,	and	the	patrol	decided	to	get	out	of	the	contact	area,	moving	as	fast	as	they
physically	 could	 manage	 with	 their	 heavy	 Bergens.	 As	 they	 cleared	 a	 slope	 the	 Iraqi
Triple-A	battery	sighted	them	and	opened	fire.	A	57	mm	ack-ack	round	hit	one	trooper	in
the	back,	ripping	open	his	Bergen.	When	extracted	from	it	he	was	found	to	be	uninjured.
The	rest	of	the	patrol	voted	to	bin	their	Bergens	for	more	speed,	and	eventually	lost	their
enemy	 in	 the	 gloom.	 At	 a	 rallying	 point,	 Sergeant	 McNab	 decided	 to	 use	 their	 four
personal	 short-range	 TACBE	 (personal	 rescue	 beacons)	 to	 get	 in	 touch	 with	 an	 orbiting
AWACS	 plane	 to	 bring	 strike	 aircraft	 down	 on	 the	 Iraqis.	 Again	 there	 was	 no	 reply.
McNab	did	a	quick	appreciation	of	their	situation.	The	Iraqis	would	expect	them	to	make
south	 for	 Saudi	 Arabia.	 Jordan	 was	 due	 west,	 but	 was	 a	 non-combatant	 ally	 of	 Saddam
Hussein.	A	hundred	and	twenty	kilometres	to	the	north-west	was	Syria,	a	member	of	the
anti-Saddam	 coalition.	 McNab	 decided	 to	 go	 for	 Syria.	 Moving	 fast	 towards	 the	 Syrian
border,	 Bravo	 Two	 Zero	 walked	 fifty	 miles	 that	 night,	 through	 driving	 sleet,	 pausing	 to
rest	 only	 four	 times.	 Two	 troopers	 were	 in	 a	 parlous	 state,	 however.	 Sergeant	 Vince
Phillips	 had	 fractured	 a	 leg	 in	 the	 contact	 with	 the	 Iraqis	 and	 was	 finding	 it	 difficult	 to
move.	Trooper	Stan	was	becoming	dangerously	dehydrated.	The	sound	of	aircraft	high
overhead	prompted	another	call	on	the	TACBE.	Finally,	they	got	a	response.	An	American
pilot	 on	 a	 bombing	 mission	 acknowledged	 their	 call.	 The	 message	 was	 relayed	 to	 the
British	Special	Ops	HQ	in	Saudi	Arabia.	British	and	American	helicopters	went	into	Iraq
to	search	for	the	patrol,	but	a	specific	run	to	a	pre-arranged	rendezvous	was	ruled	out	as
too	dangerous.
The	stop	to	use	the	TACBE	proved	unlucky.	In	the	swirling,	raining	darkness,	Sergeant
Phillips,	Corporal	Chris	Ryan	and	Trooper	Stan	carried	on	walking	and	became	separated
from	the	rest	of	the	patrol.	Sergeant	McNab	and	his	four	companions	had	no	option	but	to
continue	 on	 without	 them,	 hoping	 they	 would	 meet	 up	 later.	 The	 rain	 turned	 to	 snow.
During	rests	they	huddled	together	for	warmth.	In	their	soaked	clothes	the	wind-chill	was
starting	 to	 kill	 them.	 Throughout	 the	 night	 they	 slowly	 made	 their	 way	 to	 the	 Syrian
border.	Resting	during	the	next	day	they	decided	that,	if	they	were	going	to	make	it,	they
sanctuary	on	30	January.	He	had	covered	186	miles,	evading	hundreds	of	Iraqi	searchers,
with	 only	 two	 packets	 of	 biscuits	 for	 nourishment.	 During	 the	 final	 two	 days	 he	 was
without	any	water.	He	had	filled	his	bottles	from	a	small	stream.	When	he	came	to	drink
the	 water	 his	 lips	 and	 mouth	 burned	 instantly.	 The	 stream	 was	 polluted	 with	 chemicals
from	a	nearby	uranium	processing	plant.
After	the	attempt	to	deploy	the	static	patrols,	22	SAS	effort	shifted	to	the	four	mobile
fighting	columns.	Drawn	from	Squadrons	A	and	D,	the	columns		which	contained	about
a	dozen	Land	Rovers	or	Unimogs	together	with	motorcycle	outriders		were	the	biggest
overland	fighting	force	put	into	the	field	by	the	SAS	since	1945.	The	columns	had	their
own	 Stinger	 anti-aircraft	 and	 Milan	 anti-tank	 missiles,	 plus	 .5	 Browning	 machine	 guns,
7.62	mm	general-purpose	machine	guns	and	40	mm	grenade	launchers.	One	team	found	a
sledge-hammer	most	useful.	The	freebooting	columns,	soon	operating	in	broad	daylight,
scored	 spectacular	 successes	 as	 they	 sped	 into	 the	 Iraqi	 desert	 flying	 enormous	 Union
flags	 to	 identify	 them	 to	 friendly	 aircraft.	 An	 lraqi	 deputy	 commander	 of	 a	 gun	 battery
taken	POW	proved	to	have	on	his	person	a	map	giving	positions	of	Iraqi	frontline	units.
On	29	January	SAS	columns	called	down	F-15E	airstrikes	on	two	mobile	Scud	launchers,
plus	one	fixed	site.	On	3	February	in	the	Wadi	Amij	(Scud	Alley)	locality,	a	patrol	from
D	Squadron	called	down	an	airstrike	on	a	Scud	convoy.	Only	one	airstrike	hit	the	target,	so
the	SAS	patrol	hit	the	convoy	with	wire-guided	Milan	anti-tank	missiles,	an	inspired	lastminute	addition	to	the	SAS	armoury.
These	SAS	attacks	were	the	first	military	actions	on	the	ground	in	the	war	except	for	the
minor	Iraqi	cross-border	attack	on	Khafji,	Saudi	Arabia,	on	29	January.	Group	2	from	D
Squadron	called	an	airstrike	on	a	Scud	convoy	on	5	February,	and	on	the	same	day	fought
two	 firefights	 with	 lraqi	 troops.	 Increasingly,	 the	 SAS	 destroyed	 Scud	 and	 launcher
themselves,	since	some	were	escaping	in	the	gap	between	their	targeting	by	the	SAS	and
the	arrival	of	the	airstrike.	To	service	the	Land	Rovers	and	Unimogs,	the	SAS	organised	a
supply	 column	 (E	 Squadron)	 which	 formed	 a	 temporary	 workshop	 deep	 inside	 lraq.
Everywhere	the	SAS	teams	went	they	caused	mayhem,	and	not	only	to	the	Scuds.	Saddam
(courtesy	 of	 the	 time	 when	 the	 West	 regarded	 him	 as	 a	 friend)	 had	 an	 advanced
communications	 network	 consisting	 of	 buried	 fibre-optic	 cables.	 The	 weak	 point	 in	 the
system	 was	 that	 the	 signal	 needed	 to	 be	 boosted	 at	 above-ground	 relay	 stations.	 A	 team
from	 22	 SAS	 blew	 up	 seven	 of	 these	 stations	 alongside	 the	 highway	 from	 Baghdad	 to
Amman.	When	the	SAS	Land	Rovers	returned	to	Saudi	Arabia	at	the	end	of	the	war,	they
had	 covered	 an	 average	 of	 1,500	 miles	 and	 spent	 between	 thirty-six	 and	 forty-two	 days
behind	 the	 lines.	 The	 front	 wings	 of	 the	 Land	 Rovers	 were	 decorated	 with	 scores	 of
silhouettes	of	kills,	including	mobile	Scuds	and	communications	towers.	The	SAS	had
also	provided	valuable	advice	to	US	Special	Forces,	operating	in	a	Scud	Box	north	of
the	regiments.
It	 is	 a	 measure	 of	 the	 success	 of	 the	 SAS	 that	 General	 Norman	 Schwarzkopf,	 the
enemy	 of	 Special	 Forces,	 praised	 the	 regiments	 totally	 outstanding	 performance	 in
the	Gulf.	No	less	than	thirty-nine	awards	and	honours	for	bravery	and	meritorious	service
were	 given	 the	 regiment	 for	 its	 part	 in	 Operation	 Granby,	 the	 Gulf	 War.	 There	 was,	 of
course,	 a	 price	 to	 be	 paid	 for	 the	 regiments	 achievement.	 In	 addition	 to	 the	 three	 SAS
soldiers	from	Bravo	Two	Zero	who	were	killed,	Trooper	David	Denbury	from	A	Squadron
was	 killed	 on	 21	 February	 during	 the	 ambush	 of	 a	 Scud	 convoy	 in	 north-west	 Iraq.	 A
US	NAVY	SEALS
I	am	directing	the	Secretary	of	Defense	to	expand	rapidly	and	substantially		the
orientation	 of	 existing	 forces	 for	 the	 conduct	 of	 	 unconventional	 wars	 	 In
addition,	our	Special	Forces	and	unconventional	warfare	units	will	be	increased	and
reoriented.
President	John	F.	Kennedy,	addressing	a	joint	session	of	Congress,	May	1961.
Taking	their	name	from	the	elements	they	are	trained	to	fight	in,	under,	and	on		Sea,	Air,
Land		the	US	Navys	SEALs	have	their	origins	in	the	Second	World	Wars	Underwater
Demolition	Teams	(UDTs),	which	cleared	the	lane	through	German	beach	defences	for	the
1944	 Allied	 invasion	 of	 Normandy.	 During	 the	 Korean	 War	 UDTs	 prepared	 the	 way	 for
the	 amphibious	 landings	 at	 Inchon.	 In	 1960	 a	 US	 Navy	 working	 group	 was	 formed	 to
study	how	the	Navy	UDTs	could	assist	or	participate	in	covert	operations.	A	year	later,
the	Navys	Unconventional	Activities	Committee	presented	a	mission	statement	for	a	new
special	 ops	 SEAL	 unit,	 and	 the	 Chief	 of	 Naval	 Operations	 declared	 to	 his	 senior
commanders,	It	is	the	Navys	intention	to	provide	for	the	waterborne	conduct	and	support
of	 such	 guerrilla	 and	 counter-guerrilla	 operations	 as	 may	 be	 directed	 in	 the	 national
interest.
SEALs	 were	 also	 in	 the	 Navys	 interest;	 with	 the	 administrations	 favouring	 of	 the
Armys	 Green	 Berets,	 the	 Navy	 needed	 a	 role	 in	 Special	 Forces	 capability.	 In	 January
1962	President	Kennedy	authorized	the	creation	of	US	Navy	SEAL	Teams	One	and	Two,
with	One	based	on	the	East	Coast	of	Conus	(Continental	US)	at	Coronado,	California,	and
Two	at	Little	Creek,	Virginia.	Recruited	principally	from	the	UDTs,	the	SEALs	were	soon
deployed	in	Vietnam,	with	SEAL	Team	One	personnel	entering	theatre	in	March	1962	to
train	 their	 South	 Vietnamese	 counterparts	 in	 covert	 maritime	 operations.	 The	 following
month,	a	SEAL	Team	One	detachment	was	sent	to	Vietnam	to	train	Biet	Hai	Junk	Force
commandos.	 From	 1962	 to	 1964,	 the	 SEALs	 primarily	 trained	 and	 advised	 South
Vietnamese	commandos	in	guerrilla	operations	against	sites	in	North	Vietnam	as	part	of
Operation	 Plan	 34A	 and	 under	 CIA	 direction.	 Because	 Americans	 were	 prohibited	 from
entering	 into	 North	 Vietnam,	 SEAL	 Team	 advisers	 escorted	 South	 Vietnamese	 naval
Special	Forces	to	the	17th	parallel,	when	the	South	Vietnamese	continued	northwards	on
their	own.
After	the	Gulf	of	Tonkin	incident	in	which	North	Vietnamese	forces	allegedly	attacked
US	 shipping,	 America	 committed	 directly	 to	 the	 Vietnam	 War	 and	 SEAL	 Team	 One
activity	switched	to	hands-on	covert	special	ops	in	the	South-East	Asia	theatre,	beginning
at	 Da	 Nang,	 before	 switching	 to	 the	 Rung	 Sat	 Special	 Zone	 (RSSZ),	 a	 400-square-mile
delta	 between	 Saigon	 and	 the	 China	 Sea.	 This	 was	 a	 Vietcong	 stronghold.	 The	 tasks
assigned	the	SEALs	in	the	brown	water	war	ranged	from	setting	up	listening	posts	to	the
demolition	 of	 VC	 bunkers.	 More	 often	 than	 not,	 the	 SEALs	 went	 out	 in	 three-man
detachments	with	the	simple	order,	Sat	Cong.	Kill	Communists.	In	the	first	operations
insertion	was	by	Mike	boat,	a	heavily	armed	riverine	craft,	but	later	by	Boston	Whaler,	a
fibreglass	boat	with	a	shallow	draught,	or	an	inflatable	boat,	or	even	by	submarine.	The
SEALs	 Vietnam	 arsenal	 included	 the	 5.56mm	 M63A1	 Stoner	 light	 machine	 gun	 	 a
SEAL	favourite,	because	it	could	be	converted	to	an	assault	rifle		the	M60	GPMG,	the
M79	grenade	launcher,	and	the	ever-reliable	9	mm	Carl	Gustav	sub-machine-gun.	For
clandestine	ops,	the	SEALs	carried	the	9	mm	Smith	and	Wesson	Mk	22	Model	0	silenced
pistol,	 nicknamed	 the	 hush	 puppy	 because	 it	 was	 originally	 developed	 for	 silencing
enemy	 guard	 dogs.	 Combat	 knives	 such	 as	 the	 Randall,	 the	 Ka-Bar	 and	 Gerber	 were
standard.	 Tiger	 stripe	 camouflage	 fatigues	 were	 often	 worn	 in	 preference	 to	 the	 usual
combat	issue		green-leaf-pattern	uniform		though	many	SEALs	wore	blue	denim	jeans
because	these	best	withstood	the	mosquitoes.	A	special	combat	coat	was	developed	for	the
use	 of	 SEALs,	 made	 of	 camouflaged	 material,	 with	 a	 built-in	 flotation	 chamber,	 which
was	 designed	 to	 carry	 everything	 a	 SEAL	 would	 need	 on	 a	 mission.	 They	 painted	 their
faces	green.	The	Vietcong	called	them	green	faces	and	put	a	price	on	their	heads.
On	19	August	1966	the	SEALs	suffered	their	first	combat	casualty	when	twenty-eightyear-old	 Radarman	 2nd	 Class	 Billy	 Machen	 was	 killed	 in	 the	 RSSZ	 while	 on	 daylight
recce.	 The	 point	 man	 in	 the	 patrol,	 Machen	 spotted	 a	 VC	 ambush,	 which	 he	 singlehandedly	engaged;	his	action	allowed	his	fellow	patrol	members	to	take	cover	and	beat	off
the	VC	attack.	Machen	was	posthumously	awarded	the	Silver	Star.
VC	 activity	 in	 the	 region	 was	 dramatically	 reduced	 by	 SEAL	 Team	 Ones	 operations.
So	successful	was	SEAL	Team	One	in	the	Rung	Sat	that	there	was	general	hollering	for
SEAL	 operations.	 So,	 platoons	 were	 sent	 to	 the	 Mekong	 Delta,	 one	 of	 the	 major	 ricegrowing	 regions	 of	 the	 world.	 Like	 RSSZ,	 the	 Delta	 was	 a	 hard-core	 Communist
stronghold.	 It	 would	 see	 some	 of	 the	 toughest	 fighting	 of	 the	 war.	 Soon	 the	 demand	 for
SEAL	 missions	 outstripped	 SEAL	 Team	 Ones	 ability	 to	 fulfil	 them,	 and	 elements	 from
SEAL	 Team	 Two	 were	 deployed	 to	 Nam.	 Yet	 SEAL	 missions	 largely	 continued	 to	 be
unlike	conventional	missions,	which	ran	to	pre-arranged	schedules	and	agreed	objectives.
SEALs	did	their	own	thing.	As	one	senior	naval	commander	put	it,	once	SEAL	platoons
were	deployed,	The	SEALs	made	up	their	own	operations.	The	SEALS	called	it	doing
SEAL	shit.	The	SEALs	liked	combat.	SEAL	Team	Two	Ensign	Ron	Yaw	said:
Action	 was	 our	 prime	 motive	 in	 life.	 Every	 time	 we	 went	 on	 patrol	 we	 wanted
contact.	 As	 a	 platoon	 commander,	 it	 was	 my	 responsibility	 to	 design	 a	 situation
where	that	desire	would	be	fulfilled.
At	 the	 wars	 height,	 eight	 SEAL	 platoons	 were	 in	 Vietnam	 on	 a	 continuing	 rotational
basis.	SEALs	continued	to	make	forays	into	North	Vietnam	and	Laos,	and	unofficially	into
Cambodia,	controlled	by	the	Studies	and	Observations	Group.
The	 SEALs	 were	 heavily	 committed	 to	 the	 controversial	 Phoenix	 Program,	 which,
under	 the	 auspices	 of	 the	 CIA	 and	 South	 Vietnamese	 police,	 formed	 Provincial
Reconnaissance	Units	(PRUs)	of	Vietcong	defectors.	The	PRUs	were	to	lead	the	SEALs
into	 the	 Delta,	 so	 the	 SEALs	 could	 capture	 or	 kill	 members	 of	 the	 Vietcong	 shadow
government	to	weaken	its	capability	to	support	military	operations.	The	American	public
came	to	worry	that	there	was	no	capture	element	in	the	programme.
On	 18	 May	 1967,	 Lieutenant	 Dick	 Marcinko	 of	 SEAL	 Team	 Two	 led	 his	 men	 in	 an
assault	on	Ilo	Ilo	Hon,	in	what	is	regarded	as	the	most	successful	SEAL	operation	in	the
Mekong	Delta.	For	leading	it,	Marcinko	was	awarded	the	second	of	his	four	Bronze	Stars.
CIA	and	Army,	culminating	in	the	3	October	Battle	of	Mogadishu	where	they	were	part
of	the	ground	convoy	raiding	the	Olympic	Hotel.	All	four	SEALs	were	awarded	the	Silver
Star.	Naval	Special	Warfare	units	also	conducted	missions	in	the	Lebanon,	Somalia,	Haiti
and	Liberia.
After	 the	 11	 September	 attacks	 in	 2001,	 Navy	 SEALs	 quickly	 dispatched	 to	 the
decidedly	 landlocked	 Afghanistan,	 where	 they	 had	 an	 early	 success	 seizing	 the	 Taliban
Mullah	Khirullah	Said	Wali	Khairkhwa	following	a	CIA	tip-off.	The	next	phase	of	SEAL
operations	 in	 Afghanistan	 was	 conducted	 within	 Task	 Force	 K-Bar,	 a	 joint	 special
operations	 unit	 of	 US	 Special	 Forces	 and	 special	 forces	 assets	 from,	 among	 other
countries,	 Germany,	 Australia,	 New	 Zealand	 and	 Canada.	 Task	 Force	 K-Bar	 conducted
combat	 operations	 in	 the	 massive	 cave	 complexes	 at	 Zhawar	 Kili,	 the	 city	 of	 Kandahar,
and	throughout	hundreds	of	miles	of	southern	and	eastern	Afghanistan.	Over	the	course	of
six	 months	 Task	 Force	 K-Bar	 conducted	 more	 than	 seventy-five	 missions,	 killed	 or
captured	over	200	Taliban	and	Al-Qaeda	fighters,	and	destroyed	500,000	lbs	of	weapons
and	ordnance.
Navy	 SEALs	 participated	 extensively	 in	 Operation	 Anaconda,	 the	 2002	 attack	 on	 alQaeda	 and	 the	 Taliban	 in	 Afghanistans	 Shahi-Kot	 Valley.	 SEALs	 were	 present	 at	 the
Battle	of	Qala-i-Jangi	alongside	their	counterparts	from	the	British	Special	Boat	Service.
Chief	Petty	Officer	Stephen	Bass	was	awarded	the	Navy	Cross	for	his	bravery	during	the
battle.	 Lieutenant	 Michael	 P.	 Murphy	 was	 posthumously	 awarded	 the	 Medal	 of	 Honor
after	his	four-man	team	was	almost	wiped	out	in	a	firefight	during	Operation	Red	Wings
in	June	2005.	Afghanistan	witnessed	the	SEALs	greatest	tragedy	when	on	6	August	2011
seventeen	SEALs	were	killed	when	their	CH-47	Chinook	helicopter	was	shot	down	by	a
Taliban	RPG	round.
Overlapping	 with	 the	 Afghanistan	 mission	 was	 the	 deployment	 to	 Iraq.	 On	 20	 March
2003,	 as	 part	 of	 a	 mixed	 force	 of	 US	 Navy	 SEALs,	 Polish	 GROM	 and	 British	 Royal
Marines,	the	Navy	SEALs	launched	what	is	the	largest	single	SEAL	operation	in	history.
Their	targets	were	the	MABOT	and	KAAOT	oil	platforms,	together	with	their	respective
onshore	 petroleum	 pumping	 locks,	 plus	 the	 Al	 Faw	 port	 and	 refinery.	 All	 were	 secured.
Coalition	military	planners	were	also	concerned	that	retreating	Iraqi	forces	would	destroy
the	Mukatayin	hydroelectric	dam	north-east	of	Baghdad	in	an	attempt	to	slow	advancing
US	troops.	A	mixed	team	of	SEALs	from	SEAL	Team	Five	and	Polish	GROM	seized	the
dam	after	fast-roping	down	from	helicopters.
The	War	on	Terror	took	a	dramatic	turn	in	2011,	when	CIA	analysts	became	convinced
they	 had	 finally	 found	 Osama	 bin	 Ladens	 hide-out.	 The	 mission	 to	 capture	 or	 kill	 the
USAs	 Enemy	 Number	 1,	 dubbed	 by	 the	 Defense	 Department	 Operation	 Neptune	 Spear,
naturally	 fell	 to	 the	 countrys	 elite	 counter-terrorist	 unit.	 Under	 a	 moonless	 Afghan	 sky,
shortly	 after	 eleven	 oclock	 on	 the	 night	 of	 1	 May	 2011,	 two	 MH-60	 Black	 Hawk
helicopters	 lifted	 off	 from	 Jalalabad	 Airfield.	 Inside	 the	 aircraft	 were	 twenty-three	 men
with	hard	eyes	and	long	stares	from	the	Red	Squadron	of	DEVGRU,	SEAL	Team	Six.	A
Pakistani	 American	 translator	 and	 a	 Belgian	 Malinois	 dog	 were	 also	 aboard.	 Radio
communications	 were	 kept	 to	 an	 absolute	 minimum.	 The	 SEALs	 destination	 was	 a
concrete	house	in	the	small	city	of	Abbottabad,	across	the	border	in	Pakistan.	Abbottabad,
situated	 north	 of	 the	 Pakistani	 capital,	 Islamabad,	 is	 in	 the	 foothills	 of	 the	 Pir	 Panjal
Range.	 Founded	 in	 1853	 by	 a	 British	 major	 named	 James	 Abbott,	 the	 city	 is	 home	 to	 a
prestigious	military	academy,	and	in	the	baking	Indian	summer	the	cool	climate	makes	it	a
popular	retreat	for	city	dwellers.
A	covert	operation	into	the	heart	of	Pakistan	carried	the	possibility	of	major	diplomatic
fall-out		Pakistan	was	an	ally,	of	sorts,	but	not	the	sort	the	US	would	want	to	trust	on	a
mission	like	this.	Why,	after	all,	was	bin	Laden	in	Pakistan	at	all?	Was	he	being	hidden
and	succoured	by	Islamicists	in	its	government?	The	sending	of	the	SEALs	into	Pakistan
had	 required	 the	 approval	 of	 President	 Obama	 personally,	 and	 to	 reassure	 him	 and	 his
advisers	the	team	had	conducted	a	night-time	dress	rehearsal	of	the	raid	on	a	mock-up	of
bin	Ladens	house.	They	were	impressed;	the	President	had	said	Yes.
According	to	the	information	gathered	by	the	CIA,	bin	Laden	was	hunkered	down	in	the
third	floor	of	a	house	in	a	compound	just	off	Kakul	Road,	a	residential	street	less	than	a
mile	from	the	entrance	to	the	military	academy.	The	plan	was	simple:	the	SEALs	would
drop	 from	 the	 helicopters	 into	 the	 compound,	 overpower	 bin	 Ladens	 guards,	 seize	 or
shoot	bin	Laden,	depending	on	circumstances,	and	fly	the	corpse	out.	Fifteen	minutes	after
take-off,	 the	 choppers	 ducked	 down	 into	 an	 alpine	 valley	 and	 slipped	 into	 Pakistani
airspace.	 They	 were	 undetected.	 Pakistans	 principal	 air	 detection	 systems	 look	 towards
India.	Even	so,	the	Black	Hawk	crews,	two	pilots	and	a	crewman	from	the	160th	Special
Operations	 Aviation	 Regiment	 (The	 night	 Stalkers)	 had	 taken	 no	 chances.	 The	 Black
Hawks	 were	 modified	 Stealth	 versions	 covered	 with	 radar-damping	 skin.	 Flying
behind	them	were	two	Chinooks,	which	were	to	land	and	be	kept	on	standby	in	a	deserted
area	 roughly	 two-thirds	 of	 the	 way	 to	 Abbottabad,	 with	 two	 additional	 SEAL	 teams	 on
board	of	approximately	twenty-four	DEVGRU	operators.	These	were	the	Quick	Reaction
Force	in	case	anything	went	wrong	on	the	main	raid.
During	 the	 ninety-minute	 flight,	 sitting	 in	 the	 strangely	 calm	 red-lit	 interior	 of	 the
aircraft,	 the	 SEALs	 rehearsed	 the	 operation	 in	 their	 minds.	 They	 were	 no	 strangers	 to
action.	Since	the	commencement	of	the	War	on	Terror	in	2001	they	had	rotated	through
Afghanistan,	Iraq,	the	Horn	of	Africa,	and	the	Yemen.	DEVGRU	had	been	into	Pakistan
before,	too,	on	at	least	ten	occasions,	usually	into	the	tribal	badlands	of	Waziristan,	where
senior	 Al-Qaeda	 members	 liked	 to	 hole	 up.	 But	 the	 SEALs	 had	 never	 been	 as	 far	 into
Pakistan	as	Abbottabad.	The	helicopters	skirted	the	north	of	Peshawar,	and	continued	due
east.	In	this	time	of	waiting,	the	kit	hung	heavy	and	even	the	desert	camouflage	uniform
seemed	a	little	too	tight.	Most	of	the	SEALs	had	plumped	for	the	Heckler	&	Koch	MP7,	a
few	 the	 short-barrelled	 silenced	 M4.	 Vest	 pockets	 held	 a	 booklet	 with	 photographs	 and
physical	descriptions	of	the	people	suspected	of	being	inside	the	compound.	One	of	these
was	Ahmed	al-Kuwaiti,	an	Al-Qaeda	courier	who	would	unwittingly	lead	the	CIA	to	bin
Ladens	compound.	Or	maybe	not.	There	was	no	absolute	certainty	that	bin	Laden	was	in
the	compound.	At	least	the	CIA	had	intimate	knowledge	of	the	compounds	layout:	in	the
run-up	to	the	raid	one	of	the	SEALs,	Matt	Bissonnette,	had	asked	an	intelligence	officer
about	 one	 of	 the	 many	 doors	 the	 commandos	 would	 have	 to	 breach.	 The	 answer	 came
back	straight	away:	the	door	is	metal	and	opens	to	the	outside.
The	 helicopters	 arrived	 above	 the	 compound	 at	 around	 12.55	 a.m.	 The	 mission	 plan
dictated	that	the	SEALs	from	the	first	helicopter	would	fast-rope	to	the	ground	and	enter
the	house	from	the	ground	floor.	The	second	helicopter	would	fly	to	the	northeast	corner
of	 the	 compound	 and	 secure	 the	 perimeter.	 As	 the	 first	 helicopter	 hovered	 over	 the
compound	it	experienced	vortex	ring	state,	a	phenomenon	caused	by	turbulent	air,	and
its	 tail	 caught	 the	 compound	 wall.	 The	 chopper	 lunged	 dangerously	 on	 its	 side,	 but	 the
pilot	managed	to	bring	the	nose	down	to	prevent	it	tipping	over.	None	of	the	aircrew	or
SEALs	 were	 seriously	 injured.	 The	 SEALs	 quickly	 cleared	 the	 chopper	 and	 placed
explosives	against	the	door	of	the	house.	Meanwhile,	the	other	chopper	landed	outside	the
compound,	 and	 its	 SEAL	 team	 scaled	 the	 eighteen-feet-high	 walls	 to	 get	 inside.	 Matt
Bissonnette,	 who	 was	 in	 this	 second	 SEAL	 team,	 and	 a	 colleague	 deployed	 to	 an
outbuilding	 where	 Ahmed	 al-Kuwaiti,	 bin	 Ladens	 courier,	 was	 thought	 to	 be	 residing.
The	 two	 SEALs	 pounded	 on	 the	 door	 with	 a	 sledgehammer.	 A	 shot	 was	 fired	 out.
Bissonnette	and	his	colleague,	an	Arabic-speaker,	fired	back.	There	was	a	cry	and	a	groan
from	inside.
Immediately	 after	 this	 exchange	 of	 fire,	 a	 womans	 voice	 called	 out	 from	 inside	 the
building.	The	door	was	unlocked	and	a	woman	walked	out.	Caught	in	the	exchange	of	fire,
the	 woman	 had	 a	 shoulder	 wound	 from	 a	 bullet.	 The	 SEALs	 rules	 of	 engagement	 are
precise	 on	 the	 question	 of	 unarmed,	 surrendered	 women:	 Bissonnette	 and	 his	 colleague
held	 fire;	 three	 children	 trailed	 the	 woman	 into	 the	 courtyard.	 Taking	 no	 chances,	 the
SEALs	entered	the	building	in	textbook	fashion,	quick	and	providing	cover	for	each	other.
Al-Kuwaiti	was	on	the	floor.	Bissonette	and	his	colleague	squeezed	off	several	rounds	to
make	sure	he	was	down.
This	building	cleared,	Bissonnette	and	his	colleague	joined	the	first	SEAL	team,	which
had	 now	 breached	 the	 main	 door	 of	 the	 house.	 Inside,	 there	 was	 total	 blackness;	 CIA
operatives	 had	 disabled	 the	 local	 power	 station.	 Through	 the	 green	 gloom	 of	 their	 night
vision	goggles	the	SEALs	spotted	al-Kuwaitis	brother,	Abrar,	as	he	poked	his	head	into	a
hallway	 on	 the	 first	 floor.	 He	 was	 shot	 and	 staggered	 backwards.	 The	 SEALs,	 amid
shouting	and	screaming,	followed	him	into	a	side	room.	Abrar	was	shot	again.	His	wife
tried	to	shield	him,	and	she	was	shot	dead	too.	A	massive	metal	door	blocked	the	access	to
the	 two	 top	 floors.	 This	 was	 blown	 apart.	 As	 the	 SEALs	 climbed	 the	 main	 stairs,	 bin
Ladens	twenty-three-year-old	son,	Khalid,	rushed	towards	them.	He	was	killed	as	he	did
so.	 Bissonnette	 stepped	 past	 the	 body	 and	 saw	 an	 AK-47	 assault	 rifle	 propped	 nearby.
Later,	it	transpired	there	was	a	round	in	the	chamber.	Khalid	had	been	prepared	to	fight;	he
just	never	got	the	chance.
As	they	climbed	to	the	last	and	third	floor,	the	SEAL	point	man	saw	someone	peeking
out	from	the	door	on	the	right	of	the	hallway,	and	immediately	popped	off	a	round	from
his	 rifle,	 which	 was	 fitted	 with	 a	 silencer.	 The	 man	 fell	 backward.	 The	 SEALs	 sprinted
into	the	room,	through	an	unlocked	gate	on	the	stairs;	in	the	bedroom	the	SEALs	found
bin	Laden	lying	on	the	floor,	with	two	women	standing	in	front	of	him	trying	to	protect
him.	 One	 of	 them,	 Amal	 Ahmed	 Abdul	 Fatah,	 screamed	 at	 the	 SEALs	 in	 Arabic	 and
looked	as	if	she	was	about	to	charge.	She	was	shot	in	the	leg,	and	pushed	out	of	the	way.
Bin	 Ladens	 twelve-year-old	 daughter	 stood	 in	 the	 darkness	 at	 the	 back	 of	 the	 room,
screaming.	She	had	been	named	Safia	after	a	contemporary	of	the	Prophet	who	had	killed
a	Jew	in	the	hope,	bin	Laden	had	once	explained,	that	she	would	grow	up	to	do	the	same.
With	 bin	 Laden	 writhing	 on	 the	 floor	 Bissonnette	 and	 a	 colleague	 applied	 the	 coup	 de
grce	with	bullets	to	the	chest.	The	SEALs	then	had	to	positively	identify	him.	To	do	this
they	asked	his	children.	To	be	doubly	sure	of	the	correct	ID,	they	also	measured	him	and
took	 blood	 samples.	 The	 SEAL	 team	 leader	 then	 radioed,	 For	 God	 and	 country	 
Geronimo,	Geronimo,	Geronimo		Geronimo	E.K.I.A.	Geronimo	was	the	codename	for
bin	Laden.	EKIA	is	Enemy	Killed	in	Action.
There	 were	 two	 weapons	 on	 a	 shelf	 next	 to	 the	 door,	 an	 AKSU	 rifle	 and	 a	 Makarov
pistol.	The	raid	had	taken	fifteen	minutes	to	reach	bin	Laden	in	his	top	floor	bedroom.	He
did	not	reach	for	his	weapons,	either	because	he	was	paralysed	by	fear	or	because	he	was
hampered	by	the	design	of	the	house	and	could	not	understand	what	was	happening.	The
house	 was	 built	 in	 segregated	 compartments	 with	 small	 windows	 intended	 to	 frustrate
observation;	on	that	night,	it	made	it	difficult	for	the	inhabitants	to	see	what	was	going	on
or	liaise	with	each	other.
Bin	 Laden	 was	 dead,	 yet	 the	 mission	 was	 not	 over.	 The	 SEALs	 still	 had	 to	 gather	 as
much	 intelligence	 material	 from	 the	 compound	 as	 possible	 and	 get	 the	 body	 out	 of
Pakistan	before	local	forces	were	alerted.	After	restraining	the	women	and	children	in	the
compound	 with	 plastic	 ties	 and	 handcuffs,	 the	 SEALs	 began	 a	 methodical	 search.	 The
downed	helicopter	also	had	to	be	destroyed.	After	smashing	the	cockpit	controls,	SEALs
packed	the	helicopter	with	explosives	and	blew	it	up.	Since	the	team	was	reduced	to	one
operational	 helicopter,	 one	 of	 the	 two	 Chinooks	 held	 in	 reserve	 was	 dispatched	 to	 carry
part	 of	 the	 assault	 team	 and	 bin	 Ladens	 body	 out.	 Thirty-eight	 minutes	 after	 arriving	 at
the	 compound	 the	 SEALs,	 together	 with	 bin	 Ladens	 corpse,	 were	 on	 their	 way	 to
Afghanistan.	They	were	two	minutes	under	schedule.
No	country	wanted	the	body,	so	it	was	dumped,	after	the	appropriate	Muslim	rites,	in
the	Arabian	Sea.
GREEN	BERETS
The	US	Armys	Special	Forces	originated	in	1952	and	established	a	base	at	Fort	Bragg,
South	 Carolina,	 site	 of	 the	 Army	 Special	 Warfare	 School.	 America	 has	 a	 rich	 history	 of
operations	 by	 unconventional	 forces,	 dating	 back	 to	 the	 French	 and	 Indian	 wars	 in	 the
days	 when	 the	 thirteen	 colonies	 were	 still	 British,	 and	 including	 Rogers	 Rangers.	 who
were	active	during	the	War	of	Independence.	A	vast	conglomeration	of	special	operations
units	mushroomed	during	the	Second	World	War,	among	them	a	new	Rangers,	Merrills
Marauders,	 Marine	 Raiders,	 Underwater	 Demolition	 Teams,	 the	 Office	 of	 Strategic
Services	(OSS),	and	the	1st	Special	Service	Force	(The	Devils	Brigade),	but	they	were
quickly	disbanded	after	the	war.	Interest	was	revived	in	the	1950s	following	the	Korean
War,	and	that	led	to	the	formation	of	the	Special	Forces,	the	name	coming	straight	from
the	OSSs	term	for	its	operational	teams.
They	 were	 kept	 at	 a	 relatively	 low	 strength	 of	 2,300	 personnel,	 and	 only	 grudgingly
tolerated	 by	 the	 traditionalists	 in	 the	 Armys	 high	 command,	 who	 did	 not	 like	 any	 unit
with	pretensions	to	elite	status.	Army	administrators	discouraged	officers	from	spending
more	than	one	tour	with	the	Special	Forces,	on	the	basis	that	they	would	lose	experience	in
their	basic	branch,	and	thus	be	unfavourably	looked-on	when	it	came	to	promotion.
With	 the	 inauguration	 of	 President	 John	 F.	 Kennedy	 in	 1961,	 though,	 the	 fate	 of	 the
Special	Forces	changed.	Kennedy	strongly	believed	that	such	units	were	the	best	way	to
counter	 Communist	 wars	 of	 liberation;	 the	 motto	 of	 the	 Special	 Forces	 was	 De
Oppresso	Liber,	Latin	for	To	Free	the	Oppressed.	As	it	became	chic	in	Washington	DC
to	support	the	Green	Berets,	so	named	because	of	their	distinctive	headgear	which	had
been	approved	by	the	President,	their	numbers	increased	by	several	orders	of	magnitude.
While	the	original	Special	Forces	mission	was	to	organise	guerrilla	warfare	in	enemy-held
countries,	that	role	changed	as	more	and	more	Green	Berets	were	sent	to	South-East	Asia,
where	they	became	increasingly	involved	in	counter-insurgency	operations.
The	 Special	 Forces	 were	 among	 the	 first	 Americans	 in	 action	 in	 Vietnam:	 the	 5th
Special	 Forces	 Group	 took	 over	 the	 CIAs	 border	 surveillance	 programme,	 teaching	 the
fundamentals	 of	 reconnaissance	 and	 local	 defence	 to	 remote	 tribes	 in	 Laos	 and	 the
Vietnamese	highlands.	Operating	in	small	teams	with	large	numbers	of	native	auxiliaries,
often	 only	 marginally	 less	 hostile	 to	 the	 government	 in	 Saigon	 than	 to	 the	 Communists,
they	ran	patrols	from	border	camps	to	uncover	Communist	infiltration	on	the	Ho	Chi	Minh
Trail.	In	more	settled	parts	of	Vietnam	the	Green	Berets	(soon	dubbed	the	Sneaky	Petes)
were	assigned	as	advisers	by	the	US	military	authorities,	to	provide	anything	from	advice
on	personal	health	and	drainage	to	teaching	unarmed	combat	and	demolitions	to	members
of	the	Civilian	Irregular	Defence	Groups.
Hostage	rescue	had	always	been	a	part	of	the	Green	Berets	remit,	and	in	1970	the	unit
was	tasked	with	a	significant	mission	to	save	American	lives.	US	military	intelligence	had
spotted	 in	 aerial	 reconnaissance	 photographs	 what	 appeared	 to	 be	 a	 prison	 full	 of
American	POWs	at	Son	Tay,	some	37	km	west	of	Hanoi.	Entrusted	with	Operation	Ivory
Coast,	the	night-time	rescue	of	the	POWs,	was	Colonel	Arthur	Bull	Simons,	a	highly
experienced	 Special	 Forces	 officer.	 At	 Fort	 Bragg,	 hundreds	 of	 Special	 Forces	 troopers
volunteered,	 from	 which	 Simmons	 selected	 103,	 mostly	 from	 the	 6th	 and	 7th	 Special
Forces	Groups.	To	carry	out	realistic	training,	a	mock-up	of	the	Son	Tay	compound	was
built,	 always	 to	 be	 dismantled	 during	 the	 day	 so	 it	 could	 not	 be	 detected	 by	 Soviet
satellites.	 During	 training	 Simmons	 was	 dismayed	 to	 find	 that	 even	 his	 best	 marksmen
were	having	trouble	getting	more	than	25	per	cent	of	their	shots	on	target	in	the	dark;	this
difficulty	 was	 solved,	 however,	 by	 going	 outside	 the	 normal	 Army	 supply	 channels	 to
acquire	 Singlepoint	 Nite	 Sites	 for	 the	 sharp-shooters	 M16s.	 The	 assault	 force	 was
formed	 into	 three	 groups:	 the	 compound	 assault	 force	 of	 fourteen	 men,	 who	 would
actually	be	deposited	inside	the	prison	compound	by	crash	landing	an	HH-3E	helicopter.
Something	 of	 a	 firearms	 enthusiast,	 Simmons	 kitted	 his	 men	 with	 the	 best	 that	 Army
money	 could	 buy:	 l2-gauge	 shotguns,	 30-round	 M16	 magazines,	 .45	 automatic	 pistols,
CAR-15s,	and	M-79	grenade	launchers.
The	weather	and	moon	had	to	be	right	for	the	raid	to	take	place,	and	conditions	were
deemed	acceptable	on	the	night	of	20/21	November.	President	Nixon	personally	gave	the
Go	order.	At	about	02.18	on	the	morning	of	21	November,	the	raid	helicopters	arrived
over	Son	Tay	after	a	nerve-racking	low	level	flight	from	Thailand	and	South	Vietnam.	As
a	C-130	flare	ship	illuminated	the	area	with	flares,	the	HH-53,	code-named	Apple	Three,
opened	 up	 on	 the	 guard	 towers	 of	 Son	 Tay	 Prison	 with	 its	 mini-guns,	 bringing	 them
crashing	 down.	 Shortly	 thereafter,	 the	 HH-3E	 carrying	 the	 assault	 party	 commanded	 by
Major	Dick	Meadows,	known	as	Banana	One,	landed	inside	the	prison	compound;	the
whole	group	pressed	against	mattresses	to	cushion	them	against	the	crash.	It	came	to	rest
amid	 branches,	 leaves	 and	 other	 debris	 brought	 down	 by	 its	 whirling	 rotors	 during	 the
crash	 descent.	 On	 landing,	 Dick	 Meadows	 rushed	 out	 with	 his	 bullhorn	 shouting:
Were	Americans.	Keep	your	heads	down.	Were	Americans.	This	is	a	rescue.	Were	here
to	 get	 you	 out.	 Keep	 your	 heads	 down.	 Get	 on	 the	 floor.	 Well	 be	 in	 your	 cells	 in	 a
minute.	 The	 remainder	 of	 the	 assault	 party	 rushed	 into	 action,	 some	 men	 laying	 down
suppressive	fire,	others	streaking	for	the	cellblocks	to	rescue	the	prisoners.
A	 few	 minutes	 later	 the	 command	 and	 security	 group	 landed	 just	 outside	 the	 prisons
walls.	 The	 Support	 group	 led	 by	 Simons	 himself,	 however,	 had	 landed	 400	 metres	 off
course	at	what	was	identified	on	the	raiders	maps	as	a	secondary	school,	but	turned	out	to
be	a	barracks	housing	Chinese	or	Soviet	advisers	to	the	NVA	(North	Vietnamese	Army).
School	 or	 not,	 Simons	 and	 his	 men	 proceeded	 to	 teach	 its	 inmates	 a	 lesson.	 Within
minutes	 of	 touching	 down,	 many	 of	 the	 residents	 of	 the	 barracks	 had	 been	 killed,
preventing	 them	 from	 reinforcing	 the	 prison	 compound	 and	 taking	 the	 other	 raiders	 by
surprise.	 Having	 cleared	 the	 area,	 Simons	 and	 his	 men	 entered	 the	 Son	 Tay	 compound
proper.
The	 extraordinary	 effectiveness	 of	 the	 assault	 was	 to	 little	 purpose:	 there	 were	 no
American	prisoners	at	Son	Tay.	They	had	been	moved	days	previously.	Yet	the	raid	was
not	a	complete	failure:	it	proved	that	North	Vietnam	was	vulnerable	to	attacks	even	in	its
heartland,	 and	 indirectly	 led	 to	 improvements	 in	 the	 conditions	 of	 US	 POWs	 in	 North
Vietnam.	 It	 should	 not	 be	 forgotten,	 either,	 that	 Simons	 party	 had	 killed	 dozens	 of	 the
enemy,	many	of	them	non-Vietnamese,	without	taking	any	losses	themselves.
Following	the	end	of	the	war	in	South-East	Asia,	the	Green	Berets	suffered	under	the
general	 malaise	 afflicting	 the	 US	 armed	 forces;	 additionally	 they	 suffered	 from	 having
been	often	inappropriately	committed,	leading	to	unsatisfactory	outcomes.	After	ill-starred
roles	 in	 Iran	 (notably	 Operation	 Eagle	 Claw,	 the	 failed	 mission	 to	 rescue	 the	 fifty-two
hostages	held	in	the	US	Embassy	in	Tehran),	Grenada,	El	Salvador	and	at	Paitilla	airfield
during	the	Panama	invasion,	the	reputation	of	the	Green	Berets	rose	inexorably	with	the
first	 Gulf	 War,	 during	 which	 Special	 Forces	 reconnaissance	 teams	 penetrated	 deep	 into
Iraq,	 keeping	 watch	 on	 Iraqi	 troop	 movements,	 hunting	 Scud	 launching	 sites,	 laserdesignating	 targets	 for	 coalition	 air	 power,	 and	 scouting	 out	 routes	 for	 the	 coalitions
ground	offensive.
In	1997	Special	Forces	were	made	a	separate	branch	of	the	Army,	and	their	orders	now
come	via	the	US	Special	Operations	Command,	which	incorporates	all	special	operations
units	 from	 all	 US	 services.	 Todays	 Green	 Berets	 retain	 their	 training	 function:	 Special
Forces	 teams	 can	 be	 found	 passing	 on	 their	 skills	 to	 special	 operations	 units	 around	 the
world.	 Most	 recently,	 they	 have	 been	 organising	 South	 American	 and	 South-East	 Asian
units	 as	 part	 of	 the	 US	 governments	 worldwide	 anti-drugs	 campaign.	 Training	 and
guerrilla	 warfare	 is	 not	 the	 whole	 story,	 of	 course:	 Delta	 Force,	 the	 US	 Armys	 hostage
rescue	unit	(see	p	514),	is	also	part	of	the	Special	Forces.
SAYERET	MATKAL
Sayeret	Matkal	(General	Staff	Reconnaissance	Unit)	is	the	principal	Special	Forces	unit	of
the	Israeli	Defence	Force.	Modelled	on	the	British	SAS,	whose	motto	and	winged	dagger
insignia	 was	 adopted	 in	 homage,	 Sayeret	 Maktal	 was	 formed	 in	 1957	 to	 undertake	 deep
reconnaissance	into	Arab	lands,	but	was	transformed	in	the	1960s	into	a	counter-terrorist
unit.	Again	like	the	SAS,	the	Unit	operates	an	anti-authoritarian	philosophy,	where	many
decisions	 are	 taken	 in	 Chinese	 parliaments.	 Lieutenant	 Moshe	 Muki	 Betser,	 a
legendary	Unit	commando,	explains:
The	 hierarchy	 in	 the	 Unit	 is	 very	 different	 from	 anywhere	 else	 in	 the	 army.	 Its
friendlier,	more	intimate	and	thus	more	candid	and	open,	and	this	unique	atmosphere
is	 best	 seen	 during	 the	 planning	 phase	 of	 an	 operation.	 Rank	 doesnt	 count	 in
planning	a	mission.	All	that	matters	is	inventiveness	and	originality.	Everyone	throws
out	ideas,	in	a	round-table	brainstorming	session.	Nothing	is	rejected	out	of	hand,	as
the	best	ideas	are	set	aside	while	more	are	raised.	Eventually,	the	best	idea	stands	out.
Even	by	the	standards	of	the	worlds	Special	Forces,	the	Unit	is	shrouded	in	secrecy.
Current	strength	is	believed	to	be	200.	Candidates	wanting	to	join	the	Unit	are	selected	on
Yom	Hasayarot	(Commando	Day),	after	which	they	undertake	a	six-day	evaluation,	with
successful	 candidates	 moving	 on	 to	 a	 twenty-month	 continuation	 training	 course,
consisting	 of,	 inter	 alia,	 paratroop	 training,	 counter-terrorism	 and	 advanced	 infantry
training,	 navigation,	 culminating	 in	 a	 120-kilometre	 forced	 march	 across	 hostile	 terrain.
Successful	candidates	are	received	into	the	Unit	at	the	fortress	of	Masada,	and	granted	the
coveted	red	beret.
The	Unit	has	conducted	some	of	the	most	famous	missions	in	Special	Forces	history.	In
April	 1973,	 as	 part	 of	 Operation	 Wrath	 of	 God,	 Israels	 counter-attack	 on	 the	 terrorists
who	 had	 murdered	 its	 Olympic	 athletes	 in	 Munich	 the	 year	 before,	 a	 Unit	 team
assassinated	three	PLO	leaders	in	Beirut,	and	blew	a	PLO	HQ	sky-high.	As	many	as	100
Palestinian	militants	may	have	perished	in	all.
Then	came	the	Raid	on	Entebbe.	Just	after	midday	on	27	June	1976,	Air	France	Flight
139	was	hijacked	en	route	to	Paris	by	members	of	the	German	Baader-Meinhof	terrorist
gang	 (aka	 the	 Red	 Army	 Faction)	 and	 the	 Popular	 Front	 for	 the	 Liberation	 of	 Palestine.
Fifteen	 hours	 later	 the	 skyjacked	 Airbus,	 with	 258,	 mostly	 Israeli,	 passengers	 aboard,
landed	 at	 Entebbe	 airport	 in	 Uganda.	 There	 the	 four	 hijackers	 were	 joined	 by	 other
Baader-Meinhof	 and	 PFLP	 members.	 The	 terrorists	 were	 personally	 welcomed	 by
Ugandas	dictator,	His	Excellency	Field	Marshal	Doctor	Idi	Amin.	For	all	of	his	grandiose
titles,	Amin	was	a	former	NCO	in	the	British	Army.
On	the	following	day,	Wilfried	Boese,	the	terrorists	leader,	announced	their	demands	to
the	 waiting	 world:	 fifty-three	 of	 their	 comrades	 held	 in	 prisons	 in	 Israel,	 Kenya,	 West
Germany	 and	 Switzerland	 must	 be	 released.	 They	 also	 required	 $5	 million	 in	 cash.
Otherwise,	 they	 would	 start	 shooting	 the	 Israeli	 hostages,	 now	 segregated	 from	 the
remainder	 of	 the	 passengers	 in	 a	 separate	 room	 in	 the	 airports	 old	 terminal.	 Apparently
Boese,	a	German,	at	least	had	the	decency	to	look	uncomfortable	when	dividing	the	Jews
from	the	Gentiles:	some	of	the	Israeli	passengers	were	actually	Holocaust	survivors.
The	 hostage	 situation	 left	 the	 Israeli	 Cabinet	 of	 Yitzhak	 Rabin	 with	 an	 agonizing
dilemma:	should	Israel	capitulate	to	the	hijackers	demands	or	mount	a	rescue	bid?	And
what	rescue	bid	could	possibly	succeed	over	such	a	long	distance	in	a	country	that,	while
not	exactly	hostile,	was	not	exactly	neutral	either.	Entebbe	was	no	less	than	2,500	miles
from	 Sharm-el-Sheikh,	 the	 southernmost	 Israeli	 airfield.	 Much	 of	 that	 2,500	 miles	 was
over	 the	 airspace	 of	 Arab	 countries,	 all	 of	 whom	 had	 the	 capability	 of	 attacking	 Israeli
aircraft.	 After	 much	 agony,	 the	 Israeli	 Cabinet	 unanimously	 approved	 a	 hostage	 rescue
mission	involving	C-130	Hercules	flying	a	fifty-strong	composite	force	of	Sayeret	Maktal
and	the	Israeli	paras.
On	 landing	 at	 Entebbe,	 the	 first	 Hippo	 aircraft	 would	 disgorge	 a	 Sayeret	 Maktal
break-in	 crew	 who	 would	 try	 to	 reach	 the	 airport	 terminal	 before	 their	 purpose	 was
discovered.	 To	 this	 end	 the	 Unit	 decided	 to	 use	 subterfuge,	 and	 commandeered	 a	 white
Mercedes	from	a	civilian	parking	lot	in	Tel	Aviv	and	repainted	it	black.	As	Muki	Betser
explained	to	the	planners:
I	 know	 the	 Ugandan	 soldiers.	 I	 trained	 them.	 We	 dont	 need	 hundreds	 of	 soldiers.
Instead	 we	 use	 a	 Mercedes.	 Every	 battalion	 commander	 in	 Uganda	 rides	 around	 in
one.	 A	 soldier	 spots	 a	 Mercedes,	 he	 snaps	 a	 salute.	 Theyll	 see	 us	 in	 the	 Mercedes
with	a	couple	of	Land	Rovers	carrying	soldiers	and	theyll	assume	a	generals	about
to	drive	by.
For	 good	 measure,	 the	 twenty-nine	 men	 from	 the	 break-in	 crew	 would	 wear	 leopardspot	fatigues	like	those	worn	by	Ugandan	paratroopers.	The	break-in	crew	would	drive	off
the	Hercules	in	the	Mercedes	and	accompanying	Land	Rovers	to	the	old	terminal	building,
just	over	a	mile	away,	with	their	lights	on,	which	would	take	five	minutes.	After	arriving
at	the	terminal	they	would	free	the	hostages	and	secure	the	building.
Lieutenant-Colonel	 Yonatan	 Netanyahu	 was	 placed	 in	 charge	 of	 the	 Units	 break-in
crew.	A	former	paratrooper,	and	the	elder	brother	of	the	sometime	Israeli	Prime	Minister,
Binyamin	 Netanyahu,	 he	 had	 been	 decorated	 for	 valour	 during	 the	 Six-Day	 War.
Somehow	 he	 managed	 to	 combine	 soldiering	 with	 studying	 philosophy	 at	 Harvard.	 He
was	also	an	ardent	patriot,	prepared	to	give	his	life	for	his	country.	At	seventeen	he	had
written:
Death	does	not	frighten	me,	it	arouses	my	curiosity.	I	do	not	fear	it	because	I	attribute
little	value	to	a	life	without	a	purpose.	And	if	it	is	necessary	for	me	to	lay	down	my
life	in	the	attainment	of	the	goal	I	set	for	it,	I	will	do	so	willingly.
While	Netanyahu	was	driving	to	the	old	terminal,	the	second	Hercules,	carrying	another
Unit	 team	 and	 two	 Armoured	 Personnel	 Carriers,	 would	 land	 and	 secure	 the	 perimeter
around	the	old	terminal.	Unit	troops,	paratroopers	and	air	force	technicians	aboard	a	third
Hercules	 would	 seize	 the	 new	 terminal	 and	 the	 refuelling	 station.	 An	 APC	 would	 also
speed	 to	 the	 adjoining	 military	 airfield	 where	 eleven	 MiG	 fighters	 were	 stationed	 and
shoot	them	up.	A	final	and	fourth	Hercules	would	carry	medical	crews.
Meanwhile,	 the	 terrorists	 at	 Entebbe	 had	 as	 a	 gesture	 of	 good	 will	 released	 all	 the
hostages	who	were	not	Israeli	or	aircrew.	One	of	them	was	a	retired	French	army	officer
who	 was	 able	 to	 give	 Mossad,	 the	 Israeli	 intelligence	 agency,	 critical	 information	 about
the	hostage	situation.	The	hostages	were	kept	under	twenty-four	hour	guard	in	one	room,
and	the	Ugandans	were	definitely	aiding	the	terrorists,	indeed,	acting	as	extra	guards.	The
key	 moment	 of	 opportunity	 for	 the	 rescuers	 seemed	 to	 be	 just	 after	 midnight	 when	 the
hostages	were	ordered	to	lie	down	and	go	to	sleep.	Not	only	would	prone	hostages	be	out
of	the	line	of	fire,	but	the	guard	over	them	would	also	be	at	its	minimum,	with	the	majority
of	 the	 hijackers	 in	 the	 adjoining	 room.	 The	 French	 army	 officer	 was	 also	 able	 to	 give	 a
complete	run-down	of	the	terrorists	armoury.
At	 3.30	 p.m.	 on	 the	 afternoon	 of	 3	 July,	 the	 rescue	 mission	 took	 off	 from	 Sharm-elSheikh	on	the	Red	Sea.	The	task	forces	route	took	the	international	flight	path	over	the
Red	Sea,	mostly	flying	at	a	height	of	no	more	than	thirty	metres	to	avoid	radar	detection
by	Egyptian	forces.	Accompanying	the	Hercules	were	Phantom	jets,	who	would	provide
an	 escort	 for	 part	 of	 the	 journey,	 and	 two	 Boeing	 707s.	 The	 first	 Boeing	 contained
additional	medical	 facilities,	 and	 would	 land	 at	 Nairobi	 airport	 in	 Kenya,	 the	 only	 East
African	country	vaguely	sympathetic	to	Israel.	The	other	Boeing	would	act	as	a	commandand-control	centre	and	circle	Entebbe	during	the	raid.	Near	the	southern	outlet	of	the	Red
Sea	 the	 C-130s	 turned	 and	 passed	 south	 of	 Djibouti,	 and	 thence	 to	 Kenya,	 finally
approaching	Entebbe	from	the	direction	of	Lake	Victoria.	As	the	lead	C-130	approached
Entebbe	after	the	eight-hour	flight,	Yoni	Netanyahu,	Betser	and	seven	others	climbed	into
the	Mercedes,	and	the	rest	of	the	assault	squad	clambered	into	the	Land	Rovers.	When	the
Hercules	came	to	a	stop,	the	flight	crews	released	the	blocks	holding	the	vehicles,	and	the
rear	door	was	lowered.	Netanyahu	shouted	Go!	Muki	Betser	was	second	in	command:
The	car	lunged	forward	and	memories	poured	into	me	as	we	came	out	of	the	Hercules
and	 into	 the	 fresh	 night	 air	 of	 Africa	 right	 after	 rain.	 I	 felt	 calm,	 almost	 serene,
looking	out	into	the	darkness	as	Amitzur	drove	slowly	and	steadily,	like	any	convoy
of	VIPs	in	the	Ugandan	army,	not	too	fast	to	attract	attention,	not	too	slow	as	to	cause
suspicion.	The	silence	of	the	night	was	absolute.	Far	ahead,	the	old	terminal	was	but
a	 glow	 in	 the	 dark.	 I	 turned	 to	 look	 over	 my	 shoulder.	 Right	 behind	 us,	 the	 Land
Rovers	did	indeed	look	like	Ugandan	troop	carriers		though	the	soldiers	faces	were
white,	not	black.
As	 they	 neared	 the	 terminal	 they	 were	 intercepted	 by	 a	 guard,	 who	 opened	 fire.
Abandoning	 the	 vehicles,	 the	 break-in	 team	 sprinted	 the	 last	 fifty	 yards	 to	 the	 terminal,
withering	 machine-gun	 fire	 pouring	 down	 at	 them	 from	 the	 control	 tower.	 Inside	 the
terminal	all	the	terrorists	were	killed,	along	with	one	hostage	who	raised	himself	from	the
prone	position	on	the	floor	and	was	thought	by	the	Unit	to	be	a	terrorist.	The	assault	team
then	 began	 loading	 the	 hostages	 on	 to	 the	 waiting	 Hercules,	 coming	 under	 fire	 from	 the
airport	control	tower.	During	this	brief	firefight	Netanyahu	was	shot	in	the	chest,	possibly
by	 a	 Ugandan	 sniper.	 The	 wound	 was	 mortal.	 Betser	 took	 over	 command	 of	 the	 rescue
force	and	directed	light	machine-gun	and	RPG	fire	at	the	control	tower	until	the	threat	was
suppressed.	Meanwhile,	one	of	the	APCs	riddled	the	Ugandan	MiG	jets	with	bullets	and
RPG	rounds,	while	accompanying	paratroopers	attached	explosives	to	the	aircraft	for	good
destructive	measure;	when	the	Israeli	force	came	under	fire	from	the	control	tower,	Betser
ordered	 the	 other	 APC	 to	 take	 it	 out.	 Fifty-three	 minutes	 after	 the	 first	 Hercules	 had
touched	down	on	Ugandan	soil,	all	the	hostages	and	IDF	men	were	airborne	and	on	the
way	home.	Since	they	had	been	unable	to	refuel	as	planned	because	of	the	firefight	around
the	control	tower,	the	Israelis	refuelled	the	Hippos	by	permission	in	Kenya.
Yoni	 Netanyahu	 was	 the	 only	 member	 of	 the	 raiding	 party	 to	 die.	 All	 seven	 of	 the
terrorists	were	killed.	Three	hostages	died	at	the	airport	during	the	rescue	attempt:	one	was
killed	because	he	was	close	to	an	armed	terrorist;	the	second	died	in	the	terrorists	return
fire;	the	third	was	the	young	man	who	had	jumped	up.	Around	fifty	Ugandan	soldiers	also
died.	 The	 last	 victims	 of	 Entebbe	 were	 those	 who	 felt	 Amins	 desire	 for	 revenge.	 Dora
Bloch,	a	seventy-five-year-old	hostage	who,	after	choking	on	food,	had	been	taken	by	the
Ugandans	to	a	nearby	hospital,	was	dragged	from	her	bed	and	murdered	by	two	of	Amins
officers.	 When	 the	 dictator	 heard	 that	 the	 Kenyans	 had	 aided	 the	 Entebbe	 rescue	 he
rounded	up	hundreds	of	Kenyans	living	in	Uganda	and	had	them	shot.
The	United	Nations	Secretary-General	Kurt	Waldheim	described	the	raid	as	a	serious
violation	of	the	national	sovereignty	of	a	United	Nations	member	state,	meaning	Uganda.
In	his	address	to	the	Council	of	the	UN,	Israels	ambassador	Chaim	Herzog	said:
We	come	with	a	simple	message	to	the	Council:	we	are	proud	of	what	we	have	done
because	 we	 have	 demonstrated	 to	 the	 world	 that	 in	 a	 small	 country,	 in	 Israels
circumstances,	with	which	the	members	of	this	Council	are	by	now	all	too	familiar,
the	dignity	of	man,	human	life	and	human	freedom	constitute	the	highest	values.	We
are	 proud	 not	 only	 because	 we	 have	 saved	 the	 lives	 of	 over	 a	 hundred	 innocent
people		men,	women	and	children		but	because	of	the	significance	of	our	act	for	the
cause	of	human	freedom.
Whatever	the	politics,	the	Entebbe	operation	set	the	military	gold	standard	in	post-war
hostage	 rescues.	 The	 Mercedes	 commandeered	 by	 the	 Unit	 was	 returned	 to	 its	 owner	 in
Tel	Aviv.	He	insisted	that	the	IDF	paint	it	white	again.
PART	II
SELECTION
Combat	Fitness	tests,	circuit	training,	plus	speed	and	endurance	runs:	the	last	is	likely	to
be	eight	miles,	and	you	will	need	to	be	looking	at	a	time	inside	one	hour	forty	minutes.
Dont	 forget	 there	 will	 be	 time	 in	 the	 swimming	 pool	 (jump	 from	 the	 high	 board,
swimming	and	treading	water	in	combat	uniform)	and	an	IQ	test.
Selection	 proper	 begins	 with	 a	 three-week	 build-up	 period	 for	 soldiers	 (two	 for
officers),	to	allow	each	volunteer	a	chance	to	get	up	to	the	physical	standard	required.	The
emphasis	 is	 on	 cross-country	 speed	 marches	 over	 the	 nearby	 mountains	 in	 which	 the
distance	 covered,	 carrying	 rifle	 and	 pack	 (Bergen),	 increases	 every	 day.	 So	 does	 the
weight	 of	 the	 pack,	 from	 18	 kg	 to	 25	 kg.	 As	 SAS	 troopers	 must	 all	 be	 proficient	 at
navigation,	basic	tuition	in	map	and	compass	work	is	given	to	those	who	need	it.	At	the
beginning	of	Selection	the	marches	are	done	in	groups,	with	a	DS	(Drill	Sergeant;	keep	up
with	 his	 leading	 group),	 but	 as	 the	 course	 progresses	 the	 candidate	 works	 in	 smaller
groups,	pairs,	or	alone.	Each	man	is	given	a	Bergen,	a	compass	and	map	and	a	rendezvous
(RV)	he	has	to	make	for.	There	is	a	time	limit	for	the	march,	but	the	candidate	is	not	told
what	it	is.	For	much	of	the	march	he	will	have	to	jog.	It	is	usually	raining	and	his	Bergen
will	get	heavier	and	heavier.	When	he	reaches	the	RV	he	is	given	another	one,	and	so	on.
To	 increase	 his	 anxiety	 and	 to	 test	 his	 ability	 to	 deal	 with	 the	 unexpected	 he	 might	 be
asked	to	perform	a	task	at	the	RV,	such	as	stripping	down	an	unfamiliar	weapon.	For	the
navigation	and	endurance	exercises	the	candidates	are	usually	based	at	Sennybridge	in	the
Brecon	Beacons.	Part	of	the	kit	issued	will	be	a	Silva	compass	and	five	1:50,000	Ordnance
Survey	maps	of	the	area.	It	makes	sense	to	have	brought	the	maps	and	studied	them	hard
previously.	It	makes	even	more	sense	to	have	done	some	recces	of	the	Brecon	Beacons,
Hay,	Elan	Valley,	Black	Mountains	and	Forest	of	Dean	beforehand.	The	swimming	tests
catch	 out	 many	 applicants:	 Selection	 swimming	 is	 likely	 to	 include	 20	 lengths	 of	 a	 50metre	 pool	 in	 uniform,	 including	 boots.	 As	 with	 all	 Special	 Forces	 selection,	 the
instructors	will	play	psychological	games	to	test	reactions	of	the	applicants	under	stress.
These	 include	 soft	 cop	 routines	 where	 the	 DS	 will	 seek	 to	 undermine	 the	 candidates
motivation	by	offering	sympathy.
By	the	fourth	week,	Test	Week,	the	culmination	of	Selection,	the	numbers	on	the	course
will	have	dropped	significantly.	Many	will	have	left	of	their	own	accord,	while	others	will
have	been	rejected	(binned	in	SAS	parlance)	or	forced	to	quit	through	injury.	Those	who
remain	are	exhausted,	their	stamina	and	judgment	eroded	by	twenty-one	days	of	exercises
beginning	 at	 4	 a.m.	 and	 ending	 at	 10.30	 p.m.	 It	 is	 now	 that	 the	 selectors	 subject	 the
candidate	 to	 the	 endurance	 march,	 the	 Long	 Drag	 or	 Fan	 Dance,	 a	 40-mile	 landnavigation	 exercise	 which	 has	 to	 be	 completed	 in	 20	 hours	 or	 less.	 Because	 of	 mapreading	 errors	 in	 the	 difficult	 mountainous	 terrain,	 most	 candidates	 end	 up	 marching	 or
jogging	 considerably	 more	 than	 40	 miles.	 Only	 the	 most	 determined	 and	 fit	 candidates
have	made	it	to	this	point;	even	so,	a	handful	of	them	will	now	fail	here.	Some	have	even
died	doing	the	Long	Drag,	including	the	SAS	hero	of	the	1972	Battle	of	Mirbat,	Major
Mike	 Kealy,	 who	 re-took	 the	 march	 to	 test	 his	 own	 fitness	 after	 a	 spell	 doing
administrative	work.
Those	who	pass	the	endurance	march	are	then	gathered	in	the	SAS	barracks	at	Stirling
Lines,	 where	 they	 are	 told	 the	 bad	 news:	 they	 are	 not	 yet	 in	 the	 SAS.	 They	 must	 now
endure,	after	a	mere	weeks	leave,	Continuation	Training.	Continuation	Training	lasts	for
around	fourteen	weeks	and	tutors	the	potential	recruit	in	all	the	SAS	patrol	skills:
GREEN	BERETS
Candidates	begin	with	a	thirty-day	Special	Operations	Preparation	Course	at	Fort	Bragg,
which	focuses	on	PT,	navigation,	and	SERE	(Survival,	Evasion,	Resistance	and	Escape).
Applicants	are	expected	to	be	able	to	perform,	from	the	get-go,	a	four-mile	march	in	battle
dress	 uniform	 (BDU)	 and	 boots,	 carrying	 M-16,	 load-bearing	 equipment,	 and	 a	 45-lb
rucksack.	The	overall	average	four-mile	rucksack	march	time	for	graduates	is	61	minutes.
If	 candidates	 pass	 the	 Preparation	 Course,	 they	 are	 permitted	 to	 move	 on	 to	 the	 Special
Forces	 Qualification	 Course,	 the	 first	 thirteen	 weeks	 of	 which	 are	 devoted	 to	 individual
skills	 and	 small	 unit	 practices	 such	 as	 sniping	 and	 close-quarters	 combat.	 Then	 comes
phase	 two,	 assessment	 for	 Military	 Occupational	 Specialities,	 such	 as	 weapons,
engineering,	 medicine	 and	 communications.	 All	 Green	 Berets	 are	 expected	 to	 become
proficient	 in	 a	 language.	 In	 the	 final	 phase	 of	 selection,	 recruits	 are	 taught	 operational
procedures.	 The	 final	 step	 before	 qualification	 is	 an	 exercise	 in	 Uwarrie	 Forest,	 North
Carolina,	 where	 candidates	 must	 evade	 capture	 by	 an	 enemy	 as	 well	 as	 organise	 a
guerrilla	army.
US	NAVY	SEALS
The	more	you	sweat	in	peace,	the	less	you	bleed	in	war.
Sign	over	the	main	doorway	of	the	Phil	H.	Bucklew	Center	for	Naval	Special	Warfare
at	Coronado.
The	 selection	 programme	 for	 the	 US	 Navy	 Seals	 is	 notoriously	 gruelling.	 The	 Basic
Underwater	 Demolition/SEAL	 (BUD/S)	 course	 is	 some	 seven	 months	 long,	 beginning
with	 three	 weeks	 of	 mandatory	 Indoctrination,	 where	 candidates	 learn	 the	 SEAL	 way
(teamwork,	 teamwork,	 teamwork)	 and	 are	 acclimed	 to	 the	 high	 levels	 of	 mental	 and
physical	 toughness	 required	 for	 the	 selection	 process,	 let	 alone	 being	 a	 qualified	 SEAL.
After	Indoc	comes	seven	weeks	of	basic	conditioning	at	the	Naval	Amphibious	Base	at
Coronado,	California,	known	as	The	First	Phase.	This	trains,	develops	and	assesses	SEAL
recruits	 in	 physical	 conditioning,	 water	 competency,	 teamwork	 and	 mental	 tenacity.
Training	begins	at	0530	hours	and	recruits	are	put	through	their	paces	until	late	afternoon.
The	intake	is	divided	into	boat	crews	of	six	to	eight	men,	and	each	crew	must	carry	its
IBS	 (Inflatable	 Boat,	 Small)	 everywhere	 except	 bed;	 simultaneously,	 recruits	 are	 put
through	a	physical	conditioning	course	consisting	of	running,	callisthenics	and	swimming
which	becomes	progressively	harder.	Recruits	participate	in	weekly	four-mile	timed	runs
in	boots,	obstacle	courses,	swim	distances	in	the	sea	of	up	to	two	miles	wearing	fins,	and
learn	small-boat	seamanship.	Integral	to	basic	conditioning	is	drown-proofing:	recruits
enter	a	nine-foot-deep	pool	with	their	hands	and	feet	tied	and	bob	for	five	minutes,	float
for	 five	 minutes,	 swim	 a	 hundred	 yards,	 bob	 for	 another	 two	 minutes,	 do	 some	 forward
and	backward	flips,	dive	to	the	bottom	of	the	pool	and	retrieve	an	object	with	their	teeth,
return	 to	 the	 surface	 and	 bob	 five	 more	 times.	 In	 another	 endurance	 test,	 cold	 water
conditioning,	recruits	are	deluged	with	water	at	a	chill	65	degrees.	After	that,	recruits	are
obliged	to	perform	an	extreme	physical	task,	such	as	running	a	mile	and	half	in	boots	and
wet	clothes.	Such	drills	require	as	standard	the	carrying	of	the	IBS,	and	voluntary	dropouts	 are	 frequent.	 Verbal	 harassment	 by	 staff	 comes	 with	 the	 turf:	 anyone	 showing
weakness	or	insufficient	spirit	is	likely	to	be	sent	for	a	dip	in	the	cold	surf.
After	 three	 weeks,	 recruits	 still	 standing	 undergo	 Hell	 Week:	 five	 and	 half	 days
during	 which	 they	 are	 kept	 cold,	 wet,	 hungry	 and	 sleep-deprived	 (four	 hours	 is	 the
maximum	sleep	time	allowed	per	day),	and	toil	continuously.	Recruits	eat	7,000	calories	a
day	and	still	lose	weight.	In	this	condition,	they	are	forced	to	spend	hours	doing	inflatable
boat	drills	and	obstacle	courses,	all	to	the	tune	of	bullet	and	grenade	simulators.	BUD/S
instructors	 maintain	 that	 selection	 is	 90%	 about	 mental	 strength	 and	 only	 10%	 about
physical	 strength.	 When	 recruits	 decide	 that	 they	 are	 too	 cold,	 too	 sandy,	 too	 sore,	 it	 is
their	 minds	 that	 surrender.	 The	 last	 day	 of	 Hell	 Week	 is	 So	 Sorry	 Day,	 when	 the
exhausted	recruits		often	suffering	wounds	and	running	sores		crawl	around	mud	pits.
Classes	typically	lose	70-80%	of	their	intake.	The	drop-out	rate	is	higher	in	winter	when	it
is	colder.
Those	 who	 have	 completed	 Hell	 Week	 but	 cannot	 continue	 training	 because	 of	 injury
are	usually	rolled	back	into	the	next	BUD/S	class,	or	the	one	before	they	were	forced	to
drop	 out.	 There	 are	 many	 SEALs	 who	 have	 attempted	 Basic	 Conditioning	 two	 or	 even
three	or	more	times	before	successfully	completing	selection.	Those	who	pass	Hell	Week
move	onto	the	eight-week	Second	Phase	of	Basic	Conditioning,	which	concentrates	on	the
skills	 of	 combat	 swimming,	 including	 scuba-diving	 (open	 and	 closed	 circuit),	 alongside
intensive	PT.
The	nine-week	Third	(Land	Warfare)	Phase	trains	and	qualifies	SEAL	recruits	in	basic
weapons,	 demolition	 and	 small-unit	 tactics.	 Physical	 training	 continues,	 with	 distances
increased,	 times	 lowered.	 The	 Third	 Phase	 concentrates	 on	 land	 navigation,	 patrolling
techniques,	rappelling,	explosives,	and	marksmanship.	All	recruits	must	qualify	on	the	M4	 rifle	 as	 Marksman	 and	 most	 	 some	 60%	 	 as	 Expert.	 Recruits	 also	 spend	 hours	 on
reconnaissance,	a	key	SEAL	task.	The	final	three	and	a	half	weeks	of	the	Third	Phase	are
spent	on	San	Clemente	Island	(in	the	Pacific	opposite	San	Diego),	where	recruits	apply	all
the	 techniques	 they	 have	 acquired	 during	 training,	 and	 participate	 in	 a	 live-firing	 Field
Training	Exercise.	Candidates	must	then	attend	Military	Free-Fall	School	at	Tactical	Air
Operations	(TACAIROPS)	school	in	Otay,	outside	San	Diego,	for	one	week	of	static-line
parachute	training,	and	three	weeks	of	free-fall	parachute	training.
Still	the	selection	process	goes	on.	Recruits	must	now	go	through	SEAL	Qualification
Training,	 or	 SQT,	 a	 fifteen-week	 course	 of	 advanced	 training	 that	 culminates	 in	 three
weeks	of	Extreme	Cold-Weather	Survival	on	freezing	Kodiak	Island	in	Alaska.	After	the
completion	of	Cold-Weather	Survival	Training,	they	are	awarded	their	trident	badge	and
Navy	Enlisted	Classification	code	at	Naval	Special	Warfare	Center,	Coronado,	California.
Finally,	 they	 are	 assigned	 to	 their	 teams	 on	 a	 probationary	 basis	 for	 an	 additional	 six	 to
twelve	months	on-the-job	training.
PART	III
Training
FITNESS
It	almost	goes	without	saying	that	members	of	the	Special	Forces	are	super-fit.	There	are
swimmers	who	can	swim	faster,	runners	who	can	sprint	faster,	and	power-lifters	who	are
stronger,	but	few	men	can	match	the	Special	Forces	soldiers	as	all-rounders.	Which	is	no
surprise,	 because	 Special	 Forces	 aim	 for	 Total	 Body	 Fitness	 (TBF).	 Special	 Forces
soldiers	are	literally	fighting	fit.
For	 Total	 Body	 Fitness	 you	 need	 to	 have	 the	 right	 Body	 Mass	 Index,	 which	 divides
your	weight	in	pounds	by	your	height	in	yards	squared.	Depending	on	your	body	frame
and	height,	this	should	be	between	twenty	and	twenty-four.	There	are	few	iron	rules	about
the	morphology	of	Special	Forces	soldiers,	save	this:	they	are	not	fat.	If	youve	got	a	gut,
lose	it.	Exercise,	sensibly	done,	usually	does	the	trick	if	you	also	cut	down	on	the	calories.
How	 to	 tell	 if	 you	 are	 fat?	 Take	 off	 your	 clothes.	 Jump	 up	 and	 down.	 Anything	 that
wobbles	is	fat.
Then	 again,	 Special	 Forces	 soldiers	 are	 usually	 not	 thin,	 because,	 as	 every	 trooper
knows,	endurance	and	survival	requires	fat	as	fuel.	If	the	body	does	not	have	fat	reserves	it
begins	 to	 break	 down	 other	 types	 of	 body	 tissue,	 which	 can	 cause	 debilitating,	 even
deadly,	problems.
Tip:		Special	Forces	soldiers	aim	to	ingest	4,000-5,000	calories	a	day,	about	double	the
recommended	average	intake		but	they	will	be	working	it	off.	Ideally,	about	15%	of
the	body	of	the	Special	Forces	soldier	will	be	fat.
BAD	HABITS
Every	Special	Forces	unit	has	some	inhuman	maverick	who	can	smoke	and	drink
without	(visible)	negative	effect.	Its	not	you.	All	the	scare	stories	about	smoking
are	true.	So	dont	start,	or	if	you	do	smoke,	stop.	Moderate	alcohol	consumption
off	duty	is	fine.	(A	beer	can	actually	provide	useful	energy	and	vitamins.)	Other
drugs	are	no-nos.	You	may	well	be	tested	to	determine	your	drug-free	status.
BASIC	TRAINING
Special	 Forces	 fitness	 trainers	 recommend	 that	 any	 applicant	 working	 on	 muscle
development	 or	 flexibility	 training	 should	 put	 themselves	 in	 the	 care	 of	 a	 qualified
instructor.	Performing	exercises	incorrectly	can	cause	injury	or	build	up	bad	habits.
Over-training	 is	 also	 advised	 against.	 Inside	 a	 Special	 Forces	 unit	 training	 is	 strictly
regulated,	and	at	least	a	day	a	week	is	taken	off.	Fitness	develops	by	the	structure	of	the
muscles	breaking	down,	then	building	itself	up	again.	They	cannot	do	this	if	they	are	in
constant	use.
Before	 taking	 any	 sort	 of	 exercise,	 it	 is	 necessary	 to	 warm	 up.	 Warming	 up	 slightly
increases	 the	 heart	 rate	 and	 prepares	 the	 organ	 for	 exertion.	 Warming	 up	 also	 raises	 the
temperature	 of	 the	 muscles	 and	 makes	 them	 more	 flexible,	 which	 in	 turn	 reduces	 the
chances	of	a	torn	muscle	or	ligament.
Good	warm	up	exercises	are:
1.	Gently	rotate	your	head	from	side	to	side,	and	nod	forwards	and	backwards.
2.	Roll	the	shoulders	as	if	shrugging.	Swing	both	arms	forwards	in	large	circles	several
times,	then	reverse	direction.
3.	Place	your	legs	slightly	apart,	raise	your	arms	level	with	your	shoulders,	rotate	your
torso	to	the	left,	then	the	right.	Do	this	several	times.	Additionally,	to	give	the	trunk	a
thorough	warm-up	pretend	you	are	spinning	a	hula-hoop.
4.	For	your	legs:	stand	with	your	feet	shoulder-width	apart.	Bend	forward	and	(try	to)
touch	your	toes.	Then	stand	on	one	leg,	lift	the	other	behind	you,	grasp	it	and	gently
pull	into	your	buttock.	Swop	over	and	do	the	other	leg.
5.	Go	for	a	brisk	five-minute	walk.
more	 rounded	 abdominals	 twist	 the	 torso	 to	 one	 side,	 in	 a	 cross-over	 crunch	 aiming
your	shoulder	at	the	opposite	knee.
Legs	 raises:	 Lie	 flat	 on	 your	 back	 with	 your	 hands	 underneath	 your	 posterior.	 Keep
your	 legs	 straight,	 your	 toes	 pointed	 as	 though	 in	 ballet,	 and	 slowly	 raise	 your	 feet	 six
inches	off	the	ground	Then	raise	to	eighteen	inches	off	the	ground,	hold,	gently	lower	back
to	six	inches.	Do	not	let	your	feet	touch	the	ground.	Do	25-30	per	set.
Lunges:	 Stand	 up	 straight	 and	 take	 one	 long	 step	 forward	 with	 one	 leg,	 bending	 the
knee	until	the	thigh	is	parallel	with	the	ground.	Then	step	back	and	repeat	with	the	other
leg.	Make	sure	you	keep	your	body	upright	as	bending	from	the	waist	lessens	the	efficacy
of	the	exercise.	This	strengthens	the	upper	leg	and	thigh.
Parallel	dips:	 Most	 easily	 done	 with	 parallel	 bars	 in	 the	 gym,	 though	 heavy	 furniture
may	suffice.	Take	your	weight	on	your	straight	arms,	lower	yourself	until	they	are	parallel
to	the	ground,	then	raise	yourself	up	again.	The	exercise	strengthens	the	shoulders,	biceps
and	triceps.
RUNNING
Running	 is	 a	 fact	 of	 Special	 Forces	 life.	 You	 are	 going	 to	 be	 doing	 a	 lot	 of	 it,	 not	 least
because	it	is	convenient	and	unbeatable	as	means	of	building	up	endurance.	You	need	to
vary	your	running	routines,	and	you	will	also	need	to	practise	running	with	weights	in	a
Bergen.	Mix	the	different	styles	of	running	over	the	course	of	the	week.
The	speed	run:	 Each	 week	 a	 potential	 recruit	 should	 practise	 short	 fast	 runs	 of	 about
thirty	 minutes.	 Warm	 up	 thoroughly,	 start	 sedately	 and	 quit	 if	 you	 start	 to	 feel	 short	 of
breath	or	otherwise	uncomfortable.	As	you	get	fitter,	add	a	belt	(military,	with	some	kit	in
the	pockets).
Endurance	 run:	 The	 endurance	 run	 should	 cover	 about	 90	 minutes.	 To	 avoid
exhaustion,	 switch	 between	 running	 and	 speed	 walking.	 Over	 time	 add	 a	 Bergen,	 then
some	 weight	 in	 the	 Bergen,	 then	 more	 weight.	 SAS	 selection	 requires	 a	 37-mile	 march
with	a	Bergen	carrying	at	least	55	lbs,	plus	rifle,	plus	belt.
How	to	run
Everybody	knows	how	to	run,	dont	they?	Actually,	they	dont.	When	running	you	should
let	 your	 body	 fall	 into	 a	 natural	 rhythm,	 rather	 than	 a	 forced	 pace.	 Lean	 very	 slightly
forward.	Keep	your	arms	and	shoulders	as	loose	as	possible	and	do	not	clench	your	fists,
but	hold	them	in	a	loose	claw.	Clenched	fists	are	a	waste	of	energy.	Keep	your	elbows	in
(increases	 balance,	 reduces	 drag),	 with	 the	 elbows	 making	 a	 casual	 right	 angle.	 Swing
arms	smoothly	in	time	with	your	legs.
Flex	 your	 knees	 slightly,	 to	 aid	 gravity	 and	 reduce	 the	 impact	 of	 your	 feet	 hitting	 the
ground.	 Likewise,	 keep	 your	 feet	 near	 to	 the	 ground.	 Reducing	 impact	 on	 your	 body	 by
such	 measures	 is	 vital	 when	 you	 are	 carrying	 a	 heavy	 weight.	 Athletic	 coaches	 disagree
about	the	best	way	to	let	your	foot	hit	the	ground		whether	the	heel	should	hit	the	ground
first	 or	 the	 ball	 of	 your	 foot;	 long-distance	 runners	 land	 on	 their	 heels	 then	 roll	 through
onto	the	toe.	This	is	the	technique	you	should	try	to	adopt	if	it	is	not	natural	to	you.
Breathe	 slowly	 and	 evenly,	 and	 try	 to	 get	 your	 breathing	 into	 the	 rhythm	 of	 your
running.	For	maximum	exchange	of	oxygen,	concentrate	on	exhaling	rather	than	inhaling.
HYDRATION
When	 training	 it	 is	 important	 to	 keep	 your	 water	 intake	 high.	 You	 need	 at	 least
three	to	five	litres	of	water	a	day.	When	running,	drink	half	a	pint	of	water	half	an
hour	before	you	begin	and	another	half	a	pint	for	every	twenty	minutes	you	are	on
the	 road.	 Dehydration	 drains	 energy	 and	 impairs	 your	 mental	 facilities.	 If	 your
urine	is	dark	yellow	in	colour,	then	you	are	not	getting	enough	water.
FUELLING	FITNESS
Training	is	physically	demanding.	You	need	to	take	care	over	nutrition.	To	get	the	greatest
return	 on	 your	 training	 investment,	 you	 need	 the	 right	 food	 for	 muscle	 building,	 for
energy,	and	for	health.	Here	are	some	guidelines.
Eat	a	balanced	diet.	Obvious,	but	it	is	the	fundamental	rule	of	nutrition.
Carbohydrates	for	fuel.	For	your	aerobic,	anaerobic,	speed,	and	strength	work-outs,	the
fuel	required	comes	from	carbohydrates.	These	are	stored	in	muscle	in	limited	amounts
(as	a	compound	called	glycogen)	and	when	they	run	out	you	are	unable	to	continue	to
perform	 or	 train.	 Carbohydrates	 come	 in	 many	 food	 forms	 and	 include:	 grains	 in
cereals,	 pastas,	 breads,	 and	 rice.	 These	 are	 especially	 beneficial	 in	 the	 hours	 prior	 to
exercise,	but	are	also	helpful	after.	Whole	grains	(brown	rice	etc.)	are	best.
Fruits	 and	 vegetables.	 At	 least	 seven	 portions	 a	 day.	 A	 selection	 of	 colours	 is	 a	 good
idea:	 there	 is	 little	 point	 in	 eating	 only	 seven	 oranges.	 Fruit	 and	 vegetables	 provide
vitamins,	minerals,	fuel,	and	other	nutrients	for	both	health	and	high	performance.
Protein.	Protein	provides	the	building-blocks	for	new	muscle	and	the	enzymes	which	help
provide	energy.	Good	sources	are	fish,	poultry,	lean	beef,	shellfish,	eggs	and	cheese.
Avoid	 sugary	 snacks.	 The	 energy	 provided	 leads	 to	 a	 boomslump	 and	 may	 leave	 you
feeling	 more	 tired	 than	 before	 you	 ingested	 it.	 Try	 dried	 fruit,	 bananas	 or	 starchy
vegetables		these	will	give	you	long-term	energy.	Fruit	bars	and	muesli	bars	are	good,
as	long	as	they	are	not	packed	with	added	sugar.
Convenience	food.	Yes,	it	is	easy	to	open	a	packet,	and	put	something	in	the	microwave,
and	everyone	does	it.	But	keep	the	junk	food	to	a	minimum.	Junk	food	tends	to	have
little	nutritional	value,	but	is	rammed	with	salt	and	sugar.
Eat	breakfast.	What	your	parents	told	you	is	true:	its	the	most	important	meal	of	the	day.
Try	 to	 avoid	 fried	 food:	 grill	 the	 bacon,	 poach	 the	 eggs.	 Have	 porridge,	 but	 hold	 the
sugar	and	salt;	add	a	banana.	If	you	must	fry,	use	olive	oil.
Keep	 alcohol	 intake	 to	 a	 minimum.	 It	 impairs	 your	 mental	 performance	 and	 causes
dehydration.
Avoid	 muscle-building	 supplements.	 Some	 Special	 Forces	 training	 programmes	 ban
them.	 Everything	 necessary	 to	 the	 Special	 Forces	 diet	 can	 be	 obtained	 in	 a	 balanced
diet.
WEEK	I
Day	1:	See	what	you	can	do
(a)			APFT	(Army	Physical	Fitness	Test,	which	consists	of	three	events:	2	minutes	of	pushups,	2	minutes	of	sit-ups,	and	a	2-mile	run.	Scores	can	range	from	zero	to	100.	For	a
100%	score	a	22-26-year-old	male	recruit	would	need	to	do	75	push-ups,	80	sit-ups,
and	a	sub-13-minute	run.	See	http://usarmybasic.com/army-physical-fitness/apft#.
U5m4EvldXcw
(b)			100-yard	swim.
(c)			Forced	march	cross-country	with	30-lb	Bergen,	aiming	for	3	road	miles	in	sub-45
minutes,	or	60	minutes	if	cross-country.
Day	2
(a)			Three	sets	of	push-ups	in	half-minute	periods.
(b)			3-mile	run	at	moderate	pace,	around	8-9	mph.
(c)			Rope	climb
(d)			Forced	march	with	30	lbs,	5	miles	in	1	hour	15	minutes	along	a	road,	or	1	hour	and
40	minutes	cross-country.
Day	3
Repeat	the	forced	march	of	Day	2.
WEEK	II
Day	1
Forced	march,	but	extend	distance	to	8	miles	with	35-lb	rucksack	in	2	hours	(road),	or	2
hours	40	minutes	(cross	country).
Day	2
(a)			Three	sets	of	push-ups,	pull-ups,	sit-ups	(maximum	repetitions	in	35-second	periods	x
3)
(b)			Run	5	miles	(moderate	8-9	mph).
(c)			Three	sets	of	squats	with	a	35-lb	rucksack	(50	each	set);	dont	bend	the	knee	more
than	90	degrees.
Day	3
Forced	march	with	a	35-lb	rucksack,	10	miles	in	3	hours	(along	a	road)	or	4	hours	(crosscountry).
WEEK	III
Day	1
(a)			Four	sets	of	push-ups,	pull-ups	and	sit-ups	(maximum	repetitions	in	40-second
period).
(b)			Run	4	miles	(fast	to	moderate	7-8-minute-mile	pace.)
(c)			Four	sets	of	squats	with	a	40-lb	rucksack.
Day	2
Forced	march	12	miles	with	a	40-lb	rucksack	in	4	hours	(along	a	road)	or	4	hours	and	40
minutes	(cross-country).
Day	3
(a)			Four	sets	of	push-ups,	sit-ups,	pull-ups	(maximum	repetitions	in	45-second	period.)
(b)			Run	6	miles	(fast	to	moderate	7-8-minute-mile	pace).
(c)			Four	sets	of	squats	with	a	40-lb	rucksack.
WEEK	IV
Day	1
Forced	march	14	miles	with	a	50-lb	rucksack	in	4	hours	(along	a	road)	or	4	hours	and	40
minutes	(cross-country).
Day	2
(a)			Four	sets	of	push-ups,	sit-ups	and	pull-ups	(maximum	repetitions	in	one-minute
period).
(b)			Run	6	miles	(fast	to	moderate	7-8-minute-mile	pace).
(c)			Four	sets	of	squats	with	a	50-lb	rucksack.
Day	3
Forced	march	18	miles	with	a	50-lb	rucksack	in	4	hours	and	45	minutes	(along	a	road)	or
6	hours	(cross-country).
WEEK	V
Day	1
(a)			Run	3	miles	(fast	6-7-minute-mile	pace).
(b)			500-metre	swim	(non-stop,	any	stroke,	but	not	on	your	back).
Day	2
APFT.	You	should	be	able	to	achieve	a	score	of	at	least	240	(minimum	of	70	points	in	any
one	event).	If	not,	work	out	harder.
Day	3
Forced	march	of	18	miles	with	50	lb	rucksack	in	4	hours	and	30	minutes	(along	a	road)	or
6	hours	(cross-country).
Once	 in	 shape,	 stay	 in	 shape.	 If	 you	 have	 met	 this	 minimum	 programme,	 modify	 by
increasing	weight	and	decreasing	target	times.	But	be	smart:	dont	injure	yourself.
REMEMBER:
THERE	 IS	 A	 VERY	 STRONG	 CORRELATION	 BETWEEN	 A	 CANDIDATES
SCORE	ON	THE	APFT	AND	GRADUATION	FROM	THE	SPECIAL	FORCES
ASSESSMENT	 AND	 SELECTION.	 78%	 OF	 CANDIDATES	 WITH	 AN	 APFT
SCORE	OF	276+	PASS	THE	COURSE;	ONLY	31%	OF	CANDIDATES	WITH	A
206-225	SCORE	GRADUATE.
MENTAL	FITNESS
You	can	be	as	fit	as	fiddle	but	if	you	are	as	thick	as	a	brick	you	are	not	going	to	get	into
Special	 Forces.	 IQ	 tests	 are	 a	 component	 of	 most	 selection	 programmes.	 Luckily	 your
brain,	like	your	body,	can	be	improved.	IQ	is	not	static,	and	can	be	improved	by	as	many
as	15	points	in	a	week.	Here	are	two	simple	steps	to	becoming	brainier.
First,	 revise	 basic	 maths,	 using	 any	 widely	 available	 school	 text	 books.	 Its	 far	 from
unknown	 for	 potential	 recruits	 to	 be	 given	 surprise	 maths	 tests	 during	 selection	 	 often
when	they	are	exhausted.	So,	try	solving	maths	problems	when	you	are	dog	tired.
Secondly,	buy	some	books	of	logic	puzzles	and	IQ	tests.	In	truth,	there	are	only	so	many
types	of	IQ	question	out	there,	and	you	may	well	recognise	the	form	of	those	before	you
on	test	day.	Its	called	the	practice	effect.	Anyway,	doing	puzzles	improves	your	mental
abilities.	 Both	 in	 training	 and	 combat,	 you	 need	 mental	 dexterity	 and	 agility.	 (IQ	 tests
require,	 among	 other	 things,	 the	 exercise	 of	 working	 memory	 and	 the	 ability	 to	 process
visual	information	at	speed.	Both	are	necessary	battlefield	skills.)	Try	and	solve	problems
and	answer	questions	at	the	end	of	a	long	run,	and	with	a	deadline		a	short	one.
All	 candidates	 for	 Special	 Forces	 are	 subject	 to	 psychological	 testing.	 You	 will	 be
evaluated	as	to	whether	you	fit	into	and	understand	the	ethos	of	Special	Forces.	That	ethos
was	never	better	explained	than	by	David	Stirling,	the	man	who	founded	modern	Special
Forces,	in	his	Philosophy	of	the	SAS:
The	Philosophy	of	the	SAS
To	understand	the	SAS	role	it	is	important	first	to	grasp	the	essential	difference	between
the	function	of	Airborne	Forces	and	Commandos	on	the	one	hand	and	that	of	the	wartime
Special	 Operations	 Executive	 on	 the	 other.	 Airborne	 Forces	 and	 Commandos	 provided
advance	 elements	 in	 achieving	 tactical	 objectives	 and	 undertook	 tactically	 scaled	 raids,
while	the	SOE	was	a	para-military	formation	operating	mainly	out	of	uniform.	In	contrast,
the	SAS	has	always	been	a	strictly	military	unit,	has	always	operated	in	uniform	(except
occasionally	 when	 seeking	 special	 information)	 and	 has	 functioned	 exclusively	 in	 the
strategic	 field	 of	 operations.	 Such	 operations	 consisted	 mainly	 of:	 firstly,	 raids	 in	 depth
behind	the	enemy	lines,	attacking	HQ	nerve	centres,	landing-grounds,	supply	lines	and	so
on;	and,	secondly,	the	mounting	of	sustained	strategic	offensive	activity	from	secret	bases
within	hostile	territory	and,	if	the	opportunity	existed,	recruiting,	training,	arming	and	coordinating	local	guerrilla	elements.
The	 SAS	 had	 to	 be	 capable	 of	 arriving	 in	 the	 target	 area	 by	 air	 and,	 therefore,	 by
parachute;	 by	 sea,	 often	 by	 submarine	 and	 foldboat;	 or	 by	 land,	 by	 foot	 or	 Jeep-borne
penetration	through	or	around	the	enemy	lines.	To	ensure	surprise	the	SAS	usually	arrived
in	the	target	area	at	night	and	this	required	a	high	degree	of	proficiency,	in	all	the	arrival
methods	adopted	for	any	particular	operation.
nearly	 from	 scratch.	 Luckily,	 the	 British,	 for	 one,	 now	 acknowledge	 the	 validity	 of	 the
strategic	raid,	hence	the	continuing	existence	of	the	SAS	regiment.	The	SAS	today	fully
recognizes	 its	 obligation	 to	 exploit	 new	 ideas	 and	 new	 developments	 in	 equipment	 and,
generally,	to	keep	a	wide-open	mind	to	innovation	and	invention.
From	the	start	the	SAS	regiment	has	had	some	firmly	held	tenets	from	which	we	must
never	depart.	They	are:
1.	The	unrelenting	pursuit	of	excellence;
2.	Maintaining	the	highest	standards	of	discipline	in	all	aspects	of	the	daily	life	of	the
SAS	soldier,	from	the	occasional	precision	drilling	on	the	parade	ground	even	to	his
personal	turn-out	on	leave.	We	always	reckoned	that	a	high	standard	of	self-discipline
in	each	soldier	was	the	only	effective	foundation	for	Regimental	discipline.
Commitment	to	the	SAS	pursuit	of	excellence	becomes	a	sham	if	any	single	one	of
the	disciplinary	standards	is	allowed	to	slip;
3.	The	SAS	brooks	no	sense	of	class	and,	particularly,	not	among	the	wives.	This	might
sound	a	bit	portentous	but	it	epitomizes	the	SAS	philosophy.	The	traditional	idea	of	a
crack	regiment	was	one	officered	by	the	aristocracy	and,	indeed,	these	regiments
deservedly	won	great	renown	for	their	dependability	and	their	gallantry	in	wartime
and	for	their	parade-ground	panache	in	peacetime.	In	the	SAS	we	share	with	the
Brigade	of	Guards	a	deep	respect	for	quality,	but	we	have	an	entirely	different
outlook.	We	believe,	as	did	the	ancient	Greeks	who	originated	the	word
aristocracy,	that	every	man	with	the	right	attitude	and	talents,	regardless	of	birth
and	riches,	has	a	capacity	in	his	own	lifetime	of	reaching	that	status	in	its	true	sense;
in	fact	in	our	SAS	context	an	individual	soldier	might	prefer	to	go	on	serving	as	an
NCO	rather	than	have	to	leave	the	Regiment	in	order	to	obtain	an	officers
commission.	All	ranks	in	the	SAS	are	of	one	company	in	which	a	sense	of	class	is
both	alien	and	ludicrous.	A	visit	to	the	sergeants	mess	at	SAS	HQ	in	Hereford
vividly	conveys	what	I	mean;
4.	Humility	and	humour:	both	these	virtues	are	indispensable	in	the	everyday	life	of
officers	and	men		particularly	so	in	the	case	of	the	SAS	which	is	often	regarded	as
an	elite	regiment.	Without	frequent	recourse	to	humour	and	humility,	our	special
status	could	cause	resentment	in	other	units	of	the	British	Army	and	an	unbecoming
conceit	and	big-head-edness	in	our	own	soldiers.
The	IPPS
This	 integration	 problem	 has	 been	 overcome	 by	 five	 British	 companies	 who	 have	 got
together	 and	 developed	 a	 protective	 outfit	 that	 is	 proof	 against	 most	 threats	 to	 Special
Forces	personnel.	It	is	known	as	the	Integrated	Personal	Protection	System	(IPPS)	and	has
been	tested	by	Special	Forces.	The	IPPS	is	not	just	a	design	venture:	it	has	been	developed
using	 all	 manner	 of	 practical	 combat	 experience,	 and	 the	 result	 is	 a	 superb	 protective
outfit.	Starting	from	the	skin	outwards,	the	basis	of	the	IPPS	is	a	set	of	carbonized	viscose
long	 johns	 underwear.	 The	 material	 is	 light	 and	 comfortable	 to	 wear	 but	 is	 flameretardant,	 as	 is	 the	 main	 over-garment,	 a	 one-piece	 assault	 suit	 also	 made	 from	 carbonfibre	 material,	 in	 this	 case	 Nomex	 3.	 The	 suit	 incorporates	 flame-retardant	 pads	 at	 the
elbows	and	knees,	allowing	the	wearer	to	crawl	safely	over	hot	surfaces	such	as	aircraft
engines	 during	 hijack	 hostage	 rescue	 missions.	 Incidentally,	 the	 suits	 are	 very	 similar	 to
those	 being	 worn	 by	 tanker	 crews	 currently	 operating	 in	 the	 Persian	 Gulf,	 but	 theirs	 are
coloured	bright	orange;	the	IPPS	is	usually	black.
Armoured	vest
Over	the	flame-retardant	garments	the	IPPS	features	a	bulletproof	waistcoat	made	of	soft
fragmentation	 armour,	 with	 a	 built-in	 trauma	 liner	 to	 absorb	 shock.	 Without	 this	 liner
internal	 injuries	 could	 occur	 even	 if	 a	 bullet	 is	 stopped	 by	 the	 armour.	 The	 soft	 armour
protection	is	enhanced	by	inserting	curved	ceramic	plates	at	the	front	and	back:	these	can
stop	 .357	 Magnum	 bullets	 at	 a	 range	 of	 three	 metres.	 A	 groin	 panel	 can	 be	 added	 if
required.
The	helmet
Further	 armoured	 protection	 is	 provided	 by	 a	 special	 helmet	 known	 as	 the	 AC	 100/1,	 a
National	Plastics	product	made	from	layers	of	a	Kevlar-type	material.	This	can	withstand
the	impact	of	a	9-mm	bullet	at	close	range,	and	to	ensure	the	wearers	head	is	not	knocked
off	by	the	impact,	the	helmet	uses	a	bullet	trauma	lining.
An	 optional	 fire-retardant	 leather	 waistcoat	 can	 be	 worn	 over	 the	 suit	 and	 armour
protection,	and	is	used	to	carry	special	equipment	such	as	an	assault	axe,	stun	grenades	or
rescue	knife,	all	in	specially-fitted	pockets	or	leather	loops.
Respirator
These	days	some	form	of	respirator	is	worn	operationally	by	most	Special	Forces,	so	the
IPPS	uses	a	specially	developed	respirator	known	as	the	SF10,	a	variant	of	the	Avon	S10
used	by	the	British	Army.	The	SF10	has	an	internal	microphone,	but	its	most	prominent
features	are	the	outset-darkened	eyepieces.	These	have	been	incorporated	to	cut	down	the
flash	produced	by	stun	grenades	or	other	bright	lights.	The	SF10	can	also	be	fitted	with	its
own	air	supply	from	an	air	bottle	carried	in	the	leather	waistcoat	or	an	extra	filter	canister
can	be	worn.
Communications
The	respirator	microphone	connects	into	an	assault	team	communications	harness	known
as	 the	 CT100,	 which	 has	 a	 chest	 or	 respirator	 microphone	 and	 press-to-talk	 switches
located	 on	 the	 wrist	 or	 anywhere	 handy.	 The	 communications	 system	 uses	 electronic
earphones	 designed	 to	 cut	 out	 sound	 produced	 by	 grenades	 or	 gunfire	 (i.e.	 high	 air
pressure)	 but	 allow	 all	 other	 sounds	 to	 be	 heard	 normally.	 The	 earphones	 are	 connected
into	the	communication	harness	to	allow	the	wearer	to	listen	in	to	a	team	command	net.
The	main	feature	of	the	IPPS	is	that	all	the	components	are	designed	to	work	together.
For	 instance,	 the	 IPPS	 helmet	 does	 not	 interfere	 with	 the	 respirator	 seal,	 and	 the	 ear
defenders	 fit	 under	 helmet	 ear	 lobes	 that	 have	 been	 designed	 for	 just	 that	 purpose.	 The
darkened	 eyepieces	 permit	 almost	 any	 weapon	 to	 be	 aimed	 and	 fired	 without	 difficulty,
and	even	though	the	protective	waistcoat	can	stop	most	fragments	or	bullets	it	still	allows
complete	freedom	of	movement.
Belt kit
A	 belt	 carrying	 combat	 or	 other	 gear	 can	 be	 worn,	 and	 an	 abseiling	 harness	 has	 been
developed	for	use	with	the	IPPS	which	provides	an	indication	of	the	degree	of	movement
available.
Shape
Your	helmet,	web	equipment,	rifle	and	other	kit	such	as	manpack	radios	have	a	clear,	often
square	shape		and	there	are	no	squares	in	nature.	Break	up	straight	lines	by	the	addition
of	 scrim	 	 neutral-coloured	 strips	 of	 cloth	 in	 browns	 and	 greens.	 Camouflaged
elasticated	pack	covers	exist,	and	these	can	be	stretched	over	packs	and	radios.
Rifles	and	LMG/GPMGs	have	a	clear	shape,	and	are	often	black.	Though	scrim	can	be
used	to	break	up	their	line,	it	is	not	advisable	to	fix	it	to	the	stock		it	may	slip	when	you
are	firing	and	by	shifting	your	grip	cause	you	to	shoot	inaccurately.	It	is	better	to	cover	the
weapon	with	camouflaged	tape,	or	even	green	masking	tape	(tape	is	a	useful	aid	to	PC	
see	Sound).
A	discarded	vehicle	camouflage	net	is	a	very	useful	source	of	camouflage	for	PC.	It	will
have	nylon	scrim	that	has	been	treated	to	give	an	infra-red	reflection	similar	to	vegetation.
Fixed	to	the	back	of	packs	and	webbing,	or	in	the	netting	on	a	helmet,	it	breaks	up	shape
very	 well	 and	 enhances	 the	 chlorophyll-based	 infra-red	 camouflage	 treatment	 (see	 also
Silhouette).
Shine
In	the	old	days	of	brass	buckles,	soldiers	were	told	these	should	be	allowed	to	grow	dull,
or	 be	 covered	 with	 masking	 tape.	 However,	 most	 web	 equipment	 has	 plastic	 or	 alloy
fittings	that	do	not	reflect		but	there	are	still	shiny	surfaces	even	on	a	modern	battlefield.
Binoculars	and	compass	surfaces,	even	spectacles,	can	catch	the	light.	There	is	little	that
can	be	done	about	spectacles,	but	when	using	binoculars	or	a	compass	make	sure	that	you
are	well	concealed:	like	radios,	they	are	signature	equipment	and	attract	attention.	Stow
binoculars	inside	your	smock,	and	take	care	that	your	map	is	not	opened	up	and	flapping
about		a	drab	map	case	with	the	map	folded	so	that	it	gives	the	minimum	working	area	is
all	that	is	needed.	Take	care	also	that	the	clear	cover	to	the	map	case	does	not	catch	the
light.
Shine	 also	 includes	 skin.	 At	 night	 it	 will	 catch	 moonlight	 and	 flares,	 and	 even	 black
soldiers	need	to	use	camouflage	cream.
Facial	Camouflage
1.	The	first	coat:	First	get	rid	of	all	that	white	shining	skin.	Mix	a	small	quantity	of
camouflage	cream	with	spit	in	your	hand	and	rub	it	all	over	your	face,	neck	and	ears.
This	gives	a	full	light	coverage	of	camouflage.	Then	cover	your	hands	with	the
cream.
2.	Breaking	up	the	shape:	Now	break	up	the	outline	and	shape	of	the	eyes,	nose	and
mouth.	Any	pattern	that	breaks	up	this	familiar	format	will	do;	use	more	if	youre
going	in	night	patrol.	Dont	forget	your	neck	and	eyes.
3.	Finishing	it	off:	Fill	in	the	rest	of	your	face	with	earth,	loam	and	green	colours,	then
spit	in	your	hands	and	rub	them	over	your	face	to	blur	it	all	together.	On	the	move
you	will	probably	sweat	heavily	so	you	must	top-up	your	face-cream	as	you	go	along.
Silhouette
Similar	in	many	respects	to	shape,	silhouette	includes	the	outline	of	the	human	form	and
the	 equipment	 it	 is	 carrying.	 The	 shape	 of	 the	 head	 and	 shoulders	 of	 a	 man	 are
unmistakeable	 and	 an	 unscrimmed	 helmet	 attracts	 attention.	 The	 use	 of	 vegetation	 as
garnishing	 helps	 break	 up	 the	 silhouette.	 Thick	 handfuls	 of	 grass	 tucked	 into	 equipment
can	 remove	 the	 shape	 of	 the	 shoulders,	 and	 garnishing	 on	 the	 helmet	 breaks	 the	 smooth
curve	of	the	top	and	the	line	of	the	brim.
Silhouette	also	includes	fieldcraft		however	well	camouflaged	you	may	be,	it	is	little
help	if	you	skyline	by	walking	along	the	top	of	a	hill,	or	stand	against	a	background	of
one	solid	colour.
Smell
Even	the	most	urbanized	man	will	develop	a	good	sense	of	smell	after	a	few	days	in	the
open.	He	will	be	able	to	detect	engine	smells,	cooking,	body	odour	and	washing.
Some	 smells	 are	 hard	 to	 minimize.	 Soaps	 should	 be	 scent-free,	 and	 activities	 such	 as
cooking	 confined	 to	 daylight	 hours	 when	 other	 smells	 are	 stronger	 and	 the	 air	 warmer.
One	of	the	greatest	giveaways	is	smoking:	both	smoke	and	discarded	butts	have	a	unique
smell.	 Rubbish	 produced	 by	 cooking	 as	 well	 as	 smoking	 should	 be	 carried	 out	 from	 the
operational	area	and	only	buried	as	a	second	choice.	Buried	objects	are	often	dug	up	by
animals:	such	refuse	can	give	a	good	indication	of	the	strength	and	composition	of	your
patrol or unit as well as its morale. The disciplines of refuse removal are important.
Helmet	Camouflage
The	 new	 issue	 Kevlar	 helmet	 comes	 complete	 with	 a	 cover	 of	 DPM	 	 standard	 military
camouflage	colours		and	straps	for	local	camouflage.
			Disguising	the	shape.	Cover	the	helmet	with	strips	of	scrim	and	cloth
			Adding	local	camouflage.	Insert	local	vegetation	under	the	elastic.
Sound
You	can	make	a	lot	of	noise	while	out	on	patrol.	Your	boots	can	squeak;	your	cleaning	kit
or	magazines	may	rattle	in	your	ammunition	pouches.	Even	your	webbing	can	creak	if	it	is
heavy.	 Fittings	 on	 your	 weapon	 may	 rattle.	 Radios	 can	 have	 background	 mush.
Coughing	 and	 talking	 can	 carry	 for	 long	 distances	 in	 the	 darkness	 of	 a	 clear	 night.	 You
must	 become	 familiar	 with	 a	 silent	 routine	 in	 which	 field	 signals	 replace	 the	 spoken
word,	or	conversations	are	conducted	in	a	whisper.	Proper	stowage	of	kit,	taping	of	slings
and	other	noisy	equipment	and	a	final	shakedown	before	a	patrol	moves	out	will	reduce
noise.	If	a	position	is	being	dug,	sentries	should	be	positioned	at	the	limit	of	noise	so	that
they	can	see	an	enemy	before	he	hears	the	digging.
Colour
Most	modern	combat	uniforms	are	now	in	a	disruptive	pattern	camouflage,	there	may	be
times	when	this	is	less	helpful.	If	you	are	evading	capture	and	are	unarmed,	drab	civilian
outdoor	 clothing	 will	 be	 less	 conspicuous	 if	 you	 encounter	 civilians.	 The	 trouble	 with
camouflage-type	clothing	is	that	in	the	wrong	environment,	like	cities,	it	seems	to	do	the
opposite	and	say,	Hey,	look	at	me!	In	fighting	in	built-up	areas	a	camouflage	of	greys,
browns	and	dull	reds	would	be	better.	The	use	of	sacking	and	empty	sand	bags	as	scrim
covers	would	help	here.
Natural	vegetation	used	to	garnish	helmets	and	equipment	will	fade	and	change	colour.
Leaves	 curl	 up	 and	 show	 their	 pale	 under-surfaces.	 You	 may	 have	 put	 grass	 into	 your
helmet	band	and	now	find	yourself	in	a	dark	wood,	or	be	wearing	dark	green	ferns	when
you	 are	 moving	 across	 a	 patch	 of	 pale,	 open	 grass	 land.	 Check	 and	 change	 your
camouflage	regularly.
The	 most	 obvious	 colour	 that	 needs	 camouflaging	 is	 that	 of	 human	 skin,	 and	 for	 that
you	need	camouflage	cream.	As	mentioned,	even	black	or	brown	skin	has	a	shine	to	it.	A
common	mistake	is	to	smear	paint	over	the	front	of	the	face	and	to	miss	the	neck,	ears	and
back	 of	 the	 hands.	 Camouflage	 cream	 needs	 to	 be	 renewed	 as	 you	 move	 and	 sweat.	 A
simple	pattern	is	to	take	stripes	diagonally	across	the	face		this	cuts	through	the	vertical
and	 horizontal	 lines	 of	 the	 eyes,	 nose	 and	 mouth.	 Some	 camouflage	 creams	 have	 two
colours,	in	which	case	you	can	use	the	dark	colour	to	reduce	the	highlights	formed	by	the
bridge	of	the	nose,	cheek	bones,	chin	and	forehead.	The	lighter	colour	is	used	on	areas	of
shadow.
Association
The	enemy	may	not	see	you,	but	he	might	spot	your	equipment	or	trash	and	associate	that
with	a	possible	unit	on	the	move.	The	cans	stacked	near	a	vehicle	park,	perhaps	with	white
tape	around	them,	are	likely	to	be	fuel.	A	cluster	of	radio	antennas	shows	that	a	company
HQ	is	on	the	move	or	dug	in.	Antennas	can	also	catch	the	light	and	show	up	as	long,	hard
shadows	in	an	otherwise	concealed	position.	Most	antennas	can	be	situated	away	from	the
set,	so	put	them	on	a	reverse	slope	where	they	are	not	only	invisible	to	the	enemy,	but	also
have	some	of	their	signal	screened.	Failing	that,	locate	them	against	a	building	or	tree.
Camouflage	 is	 a	 complex	 and	 sometimes	 contradictory	 skill.	 There	 is	 a	 reduced	 TI
signature	in	a	building	under	cover;	but	buildings	attract	attention.	Hessian	should	be	used
on	a	vehicle	among	cold	buildings;	but	not	in	warmer	woodland.	If	you	want	to	remember
one	rule	to	camouflage,	it	is	that	you	should	not	give	the	enemy	the	signal	that	will	make
him	look	twice.	To	a	trained	observer	the	unusual		a	flash	from	a	plastic	map	case,	or	the
smell	of	cooking		will	alert	him	and	he	will	bring	his	own	senses	to	bear	on	the	area.
Vehicle	camouflage
Good	camouflage	and	concealment	is	often	a	trade-off	against	good	fields	of	fire	or	good
positions	 for	 observing	 enemy	 movement.	 Radio	 communications	 work	 better	 with	 lineofSight,	but	sitting	on	top	of	a	hill	is	very	public.	And	if	you	are	trying	to	evade	or	escape
you	will	need	a	vantage	point	for	a	sentry	to	observe	likely	enemy	approaches,	and	may	be
observed	 yourself.	 Assuming	 that	 you	 are	 part	 of	 a	 group	 of	 six	 to	 twelve	 men	 and	 that
you	have	a	light	vehicle	like	a	Land	Rover	or	Jeep,	how	would	you	conceal	your	position
while	evading	capture?
Any	vehicle	will	be	under	suspicion.	If	you	are	moving	in	convoy,	take	care	to	avoid
bunching.	 Vehicles	 close	 together	 are	 very	 recognisable	 from	 the	 air,	 and	 make	 easy
targets	for	enemy	aircraft.	And	remember	the	following	points	when	finding	somewhere	to
position	your	vehicle.
1.	If	you	are	near	buildings,	for	instance	on	a	farm,	try	to	get	the	vehicle	close	to	a	wall
or	under	cover	in	a	barn.	A	camouflage	net	will	attract	the	attention	of	a	nearby
enemy.	Use	hessian	and	local	materials	to	disguise	the	vehicle.
2.	If	you	park	in	the	country,	try	to	find	the	shadow	of	a	hedge	to	disguise	the	vehicles
hard	shape.	But	remember	that	in	northern	and	southern	latitudes	the	sun	moves,	and
the	shadow	of	the	morning	can	be	the	sunlit	field	of	the	afternoon.
Siting
Avoid	the	obvious.	If	the	enemy	are	looking	for	you	they	will	sweep	the	countryside,	and
if	there	are	not	many	of	them	they	will	concentrate	on	rivers	and	woodland,	farmhouses,
barns,	known	caves	and	natural	cover.	All	are	on	maps,	and	the	first	move	that	an	enemy
search	team	will	make	is	to	do	a	map	reconnaissance	and	look	at	likely	locations.
Track	plan
A	 track	 plan	 is	 essential	 if	 you	 are	 going	 to	 stay	 in	 the	 location	 for	 any	 length	 of	 time.
Trodden	grass	and	footprints	will	show	clearly	from	the	air,	and	large	areas	of	normally
lush	undergrowth	can	be	flattened	in	a	way	that	attracts	attention.	Vehicle	tracks	are	even
more	dramatic	from	the	air		bad	drivers	will	carve	a	path	across	a	field	in	a	way	that	no
farmer	 would	 dream	 of	 driving.	 Track	 planning	 means	 attempting	 to	 copy	 the	 normal
routes	adopted	by	animals,	farmers	or	locals.	Thus	vehicle	tracks	along	the	edge	of	a	field
and	a	footpath	that	might	also	be	used	by	the	inhabitants	will	pass	unnoticed	by	the	enemy.
IR	signature
The	 infra-red	 band	 is	 the	 most	 difficult	 to	 avoid.	 Thermal	 imaging	 will	 penetrate	 cover,
and	activities	like	running	a	vehicle	engine	to	charge	batteries	or	simple	tasks	like	cooking
become	a	major	problem,	since	both	will	show	as	a	very	strong	hot	point	in	an	otherwise
cool	 terrain.	 Though	 a	 cave	 may	 not	 be	 ideal	 if	 it	 is	 on	 the	 local	 map,	 it	 will	 give	 good
thermal	screening.	Parking	the	vehicle	under	cover	will	also	reduce	its	IR	signature		but
again	 remember	 that	 barns	 and	 farmhouses	 are	 very	 obvious	 and	 may	 attract	 attention
from	the	air	or	ground.
Personal	camouflage
Smell	will	come	from	cooking	as	you	prepare	your	evening	meal	and	the	smell	of	fuel	is
also	distinctive.	Spilled	fuel	and	the	wrappings	from	rations	are	a	calling-card	for	an	alert
enemy.
Dont	make	the	mistake	of	thinking	youre	safe	as	long	as	you	have	dug	your	position.	A
good	hide	or	bunker	should	be	invisible	even	at	close	quarters;	if	you	have	dug	it	well	and
are	careful	in	your	movements,	it	may	pass	unnoticed.	But	the	enemy	can	still	spot	you	if
you	havent	been	careful	enough,	so	keep	the	following	in	mind.
			The	colour	of	soil	that	has	been	dug	from	lower	than	about	a	metre	is	lighter	than	the
topsoil,	and	a	trench	has	a	strong	shadow	at	the	bottom.	Conceal	earth	by	covering	it
with	turfs;	and	put	light-coloured	straw	at	the	bottom	of	the	trench	to	reduce	some	of
the	shadow.	This	will	also	be	more
			pleasant	to	walk	on	and	live	in.
			In	a	tropical	environment,	cover	can	grow	very	quickly,	so	replace	plants	and	creepers
around	your	position	and	it	will	soon	be	concealed.
			A	simple	basha	made	up	with	poncho	or	basha	sheet	can	be	square,	shiny	and	noisy.	Do
not	put	it	up	until	after	last	light,	although	you	can	position	it	flat	on	the	ground	before
dark.	Carry	a	length	of	old	camouflage	net;	it	will	break	up	the	shape	and	shine.
			When	you	are	cooking	or	brewing	up	keep	your	opened	kit	to	a	minimum;	you	might
need	to	make	a	quick	getaway.	Also,	avoid	littering	tins	and	wrappers	around	the
position	that	may	catch	the	light	and	be	seen	from	a	distance.
			It	is	commonly	thought	that	a	hand	torch	with	a	red	filter	does	not	show	at	night.	It
does;	its	certainly	less	obvious	than	a	white	light,	and	it	does	not	impair	night	vision,
but	it	shows.	Do	not	use	a	torch	at	all;	by	last	light	you	should	have	set	up	your	position
so	that	your	kit	is	packed	and	you	can	reach	for	your	weapon,	webbing	and	pack
without	needing	one.
NAVIGATION
As	 a	 Special	 Forces	 soldier,	 you	 will	 be	 expected	 to	 operate	 in	 the	 most	 remote	 and
inaccessible	 regions	 of	 the	 world:	 this	 means	 being	 able	 to	 navigate	 with	 pinpoint
accuracy	under	the	most	arduous	circumstances.	Although	you	are	equipped	with	the	most
up-to-date	 satellite	 navigation	 and	 communication	 equipment,	 you	 must	 still	 be	 able	 to
operate	with	the	most	basic	navigational	aids:	a	compass,	map,	altimeter	and	watch.	You
will	also	find	that	navigation	is	central	to	Special	Forces	selection.
you	sighted,	counting	your	paces.	When	you	reach	your	sighting,	compare	the	pace	totals
of	your	team	and	take	an	average.	This	is	called	bracketing.	An	experienced	team	will
already	know	the	relationship	of	their	paces	to	distance,	in	varying	terrain,	having	worked
this	out	during	training.
Another	way	of	determining	distance	travelled	is	to	estimate	your	speed	of	travel.	Speed
is	 distance	 divided	 by	 time.	 By	 checking	 the	 time	 it	 takes	 you	 to	 pass	 between	 two
identifiable	land	features	and	dividing	this	by	the	distance	you	have	travelled	(taken	from
the	map),	you	will	know	your	current	speed.	Update	and	revise	this	as	often	as	possible,
and	make	allowances	for	terrain	changes.	If,	for	example	your	speed	is	estimated	at	4	km/
hour	and	you	have	been	walking	at	approximately	that	speed	for	two	and	a	half	hours,	you
will	have	travelled	10	km	(distance	=	speed	multiplied	by	time).
The	 most	 accurate	 way	 to	 establish	 your	 distance	 is	 to	 use	 both	 methods.	 As
commander,	estimate	your	speed	of	travel	while	two	of	your	team	act	as	pace	counters	by
notching	a	stick	every	50	paces.
Trail	cutting
Trail	cutting	means	keeping	a	straight	course.	Accuracy	is	vitally	important:	if	you	are	4
degrees	off	course,	after	3	km	you	can	be	up	to	250	metres	off	course		more	than	enough
to	miss	your	objective.	By	cutting	two	saplings	and	stripping	the	bark	off	them	you	can
improvise	two	surveying	poles.	Use	these	to	set	your	course	by,	and	you	should	be	able	to
navigate	 with	 pinpoint	 accuracy.	 Simply	 set	 the	 poles	 20	 metres	 apart	 in	 line	 with	 your
intended	direction	of	travel,	so	that	they	act	as	a	visual	guide	for	the	trail	you	are	cutting.
As	 the	 trail	 progresses,	 leapfrog	 your	 rear	 pole	 forward,	 setting	 it	 in	 position	 by	 a	 back
bearing	to	the	remaining	pole.
Alpine navigation
Another	 field	 of	 operations	 common	 to	 the	 Special	 Forces	 soldier	 is	 the	 mountain	 and
Arctic	 environment.	 Navigation	 in	 these	 areas	 follows	 all	 the	 basic	 rules,	 but	 there	 are
other	 considerations:	 probably	 the	 most	 hazardous	 is	 glacier	 navigation.	 Wherever
possible,	gain	high	ground	before	crossing	glaciers	so	that	you	can	scout	a	route	through
the	ice	falls.	Glaciers	are	basically	huge	rivers	of	ice.	Their	rate	of	flow	is	determined	by
their	 mass	 and	 the	 slope	 of	 the	 underlying	 rock.	 They	 usually	 consist	 of	 two	 parts:	 the
lower	glacier,	which	is	free	of	snow	in	the	summer	and	often	referred	to	as	the	dry	glacier,
and	the	upper	glacier,	covered	in	snow	all	year	round	with	the	snow	packed	down	to	form
the	glacier	ice	itself.	This	is	often	called	a	wet	glacier.
Crevasse	dangers
Although	the	ice	is	plastic	at	its	surface,	it	cracks	as	it	passes	over	rises	in	its	underlying
rock	or	at	the	outside	of	bends	it	flows	around.	These	cracks	are	called	crevasses.	In	most
cases	it	is	possible	to	predict	where	these	will	occur	by	studying	the	contours	of	your	map.
Lurker	crevasses,	which	occur	in	predictable	locations,	are	caused	by	flows	in	the	ice.
The	 most	 dangerous	 part	 of	 the	 glacier	 is	 the	 upper	 or	 wet	 glacier	 as	 snow	 can
obliterate	 the	 crevasses,	 often	 forming	 bridges	 across	 them.	 Whenever	 you	 cross	 wet
glaciers	you	should	always	be	roped	together.
Flowing	water
As	a	general	rule,	where	you	can	see	water	flowing	across	the	surface	of	the	glacier	the
danger	 of	 crevasses	 is	 minimal.	 This	 is	 because	 water	 will	 disappear	 down	 the	 first
available	crack	or	crevasse;	so	where	you	can	see	the	water	there	can	be	few	cracks.
As	the	truck	brakes	hard	and	your	rookie	guard	drops	his	cigarette,	you	take	the	chance
to	make	a	bid	for	freedom,	vaulting	the	tailgate	and	running	like	a	fox,	looking	for	cover.
After	an	hour	you	slump	into	the	shade	of	a	yew	tree	and	look	back.	You	cant	see	any
sign	 of	 your	 pursuers,	 but	 theyre	 there	 somewhere.	 You	 must	 put	 as	 much	 ground
between	them	and	you	as	possible.	You	were	in	the	truck	for	about	two	hours,	travelling	at
about	50	mph,	so	at	the	worst	youre	100	miles	behind	the	lines	and	probably	much	less.
You	could	be	back	at	HQ	in	a	week.	But	your	escape	map	and	compass	were	taken	when
you	were	searched!	Never	fear,	there	are	ways	of	navigating	for	which	no	map	or	compass
is	required.
The	Sun
This	is	your	most	obvious	indicator	of	direction,	so	long	as	it	is	not	covered	by	cloud.	It
rises	in	the	east	and	sets	in	the	west;	this	is	always	true,	no	matter	what	hemisphere	you
are	in.	Near	the	Equator,	the	sun	appears	to	be	almost	overhead;	further	north	the	sun	will
always	be	south	of	you,	and	further	south	it	will	be	north	of	you.
Find	 out	 where	 true	 north	 is	 by	 measuring	 the	 shadow	 cast	 by	 a	 vertical	 stick.	 To	 do
this,	 find	 a	 piece	 of	 level	 ground,	 preferably	 bare	 earth,	 and	 put	 a	 30-cm	 straight	 stick
vertically	into	the	ground.	Using	a	short	marker	stick,	record	the	end	of	the	shadow	cast	by
the	vertical	stick.	As	the	sun	moves	west	the	shadow	will	move	east.	Wait	until	the	shadow
has	moved	a	few	centimetres	and	mark	its	end	again.	By	drawing	a	line	between	the	two
markers	you	will	have	a	west	to	east	line.	If	you	need	a	north/south	reference,	simply	draw
a	line	that	cuts	the	west/east	line	at	a	right	angle.
The	stars
Gaining	an	approximate	fix	on	north	or	south	from	the	stars	is	an	ancient	and	easy	skill.
The	technique	differs	between	the	northern	and	southern	hemispheres.
1.	In	the	northern	hemisphere,	the	star	Polaris	(the	pole	star)	is	your	guide	to	true	north.
This	is	because	it	is	never	more	than	1	degree	from	the	North	Celestial	Pole.	If	you
are	facing	the	pole	star,	you	are	facing	true	north.	To	find	Polaris,	first	find	the	easily
recognized	constellations	the	Plough	or	Cassiopeia	which	will	guide	you	to
Polaris.
2.	ln	fact,	the	South	Celestial	Pole	is	so	devoid	of	stars	it	is	called	the	Coal	Sack.	If	you
are	facing	the	South	Celestial	Pole	you	are	facing	true	south.	To	find	the	pole,	draw
an	imaginary	line	from	the	Southern	Cross	(do	not	confuse	this	with	the	false
cross)	and	another	imaginary	line	at	90	degrees	to	the	two	bright	stars	east	of	the
Southern	Cross.	The	point	at	which	these	two	lines	intersect	is	a	point	approximately
5-6	degrees	off	true	south.
FINDING	POLARIS
On	a	clear	night	in	the	northern	hemisphere,	the	direction	of	north	is	indicated	by
the	North	Star.	This	is	not	the	brightest	star	in	the	sky	and	can	be	difficult	to	find.
All	other	stars	revolve	around	the	North	Star.	Or	you	can	find	the	group	of	stars
known	 as	 the	 Plough	 or	 Ursa	 Major,	 which	 is	 usually	 fairly	 prominent.	 A	 line
joining	the	stars	forming	the	blade	of	the	plough	points	to	the	North	Star.
Cloudy	nights
On	cloudy	nights	you	may	not	be	able	to	see	enough	of	the	night	sky	to	use	these	methods.
If	 you	 can	 see	 some	 stars,	 choose	 a	 bright	 star	 that	 you	 will	 be	 able	 to	 observe,
unobscured,	for	some	minutes.	If	it	falls,	you	are	looking	west;	if	it	rises,	you	are	looking
east.	If	it	arcs	up	to	the	right	you	are	looking	approximately	south-east,	and	if	it	arcs	down
to	the	right	you	are	looking	approximately	north-west.
Natural	landmarks
If	 you	 are	 on	 the	 move	 and	 in	 a	 hurry	 you	 will	 need	 quicker	 references.	 Because	 the
landscape	 and	 vegetation	 is	 shaped	 by	 the	 local	 environmental	 conditions	 you	 can	 gain
rough	 indications	 of	 direction	 by	 simple	 observation.	 However,	 you	 will	 find	 these
indicators	to	be	unreliable	guides,	and	you	should	never	rely	upon	one	indicator	alone.
Remember	 that	 prevailing	 weather	 conditions	 vary	 from	 region	 to	 region	 and	 are
especially	unpredictable	in	hilly	or	heavily	wooded	areas.	Success	in	navigation	depends
on	 your	 choice	 of	 landmark:	 lone	 isolated	 trees	 in	 flat	 country	 are	 the	 ideal	 choice.	 By
comparing	 the	 results	 of	 several	 differing	 natural	 navigation	 aids	 	 for	 example,	 grass
tufts,	the	way	a	star	moves	and	the	moisture	of	leaf	litter	at	the	base	of	a	tree		you	should
be	able	to	move	over	unfamiliar	country	in	any	direction	you	want.
1)	Wind
Make	 sure	 you	 are	 aware	 of	 the	 prevailing	 wind	 direction	 in	 any	 area	 in	 which	 you	 are
operating.	 The	 generally	 prevailing	 wind	 in	 England	 is	 south-westerly	 (and	 in	 northwest	 Europe	 north-westerly).	 Lone	 trees	 and	 isolated	 new	 plantations	 will	 lean	 away
from	the	prevailing	wind	direction.	So	do	tussocks	of	grass	and	other	forms	of	upright
vegetation	such	as	ferns.	Small	isolated	woods,	especially	near	the	coast,	have	stunted
trees	 on	 their	 windward	 sides.	 In	 sandy	 areas,	 tails	 of	 sand	 form	 behind	 small	 bushes
and	 plants,	 pointing	 directly	 away	 from	 the	 wind.	 Sand	 dunes	 and	 snow	 cornices	 are
gently	sloping	on	their	windward	side	and	steep	on	their	lee	(sheltered)	side.
2)	Effect	of	the	Sun	on	vegetation
The	sun	also	greatly	affects	vegetation,	in	particular	isolated	trees,	whose	branches	should
be	more	numerous	and	foliated	on	the	sunny	side	(south	in	the	northern	hemisphere	and
north	 in	 the	 southern	 hemisphere).	 Because	 of	 this	 you	 will	 also	 usually	 find	 that	 the
decaying	vegetation	at	the	base	of	the	trunk	is	drier	on	the	sunny	side:	a	good	night-time
guide.	The	stumps	of	felled	trees	will	show	their	growth	rings	more	tightly	packed	on
the	sunny	side.
Natures	signposts
Remember:
Trees
Isolated	trees	have	more	branches	with	more	leaves	on	the	sunnier	side	of	the	tree:	in
the	northern	hemisphere	this	means	south.
Isolated	buildings
On	 barns	 in	 an	 exposed	 position,	 the	 sunnier	 side	 will	 be	 drier,	 with	 less	 moss	 and
algae,	indicating	south	in	the	northern	hemisphere.
Tree	stumps
The	 growth	 rings	 of	 the	 stump	 will	 be	 more	 tightly	 packed	 on	 the	 sunnier	 side,
indicating	south	in	the	northern	hemisphere.	The	leaf	litter	will	also	be	drier	at	the	base	of
the	stump	on	that	side.
River	crossing
If	 you	 are	 on	 the	 run	 or	 are	 operating	 in	 wild	 terrain,	 you	 are	 likely	 to	 encounter	 water
obstacles	 that	 you	 may	 have	 to	 cross.	 They	 may	 be	 fast	 moving	 rivers	 or	 large	 marshy
areas	 of	 clinging,	 stinking	 and	 tiring	 mud.	 Each	 has	 its	 dangers,	 but	 also	 its	 drills	 for
survival.	Here	we	deal	with	rivers,	using	techniques	from	US	Army	Manual	FM21-76.
articles	securely	to	the	top	of	your	pack;	if	you	have	to	release	it,	everything	will	be	easier
to	find.
Carry	your	pack	well	up	on	your	shoulders	so	that	you	can	release	it	quickly	if	you	are
swept	 off	 your	 feet.	 Being	 unable	 to	 get	 a	 pack	 off	 quickly	 enough	 can	 drag	 even	 the
strongest	of	swimmers	under.	Dont	worry	about	the	weight	of	your	pack,	as	this	will	help
rather	than	hinder	you	in	fording	the	stream.
Find	a	strong	pole	about	12	cm	(5	inches)	in	diameter	and	2	to	2.5	metres	(7	to	8	feet)
long	to	help	you	ford	the	stream.	Grasp	the	pole	and	plant	it	firmly	on	your	upstream	side
to	break	the	current.	Plant	your	feet	firmly	with	each	step,	and	move	the	pole	forwards,
slightly	 downstream	 from	 its	 previous	 position,	 but	 still	 upstream	 from	 you.	 With	 your
next	step,	place	your	foot	below	the	pole.	Keep	the	pole	well	slanted	so	that	the	force	of
the	current	keeps	the	pole	firmly	against	you.
Crossing	as	a	team
If	there	are	other	people	with	you,	cross	the	stream	together.	Make	sure	that	everyone	has
prepared	 their	 pack	 and	 clothing	 as	 above.	 The	 heaviest	 person	 should	 be	 on	 the
downstream	 end	 of	 the	 pole	 and	 the	 lightest	 person	 on	 the	 upstream	 end.	 This	 way,	 the
upstream	person	will	break	the	current,	and	the	people	below	can	move	with	comparative
ease	in	the	eddy	formed	by	him.	If	the	upstream	person	is	temporarily	swept	off	his	feet,
the	others	can	hold	him	steady	while	he	regains	his	footing.
As	in	all	fording,	cross	the	stream	so	that	you	will	cross	the	downstream	current	at	a	45degree	angle.	Currents	too	strong	for	one	person	to	stand	against	can	usually	be	crossed
safely	in	this	manner.
Do	not	rope	your	team	together	in	fast-flowing	water:	the	action	of	the	current	may	hold
any	fallen	member	down.
Floating	across
If	the	temperature	of	a	body	of	water	is	warm	enough	for	swimming	but	you	are	unable	to
swim,	make	a	flotation	device	to	help	you.	Some	things	you	can	use	are:
Trousers:	 Knot	 each	 leg	 at	 the	 bottom	 and	 button	 the	 fly.	 With	 both	 hands	 grasp	 the
waistband	 at	 the	 sides	 and	 swing	 the	 trousers	 in	 the	 air	 to	 trap	 air	 in	 each	 leg.	 Quickly
press	the	sides	of	the	waistband	together	and	hold	it	under	water	so	that	the	air	will	not
escape.	You	now	have	water	wings	to	keep	you	afloat.	These	have	to	be	re-inflated	several
times	when	crossing	a	wide	stretch	of	water.
Empty	containers:	Lash	together	empty	tins,	petrol	cans	or	boxes	and	use	them	as	water
wings.	You	should	only	use	this	type	of	flotation	in	a	slow-moving	river	or	stream.
Plastic	 bags:	 Air-fill	 two	 or	 more	 plastic	 bags	 and	 securely	 tie	 them	 together	 at	 the
mouth.
Poncho:	Roll	green	vegetation	tightly	inside	your	poncho	so	that	you	have	a	roll	at	least
45	cm	(18	inches)	in	diameter.	Tie	the	ends	of	the	roll	securely.	You	can	wear	it	around
your	waist	or	across	one	shoulder	and	under	the	opposite	arm.
Logs:	Use	a	stranded	drift	log	if	one	is	available,	or	find	a	log	near	the	waters	edge.
Test	 it	 before	 starting	 to	 cross,	 however,	 as	 some	 tree	 logs,	 palm	 for	 example,	 will	 sink
even	when	the	wood	is	dead.
Bulrushes:	 Gather	 stalks	 of	 bulrushes	 and	 tie	 them	 in	 a	 bundle	 25	 cm	 or	 more	 in
diameter.	The	many	air	cells	in	each	stalk	cause	it	to	float	until	it	rots.	Test	the	bundle	to
make	sure	it	will	support	your	weight	before	attempting	to	cross.
Two-man	rafts
If	you	are	with	a	companion	and	each	of	you	has	a	poncho,	you	can	construct	a	brush	or
Australian	poncho	raft.	With	this	type	of	raft	you	can	safely	float	your	equipment	across	a
slow-moving	stream	or	river.
Brush	raft
The	 brush	 raft	 will	 support	 about	 115	 kg	 (250	 lb)	 if	 properly	 constructed.	 Use	 ponchos,
fresh	green	brush,	two	small	saplings	and	a	rope	or	vines.
1.	Tightly	tie	off	the	neck	of	each	poncho	with	the	neck	draw-string.
2.	Attach	ropes	or	vines	at	the	corner	and	side	grommets	of	each	poncho.	Be	sure	they
are	long	enough	to	cross	to	and	tie	with	those	at	the	opposite	corner	or	side.
3		Spread	one	poncho	on	the	ground	with	the	tied-off	hood	upwards.
4		Pile	fresh,	green	brush	(no	thick	branches)	on	the	poncho	until	the	brush	stack	is
about	45	cm	(18	inches)	high.
5.	Pull	the	poncho	neck	drawstring	up	through	the	centre	of	the	brush	stack.
6		Make	an	X-frame	of	two	small	saplings	and	place	it	on	top	of	the	brush	stack.
7.	Tie	the	X-frame	securely	in	place	with	the	poncho	neck	drawstring.
8.	Pile	another	45	cm	of	brush	on	top	of	the	X-frame.
9.	Compress	the	brush	slightly.
10.	Pull	the	poncho	sides	up	around	the	brush	and,	using	the	ropes	or	vines	attached	to
the	corner	and	side	grommets,	tie	diagonally	from	corner	to	corner	and	from	side	to
side.
11.	Spread	the	second	poncho,	tied	off	hood	upwards,	next	to	the	brush	bundle.
12.	Roll	the	brush	bundle	onto	the	centre	of	the	second	poncho	so	that	the	tied	side
faces	downwards.
13.	Tie	the	second	poncho	around	the	brush	bundle	in	the	same	way	as	you	tied	the	first
poncho	around	the	brush	(10).
14.	Tie	one	end	of	a	rope	to	an	empty	canteen	and	the	other	end	to	the	raft.	This	will
help	you	to	tow	it.
Log	raft
This	will	carry	both	you	and	your	equipment	if	you	are	unable	to	cross	in	any	other	way;	if
you	have	an	axe	and	a	knife	you	can	build	it	without	rope.	A	suitable	raft	for	three	men
would	be	3.5	m	(12	feet)	long	and	(2	m)	6	feet	wide.	You	can	use	dry,	dead	standing	trees
for	logs,	but	spruce	trees	that	are	found	in	polar	and	sub-polar	regions	make	the	best	log
rafts.
			Build	the	raft	on	two	skid	logs	placed	so	that	they	slope	downwards	to	the	bank.
Smooth	the	logs	with	an	axe	so	that	the	raft	logs	lie	evenly	on	them.
			Cut	four	off-set	inverted	notches,	one	in	the	top	and	one	in	the	bottom	of	both	ends	of
each	log.	Make	the	notches	broader	at	the	base	than	at	the	outer	edge	of	the	log.
			To	bind	the	raft	together,	drive	through	each	notch	a	three-sided	wooden	crosspiece
about	30	cm	longer	than	the	width	of	the	raft.	Connect	all	the	notches	on	one	side	of	the
raft	before	connecting	those	on	the	other.
			Lash	the	overhanging	ends	of	the	two	crosspieces	together	at	each	end	of	the	raft	to
give	it	additional	strength.	When	the	raft	enters	the	water,	the	crosspieces	swell	binding
the	logs	together	tightly.
			If	the	crosspieces	fit	too	loosely,	wedge	them	with	thin	pieces	of	dried	wood.	These
swell	when	wet,	tightening	and	strengthening	the	crosspieces.
CROSSING	ON	A	RAFT
REMEMBER:	A	deep	and	fast-moving	river	can	be	crossed	several	times	using	a
pendulum	action	at	a	bend	in	the	river;	this	is	necessary	when	several	men	have	to
cross.	However,	remember	the	following.
			The	raft	must	be	canted	in	the	direction	of	the	current.
			The	rope	from	the	anchor	point	must	be	7-8	times	as	long	as	the	width	of	the
river.
			The	attachment	of	the	rope	to	the	raft	must	be	adjustable	to	change	the	cant	of
the	raft	so	that	it	can	return	to	the	starting	bank.
Flash	floods
Beware	of	rapidly-increased	water	flows.	Flash	floods	are	a	common	feature	in	the	tropics
and	 can	 arrive	 suddenly	 many	 miles	 from	 any	 apparent	 storm.	 Try	 to	 cross	 steadily	 but
quickly.	Heat	loss	will	be	substantial,	and	you	could	quickly	become	weak.	Once	out	on
the	other	bank,	take	your	clothes	off	and	wring	out	as	much	water	as	possible.	Change	into
dry	kit	if	you	can.	Otherwise,	put	your	wet	clothing	back	on		it	will	soon	dry	out	as	your
body	warms	up.
Rapids
Crossing	a	deep,	swift	river	or	rapids	is	not	as	dangerous	as	it	looks.	If	you	are	swimming
across,	swim	with	the	current		never	fight	it		and	try	to	keep	your	body	horizontal	to	the
water.	This	will	reduce	the	danger	of	being	pulled	under.
In	fast,	shallow	rapids,	travel	on	your	back,	feet	first;	use	your	hands	as	fins	alongside
your	hips	to	add	buoyancy	and	to	fend	off	submerged	rocks.	Keep	your	feet	up	to	avoid
getting	them	bruised	or	caught	by	rocks.
In	deep	rapids,	travel	on	your	front,	head	first;	angle	towards	the	shore	whenever	you
can.	 Breathe	 between	 wave	 troughs.	 Be	 careful	 of	 backwater	 eddies	 and	 converging
currents	as	they	often	contain	dangerous	swirls.
Ropework
Whether	 you	 are	 rigging	 a	 camouflage	 net	 or	 tensioning	 a	 rope	 across	 a	 chasm,	 your
success	 or	 failure	 	 maybe	 your	 life	 	 will	 at	 some	 stage	 depend	 upon	 your	 or	 a	 mates
ability	to	tie	a	secure	knot.	How	many	times	have	you	seen	a	tangle	of	cordage,	jammed
knots,	ropes	unravelling	at	their	ends?	These	are	the	signs	of	dangerous	and	sloppy	ropehandling.	 Although	 you	 will	 not	 be	 in	 constant	 contact	 with	 ropes,	 an	 understanding	 of
rope	 and	 knots	 is	 a	 fundamental	 requirement	 of	 the	 professional	 soldier.	 Assuming	 you
have	 no	 specialist	 equipment	 available,	 how	 do	 you	 learn	 to	 work	 efficiently	 and	 safely
with	rope?
Types	of	rope
Choose	 your	 rope	 carefully.	 Each	 type	 of	 rope	 has	 its	 own	 characteristics	 and	 uses;	 the
wrong	choice	of	rope	could	easily	prove	fatal		for	instance,	you	should	never	climb	on
hemp	 ropes.	 Wherever	 possible,	 familiarize	 yourself	 with	 the	 types	 and	 specification	 of
the	ropes	available.
Hawser-laid	ropes
These	 are	 the	 traditional	 type	 of	 rope,	 normally	 constructed	 from	 three	 strands.	 The
advantage	is	that	the	rope	can	be	easily	inspected	for	wear	and	tear,	but	the	disadvantage	is
that	it	tends	to	wear	more	easily	than	braided	ropes,	and	unless	correctly	handled	tends	to
kink.	More	importantly,	it	does	not	stretch	to	absorb	the	energy	of	a	fall	in	climbing.
Braided	ropes
Often	referred	to	as	Kernmantel,	(Kern	=	Core;	Mantel	=	Sheath),	these	ropes	are	almost
totally	made	from	man-made	fibres.	The	core	of	the	rope	is	the	major	load-bearing	part,
with	 the	 sheath	 acting	 as	 a	 protection	 from	 abrasion	 and	 other	 external	 hazards,	 and
providing,	in	some	cases,	comfortable	handling.	The	disadvantage	is	that	it	is	impossible
to	detect	progressive	wear	on	the	core	of	the	rope.
This	type	of	rope	has	a	limited	safe	lifespan	if	used	for	climbing:	successive	heavy	falls
will	weaken	it,	so	you	must	know	a	ropes	history	before	you	use	it.
Materials
The	 material	 the	 rope	 is	 made	 from	 is	 more	 significant	 than	 its	 method	 of	 construction.
Rope	 can	 be	 made	 from	 natural	 or	 man-made	 fibres;	 the	 latter	 is	 the	 most	 common
nowadays.
Natural	fibres
Hemp,	 sisal,	 cotton	 etc.	 are	 rapidly	 being	 replaced	 by	 the	 man-made	 fibres.	 The
disadvantages	 of	 natural	 ropes	 are	 numerous:	 when	 wet	 they	 lose	 30%	 of	 their	 strength
and	 are	 heavy	 and	 difficult	 to	 handle;	 they	 are	 prone	 to	 mildew	 and	 vermin,	 and	 are
uncomfortable	to	handle.
They	do,	however,	have	one	great	advantage	over	man-made	fibres:	when	hot	they	do
not	 melt,	 which	 makes	 them	 the	 best	 choice	 in	 situations	 of	 high	 friction	 and	 fire
emergencies.	 Sea-going	 vessels	 still	 have	 to	 have	 their	 ships	 ladders	 made	 from	 natural
ropes,	in	case	of	fire.	The	time	gained	by	having	ropes	that	smoulder	rather	than	melt	is	a
significant	safety	feature,	even	though	the	ropes	need	replacing	more	frequently.
The	other	advantage	of	a	natural	rope	is	its	tendency	to	sing	out	before	it	breaks		an
audible	 warning	 that	 has	 so	 often	 saved	 Tarzan	 in	 the	 movies.	 Watch	 out:	 the	 acid	 from
batteries	will	rot	natural	rope.
Man-made	fibres
In	 most	 cases,	 these	 are	 stronger,	 more	 durable,	 lighter	 and	 cheaper	 than	 natural	 fibres.
However,	they	are	more	slippery	and	require	careful	attention	to	knots.	The	cheapest	manmade	 fibres	 available	 are	 polythene	 and	 polypropylene	 ropes:	 these	 are	 the	 very	 smooth
orange	and	blue	ropes	often	seen	on	lifebelts	and	building	sites.	These	ropes	float	(hence
their	use	on	lifebelts),	but	are	weak	compared	with	the	other	man-made	fibres.	They	also
tend	 to	 suffer	 more	 from	 ultra-violet	 decay,	 most	 noticeable	 as	 a	 lightening	 and	 opaque
change	in	their	colour,	which	greatly	reduces	their	strength.
Polyester	or	terylene	is	much	stronger	than	polypropylene	and	is	often	used	by	sailors.
This	 is	 also	 the	 material	 from	 which	 modern	 abseiling	 and	 caving	 ropes	 are	 made.
Although	 fine	 for	 these	 specific	 activities	 this	 type	 of	 rope	 should	 never	 be	 used	 for
climbing	 with,	 because	 it	 is	 pre-stretched.	 A	 fall	 taken	 on	 such	 a	 rope	 would	 break	 the
climbers	back.
Nylon	is	the	man-made	fibre	used	for	climbing	ropes,	due	to	its	ability	to	absorb	shock
by	stretching.	If	a	climber	falls,	the	force	of	the	fall	is	taken	gradually,	thus	cushioning	the
jolt.
Climbing	ropes
Climbing	 ropes	 come	 in	 two	 main	 types:	 half	 ropes	 and	 single	 ropes.	 They	 are	 marked
accordingly.	Half	ropes	need	to	be	used	in	pairs	or	doubled,	whereas	a	single	rope	can	be
used	 on	 its	 own.	 Because	 climbing	 rope	 stretches	 it	 should	 not	 be	 used	 for	 towing	 or
assault	pioneering	tasks.
Rope	strength
To	use	the	full	strength	of	any	rope,	the	load	must	be	taken	equally	by	all	the	fibres.	This
only	happens	when	the	rope	is	pulled	in	a	straight	line.	When	a	rope	is	bent,	for	example
over	a	cliff	edge,	the	fibres	on	the	inside	chafe	which	severely	weakens	the	strength	of	the
rope.	If	an	1l-mm	climbing	rope	passes	around	a	karabiner	clip	with	a	5-mm	diameter,	the
rope	strength	reduces	to	70%.
The	 strength	 of	 a	 rope	 depends	 on	 its	 weakest	 part.	 When	 you	 are	 constructing	 rope
bridges,	lifting	weights	or	carrying	out	any	other	assault	pioneering	tasks,	it	makes	sense
to	have	a	rough	idea	whether	the	system	you	have	built	is	going	to	take	the	load.	The	rule
for	 the	 working	 strength	 of	 dry	 fibre	 ropes	 in	 hundredweights	 is	 given	 by	 its
circumference	in	inches	squared.
So	 a	 safe	 working	 load	 for	 a	 new	 three-inch	 fibre	 rope	 is	 about	 3	 x	 3	 which	 is	 9
hundredweight	(500	kg).
Whenever	a	knot	is	tied	in	a	rope,	bends	are	introduced,	causing	weakness;	some	knots
weaken	rope	more	than	others.
Tracking
As	 a	 soldier,	 your	 knowledge	 of	 tracking	 will	 enhance	 your	 awareness,	 increase	 your
ability	to	gather	intelligence	and	sharpen	your	fieldcraft.	If	you	are	in	command	during	an
extended	border	operation,	a	tracking	capability	will	enable	you	to	build	an	accurate	map
of	the	localized	enemy	movements	without	having	to	send	out	large	numbers	of	patrols.
But	for	a	survivor,	tracking	skill	means	food.	If	youre	close	to	civilisation,	man-made
obstacles	such	as	fences	and	irrigation	channels	force	game	to	pass	through	bottlenecks,
making	trapping	easy.	But	in	remote	sparsely	populated	areas	it	is	not	so	simple.	You	must
be	able	to	recognize	the	trails	of	local	game	and	be	capable	of	following	them	from	their
resting	areas	to	their	feeding	areas,	where	trapping	is	easier.
Good	 trackers	 are	 rare.	 When	 they	 are	 needed	 for	 military	 purposes,	 commanders
usually	employ	hunters	from	the	local	indigenous	population.	But	this	does	not	mean	that
Westerners	cannot	track:	some	of	them	are	among	the	worlds	best	trackers.	A	tracker	is	a
reader	 of	 sign.	 He	 takes	 a	 few	 faint	 pieces	 of	 information	 and,	 using	 the	 process	 of
deduction	and	comparison	with	previous	experience,	puts	the	puzzle	together.
Obstacles	to	trackers
The	more	experience	the	tracker	has,	the	better	able	he	is	to	do	the	job.	But	he	must	still
beware	the	following:
Lack	of	confidence:	Even	the	best	trackers	use	intuition,	and	a	tracker	must	know	when
to	 trust	 a	 hunch.	 With	 lives	 at	 stake,	 lack	 of	 confidence	 can	 cloud	 your	 ability	 to	 think
straight.	Experience	is	the	only	solution.
Bad	 weather:	 Sign	 does	 not	 last	 for	 ever.	 Wind,	 rain	 and	 fresh	 snowfall	 will	 all
obliterate	it;	many	a	trail	has	gone	cold	because	the	tracker	has	not	paid	enough	attention
to	the	weather	forecast.	With	unfavourable	weather	imminent,	short	cuts	may	need	to	be
taken	to	speed	the	follow-up.
Non-track-conscious	personnel:	By	the	time	trackers	are	called	in	to	follow	the	trail,	the
clues	at	the	proposed	start	have	usually	been	destroyed	by	clumsy	feet.	If	you	are	fortunate
enough	to	work	with	a	team	that	can	recognize	sign	even	though	they	cannot	read	it,	you
will	have	extra	pairs	of	eyes	to	help	you	find	the	vital	clues.
Unsympathetic	 commander:	 Tracking	 is	 a	 solitary	 business,	 requiring	 great
concentration.	A	tracker	must	have	the	trust	of	the	commander	and	must	be	able	to	trust
his	cover	group.	Tracking	often	seems	to	be	painfully	slow,	but	the	tracker	will	be	moving
as	fast	as	he	can:	never	rush	him.	The	more	intelligence	he	has	at	his	disposal	the	better,	so
tell	him	what	is	going	on;	your	knowledge	of	enemy	movements	may	make	sense	of	an
otherwise	meaningless	clue.
Try	to	allow	the	tracker	time	to	impart	a	rudimentary	knowledge	of	tracking	to	his	cover
group,	and	make	sure	the	cover	group	are	all	patient	men:	the	tracker	has	the	challenge	of
the	trail	to	hold	his	attention,	but	the	cover	and	support	group	does	not.	If	they	make	any
noise	it	is	the	tracker	who	is	at	greatest	risk.
Attributes	of	a	tracker
Tracking	is	mainly	a	visual	skill.	Your	eyesight,	whether	you	wear	glasses	or	not,	must	be
20/20.	 Short-sighted	 people	 often	 seem	 to	 make	 good	 trackers	 once	 their	 eyesight	 is
corrected.	 A	 general	 ability	 to	 observe	 is	 not	 enough	 for	 tracking;	 you	 have	 to	 piece
information	 together,	 like	 Sherlock	 Holmes.	 You	 must	 also	 be	 patient,	 persistent	 and
constantly	questioning	your	own	theories,	especially	if	you	are	solo	tracking.	Very	often,
you	 will	 trail	 your	 target	 to	 within	 touching	 distance.	 To	 reduce	 risks,	 self-defence	 and
close-quarter	battle	skills	are	vital.
Although	modern	equipment	plays	an	important	role	in	the	task	of	tracking,	remember
that	it	does	not	replace	your	tracking	ability;	it	just	makes	life	easier.
Learning	to	track
Tracking	 is	 not	 a	 particularly	 difficult	 skill	 to	 learn,	 but	 it	 needs	 dedication	 and	 much
practice.	 Once	 you	 have	 learned	 the	 basic	 principles	 and	 techniques	 you	 can	 practise	 in
your	own	time.	If	you	want	to	reach	a	high	standard,	it	will	help	if	you	have	a	teammate
who	can	lay	trails	for	you.	Make	sure	you	keep	a	log:	this	must	include	the	duration	of	the
track,	the	time	of	the	day,	the	ground	conditions	and	the	level	of	difficulty.
BOOBY	TRAPS
A	booby	trap	is	designed	to	cause	sudden	and	surprise	casualties	and	to	reduce	morale	by
creating	 fear,	 uncertainty	 and	 suspicion.	 You	 will	 only	 be	 able	 to	 counter	 booby	 traps	 if
you	understand	how	they	work,	in	what	circumstances	they	are	employed	and	what	they
look	like.
Booby	traps	are	used	in	various	terrorist	situations	but	are	more	likely	to	be	used	in	a
jungle	environment	than	anywhere	else,	mainly	because	they	are	more	easily	hidden,	but
also	because	the	materials	to	make	them	are	readily	to	hand.
Jungle	traps
The	jungle	guerrilla	will	be	restricted	in	the	operational	employment	of	booby	traps	only
by	the	extent	of	his	imagination.	The	range	and	variety	of	traps	used	by	the	Vietcong	was
bewildering,	 and	 responsible	 for	 lowering	 the	 morale	 of	 government	 forces	 in	 Vietnam.
Guerrillas	will	continue	to	use	booby	traps	along	obvious	lines	of	communication,	forcing
troops	 to	 move	 cautiously	 or	 to	 deploy	 engineers	 and	 assault	 pioneers	 to	 clear	 routes	 
very	time-consuming		or	to	move	deeper	into	the	jungle	where	the	going	is	appreciably
more	difficult.
The	 sides	 of	 roads,	 rivers	 and	 streams	 and	 any	 track	 or	 ridge	 line	 are	 likely	 targets.
When	 they	 are	 on	 the	 defensive,	 guerrillas	 will	 use	 booby	 traps	 to	 protect	 a	 bunkered
camp,	 a	 defended	 village	 or	 a	 tunnel	 system.	 They	 will	 be	 laid	 in	 conjunction	 with
obstacles,	wire,	conventional	mines	and	road	blocks	to	deter	any	detailed	reconnaissance
of	their	position	and	to	give	advance	warning	of	an	attack.	They	will	also	use	booby	traps
to	cover	their	withdrawal.
But,	despite	the	very	real	and	unpleasant	threat	of	booby	traps,	there	is	something	you
can	do	about	them.	First,	learn	all	there	is	to	learn	about	booby	traps.	Knowledge	dispels
fear;	know	your	enemy	and	youre	halfway	to	beating	him.	Five	examples	of	jungle	booby
traps	are:
1.	The	barbed	spike	plate
This	 is	 a	 very	 common	 trap.	 It	 is	 easily	 made	 and	 can	 be	 placed	 anywhere,	 and	 is
difficult	to	detect	before	the	damage	is	done.	The	spikes	are	often	tipped	with	poison
such	as	human	excrement.
2.	The	punji	bear	trap
The	punji	bear	trap	is	a	refinement	of	the	basic	pit	trap	to	counter	the	steel	plate	in	the
bottom	of	the	issue	jungle	boot.	The	trap	is	concealed	under	brushwood	or	leaves	on
the	track.	When	you	walk	over	the	trap,	your	leg	plunges	down	into	the	pit,	pivoting
the	 boards,	 which	 close	 on	 your	 leg	 spiking	 it	 above	 the	 ankle.	 This	 arrangement
leads	to	damage	to	the	unprotected	area	of	the	calf	above	the	boot.
3.	The	overhead	grenade	trap
A	 grenade	 is	 suspended	 in	 the	 overhead	 foliage.	 As	 you	 trip	 a	 wire,	 the	 pin	 is	 pulled
from	the	grenade	suspended	above	you.	You	have	3-5	seconds	to	get	out	of	range	of
the	 blast;	 difficult	 because	 the	 shrapnel	 from	 the	 grenade	 is	 likely	 to	 travel	 a	 great
distance	 due	 to	 its	 height	 above	 the	 ground.	 It	 is	 particularly	 effective	 at	 night.	 By
day,	the	trip-wire	can	be	removed	to	allow	the	enemy	or	civilians	to	use	the	track.
4.	The	cartridge	trap
This	trap	is	easily	set	up	and	is	very	effective.	It	is	buried	so	that	the	head	of	the	round
is	only	partly	exposed;	pressure	on	the	tip	sets	the	round	off.
5.	Grenade	daisy	chain
The	 trip	 wire	 is	 camouflaged	 across	 the	 track	 and	 when	 pulled,	 the	 first	 grenade
explodes.	This	breaks	the	wire	to	the	second	grenade,	which	has	had	its	pin	removed,
and	 releases	 the	 lever.	 The	 second	 grenade	 explodes,	 breaking	 the	 wire	 to	 the	 third
grenade	and	so	on.
plastic	wrapper	materials	protruding	from	the	ground,	and	in	particular	for	any	electrical
lead	 wires.	 And,	 of	 course	 look	 for	 irregular	 tread	 patterns	 and	 footprints	 on	 roads	 and
tracks.
Marker	 indicators	 may	 give	 you	 the	 best	 warning	 that	 a	 booby	 trap	 is	 in	 the	 area.
Guerrillas	 have	 traditionally	 marked	 their	 booby	 traps	 to	 warn	 their	 own	 men	 and
sympathetic	 locals	 to	 avoid	 the	 area.	 The	 sort	 of	 indicators	 they	 have	 used	 are	 piles	 of
stones,	 crossed	 sticks,	 broken	 saplings	 or	 marks	 on	 the	 trunks	 of	 trees.	 One	 specific
marker	 has	 been	 a	 stick	 balanced	 in	 the	 fork	 of	 a	 tree.	 This	 is	 surprisingly	 difficult	 to
detect,	and	has	been	known	to	indicate	a	mine	or	booby	trap	some	10-20	metres	away.
Another	example	is	knotted	tufts	of	grass:	four	tufts	of	knotted	grass	at	each	corner	of	a
square	indicate	a	mine	or	trap	within	the	encompassed	area.	Another	simple	but	often	used
indicator	 is	 a	 short	 piece	 of	 bamboo	 stuck	 into	 the	 ground	 at	 45	 degrees	 and	 pointing
towards	 the	 booby	 trap.	 Perhaps	 the	 hardest	 example	 of	 all	 to	 detect	 is	 a	 twig	 threaded
through	a	leaf	to	indicate	the	very	close	presence	of	a	trap.
command	vehicle	bristling	with	radio	aerials	is	easily	singled	out,	so	do	not	place	all
the	HQ	personnel	in	the	same	APC.	The	same	eggs	in	one	basket	principle	applies	to
medical	and	other	specialists.
Disarming	methods
The	first	step	to	surviving	the	mined	battlefield	is	to	detect,	recognize	and	locate	mines.
Having	done	this,	your	safest	bet	is	to	bypass	the	area	you	know	to	be	dangerous,	but	in
certain	circumstances	this	will	not	be	possible.	In	combat	you	may	need	to	maintain	the
momentum	of	an	attack.	Engineer	units	will	have	to	destroy	mines	in	place	to	allow	the
safe	passage	of	friendly	troops	and	the	rest	of	the	mines	will	be	neutralized	later	by	EOD
(Explosive	Ordnance	Disposal)	teams.
Making	a	mine	safe	means	displacing	or	replacing	safeties	in	the	firing	assembly	and
separating	 the	 main	 charge	 from	 the	 detonator.	 If	 this	 is	 not	 possible,	 the	 mine	 must	 be
destroyed	in	place.
A	 mine	 can	 be	 deliberately	 detonated	 if	 the	 damage	 is	 acceptable	 and	 the	 tactical
situation	 permits.	 For	 example,	 a	 mine	 by	 a	 roadside	 can	 be	 detonated	 without	 much
trouble,	 but	 if	 you	 deliberately	 explode	 a	 powerful	 enemy	 mine	 on	 a	 strategically	 vital
road	bridge	you	may	have	some	explaining	to	do.
Before	trying	to	remove	a	mine,	probe	around	the	main	charge	with	care	to	locate	any
anti-handling	devices	which	have	to	be	neutralized.	Identify	the	type	of	firing	mechanism
and	replace	all	safety	devices.	If	you	have	any	doubts	about	neutralising	the	mine,	pull	it
out	with	a	grapnel	or	rope	from	behind	cover.	Wait	at	least	thirty	seconds	after	extracting	it
in	case	it	has	a	delay-action	fuse.	Only	trained	specialists	should	attempt	to	disarm	a	mine
by	hand	unless	the	device	and	appropriate	disarming	techniques	are	well-known.
Non-explosive	traps
Not	all	booby	traps	are	explosive.	Improvised	traps	may	take	many	forms	that	may	seem
alien	 to	 Western	 eyes,	 but	 such	 traps	 are	 still	 widely	 used	 in	 the	 jungle	 environment	 for
trapping	animals	such	as	bush	pigs.	The	Vietcong	simply	scaled	up	their	traps	to	deal	with
a	 larger	 prey.	 These	 traps	 are	 usually	 covered	 pits,	 or	 work	 by	 a	 tripwire	 that	 releases	 a
spear.
With	non-explosive	traps	follow	the	general	principles	above,	being	especially	alert	for
further	 mines	 and	 booby	 traps	 near	 a	 trap	 you	 have	 found.	 Also,	 a	 trap	 may	 be	 several
booby	traps	together:	you	find	one	wire,	think	you	are	safe	and	walk	round	it	straight	into
the	punji	pit.
If	you	bypass	a	trap,	mark	it	clearly	for	any	following	troops.	Loose	spike-type	devices
and	 bear	 traps	 which	 have	 been	 sprung	 should	 be	 picked	 up	 and	 disposed	 of	 so	 they
cannot	 be	 re-used	 after	 you	 have	 gone.	 Spike	 pits	 should	 be	 exposed	 to	 view	 and	 later
dismantled	and	filled	in.
Be	particularly	careful	when	clearing	or	neutralising	traps	activated	by	trip-wires.	This
includes	 such	 devices	 as	 log	 or	 ball	 maces,	 angled	 arrow	 traps,	 suspended	 spikes	 and
bamboo	 whips.	 Clear	 all	 troops	 from	 the	 area	 and	 set	 off	 the	 device	 from	 a	 safe	 place
using	a	grapnel.
Other	traps
Falklands	booby	trap
Hundreds	of	booby	traps	were	left	in	the	Falklands	by	the	Argentine	forces.	These	can	be
divided	 into	 two	 main	 categories:	 those	 that	 used	 the	 M5	 grenade	 and	 those	 improvised
using	 available	 components	 and	 explosives.	 Many	 booby	 traps	 were	 improvised	 in	 the
field	by	military	engineers	using	available	components:	most	used	a	trip	wire	to	release	a
spring-loaded	 striker	 to	 fire	 a	 detonator.	 The	 main	 charge	 was	 normally	 American-made
TNT	demolition	blocks	buried	in	the	ground.	Occasionally	the	TNT	blocks	would	be	used
to	 initiate	 an	 item	 of	 explosive	 ordnance	 such	 as	 a	 large	 artillery	 shell;	 one	 such	 device
was	discovered	in	a	culvert	near	Port	Stanley	connected	to	a	l,000	lb-aircraft	bomb.	Other
variations	 include	 attaching	 a	 short	 wire	 to	 an	 innocent-looking	 object	 such	 as	 an
ammunition	box.	This	would	explode	if	the	item	was	removed	by	the	victim.
Vietcong	and	IRA	traps
Bamboo	bomb:	Any	tube,	such	as	a	bicycle	frame	or	section	of	bamboo,	can	be	used	as	a
container	for	explosive.	These	could	be	used	as	booby	traps	or	as	grenades	packed	with
metal	scrap.	The	Vietcong	packed	explosives	in	growing	bamboo	on	the	side	of	a	known
patrol	route;	in	the	same	way	the	IRA	made	mines	out	of	cast-iron	drain	pipes	on	the	sides
of	houses.
The	 Coconut	 mine:	 Any	 non-metallic	 mine	 will	 produce	 fragmentation	 that	 will	 now
show	up	well	on	an	X-ray	of	the	victim.	The	Vietcong	made	highly	effective	IEDs	out	of
hollowed-out	 coconuts	 packed	 with	 black	 powder	 and	 a	 detonator.	 Fragmentation	 effect
was	usually	enhanced	by	placing	stones	and	broken	glass	round	the	mine.
Anti-vehicle	traps:	Tank	crews	can	see	very	little	when	buttoned	up	and	will	therefore
drive	with	hatches	open	when	out	of	contact.	This	type	of	grenade	booby	trap	is	designed
to	 injure	 the	 crew	 and	 any	 infantry	 riding	 on	 the	 tank	 or	 in	 trucks	 or	 other	 soft-skinned
vehicles.	 The	 grenade	 bodies	 are	 tied	 to	 the	 main	 wire	 and	 the	 pins	 are	 tied	 to	 stakes
driven	into	the	ground.	More	than	two	grenades	are	usually	used;	the	whole	arrangement
is	camouflaged	in	the	trees	lining	a	road	for	example.
Helicopter	landing	site	trap:	Where	there	is	a	limited	number	of	helicopter	LZs,	such	as
in	the	jungle	or	if	you	get	into	the	habit	of	using	an	LZ	more	than	once,	you	could	find	this
waiting	 for	 you.	 The	 grenades	 or	 charges	 on	 the	 poles	 would	 usually	 be	 hidden	 in	 the
trees.
Mines
The	war	is	over	and	the	soldiers	have	departed.	The	odd	rusting	tank	or	water-filled	crater
bears	mute	witness	to	years	of	bitter	fighting,	but	civilian	traffic	now	passes	over	rebuilt
roads	and	bridges.	As	you	pass	across	a	field	towards	the	edge	of	the	village	there	is	a	dull
boom	 from	 across	 the	 track.	 The	 plough	 stops	 dead,	 the	 ox	 stands	 patiently	 	 but	 the
farmer	lies	in	a	bloody	heap.	The	troops	may	have	returned	to	barracks,	but	their	mines
remain	on	duty.
Combat	 zones	 and	 old	 battlefields	 the	 world	 over	 are	 dominated	 by	 minefields.
Vietnam,	Laos	and	Cambodia	remain	littered	with	mines:	the	old	infiltration	routes	along
the	borders	were	showered	with	air	dropped	mines	by	the	US	Air	Force	and	unexploded
ordnance	in	the	south	continues	to	inflict	casualties.	Afghanistan	has	been	similarly	treated
by	the	Soviet	forces	and	more	recently	by	the	opposing	sides	in	the	civil	war.	Throughout
North	Africa	the	desert	still	conceals	lethal	leftovers	from	the	Second	World	War,	and	in
the	western	Sahara	the	Polisario	guerrillas	and	the	Moroccan	army	both	sowed	new	fields.
In	 the	 Falklands,	 tiny	 plastic	 anti-personnel	 mines	 are	 moved	 out	 of	 the	 marked	 danger
areas	by	the	winter	storms	and	continue	to	present	a	serious	hazard.	You	may	be	lucky	and
never	need	to	know	how	to	survive	the	mined	battlefield;	but	if	by	accident	or	design	you
find	 yourself	 tip-toeing	 across	 eggshells	 in	 some	 foreign	 field,	 a	 knowledge	 of	 mines
could	mean	the	difference	between	life	and	death.
A	bewildering	selection	of	mines	confronts	any	soldier	trying	to	learn	how	to	counter
them.	Different	nations	manufacture	mines	that	produce	similar	effects	but	are	of	totally
different	construction.	The	only	general	preparation	you	can	make	is	to	learn	how	mines
are	used,	how	they	are	constructed	and	how	armies	mark	minefields	and	make	them	safe
for	themselves.
But	if	youre	on	operations	against	an	unexpected	opponent,	you	wont	have	a	chance	to
become	familiar	with	his	mines	prior	to	hostilities.	This	is	what	happened	to	the	sappers	of
the	 Falklands	 Task	 Force,	 who	 had	 little	 idea	 of	 the	 type	 of	 mines	 used	 by	 the
Argentinians.	 In	 the	 end,	 young	 sappers	 had	 to	 infiltrate	 booby-trapped	 minefields	 and
recover	examples	of	live	mines.
Mines	 are	 being	 developed	 with	 increasing	 sophistication	 to	 keep	 phase	 with	 their
primary	target		the	battle	tank		and	have	an	enormous	psychological	as	well	as	physical
impact	on	an	enemy.	If	you	are	to	survive	the	mined	battlefield,	you	must	appreciate	that
you	 are	 in	 as	 much	 danger	 from	 friendly	 devices	 as	 you	 are	 from	 your	 enemys.
Remember,	the	mine	is	a	double-edged	weapon.
Types	of	mine
There	 are	 three	 main	 types	 of	 mine:	 anti-tank,	 anti-personnel	 and	 chemical.	 Anti-tank
mines,	designed	to	damage	or	destroy	tanks	and	other	vehicles	and	their	occupants,	can	be
blast-type,	 disabling	 wheels	 or	 tracks;	 vertical-penetration,	 attacking	 the	 bottom	 of	 a
vehicle;	or	horizontal-effect,	placed	off	routes	to	attack	the	side	of	vehicles.
Anti-personnel	mines	are	designed	to	disable	or	kill	personnel.	The	blast	type	have	an
explosive	charge	and	detonate	when	stepped	on.	Fragmentation	types	contain	shrapnel	or
have	a	case	which	fragments	when	the	main	charge	fires,	and	are	divided	into	static	mines
(which	detonate	in	place),	bounding	mines	(which	bound	into	the	air	and	explode	several
feet	 above	 the	 ground),	 and	 horizontal-effect	 mines	 (which	 expel	 a	 spray	 of	 shrapnel	 in
one	direction).
Not	all	mines	are	harmful.	You	may	come	across	phoney	mines		dummies	planted	to
make	the	enemy	think	they	have	found	a	live	one,	and	waste	time	tackling	it	or	avoiding	it.
Handling	mines
Like	any	other	explosive	material,	mines	and	their	fuses	must	be	handled	carefully.	Most
mines	 have	 safety	 devices	 to	 stop	 them	 going	 off	 by	 accident	 or	 prematurely,	 but	 as	 a
soldier	you	may	also	find	yourself	having	to	improvise	mines	in	the	field,	so	get	used	to
taking	great	care.
Any	 amount	 of	 explosive	 can	 be	 fused	 and	 placed	 as	 a	 mine.	 Grenades	 and	 some
demolition	 charges	 already	 have	 fuse	 wells	 for	 installing	 firing	 devices;	 bombs,	 mortars
and	artillery	shells	can	be	used,	and	incendiary	fuels	in	containers	can	be	rigged	as	flame
mines.	The	aspects	of	handling	mines	are:
			Fusing:	This	means	installing	the	detonator	and	fuse	assembly.	Fuse	wells	should	be
clean	and	free	of	foreign	matter	when	the	fuse	and	detonator	are	put	in.
			Arming:	When	the	fuse	is	installed,	you	arm	the	mine	by	removing	all	safety	devices.
The	mine	is	then	ready	to	function.
			Safing:	In	general,	this	is	the	reverse	of	arming.	If	you	put	the	mine	in	place	yourself
and	kept	it	in	sight	the	whole	time,	you	can	remove	it	from	its	hole	for	safing.	If	not,
attach	a	long	rope	or	wire,	take	cover,	and	pull	the	mine	from	the	hole.	Safing	involves
checking	the	sides	and	bottom	of	the	mine	for	anti-handling	devices	and	disarming
them	if	found;	replacing	all	pins,	clips	or	other	safety	devices;	turning	the	arming	dial,
if	there	is	one,	to	Safe	or	Unarmed;	and	removing	the	fuse	and,	if	possible,	the
detonator.
			Neutralising:	This	means	destroying	the	mine	if	safing	is	thought	to	be	too	risky,	as	in
the	case	of	improvised	mines	which	will	probably	be	unstable	and	dangerous.	But	do
not	detonate	chemical	mines:	they	will	contaminate	the	area.
Anti-handling	techniques
There	are	several	devices	for	preventing	someone	disabling	a	mine.	Enterprising	engineers
are	apt	to	booby-trap	their	mines	to	make	it	difficult	and	dangerous	to	clear	them.	Anti-lift
or	 anti-handling	 devices,	 when	 attached	 to	 a	 mine,	 will	 detonate	 it	 or	 another	 charge
nearby	if	the	mine	is	lifted	or	pulled	out	of	its	hole.	An	anti-disturbance	device	sets	off	the
explosion	if	the	mine	is	disturbed	or	shaken.	Shielded,	twisted	firing	wire	can	be	attached
to	command-detonated	mines	to	defeat	enemy	ECM.	Long-pulse	or	multi-pulse	fuses	can
defeat	 tank	 mine-clearing	 rollers	 and	 explosive	 mine-clearing	 charges.	 Another	 way	 of
dealing	 with	 mine-clearing	 rollers	 is	 to	 place	 an	 unfused	 anti-tank	 mine	 (or	 explosive
charge)	in	the	ground,	connected	with	detonating	cord	to	a	pressure	fuse	of	firing	device
about	three	metres	away.	The	roller	then	rolls	over	the	unfused	mine	and	activates	the	fuse
when	the	tank	itself	is	over	the	mine	or	charge.
Avoiding	mines
The	US	Army	manual	on	mine	warfare	says,	Train	to	prevent	panic.	This	is	easy	to	say
but	rather	harder	to	achieve.	As	you	stand	on	a	jungle	trail	with	a	screaming	legless	man	in
front	of	you,	just	what	do	you	do?	Rushing	out	of	a	live	minefield	is	an	obvious	recipe	for
disaster,	but	staying	put	in	combat	will	probably	leave	you	in	a	killing	ground	under	heavy
fire.	There	is	no	guaranteed	safe	way	out	of	a	minefield,	but	if	you	know	what	different
mines	look	like	and	understand	how	they	work	and	the	correct	way	of	moving	to	safety,
then	you	are	in	with	a	chance.
The	 only	 certain	 way	 of	 surviving	 the	 mined	 battlefield	 is	 to	 avoid	 blundering	 into	 a
minefield	in	the	first	place.	Although	the	famous	skull	and	crossbones	sign	with	Achtung
Minen	written	above	will	only	be	seen	in	the	cinema,	well-trained	armed	forces	do	mark
their	minefields.	Memorize	the	signs	used	by	both	friend	and	foe,	and	make	sure	you	are
fully	briefed	on	marking	used	by	an	enemy.
NATO	 minefields	 are	 signposted	 on	 the	 friendly	 side	 with	 triangular	 red	 markers;	 the
side	nearer	the	enemy	is	only	shown	by	a	single	strand	of	wire	about	knee	high.	The	area
will	be	fenced	with	a	strand	at	ankle	and	waist	height	with	the	Mines	inverted	triangle
every	 20	 metres.	 Minefield	 safe	 lanes	 will	 only	 be	 marked	 on	 the	 friendly	 side,	 and
maximum	 use	 will	 be	 made	 of	 existing	 fences,	 so	 look	 at	 the	 signs,	 not	 at	 the	 type	 of
fence.
Marking	 safe	 lanes	 is	 a	 tedious	 and	 labour-intensive	 job.	 The	 US	 Army	 uses	 the
Hunting	 Lightweight	 Marking	 System,	 a	 set	 of	 steel-tipped	 plastic	 poles	 and	 yellow
reflective	 tape.	 The	 kit	 is	 man-portable	 and	 the	 pins	 are	 robust	 enough	 to	 be	 hammered
through	 tarmac.	 Unfortunately,	 not	 all	 armies	 are	 so	 diligent:	 witness	 the	 way	 the
Argentinians	scattered	mines	all	over	the	Falkland	Islands	without	even	keeping	a	proper
record	of	their	position.
Types of mines
Air-dropped	mines
The	 Soviets	 mined	 many	 guerrilla	 infiltration	 routes	 in	 Afghanistan	 with	 air-dropped
devices.	Similar	mines	were	used	by	the	US	Army	in	South-East	Asia,	and	they	will	no
doubt	continue	to	be	encountered	in	counter-insurgency	campaigns	throughout	the	world.
They	 are	 quick	 to	 lay	 and	 highly	 effective:	 Italian	 VS50	 mines	 can	 be	 dropped	 by
helicopter	at	a	rate	of	2,000	per	pass.
They	are	also	the	one	type	of	minefield	you	can	escape	by	rapid	withdrawal	from	the
area	if	you	are	unfortunate	enough	to	have	them	dropped	on	your	current	position.	Most
air-dropped	mines	do	not	arm	themselves	for	a	couple	of	minutes,	but	you	should	make
sure	your	identification	is	correct	before	hot-footing	it	away.	Other	characteristics	of	airdropped	mines	are:
			Fuses	can	be	delay,	pressure	or	magnetic.
			Anti-tank	and	anti-personnel	mines	may	be	dropped	together.
			Most	will	self-destruct	within	a	few	days	or	even	hours,	but	do	not	bank	on	them	all
self-destructing	at	the	same	time.	Mines	that	self-destruct	can	be	useful	for	security
forces,	which	can	then	sweep	the	area	in	safety	after	the	mines	have	done	their	damage.
Soviet	liquid	mines
One	type	of	scatterable	mine	introduced	by	the	Soviets	in	Afghanistan	deserves	a	mention,
although	 its	 use	 creates	 some	 interesting	 moral	 problems.	 This	 particular	 kind	 are	 small
plastic	cells	filled	with	liquid	explosives,	and	are	camouflaged	or	even	shaped	to	look	like
transistor	radios,	dolls	or	other	harmless	items.	They	detonate	when	moved	or	compressed,
and	are	thought	to	contain	an	unstable	explosive	similar	to	nitroglycerine,	which	is	safer
when	frozen.	They	are	yet	another	good	reason	to	be	alert	to	the	presence	of	booby	traps.
Stay	switched	on	even	when	there	is	no	obvious	danger.
OZM-4
Pressure,	 command	 or	 trip-wire	 detonated,	 this	 bounds	 1.5-2.4	 metres	 into	 the	 air	 and
explodes	showering	fragments	over	a	50-metre	diameter.
POMZ-2M
A	 wooden	 stake	 with	 cast	 iron	 fragmentation	 body,	 activated	 by	 trip-wire,	 this	 can	 be
neutralized	by	securing	the	striker	retaining	pin	and	removing	the	wire.	It	is	normally	laid
in	clusters	of	three	or	four.
PMN
The	rubber-covered	pressure	plate	on	top	of	this	small	plastic	mine	is	secured	to	the	body
by	 a	 thin	 metal	 bank.	 The	 mine	 has	 a	 side	 hole	 for	 the	 firing	 mechanism	 and	 primer
charge,	 opposite	 which	 is	 an	 initiator	 adaptor.	 The	 mine	 is	 armed	 15-20	 minutes	 after
removing	the	safety	pin.
TM-62
This	 is	 a	 family	 of	 anti-tank	 mines	 which	 come	 in	 plastic,	 metal,	 wood	 or	 waterproof
cardboard	casings	and	are	detonated	by	175-600	kg,	so	a	mans	weight	will	not	usually	set
them	 off.	 They	 have	 a	 two-second	 delay,	 so	 the	 tank	 is	 well	 over	 the	 mine	 when	 it
explodes.
TM-46
The	commonest	mine	in	Soviet	service,	this	has	a	metal	body	and	can	be	laid	by	hand	or
machine.	It	is	pressure-plate-activated	with	an	operating	force	of	210	kg.
TMN-46
Like	the	TM-46	this	is	activated	by	210	kg	pressure	and	can	be	fitted	with	a	tilt	rod	fuse.
The	 important	 difference	 is	 the	 extra	 fuse	 well	 in	 the	 bottom	 of	 the	 mine	 for	 boobytrapping.
TMD-B
This	 is	 a	 wooden	 box	 mine	 dating	 from	 the	 Second	 World	 War.	 The	 top	 three	 slats	 are
pressure	boards;	the	middle	one	is	hinged	to	allow	the	fuse	to	be	inserted.	When	armed,
the	pressure	board	is	held	in	place	with	a	wooden	locking	bar.
TMA-3
A	Yugoslavian	plastic	mine	with	no	metallic	parts	found	all	over	the	world,	this	is	blastand	water-resistant.	It	has	three	fuse	wells,	and	a	fourth	in	the	bottom	for	booby	trapping.
Operating	weight	is	180-350	kg.
MRUD	anti-personnel	mine
The	Yugoslavian	equivalent	of	the	Claymore,	this	fires	650	steel	balls	over	a	60-degree	arc
with	 a	 lethal	 radius	 of	 50	 metres.	 Activated	 by	 trip-wire	 or	 remote	 control,	 it	 will	 not
damage	tanks	but	will	wreck	soft-skin	vehicles.
Mine injuries
One	of	the	most	widely	encountered	types	of	mine	is	the	Soviet	PMD	series	of	wooden
and	anti-personnel	mines.	Simple	to	lay	and	difficult	to	detect,	they	are	used	by	guerrilla
forces	 all	 over	 the	 world.	 They	 are	 activated	 by	 pressure	 and	 were	 encountered	 by
members	of	22	SAS	serving	in	Oman.	It	was	observed	that	the	local	Firqha		tribesmen
fighting	for	the	government	and	officered	by	SAS	personnel		suffered	less	damage	than
the	 SAS	 if	 they	 stepped	 on	 a	 mine:	 treading	 on	 a	 PMD	 generally	 led	 to	 the	 tribesman
losing	 his	 toes,	 but	 SAS	 men	 in	 DMS	 or	 desert	 boots	 lost	 their	 whole	 foot	 at	 the	 ankle.
British	soldiers	unfortunate	enough	to	be	wearing	high-neck	boots	like	the	US	Corcoran
jump	boots	often	lost	their	leg	up	to	the	knee.	Mines,	like	all	explosives,	will	take	the	line
of	least	resistance.
Unfortunately	 it	 is	 not	 true	 to	 say	 that	 you	 can	 always	 minimize	 injury	 by	 swapping
your	 combat	 boots	 for	 a	 pair	 of	 Ho	 Chi	 Minh	 sandals.	 In	 the	 Vietnam	 War,	 the	 tiny
American	 gravel	 anti-personnel	 mines	 contained	 only	 a	 very	 small	 charge.	 It	 was
enough	 to	 cripple	 someone	 wearing	 light	 footwear,	 but	 a	 hefty	 pair	 of	 boots	 would
actually	reduce	the	damage.	Moral	of	the	tale;	find	out	what	mines	you	may	be	facing	and
act	accordingly.
Detecting	Mines
Mines	vary	in	scale	from	anti-personnel	weapons	such	as	the	IJS	gravel	mine,	shaped
like	and	little	bigger	than	a	teabag,	to	massive	anti-tank	mines	designed	to	pierce	armour
plate	 and	 destroy	 a	 60-ton	 armoured	 vehicle.	 The	 sheer	 diversity	 of	 modern	 mines	 rules
out	 any	 single	 answer	 to	 them.	 All	 you	 can	 do	 is	 to	 employ	 as	 many	 techniques	 and
procedures	 as	 possible.	 Each	 one	 provides	 a	 degree	 of	 safety;	 combined,	 they	 can
significantly	weaken	a	powerful	weapon.
Military	 counter-mine	 operations	 consist	 of	 detection	 of	 individual	 mines;	 breaching
and	 clearing	 minefields;	 sowing	 a	 cleared	 enemy	 minefield	 with	 your	 own	 mines;
prevention	 of	 enemy	 mining;	 and	 detection	 of	 enemy	 mine-laying.	 In	 combat	 you	 must
make	 full	 use	 of	 all	 intelligence-gathering	 resources	 to	 obtain	 enemy	 mine	 information.
This	will	enable	you	to	plan	the	use	of	sensors,	aggressive	counter-mining	or	other	tactics
as	necessary	to	defeat	his	efforts.	There	are	a	number	of	basic	rules	to	surviving	the	mined
battlefield:
Denial	of	opportunity
Aggressive	patrolling	prevents	the	enemy	laying	his	mines.	The	effects	of	patrols	can	be
increased	with	night	vision	aids	and	sentry	or	scout	dogs.	In	addition,	sensors	can	be	used
on	major	routes	and	areas	where	enemy	mining	is	heavy;	sensors	can	alert	quick-reaction
forces	 to	 move	 in	 on	 the	 threatened	 area,	 or	 can	 be	 used	 to	 bring	 fire	 on	 the	 enemy.
However,	 US	 forces	 in	 Vietnam	 never	 really	 found	 an	 answer	 to	 local	 guerrillas	 mining
the	roads		the	infantry	manpower	needed	for	intensive	patrolling	was	seldom	available.
South	African	forces	were	painfully	aware	how	easy	it	is	to	mine	isolated	roads	near	their
borders,	and	consequently	developed	mine-resistant	vehicles	designed	to	survive	anti-tank
mines.
Denial	of	material
The	 enemy	 may	 rely	 on	 captured	 material	 for	 this	 conduct	 of	 mine	 warfare.	 This	 is
especially	true	in	guerrilla	warfare:	in	Vietnam,	many	Vietcong	booby	traps	used	captured
American	 ordnance.	 VC	 sappers	 were	 also	 known	 to	 infiltrate	 American	 perimeters
protected	 with	 Claymore	 mines	 and	 reverse	 them,	 so	 that	 they	 exploded	 in	 the	 wrong
direction.	Strict	measures	must	be	taken	to	deny	the	enemy	all	materials	that	can	be	used
for	mine	warfare.
Intelligence
There	must	be	a	complete	system	for	reporting	mine	incidents.	Analysis	of	reports	may	be
combined	 with	 communication	 intelligence	 sources.	 The	 purpose	 is	 to	 reveal	 areas	 of
heavy	mining	by	the	enemy	as	well	as	the	types	of	mines	and	firing	devices	used.
Training
Proper	 training	 reduces	 casualties	 from	 mines	 and	 booby	 traps.	 Intensive	 unit-level
training	 should	 be	 conducted	 on	 how	 the	 enemy	 emplaces	 and	 camouflages	 these
weapons.
Protective	measures
These	 measures	 may	 include	 the	 wearing	 of	 body	 armour	 and	 helmets	 by	 sweep	 teams,
sandbagging	the	flooring	of	vehicles	and	requiring	the	occupants	to	keep	their	arms	and
legs	inside.	In	the	South	African	Army	it	was	a	chargeable	offence	not	to	be	strapped	into
your	harness	when	riding	in	a	Buffel-type	APC.	Soldiers	on	foot	must	avoid	bunching	up
at	the	site	of	a	mine	detonation:	the	enemy	may	have	placed	other	mines	to	take	advantage
of	this	natural	tendency.
Search
Detection	of	mines	is	an	action	performed	by	soldiers	in	all	phases	of	combat;	search	is	a
more	 deliberate	 action	 taken	 by	 single	 soldiers,	 teams	 or	 small	 units	 to	 locate	 mines	 or
minefields.	Do	not	wear	sunglasses	when	looking	for	mines:	with	them	you	are	less	able
to	detect	trip-wires	and	camouflage.
Be	alert	for	trip-wires	in	these	places:
			on	the	shoulders	of	roads	at	likely	ambush	sites
			near	known	or	suspected	anti-tank	or	anti-vehicle	mines
			across	the	best	route	through	dense	plant	growth
Probing
Probing	 is	 a	 way	 of	 detecting	 mines	 by	 piercing	 the	 earth	 with	 a	 sharp	 but	 non-metallic
object	 	 e.g.	 a	 pointed	 stick.	 It	 is	 slow	 and	 hard	 work,	 but	 is	 probably	 the	 most	 reliable
way	to	find	mines.
When	probing	follow	this	procedure:
1.	Move	on	your	hands	and	knees	or	stay	prone.	Look	and	feel	upward	and	forward	for
trip-wires	or	pressure	prongs.	Keep	your	sleeves	rolled	up	and	remove	watches	and
rings		your	sense	of	touch	must	be	at	its	keenest.
2.	After	looking	and	feeling	the	ground,	probe	every	five	centimetres	across	a	one-metre
frontage.	Press	the	probe	gently	into	the	ground	at	an	angle	of	less	than	45	degrees
from	horizontal.	Never	push	the	probe	straight	down	or	you	may	detonate	a	pressure
mine.
3.	If	the	probe	wont	go	in	freely,	the	soil	must	be	picked	away	with	the	tip	of	the	probe
and	the	loose	earth	or	stones	removed	by	hand.
4.	If	you	touch	a	solid	object,	stop	probing,	remove	the	earth	by	hand	and	check	it	out.
5.	If	you	find	a	mine,	remove	just	enough	of	the	surrounding	soil	to	see	what	type	it	is.
Then	report	it.
6.	As	you	probe	your	way	forward,	the	cleared	lane	must	be	marked	for	the	following
troops,	and	mines	you	have	located	must	be	clearly	signposted.
Caution:	If	you	know	or	suspect	the	enemy	is	using	magnetically	influenced	fuses,	make
sure	 no-one	 is	 carrying	 anything	 made	 of	 iron	 or	 steel	 in	 the	 vicinity	 of	 the	 mines.	 This
means	no	steel	helmets,	bayonets,	rifles	etc.
DETECTION
Remember:
The	best	way	of	detecting	mines	is	by	direct	vision,	combined	with	a	knowledge	of
minelaying	 methods.	 On	 the	 principle	 of	 setting	 a	 thief	 to	 catch	 a	 thief,	 if	 you
understand	how	to	plant	mines	properly	you	will	have	a	much	better	grasp	of	mine
detection.	 Sweep	 teams	 made	 up	 of	 trained	 observers,	 men	 with	 electronic
detectors,	 and	 probers	 have	 proved	 highly	 effective,	 but	 security	 forces	 must	 be
deployed	to	the	flanks	and	rear	of	sweep	teams	to	avoid	ambush.	Mine	and	tunnel
dogs	 have	 been	 used	 with	 success	 to	 detect	 booby	 traps,	 trip	 wires,	 unexploded
ordnance,	punji	pits	and	arms	caches,	as	well	as	enemy	troops.	These	dogs	should
be	used	with	other	detection	systems,	not	as	a	single	system.
WEAPONRY
Special	 Forces	 soldiers	 are	 not	 only	 trained	 to	 use	 the	 weapons	 of	 their	 country	 and	 its
allies,	but	are	also	familiarized	with	the	armaments	of	the	enemy.	In	a	firefight,	they	may
need	 to	 grab	 whatever	 is	 to	 hand.	 The	 range	 of	 armaments	 available	 to	 Special	 Forces
soldiers	is	vast,	and	individual	troopers	may	have	personal	favourites;	that	said,	some	arms
are	perennials	among	Special	Forces	soldiers	of	the	West.	If	you	are	in	the	military	or	a
reserve	force	 take	 every	 opportunity	 to	 familiarize	 yourself	 with	 and	 practise	 with	 these
weapons.	If	you	are	not	yet	in	the	military,	read	up	on	them:	no-one	ever	failed	selection
for	knowing	too	much	about	arms	and	military	history.	Be	keen.
FN	SCAR	STD
Assault	rifle	chambered	in	7.62	x	51	mm	NATO	calibre	and	fitted	with	16-inch	barrel	as
standard;	this	can	be	replaced	with	a	short	13	barrel	for	close-quarter	combat	in	less	than
five	minutes.	The	rifle	is	then	called	SCAR-H	CQC.
Browning	Hi-Power
A	 pistol	 with	 pedigree,	 being	 originally	 commissioned	 by	 the	 French	 Army	 from	 John
Moses	 Browning	 himself.	 First	 produced	 in	 Belgium,	 on	 the	 Nazi	 occupation	 of	 that
country	it	was	issued	to	the	Wehrmacht	as	Pistole	640(b);	the	Hi-Power	(sometimes	High
Power)	has	long	been	popular	with	covert	operations	groups	such	as	the	SAS.
AW50
The	 Accuracy	 International	 AW50	 (L121A1)	 sniper	 rifle	 can,	 when	 loaded	 with
appropriate	ammunition,	become	an	anti-material	weapon	capable	of	neutralizing	a	variety
of	 hard	 and	 soft	 targets.	 The	 penetrating	 power	 of	 the	 AW50	 means	 it	 can	 be	 used	 to
engage	targets	hiding	behind	cover.
M72	66	mm	LAW
The	M72	Light	Anti-Tank	Weapon	is	the	portable,	one-shot	replacement	for	the	bazooka.
It	comprises	a	rocket	packed	inside	a	launcher	that	is	made	up	of	two	tubes,	one	inside	the
other,	the	outer	one	being	both	container	and	firing	mechanism.	To	fire	the	LAW,	the	inner
tube	is	telescoped	out	towards	the	rear.	As	the	warhead	emerges	from	the	tube,	fins	spring
out	from	the	base	to	stabilize	its	flight.	The	launcher	is	then	discarded.	The	high-explosive
anti-tank	shell	is	activated	on	impact.
FIM-92	Stinger
The	 American-built	 FIM-92	 Stinger	 is	 a	 shoulder-held	 anti-aircraft	 launcher	 of	 heatseeking	 missiles.	 It	 is	 used	 widely	 by	 Special	 Forces,	 conventional	 and	 guerrilla	 forces.
The	supplying	of	Stingers	to	the	Afghan	Mujahideen	in	the	1980s	enabled	them	to	turn	the
war	against	the	Soviet	occupiers.
Glock 17
MEDICAL	SKILLS
All	Special	Forces	troopers	receive	a	thorough	grounding	in	medical	and	health	skills	(and
some	will	go	on	to	become	medical	specialists).	After	all,	it	is	the	indispensable	condition
of	 being	 a	 warrior	 that	 you	 can	 look	 after	 yourself	 and	 your	 buddies.	 Also,	 since	 the
1960s,	part	of	the	hearts	and	minds	approach	of	Special	Forces	has	required	operatives	to
give	medical	and	health	advice	to	the	people	they	work	amongst.
Field	Sanitation
In	 war,	 the	 number	 of	 casualties	 due	 to	 enemy	 action	 has	 always	 been	 exceeded	 by	 the
number	 caused	 by	 illness,	 and	 similar	 problems	 often	 arise	 on	 expeditions	 and	 military
exercises.	Very	often	this	is	due	to	bad	hygiene	that	leads	to	stomach	upsets	and	diarrhoea.
You	can	avoid	illness	by	taking	proper	preventive	measures.	You	must	be	fit	to	start	with,
maintain	personal	hygiene	and	change	into	clean	clothes	as	often	as	possible.	Pay	attention
to	food	and	water,	and	dispose	of	waste	carefully.
General	Health
Before	 setting	 out	 on	 any	 form	 of	 expedition	 or	 training	 you	 must	 be	 in	 good	 general
health:	if	you	are	suffering	from	flu	or	a	stomach	upset,	for	example,	these	are	likely	to	get
worse.	Also,	if	you	are	suffering	from	or	just	recovering	from	an	infectious	disease	you
may	get	worse	yourself	and	will	almost	certainly	pass	it	on	to	others.	Make	sure	your	teeth
and	gums	are	in	good	condition.	Many	a	soldier	on	operations	or	training	has	had	to	be
evacuated	because	of	dental	trouble.
Personal	hygiene
1.	Keep	as	clean	as	possible,	paying	particular	attention	to	your	feet:	these	must	be
washed	daily	and	dusted	with	powder.
2.	Clean	your	teeth	regularly.	If	you	dont	have	a	toothbrush	and	paste	use	a	twig	and
salted	water.
3.	Continue	to	shave	every	day,	even	though	its	easier	not	to	bother.	But	avoid	aftershave,	not	just	for	practical	reasons	but	because	it	will	dry	on	your	skin	and	make	it
sore.
4.	Change	into	clean	clothes	as	often	as	possible,	and	change	your	socks	every	day.
Natural	fibres	such	as	wool	and	cotton	will	breathe	and	allow	sweat	to	evaporate.	If
you	are	out	for	any	length	of	time	you	will	have	to	wash	your	clothes:	you	can	buy
travellers	clothes-washing	liquid	in	a	tube,	which	will	work	in	cold	water.
Urinal
Dig	a	pit,	fill	with	stones	or	gravel	and	cover,	but	insert	a	wide	tube	or	funnel.	This	sort	of
pit	allows	urine	to	drain	quickly	into	the	earth	rather	than	create	a	foul-smelling	swamp	in
camp.	Place	some	obvious	marker	on	the	spot	so	you	can	find	it	at	night.
Water
In	Britain	and	the	USA	you	can	drink	tap	water,	but	this	is	not	necessarily	the	case	in	the
rest	of	the	world.	Even	in	Europe,	although	most	indoor	taps	are	safe,	those	in	farmyards
may	not	be.
Never	assume	that	river	or	stream	water	is	safe,	even	if	it	looks	clear.	Any	water	that
you	 cannot	 be	 sure	 about	 must	 be	 purified	 by	 boiling	 or	 by	 adding	 water-purification
tablets.	These	will	be	on	issue	or	you	can	buy	them	from	camping	shops.
All	water	that	is	used	for	drinking	and	cooking	should	be	treated.	It	is	not	necessary	to
purify	water	for	washing,	but	avoid	it	if	its	obviously	polluted.
Field	latrines
Shallow	trench	latrines	are	one	way	of	dealing	with	the	approximately	350	kg	of	faeces
produced	 every	 day	 by	 an	 infantry	 battalion.	 This	 assumes	 the	 troops	 are	 eating	 the	 24hour	ration	pack,	which	tends	to	bung	you	up.	If	fresh	food	was	available	then	the	quantity
would	 increase.	 The	 5-	 or	 6-metre	 deep,	 water-filled	 medieval-style	 pit	 works	 fine	 until
some	idiot	pours	disinfectant	in,	killing	the	bacteria	that	make	the	pit	work.
Illnesses
Hypothermia
Simply	means	sub-normal	body	temperature.	It	is	often	called	exposure	when	it	happens
outside	and	hypothermia	when	it	affects	old	people	indoors,	but	it	is	the	same	thing.	There
are	a	number	of	factors	that	may	lead	to	it:
1.	Lack	of	food:	Food	provides	the	energy	for	the	body	to	produce	heat.	To	combat	cold,
the	calorific	value	of	the	food	needs	to	be	increased.	Lack	of	food	will	lower	the
ability	to	cope	with	cold.
2.	Poor	clothing:	In	cold	weather,	you	need	extra	clothing.	Multiple	layers	that	trap	air
are	the	most	effective	way	of	retaining	body	heat.	You	lose	a	lot	of	heat	through	your
head	and	feet,	so	make	sure	you	have	proper	headgear	and	footwear.
3.	Dirty	clothing:	Wet,	damp	and	dirty	clothing	is	a	poor	insulator	and	increases	heat
loss.	Keep	your	clothes	clean,	and	remove	damp	or	wet	clothing	during	rest	periods
and	dry	it	out.	This	applies	particularly	to	footwear:	socks	must	be	changed	and	boots
allowed	to	dry	as	much	as	possible.
4.	Alcohol:	Alcohol	causes	the	blood	vessels	in	the	skin	to	dilate	which	increases	heat
loss.	Alcohol	may	make	you	feel	warmer,	but	in	reality	it	has	the	opposite	effect.
The	treatment	for	hypothermia	requires	the	casualty	to	be	warmed	slowly.	Change	any
wet	 clothes	 and	 place	 him	 in	 a	 warm	 environment	 in	 a	 bed	 or	 sleeping	 bag.	 It	 may	 be
necessary	 for	 someone	 else	 to	 get	 in	 as	 well	 to	 provide	 gentle	 heat.	 Cover	 his	 head	 to
reduce	heat	loss.	Moderately	hot,	sweet	drinks	will	provide	energy	and	gradually	raise	the
temperature.	Do	not	give	alcohol.	Evacuate	the	casualty	as	soon	as	possible.
Snow	blindness
This	 is	 a	 temporary	 blindness	 caused	 by	 direct	 and	 reflected	 light.	 Snow	 is	 a	 very	 good
reflector	 and	 will	 exacerbate	 the	 effects	 of	 the	 sun.	 The	 eyes	 become	 sensitive	 to	 glare,
blinking	increases,	and	the	eyes	begin	to	water	and	feel	irritable.	Sight	begins	to	have	a
pinkish	tinge	and	eventually	the	vision	is	covered	by	what	appears	to	be	a	red	curtain.	At
the	same	time	the	pain	increases,	so	it	can	be	a	very	frightening	condition.	Fortunately,	the
eyes	will	recover,	given	time,	if	they	are	covered	with	pads	and	rested.	It	can	be	avoided
altogether	by	wearing	proper	sunglasses.
Sunburn
Just	 as	 the	 light	 effects	 of	 the	 sun	 on	 the	 eyes	 are	 increased	 in	 snow,	 so	 are	 the	 tanning
effects	on	exposed	skin.	You	may	need	to	use	cream,	especially	on	your	lips.
Frostbite
Frostbite	is	what	happens	when	body	tissues	freeze,	and	it	is	your	extremities	that	are	most
vulnerable	to	attack.	Unfortunately	the	onset	of	frostbite	can	often	go	unnoticed	until	it	is
too	 late.	 The	 freezing	 prevents	 body	 fluids	 reaching	 the	 affected	 tissues,	 and	 they	 will
eventually	 die.	 When	 this	 happens	 they	 will	 slowly	 turn	 black	 and	 drop	 off,	 but	 the
damage	is	done	long	before	this	stage	is	reached.	In	the	early	stages	the	affected	parts	are
cold,	 firm,	 numb	 and	 marble	 white.	 It	 is	 essential	 to	 recognize	 frostbite	 at	 this	 stage	 to
avoid	lasting	damage.
To	 treat	 frostbite,	 use	 body	 heat	 to	 warm	 the	 affected	 part,	 while	 encasing	 the	 whole
body	 in	 a	 sleeping	 bag.	 Hot	 drinks	 may	 be	 given	 and	 the	 casualty	 should	 then	 be
evacuated.
DO	NOT:
1.	Rub	the	injured	part.
Immersion	foot
Immersion	 foot,	 also	 known	 as	 trench	 foot,	 is	 caused	 by	 a	 lack	 of	 blood	 circulation	 and
prolonged	exposure	to	wet	conditions.	There	are	three	stages:
1.	The	feet	become	white,	numb	and	cold.
2.	The	feet	become	red,	hot	and	painful.
3.	The	feet	can	become	swollen,	develop	cellulitis	(a	form	of	inflammation)	and
eventually	gangrene.
Prevention	involves	various	measures:
1.	Keep	your	circulation	going	by	exercise.
2.	Do	not	restrict	your	circulation	with	tight	trousers	or	with	tight	binding	round	the
bottom	of	trousers.
3.	Keep	your	feet	as	dry	as	possible.
4.	Change	socks	daily	and	use	powder	on	your	feet.
5.	Keep	your	feet	clean.
Properly	 cared-for	 feet	 should	 give	 you	 little	 trouble.	 Should	 someone	 exhibit	 the
symptoms	of	immersion	foot:
1.	Remove	boots	and	socks	and	warm	and	dry	the	casualtys	feet,	handling	them	gently.
Do	not	rub	or	massage	them	or	expose	them	to	fire.
2.	Elevate	the	feet.
3.	Put	the	casualty	into	a	sleeping	bag.
4.	Give	hot	drinks.
5.	Give	Paracetamol.
6.	Evacuate	the	casualty	as	a	stretcher	case.
Health	Overseas
A	lot	of	military	training	is	still	carried	out	overseas.	Years	ago,	troops	went	out	by	sea,
and	 the	 long	 voyage	 would	 give	 them	 time	 to	 acclimatize	 to	 the	 tropical	 environment.
Nowadays,	flying	out	means	that	you	can	be	deposited	in	a	tropical	country	without	any
period	of	acclimatization.	Heat-related	illness	can	be	a	danger	even	without	exceptionally
hot	 weather.	 Strenuous	 training	 when	 unfit	 in	 warm	 weather	 can	 cause	 it	 	 and	 heat
Body	temperatures
The	body	temperature	must	be	maintained	close	to	its	norm	of	about	37C	to	stay	healthy.
In	addition	to	heat	from	the	sun,	and	reflected	heat	from	the	sun,	and	reflected	heat	from
the	ground	and	surrounding	objects,	any	physical	activity	produces	heat.	To	maintain	the
normal	body	temperature,	this	heat	must	be	lost.	This	is	done	by	sweating,	which	causes
heat	to	be	released	from	the	body	as	it	evaporates.	In	a	climate	where	the	temperature	is
over	30C	a	man	may	lose	10-15	litres	of	sweat	a	day,	even	without	exerting	himself.	This
amount	of	water	needs	to	be	replaced.
In	 addition	 to	 the	 water	 loss,	 there	 will	 be	 salt	 lost	 in	 your	 sweat.	 If	 the	 body	 is	 not
acclimatized,	 this	 loss	 can	 be	 serious	 and	 can	 result	 in	 heat	 cramps.	 Salt	 added	 to	 food
should	 be	 sufficient	 to	 replace	 this,	 but	 it	 should	 not	 be	 added	 to	 water	 without	 medical
advice.	There	is,	however,	a	safe	alternative	which	can	be	added	to	your	water	bottle.	This
is	Dioralyte,	a	compound	of	the	minerals	and	salts	lost	through	sweating,	commonly	used
in	the	rehydration	of	patients	suffering	from	diarrhoea.
Acclimatization
A	 period	 of	 acclimatization	 helps	 the	 body	 to	 adjust	 to	 the	 heat;	 the	 main	 effect	 is	 to
reduce	the	salt	loss	in	the	sweat	to	about	half	its	previous	levels.	The	blood	vessels	on	the
skin	dilate,	so	increasing	the	amount	of	heat	loss.	This	normally	takes	about	three	weeks.
Fluid	intake
No-one	 can	 be	 trained	 to	 do	 without	 water;	 it	 is	 dangerous	 and	 will	 make	 you	 ill.
Obviously,	 though,	 your	 liquid	 intake	 does	 not	 have	 to	 be	 restricted	 to	 pure	 water.	 Fruit
juices	and	tea	are	just	as	good.	Be	careful	with	alcoholic	drinks,	since	alcohol	is	a	diuretic
and	 causes	 you	 to	 pass	 more	 fluid	 as	 urine	 than	 you	 take	 in.	 It	 is	 possible	 to	 raise	 your
body	 fluid	 levels	 before	 an	 arduous	 exercise	 by	 drinking	 more	 than	 normal	 (but	 not
alcohol)	in	the	12	to	24	hours	before	the	start	of	the	exercise.
Shelter
Your	shelter	should	be	light	in	colour	to	reflect	the	heat,	and	should	allow	air	to	circulate
and	provide	shade.
General	health
Your	 general	 health	 is	 important.	 Personal	 hygiene	 is	 essential,	 and	 you	 must	 pay
particular	attention	to	your	skin	and	feet.	If	youre	overweight	your	body	will	be	less	able
to	 respond	 effectively	 to	 heat;	 strenuous	 physical	 activity	 can	 cause	 heat	 illness	 even	 in
temperate	climates	for	those	who	are	unfit	or	unused	to	it.
Heat	Illnesses
Sunburn
Sunburn	is	a	form	of	superficial	burn	that	can	be	prevented.	One	day	in	the	sun	will	not
give	 you	 a	 tan,	 but	 it	 could	 give	 you	 serious	 burns.	 Wear	 clothes	 that	 cover	 as	 much	 of
your	skin	as	possible,	and	do	not	spend	too	much	time	in	the	sun;	half	an	hour	on	the	first
day	is	more	than	enough.
Prickly	heat
Some	people	are	more	susceptible	than	others	to	this	irritable	condition	of	the	skin.	Your
skin	 needs	 to	 be	 kept	 very	 clean,	 but	 soap	 can	 make	 it	 worse,	 so	 rinse	 it	 off	 thoroughly
after	washing.	Hair	must	also	be	regularly	washed	but	well	rinsed.	Loose	clean	clothing
should	be	worn,	including	clean	underclothes.
Heat	cramps
Heat	cramps	are	caused	by	a	lack	of	salt.	They	can	happen	in	any	part	of	your	body	and
can	be	quite	severe,	but	are	easily	prevented	by	ensuring	that	there	is	adequate	salt	in	your
diet.	If	they	do	occur,	seek	medical	advice.
Heat	exhaustion
This	can	happen	when	youre	working	hard	in	relatively	high	temperatures,	and	is	more
likely	to	happen	if	youre	overweight	or	unfit.	Excessive	sweating	causes	abnormal	fluid
and	salt	loss,	leading	to	circulatory	failure.	This	results	in
1.	Headache,	nausea	and	dizziness.
2.	Pale,	clammy	skin.
3.	Weak,	rapid	pulse	progressing	to	hot,	flushed,	dry	skin	and	full,	bounding	pulse.
4.	Cramps.	The	casualty	will	have	the	signs	of	shock	plus	heat	cramps.	The	body
temperature	may	be	normal	or	slightly	raised.	If	not	treated,	the	casualty	may	become
unconscious.
To	treat	heat	exhaustion	lie	the	casualty	down	in	a	cool	place.	Remove	as	much	of	their
clothing	as	possible	and	give	them	frequent	drinks	of	water	to	which	salt	has	been	added;
half	a	teaspoon	of	salt	or	sodium	bicarbonate	to	a	litre.	Get	them	to	drink	as	much	as	you
can	 and	 get	 medical	 help	 as	 soon	 as	 possible.	 In	 combat,	 if	 the	 casualty	 is	 unconscious,
insert	the	rectal	drip	set	to	restore	the	fluid	balance,	since	at	least	60%	of	water	is	absorbed
by	the	colon.
Heatstroke
Heatstroke	is	a	very	serious	condition	that	if	not	recognized	and	treated	quickly	can	result
in	severe	brain	damage	and	death.	The	heat	regulating	mechanism	of	the	body	ceases	to
work	 and	 the	 temperature	 keeps	 on	 rising.	 The	 brain	 literally	 cooks.	 The	 signs	 of
heatstroke	include:
1.	Disturbed	behaviour
2.	Delirium,	partial	loss	of	consciousness	and	coma
3.	Tiredness,	headache	and	irritability
4.	Nausea	and	vomiting
5.	Reduced	or	absence	of	sweating
6.	Strong,	bounding	pulse
7.	Hot,	flushed	and	dry	skin
The	casualtys	temperature	must	be	reduced	by	whatever	means	are	possible.	He	should	be
moved	into	a	cool,	dry	place	and	have	his	clothing	removed,	and	then	be	sponged	down
with	tepid	water,	or	if	possible	wrapped	in	a	wet	sheet.	In	both	cases,	fan	the	body	to	assist
cooling.	 Give	 frequent	 small	 drinks	 of	 water.	 Get	 him	 proper	 medical	 help	 without	 any
delay.
The	attack
Once	you	are	across	the	effective	fire	line,	winning	the	firefight	and	fire-and-manoeuvring
forward,	 you	 cannot	 afford	 to	 stop.	 If	 someone	 gets	 hit	 and	 you	 are	 near	 him	 there	 is	 a
strong	temptation	to	go	and	help,	especially	if	he	is	making	a	lot	of	noise.	The	result	is	that
more	and	more	people	are	drawn	into	casualty	handling,	less	fire	goes	down	on	the	enemy
and	his	fire	gets	heavier	and	more	accurate.
As	more	people	get	hit,	you	lose	the	firefight	and	the	attack	fails.	Withdrawing	from	the
EFL	is	as	expensive	as	fighting	through,	so	you	might	as	well	remove	the	source	of	injury
by	killing	the	enemy	and	let	your	reserve	platoons	give	first	aid	as	they	move	up	behind
you.
Patrols
Casualties	incurred	on	the	route	out	will	be	left	with	a	guard,	if	your	patrol	has	sufficient
strength,	and	the	standby	patrol	will	be	tasked	to	collect	them.	If	youre	on	the	route	back,
you	take	your	casualties	with	you.	If	youre	in	contact	with	the	enemy,	you	must	take	your
casualties	back	with	you	as	you	break	contact.	If	you	are	going	to	leave	them,	you	must	be
100%	sure	that	they	are	dead.
Generally	recce	patrols	will	not	be	large	enough	to	take	many	casualties	and	go	on	with
the	 mission.	 Fighting	 patrols	 are	 intended	 for	 combat	 and	 are	 therefore	 large	 enough	 to
take	casualties.
Defence
If	someone	in	a	four-man	main	battle	trench	gets	hit,	one	of	the	others	gives	first	aid	while
the	remaining	two	continue	to	fire.	If,	however,	the	enemy	has	closed	to	within	grenadechucking	distance,	its	not	a	good	idea	for	anyone	to	stop	firing.
Do	 not	 move	 around	 the	 position	 to	 help	 other	 trenches	 unless	 you	 have	 dug
communication	 trenches.	 Forward	 slope	 positions	 are	 very	 difficult	 to	 move	 casualties
back	from,	compared	to	reverse	slope.	The	best	approach	is	to	carry	out	immediate	first
aid	in	situ	and	make	the	casualty	as	comfortable	as	possible	in	the	shelter	bay	until	rounds
stop	flying.
Internal	security
The	terrorist	or	insurgent	uses	casualties	to	create	more	casualties;	he	will	aim	to	injure	or
kill	one	man	or	unit	to	draw	the	remainder	into	an	ambush,	or	near	command-detonated
mines	or	a	sniper.	Watch	out!
The	Four	Bs
When	 carrying	 out	 first	 aid,	 remember	 the	 four	 Bs	 	 Breathing,	 Bleeding,	 Breaks	 and
Burns.	Be	positive	and	dont	fiddle	about.	First	of	all	decide	which	casualty	to	treat	first.
The	order	of	priority	of	injuries	to	treat	is:
1.	Stoppage	of	breathing
2.	Bleeding	wounds
3.	Broken	bones
4.	Burns
Remember	also	that	the	casualty	who	is	making	the	most	noise	is	rarely	the	most	seriously
injured;	dont	make	the	mistake	of	treating	a	broken	leg	while	a	head	injury	case	quietly
dies.
You	must	deal	with	breathing	first,	because	if	a	casualty	has	an	obstructed	airway	and
cannot	 breathe	 he	 will	 die,	 however	 well	 you	 treat	 his	 other	 injuries.	 The	 human	 brain
starts	to	suffer	permanent	damage	after	about	four	minutes	without	oxygen,	so	you	must
get	a	casualty	breathing	again	as	quickly	as	you	can.
For	all	casualties:
1.	Assess	the	tactical	situation;	do	not	endanger	yourself.	If	the	enemy	are	still	in
business	continue	firing,	keep	under	cover	and	look	out	for	falling	masonry,	mines,
booby	traps	etc.	If	a	vehicle	is	involved,	switch	off	the	fuel	supply.
2.	Assess	the	casualty;	check	him	out	completely	and	remove	him	from	danger	if
possible.	At	least	drag	him	into	cover,	and	give	protection	if	necessary	from	chemical
weapons.
3.	Deal	with	priorities		remember	the	four	Bs.
4.	Reassure	the	casualty,	no	matter	how	revolting	his	injury,	and	tell	him	what	you	are
doing	while	you	work	on	him.
5.	Try	to	keep	him	warm	and	dry.
6.	Give	morphine	only	for	pain.
7.	Never	leave	the	casualty	alone.
8.	Take	the	casualtys	ammo	and	any	specialist	equipment	he	may	be	carrying.
Remember	 that	 anyone	 with	 neck	 or	 spinal	 injuries	 must	 not	 be	 moved,	 and	 you	 will
need	further	assistance.
Breathing
Check	his	mouth
A	casualty	with	an	obstructed	airway	may	have	stopped	breathing	completely,	but	you	are
more	likely	to	find	him	choking.	First,	look	into	the	casualtys	mouth	and	extract	anything
obstructing	his	throat.	You	must	not	be	squeamish:	remove	whatever	is	there,	even	if	it	is
covered	 with	 blood	 or	 vomit.	 Sometimes	 the	 tongue	 can	 fall	 back	 and	 block	 the	 throat.
You	clear	the	casualtys	airway	by	extending	his	neck;	with	him	flat	on	his	back,	tilt	his
head	 right	 back.	 If	 he	 doesnt	 start	 to	 breathe	 then	 you	 must	 resuscitate	 him;	 otherwise,
treat	him	as	an	unconscious	casualty.
There	are	five	main	causes	of	an	obstructed	airway:
1.	Suffocation
2.	Teeth,	including	false	teeth
3.	Swelling	of	the	mouth	or	throat
4.	Blood,	water	or	vomit
5.	Bone	or	tissue	injuries
Resuscitation	Techniques
CAUTION
These	 techniques	 can	 harm	 a	 casualty	 if	 improperly	 performed.	 The	 information
given	here	is	for	familiarisation	only	and	formal	training	should	be	obtained	before
you	attempt	to	use	them.
Exhaled	Air	Resuscitation	(EAR)
This	is	the	best	way	to	get	a	casualty	breathing	again,	and	is	best	learned	on	the	Resusci
Anne	type	of	dummy:	do	not	practise	on	another	person.	Here	are	the	steps	to	follow	for
EAR:
Is	he	asleep?	First,	make	sure	that	the	casualty	is	indeed	not	breathing.	This	may	seem
obvious,	but	there	have	been	cases	of	people	trying	to	resuscitate	someone	who	is	simply
asleep.	 Look	 carefully	 at	 the	 casualty.	 Is	 he/she	 unconscious?	 Can	 you	 wake	 him	 up?	 If
not,	is	his	chest	moving?
Do	 not	 spend	 too	 long	 making	 up	 your	 mind:	 every	 moment	 is	 vital.	 Follow	 the
procedure	given	here,	and	make	sure	the	casualtys	chest	is	rising	each	time	you	blow.	If	it
isnt,	you	are	not	doing	it	correctly.
1		Pulse:	Check	the	casualtys	pulse	at	his	carotid	artery.	If	his	heart	has	stopped	you
will	need	to	perform	cardiac	compression	as	well	as	resuscitation.
2		Airway:	To	perform	resuscitation,	place	the	casualty	on	his	back	and	extend	his	neck
by	tilting	his	head	back.	Check	his	airway	and	remove	any	obstructions.	Loosen	any
tight	clothing	around	his	neck.
3		Inflate	his	chest:	Pinch	his	nose,	take	a	deep	breath	and	breathe	hard	into	his	mouth,
hard	enough	to	make	his	chest	rise.	Then	remove	your	mouth	and	allow	his	chest	to
fall.	Repeat	every	six	seconds	and	continue	until	he	begins	to	breathe.	If	EAR	is	still
not	working,	check	that	his	airway	is	still	clear	and	that	his	neck	is	extended	properly.
Dont	be	squeamish.	The	most	difficult	part	of	EAR	is	getting	started.	The	casualty	may
have	other	injuries;	there	may	be	blood	and	vomit	in	and	around	his	mouth.	He	may	even
be	dead.	But	apart	from	a	quick	wipe	around	his	mouth	there	is	no	time	to	be	lost;	without
prompt	EAR,	the	casualty	will	die.
When	the	heart	stops.	 If	 a	 casualty	 has	 stopped	 breathing	 his	 heart	 may	 have	 stopped
too.	 When	 you	 first	 examine	 the	 casualty,	 check	 his	 pulse	 by	 feeling	 the	 side	 of	 his
windpipe;	you	should	be	able	to	feel	the	carotid	artery	at	work.	This	is	the	best	place	to
check,	as	a	weak	pulse	is	difficult	to	detect	at	the	wrist.
External	Cardiac	Compression	(ECC)
1		Check	pulse:	Check	the	casualtys	pulse	at	his	carotid	artery	and	if	there	is	no	pulse
commence	ECC.	NEVER	perform	ECC	on	someone	whose	heart	is	still	beating.
2		Position:	Position	the	casualty	as	for	EAR;	neck	extended	and	airway	clear.	Now	find
the	lower	end	of	the	sternum	(breastbone).
3		Your	hands:	With	both	your	hands	palm	down,	place	one	on	top	of	the	other	with	the
fingers	interlaced.	Place	the	heel	of	the	lower	hand	three	fingers	width	up	from	the
bottom	of	the	sternum.
4		Commence	compression:	Push	down	with	the	weight	of	your	body,	pushing	the
casualtys	breastbone	towards	his	spine.	Lift	your	hand	to	allow	the	chest	to	recoil.
Repeat	60	times	per	minute,	checking	the	pulse	every	fifth	push.
WARNING
You	must	never	practise	External	Cardiac	Compression	on	a	real	person:	it	is	very
dangerous.	 Never	 start	 or	 continue	 to	 give	 cardiac	 massage	 to	 a	 casualty	 whose
heart	is	beating,	no	matter	how	faintly.
Bleeding
When	youve	got	the	casualty	breathing	again,	you	can	turn	your	attention	to	controlling
any	bleeding		the	second	most	common	cause	of	death	from	injury.	Bleeding	may	be	in
the	form	of	a	slow	ooze	from	the	very	smallest	of	blood	vessels,	or	a	much	more	rapid	loss
from	 a	 major	 vessel.	 If	 its	 spurting	 out,	 it	 is	 coming	 from	 an	 artery	 and	 this	 is	 very
serious.	Occasionally,	bleeding	stops	of	its	own	accord,	either	from	retraction	of	the	blood
vessels	or	clotting	of	the	blood,	but	this	is	likely	only	with	small	or	superficial	wounds.
First	steps
These	simple	measures	will	help	to	control	bleeding	in	most	cases.	Points	2	and	4	apply	to
injured	limbs.	The	most	important	factor	in	dealing	with	bleeding	is	speed!	But	make	sure
that	you	are	treating	the	most	serious	wound.	Check	over	the	whole	body	and,	in	the	case
of	gunshot	wounds,	do	not	expect	the	exit	hole	to	be	in	line	with	the	entry	point.
1			Place	the	casualty	in	a	comfortable	position:	This	reduces	the	blood	flow,	as	his
heart	will	be	making	less	effort	to	pump	blood.
2			Raise	the	limb:	This	also	reduces	the	bleeding,	but	think	carefully	before	doing	this
in	case	you	cause	further	injury.	If	in	doubt,	dont!
3			Apply	pressure	to	the	bleeding	wound:	This	will	often	stop	the	bleeding	completely.
Place	a	dressing	over	the	wound	and	apply	pressure	with	the	palm	of	your	hand.
Make	sure	the	dressing	is	big	enough,	and	use	a	sterile	one	if	available;	but	any	piece
of	clean	material	will	do.	If	you	cant	find	a	dressing	big	enough	to	cover	the	wound,
press	it	down	where	the	bleeding	is	worst.	If	bleeding	continues	despite	pressure,
apply	a	second	dressing	on	top	of	the	first.	Do	not	lift	the	first	one	to	see	what	is
happening!You	can	apply	up	to	three	dressings,	and	none	should	be	removed	until	the
casualty	gets	to	hospital.
4			Immobilize	the	limb.
Pressure	Points
Any	 place	 where	 an	 artery	 crosses	 a	 bone	 close	 to	 the	 skin	 is	 a	 pressure	 point:	 pressure
applied	 at	 these	 areas	 will,	 in	 theory,	 interrupt	 the	 blood	 flow.	 If	 the	 pressure	 point	 is
between	the	heart	and	the	bleeding	point,	you	may	be	able	to	stop	the	flow	altogether.
In	 practice,	 only	 two	 pressure	 points	 are	 of	 much	 use:	 the	 brachial	 (upper	 inner	 arm)
and	 femoral	 (groin)	 areas.	 Direct,	 firm	 pressure	 at	 these	 points	 can	 be	 used	 to	 stop
bleeding	in	the	arms	and	legs.	To	carry	out	the	procedure:
1.	Place	the	thumb	or	fingers	over	the	pressure	point.
2.	Apply	sufficient	pressure	to	stop	the	blood	flow	and	hence	the	bleeding.
3.	After	15	minutes,	slowly	release	the	pressure.
4.	If	bleeding	has	stopped	dress	the	wound.
5.	If	bleeding	starts	again,	repeat	the	process.
The	release	of	pressure	after	15	minutes	is	essential	to	allow	blood	to	reach	the	tissues
beyond	the	pressure	point;	if	this	is	not	done	they	may	be	damaged.	Resist	the	temptation
to	release	pressure	in	under	15	minutes	to	see	how	you	are	getting	on,	as	bleeding	will	not
yet	have	been	controlled.
Internal	bleeding
Internal	bleeding	is	harder	to	deal	with.	It	may	have	been	caused	by	a	severe	blow	to	the
abdomen,	 a	 crush	 injury	 to	 the	 chest,	 or	 by	 the	 blast	 effects	 of	 an	 explosion.	 Also,	 if	 a
bone	 is	 broken,	 especially	 a	 large	 one	 such	 as	 the	 femur	 (thigh	 bone),	 there	 will	 be
bleeding	in	the	surrounding	tissue.
Internal	bleeding	can	cause	any	or	all	of	the	following	symptoms:
1		Pallor
2		Cold,	clammy	skin
3		Rapid,	weak	pulse
4		Restlessness	and	weakness
Treatment	is	difficult	and	depends	on	rapid	evacuation	to	hospital.	In	the	meantime,	talk
to	the	casualty	and	make	him	as	warm	and	comfortable	as	you	can.
Chest	wounds
Chest	 injuries	 can	 be	 very	 serious	 and	 must	 be	 recognized	 and	 treated	 urgently;	 prompt
evacuation	to	proper	medical	care	is	essential.	You	can	treat	superficial	injuries	like	any
other	wound,	with	a	clean	dressing,	but	watch	out	for	these	serious	problems.
Crush	injuries
The	casualty	may	have	fractured	ribs,	often	in	several	places.	At	the	site	of	the	injury	the
chest	wall	will	no	longer	be	rigid,	and	breathing	becomes	difficult	as	the	chest	is	no	longer
effective	in	pumping	air	in	and	out	of	the	lungs.	Worse,	air	could	be	getting	moved	from
one	side	of	the	chest	and	back	again	rather	than	up	and	down	the	windpipe.	The	casualty
tries	to	overcome	this	by	taking	deeper	breaths,	which	only	makes	matters	worse.
Look	for	the	following	symptoms:
1.	Abnormal	movement	of	the	chest.
2.	Painful	and	difficult	breathing.
3.	Distress	and	anxiety.
4.	Cyanosis	(blueness)	of	the	lips	and	mouth.
5.	Signs	of	shock.
The	 aim	 of	 the	 treatment	 is	 to	 stop	 the	 abnormal	 movement	 of	 the	 chest	 wall.	 If	 the
casualty	is	unconscious,	you	should:
1.	Check	and	clear	his	airway.
2.	Place	him	in	the	three-quarters	prone	position.
3.	Place	a	hand	over	the	injured	area	to	provide	support.
4.	Place	a	layer	of	padding	over	the	area	and	secure	it	with	a	firm,	broad	bandage.
5.	Treat	for	shock.
If	he	is	conscious,	carry	out	steps	3	and	4	with	him	sitting	upright.
Open	chest	wounds
If	the	wound	is	severe	enough	there	may	be	a	hole	in	the	chest	wall.	Air	will	get	in	and	the
lung	 will	 collapse,	 and	 air	 will	 go	 in	 and	 out	 of	 the	 hole	 instead	 of	 up	 and	 down	 the
windpipe.
Look	for	the	following	symptoms:
1.	Shallow	and	difficult	breathing.
2.	The	sound	of	air	being	sucked	in	and	out	of	the	chest	wall.
3.	Bloodstained	fluid	bubbling	from	the	wound.
4.	Cyanosis	of	the	lips	and	mouth.
5.	Signs	of	shock.
The	treatment	aims	is	to	prevent	the	air	going	in	and	out	of	the	chest	wall.	Quite	simply,
you	must	plug	the	hole.	Whether	the	casualty	is	conscious	or	unconscious	you	should:
1.	Make	sure	his	airway	is	clear
2.	Seal	the	hole	in	his	chest	by	placing	a	large	dressing	over	the	wound	and	fixing	it	in
place	with	a	firm,	broad	bandage.	Make	sure	it	completely	covers	the	wound,
forming	a	seal.
3.	Place	the	casualty	on	the	injured	side	to	help	maintain	the	seal.
4.	Treat	for	shock.
Bleeding	into	the	chest
Crush	or	open	wounds	may	be	accompanied	by	bleeding	into	the	chest.	It	may	also	happen
without	 obvious	 external	 signs	 of	 injury,	 particularly	 following	 an	 explosion	 when	 the
casualty	suffers	what	is	known	as	blast	injury.
You	should	suspect	bleeding	into	the	chest	if	the	casualty:
1.	Shows	signs	of	shock.
2.	Is	coughing	up	blood.
3.	Has	difficulty	in	breathing.
Unfortunately	there	is	very	little	a	first-aider	can	do	to	treat	internal	bleeding	into	the
chest	 apart	 from	 general	 measures	 for	 the	 treatment	 of	 shock.	 The	 important	 thing	 is	 to
recognize	that	there	is	a	problem	and	arrange	for	urgent	evacuation.
Abdominal	Wounds
The	abdomen,	the	part	of	the	body	between	the	chest	and	the	pelvis,	is	often	mistakenly
referred	to	as	the	stomach.	The	stomach	is	just	one	of	the	contents	of	the	abdomen;	other
important	organs	are	the	bowels,	liver,	spleen,	kidneys	and	bladder.	An	abdominal	injury
may	 result	 in	 severe	 shock,	 and	 the	 majority	 of	 cases	 will	 require	 surgery.	 As	 well	 as
injury	to	internal	organs	there	may	be	considerable	internal	bleeding.	A	further	cause	of
trouble	is	infection,	which	is	particularly	likely	if	the	gut	is	penetrated	or	torn.
First	aid	treatment	is	very	simple.	All	you	can	do	is	make	the	patient	comfortable	and
cover	the	wound.
The	 symptoms	 of	 an	 abdominal	 wound	 are	 usually	 obvious.	 Part	 of	 the	 guts	 may	 be
sticking	out.	There	may	be	severe	bruising	to	the	abdomen	or	lower	chest,	back	or	groin.
The	 injury	 may	 be	 the	 result	 of	 a	 direct	 blow,	 or	 the	 casualty	 may	 have	 suffered	 a	 blast
injury.	Other	signs	are:
1.	Pain	or	tenderness	in	the	abdomen.
2.	Vomiting,	which	may	contain	blood.
3.	Tense	abdominal	muscles.
4.	Shock.
The	treatment	begins	by	making	the	casualty	lie	down	on	his	back	with	his	knees	drawn
up.	This	will	help	to	relax	the	muscles	and	ease	the	strain	on	the	abdomen.	If	the	patient	is
not	suffering	too	much	shock,	the	head	and	shoulders	may	also	be	raised.
Cover	the	wound	with	a	clean	dressing.	If	any	guts	or	tissues	are	sticking	out,	dont	try
to	push	them	back	in;	just	leave	them	as	they	are	and	cover	with	the	dressing.	Also,	dont
try	to	remove	the	debris	from	the	wound	or	you	will	make	matters	worse.
Do	not	give	the	casualty	any	food	or	drink,	but	protect	him	from	further	injury	and	from
wind	and	rain	and	keep	him	warm.	Arrange	for	speedy	evacuation.
WARNING:
Casualties	with	abdominal	wounds	should	not	be	given	anything	by	mouth.
Breaks	(Fractures)
After	youve	dealt	with	the	casualtys	breathing	and	bleeding,	the	third	priority	is	broken
bones.	 Fractured	 bones	 can	 cause	 serious	 injury	 or	 death,	 but	 can	 often	 be	 successfully
treated	and	a	complete	recovery	achieved.	A	great	deal	depends	on	the	first	aid	you	give
the	 casualty	 before	 he	 is	 evacuated	 for	 treatment.	 Before	 he	 can	 be	 moved	 you	 must
immobilize	the	fracture;	the	basic	principle	of	splinting	is	to	immobilize	the	joints	above
and	below	the	break.
Immobilizing
You	 must	 keep	 the	 fracture	 still	 to	 prevent	 the	 sharp	 edges	 of	 the	 broken	 bone	 moving
about.	This	achieves	three	things:
1.	Stops	further	damage	to	tissue,	muscle,	blood	vessels	and	nerves.
Types	of	fracture
1.	Open	fracture:	An	open	fracture	is	a	break	in	the	bone	and	in	the	overlying	skin	and
flesh.	The	broken	bone	may	have	punctured	the	skin	or	a	bullet	may	have	penetrated
the	skin	and	broken	the	bone.
2.	Closed	fracture:	In	a	closed	fracture	the	bone	is	broken	but	the	skin	remains	intact.
There	may	be	tissue	damage	and	the	area	is	likely	to	swell	and	later	bruise.	It	may
only	be	a	sprain,	but	you	should	assume	the	worst	and	treat	it	like	a	fracture.
If	you	have	nothing	to	construct	a	splint	with,	immobilize	an	injured	arm	by	securing	it	to
the	 casualtys	 chest.	 Slings	 can	 be	 improvised	 from	 belts	 or	 bits	 of	 shirts	 or	 blankets.
Remember to put some padding between the splint and the injured arm.
Burns
Burns	 are	 the	 last	 of	 the	 four	 Bs.	 They	 are	 an	 increasingly	 common	 type	 of	 injury,
particularly	in	tactical	military	situations	where	damage	to	vehicles	often	results	in	fire	or
explosions.	Burns	range	from	the	superficial	and	small	to	those	involving	extensive	tissue
damage.	 People	 with	 extensive	 deep	 bums	 may	 eventually	 die	 from	 them,	 but	 the	 great
majority	of	fire	deaths	result	from	damage	to	the	lungs	by	smoke	and	fumes	or	by	the	heat
of	the	fire.	People	who	have	this	sort	of	damage	may	have	little	or	nothing	in	the	way	of
visible	breathing.	In	these	cases	you	should	try	expired	air	resuscitation	until	medical	help
can	be	obtained,	but	unfortunately	this	is	often	unsuccessful.	However,	thats	no	reason	for
not	trying.
Treatment
If	 the	 casualty	 is	 on	 fire	 your	 first	 priority	 is	 to	 extinguish	 the	 flames	 Use	 water	 if
available,	or	a	blanket	to	smother	the	flames.	If	indoors	and	the	building	is	not	at	risk,	stay
inside.	Rushing	out	would	only	make	the	flames	worse.	If	he	is	not,	the	first	thing	to	do,	as
with	any	injury,	is	to	remove	the	casualty	from	the	source	of	danger.	Hopefully,	someone
else	will	extinguish	the	fire,	while	you	deal	with	him.
Wrap	 the	 casualty	 in	 a	 heavy	 material	 which	 will	 not	 catch	 fire	 and	 lay	 him	 on	 the
ground.	 Then	 remove	 any	 clothing	 which	 has	 been	 soaked	 in	 boiling	 fluid,	 but	 do	 not
remove	 burnt	 or	 charred	 clothing	 unless	 it	 is	 continuing	 to	 be	 a	 source	 of	 heat.	 If	 clean
water	is	available	immerse	the	burn	area	to	cool	it.	This	reduces	further	heat	damage	and
reduces	the	pain.
A	burn	is	a	wound	like	any	other,	and	is	treated	in	the	same	way		with	a	clean	dressing.
Cover	the	whole	area	to	prevent	infection	getting	in	and	more	fluid	leaking	out.	Burns	can
cause	 extensive	 fluid	 loss,	 and	 this	 must	 be	 reduced	 as	 much	 as	 possible.	 Leave	 any
blisters	 intact;	 they	 are	 performing	 a	 useful	 function	 in	 keeping	 fluid	 in.	 They	 may	 be
removed	later	in	hospital,	but	its	not	a	first	aid	job.	Also,	do	not	attempt	to	remove	any
burnt	skin.
Deep	 burns	 will	 be	 surrounded	 by	 very	 red	 skin	 and	 be	 blistered	 and	 swollen.	 In	 the
most	serious	instances	the	skin	may	be	pale	and	waxy	and	even	charred.	Even	the	smallest
burn	 can	 be	 very	 painful,	 but	 paradoxically,	 some	 large	 deep	 burns	 can	 be	 surprisingly
pain-free	because	the	nerve	endings	have	been	burnt	away.
Splints	 and	 slings	 may	 help	 to	 keep	 the	 patient	 comfortable	 and	 will	 therefore	 reduce
pain.	Prepare	them	in	the	same	way	as	for	fractures.
Dressings
A	field	dressing	is	a	large	pad	of	gauze	with	a	bandage	attached;	ideally	it	should	be	in	a
sterile	 packet,	 and	 each	 soldier	 should	 carry	 at	 least	 three.	 A	 lot	 of	 dressings	 that	 are
commercially	available	are	frankly	too	small;	a	dressing	cannot	be	too	large.	If	you	cannot
find	a	proper	dressing	the	next	best	thing	is	a	suitable	gauze	pad	held	in	place	with	a	crepe
bandage.	Failing	this,	any	clean	material	will	do;	clean	cotton	is	best,	so	use	handkerchiefs
or	 shirts	 folded	 to	 make	 a	 pad	 or	 torn	 into	 strips	 to	 make	 a	 bandage.	 If	 you	 cant	 find
anything	very	clean,	use	the	cleanest	part	up	against	the	wound	and	the	less	clean	further
away.	 Remember,	 most	 gunshot	 wounds	 are	 highly	 contaminated	 anyway	 by	 the	 bullet;
bits	of	cloth	have	been	pushed	into	the	wound	and	dirt	sucked	in	as	the	temporary	cavity
caused	by	the	wound	re-pressurizes.
Splints
Splints	can	be	made	from	anything	that	is	reasonably	rigid		wooden	planks,	branches	or
metal	 sheeting.	 Items	 of	 military	 equipment	 might	 be	 suitable,	 but	 if	 you	 decide	 to	 use
your	rifle,	pay	attention	to	the	tactical	situation	first.	Inflatable	splints	are	carried	by	the
combat	medic.
Leg	splints
See	 illustration	 for	 how	 to	 apply	 improvised	 splints	 for	 a	 fracture	 of	 the	 lower	 limb	 or
ankle.	Note	that	the	knots	are	against	the	splints,	not	the	leg.
You	can	use	the	uninjured	leg	as	a	splint	for	the	fracture;	pad	out	the	gaps	between	the	legs
before	you	start	tying	them	together.	Leave	the	boots	on	and	tie	them	together	firmly	at	the
base	and	the	top	of	the	boot.	There	should	be	no	shortage	of	things	to	use	as	strapping;	the
picture	 shows	 just	 a	 few	 ideas.	 They	 must	 be	 placed	 as	 shown	 and	 this	 is	 the	 minimum
number	that	will	be	effective.
Arm	splints
The	aim	of	splinting	is	to	immobilize	the	limb	and	prevent	the	break	getting	any	worse.
Both	diagrams	show	methods	of	splinting	a	broken	arm	or	elbow	where	the	elbow	is	not
bent.	Try	to	pad	the	splint	so	that	the	casualty	feels	comfortable	and	immobilize	the	whole
arrangement	by	strapping	it	down	to	the	chest.
The	binding	or	cravats	should	be	firm	enough	to	prevent	movement,	but	not	so	tight	that
they	 limit	 the	 blood	 flow.	 Use	 a	 piece	 of	 cloth	 or	 bandage	 so	 that	 it	 does	 not	 cut	 in.
Remember	to	immobilize	the	joint	above	and	below	the	fracture.
Stretchers
If	you	need	to	evacuate	a	casualty	you	will	need	a	stretcher.	Lightweight	rope	stretchers,
as	used	in	climbing,	are	ideal	and	can	be	carried,	one	per	section.	The	new	issue	stretcher
is	collapsible	and	can	be	easily	carried	in	a	Bergen.
If	you	have	to	improvise,	things	such	as	doors	and	planks	are	obvious	choices,	but	you
may	 have	 to	 make	 do	 with	 branches	 or	 rifles.	 Obviously	 whatever	 you	 use	 must	 be	 as
comfortable	 as	 possible	 for	 those	 who	 have	 to	 carry	 it.	 This	 becomes	 increasingly
important	the	further	the	stretcher	has	to	be	carried.
If	you	do	not	have	a	stretcher	and	havent	time	to	improvise,	you	may	have	to	carry	the
casualty	in,	for	instance,	a	firemans	lift.	There	are	several	ways	of	making	things	easier
for	yourself,	particularly	in	getting	the	casualty	up	on	to	your	shoulder.
From	the	recovery	position	haul	the	casualty	up	onto	your	knee	and	balance	him	there
while	you	change	grip	to	under	his	armpits.	Then	heave	him	on	to	his	feet,	leaning	against
you.	Hold	out	the	casualtys	right	arm	and	then	duck	under	the	arm.	Put	your	head	against
his	chest	and	your	left	arm	between	his	legs,	holding	the	right	knee	in	the	crook	of	your
elbow,	and	swing	him	up	onto	your	shoulders.	The	higher	up	you	carry	him,	the	easier	it
is.	Hold	his	right	arm	and	leg	together	in	your	left	hand,	and	carry	your	rifle	in	your	right
hand.
Types	of	carry
The	drag
This	 is	 for	 conscious	 or	 unconscious	 casualties	 and	 requires	 a	 good	 deal	 of	 upper-body
strength.	With	the	casualty	on	his	back,	adopt	an	all-fours	face-to-face	position	over	him,
with	 his	 arms	 tied	 together	 and	 looped	 around	 your	 neck.	 Tie	 the	 arms	 of	 the	 casualty
around	your	neck	at	the	elbow	to	make	the	task	easier.	Then	only	his	legs	will	drag	in	the
dirt.	This	is	a	good	technique	if	you	are	under	fire.
The	piggy-back
This	is	really	only	useful	if	the	casualty	is	conscious	and	can	use	both	his	arms.	It	can	be
quite	 comfortable	 if	 you	 sit	 the	 casualty	 on	 your	 webbing,	 transferring	 his	 weight	 onto
your	shoulders.
Webbing	carry
This	 method	 is	 best	 for	 short	 distances	 in	 place	 of	 the	 firemans	 lift	 for	 a	 casualty	 who
cant	be	doubled	over.	Hold	the	casualty	on	your	back,	his	head	next	to	yours	and	facing
the	same	way,	by	grasping	his	shoulder,	or	webbing,	with	your	hands	close	to	your	neck.
Webbing	stretcher
Sit	the	casualty	in	his	webbing	the	wrong	way	feet	through	the	shoulder	straps	to	produce
a	harness.
The	seat
By	crossing	and	linking	your	arms	in	this	way,	you	can	carry	a	casualty	who	is	unable	to
walk.	As	a	third	soldier	will	be	needed	to	carry	the	wounded	mans	weapons	and	kit,	it	is
easy	to	see	how	a	couple	of	casualties	can	paralyse	a	unit.
The	sit
This	 method	 provides	 back	 support	 but	 less	 of	 a	 seat.	 Two	 men	 hold	 hands	 so	 that	 one
hand-grip	 is	 below	 the	 casualtys	 knees	 and	 the	 other	 behind	 his	 back,	 with	 his	 arms
grasping	the	carriers	shoulders.
Tourniquet applied, with the date, time and group written underneath.
Haemorrhaging.
Morphine, with the date and time of the injection written underneath.
Radiation sickness.
Phosphorous burns.
The	section	medic	will	then	check	the	casualty	on	orders	from	the	section	commander	
remember	that	in	contact	with	the	enemy	the	medic	may	himself	become	a	target.	Next,
the	platoon	medic	will	be	brought	in	to	prepare	the	casualty	for	evacuation	and,	while	this
is	 happening,	 platoon	 HQ	 will	 contact	 company	 HQ	 with	 a	 request	 for	 a	 casualty
evacuation.
The	 company	 stretcher	 bearers	 then	 evacuate	 the	 casualty	 to	 the	 Company	 Aid	 Post.
The	stretcher	bearers	will	be	moving	backwards	and	forwards	between	the	platoons	that
are	in	contact	and	the	company	and,	as	long	as	they	are	not	badged	up	with	red	crosses,
can	also	be	used	to	move	up	ammunition.
They	cant	do	this	if	they	are	protected	by	the	Red	Cross,	because	this	organisation	is
dedicated	 to	 humanitarian	 work	 and	 cannot	 give	 material	 support	 to	 the	 battle	 	 a
convention	normally	respected	by	both	sides.
In	an	infantry	battalion	medics	are	normally	members	of	the	band	(or	buglers	or	pipers)
who	combine	their	skills	as	musicians	with	first	aid	training.	The	company	medic	ensures
not	only	that	the	casualty	goes	on	his	way	to	the	Regimental	Aid	Post	(RAP)	in	a	stable
condition,	but	also	that	medical	supplies	are	fed	back	down	to	the	section	from	the	RAP.
Shock
Shock	is	a	term	that	is	very	often	misused	and	misunderstood.	How	often	have	you	heard
of	 people	 being	 admitted	 to	 hospital	 suffering	 from	 shock	 after	 an	 accident?	 In	 the	 vast
majority	of	cases	they	are	suffering	from	no	such	thing.	What	has	actually	happened	is	that
they	have	had	a	nervous	reaction	to	the	accident;	they	are	not	suffering	from	shock	in	the
medical	sense	of	the	word.
True	shock	is	a	major	cause	of	death	after	injury,	and	is	the	reaction	of	the	body	to	a
loss	 of	 circulating	 body	 fluid,	 which	 in	 most	 injury	 cases	 means	 a	 loss	 of	 blood.	 In	 the
case	of	burns	the	casualty	may	lose	a	substantial	amount	of	fluid	from	the	burn	itself.
A	casualty	suffering	from	shock	will	show	several	of	these	symptoms:
1.	Paleness
2.	Cold	and	clammy	skin
3.	A	fast,	weak	pulse
4.	Rapid,	shallow	breathing
5.	Anxiety
6.	Faintness,	giddiness	and	blurred	vision
7.	Semi-consciousness	or	unconsciousness
He	 will	 also	 have	 a	 low	 blood	 pressure,	 although	 it	 is	 unlikely	 that	 you	 will	 be	 able	 to
measure	this.	These	signs	are	the	result	of	the	bodys	attempt	to	keep	up	the	blood	pressure
and	 so	 maintain	 an	 adequate	 supply	 of	 blood	 to	 essential	 organs	 such	 as	 the	 brain.
Unfortunately,	the	signs	of	a	purely	nervous	reaction	can	be	very	similar;	people	can	be
pale	sweating	and	indeed	sometimes	unconscious.	If	in	doubt,	treat	for	shock.
There	is	very	little	the	first-aider	can	do	in	the	way	of	treatment:	evacuation	to	proper
medical	assistance	is	essential,	as	the	casualty	will	need	intravenous	fluids	or	blood.	But
while	waiting	for	this,	you	can	take	some	immediate	steps.
1.	Lie	the	casualty	down.
2.	Make	sure	his	airway	is	clear.
3.	Look	for	and	stop	any	bleeding.
4.	Raise	his	legs	above	the	level	of	his	head.
5.	Support	any	injured	limbs	with	splinting.
6.	Protect	the	casualty	from	exposure	to	wind	and	rain.
7.	NEVER	give	the	casualty	alcohol.
8.	Reassure	the	casualty.
9.	Raise	the	casualtys	legs	so	that	they	are	higher	than	his	heart	but	check	his	legs	for
fractures	first.
10.	Keep	the	casualty	warm.	Remember	to	insulate	him	from	the	cold	ground;	dont	just
pile	a	blanket	on	top.
11.	If	you	are	forced	to	leave	the	casualty	or	if	he	is	unconscious,	tilt	his	head	to	one
side	so	that	he	will	not	choke	if	he	vomits.
Battle	shock
This	 is	 a	 temporary	 psychological	 reaction	 to	 the	 stress	 of	 battle	 which	 can	 produce
similar	 symptoms	 to	 shock.	 Heavy	 casualties	 or	 prolonged	 bombardment	 can	 cause
physically	 sound	 soldiers	 to	 become	 unable	 to	 fight	 effectively.	 During	 the	 First	 World
War	 shell	 shock	 was	 not	 sufficiently	 understood,	 and	 some	 victims	 found	 themselves
charged	with	cowardice.	In	fact,	if	detected	early	and	treated	as	far	forward	as	possible,
battle	 shock	 can	 be	 overcome.	 Those	 most	 at	 risk	 are	 inexperienced	 troops	 or	 newlyarrived	 replacements	 who	 are	 not	 yet	 part	 of	 the	 team.	 However,	 courage	 can	 be	 a
consumable	resource,	and	if	a	combat	veteran	exhausts	his	reserves	he	too	can	fall	prey	to
battle	shock.
Most	 people	 in	 action	 will	 show	 some	 signs	 of	 fear,	 so	 sweating	 or	 trembling	 are	 not
reliable	indicators	of	impending	battle	shock.	Watch	for	the	following	symptoms:
1.	Physical	symptoms	without	actual	injury.
2.	Severe	restlessness.
3.	Overwhelming	despair.
4.	Panic	reaction	to	sound.
5.	Indecision	among	officers	or	NCOs.
Casualties	from	battle	shock	are	best	treated	forward	rather	than	sent	to	the	rear	away
from	their	own	unit.	Respite	from	the	worst	of	the	battle,	sleep,	hot	drinks	and	the	chance
to	 relive	 experiences	 with	 friends	 all	 help	 repair	 the	 psychological	 damage.	 Getting	 a
casualty	 busy	 with	 some	 simple	 but	 useful	 task	 is	 also	 helpful.	 Avoid	 medication	 or
alcohol.
Hysteria
A	 fatal	 combination	 of	 youth,	 inexperience	 and	 poor	 discipline	 can	 lead	 to	 some	 troops
becoming	hysterical	and	going	berserk.	The	treatment	is:
1.	Remove	the	casualtys	weapons	and	make	them	safe.
2.	Administer	diazepam	tablet	from	the	cap	of	the	casualtys	Combopen.	Repeat	at	30minute	intervals	if	necessary.
3.	If	tactically	necessary,	administer	morphine.
4.	Casevac	the	victim.	The	stretcher	bearers	should	take	the	casualtys	personal	weapon.
5.	At	all	times	be	calm	and	reassuring.
Field	surgery
Surgery	in	the	field	can	be	brought	forward	to	the	casualty,	rather	than	the	man	having	to
make	a	long	journey	to	the	rear.	Helicopters	have	made	evacuation	fast	and	reliable,	but
the	 turn-around	 time	 can	 be	 critical.	 Battle	 injuries	 have	 some	 uniquely	 unpleasant
features		blast	and	fragments	can	produce	extensive	damage.	Though	a	gunshot	wound
may	be	precise,	the	track	of	the	round	after	it	has	entered	the	body	can	be	unpredictable,
and	the	exit	hole	can	be	larger	than	the	entry	hole.	Dirt,	clothing	and	fragments	enter	the
body	with	the	round,	and	tissue	is	damaged	by	the	passage	of	the	round	through	the	body.
The	only	advantage	the	field	hospital	surgeon	has	is	that	the	casualty	is	basically	a	fit
man.	 There	 is	 no	 danger	 of	 heart	 attack,	 respiratory	 collapse,	 or	 thick	 layers	 of
subcutaneous	 fat	 to	 be	 penetrated.	 Recovery	 can	 be	 fast,	 with	 sleep	 and	 proper	 nursing,
since	a	man	in	his	late	teens	or	early	twenties	is	the	ideal	patient.	The	problems	lie	in
psychological	adjustment	to	permanent	disablement	or	the	death	of	close	friends.
Educational	role
Despite	this,	it	is	vital	that	men	should	know	that	when	they	are	asked	to	put	their	life	on
the	line,	they	are	backed	by	an	efficient	evacuation	and	treatment	system.	They	will	fight
more	 effectively.	 The	 RMO	 has	 an	 important	 educational	 role	 within	 a	 battalion
explaining	 the	 system	 and	 ensuring	 that	 everyone	 understands	 basic	 first	 aid.	 The	 panic
and	terror	that	can	ensue	after	a	man	has	been	hit	will	be	reduced	if	he	knows	what	to	do
and	what	will	be	happening	to	him	now	that	he	has	become	a	casualty
PART	IV
SURVIVAL
THE	BASICS
Survival	is	not	just	about	when	it	all	goes	wrong;	survival	is	about	living	off	the	land	and
operating	 safely,	 efficiently	 and	 probably	 covertly	 in	 hostile	 environments	 	 the	 sort	 of
environments	that	governments	like	to	send	Special	Forces.
Shelter
Finding	 shelter	 from	 sun	 in	 the	 desert,	 or	 from	 the	 freezing	 cold	 of	 the	 Arctic,	 is	 even
more	 important	 in	 such	 places	 than	 looking	 for	 food	 or	 water.	 Exposure	 to	 extremes	 of
heat	or	cold	can	kill	you	in	hours,	and	not	just	in	exotic	latitudes.	Even	soft	climates	like
that	of	the	south	of	England	can	be	deadly	on	a	bad	winters	night.	Youll	discover	in	this
section	 how	 to	 protect	 yourself	 from	 extreme	 conditions,	 and	 how	 to	 make	 yourself
comfortable	and	secure	in	more	friendly	environments	too.
need	most	is	a	water	supply	and	protection	from	biting,	stinging	insects.	The	ideal	shelter
in	one	season	might	be	a	completely	different	spot	at	another	time	of	year.
Types	of	shelter
The	 type	 of	 shelter	 youll	 build	 depends	 very	 much	 on	 the	 kind	 of	 material	 you	 have
available.	 If	 you	 have	 a	 poncho,	 a	 ground-sheet	 or	 a	 parachute,	 or	 even	 a	 plain	 sheet	 of
plastic,	youre	at	a	very	big	advantage.
In	general,	dont	make	shelters	bigger	than	you	need	to.	This	is	especially	important	in
winter.	A	one-man	parachute	tent,	for	instance,	can	be	kept	just	about	bearable	by	the	heat
from	a	single	candle.	If	you	use	it	in	a	snowfall,	though,	youll	have	to	keep	the	weight	of
snow	off	it	constantly,	so	that	it	doesnt	all	cave	in	on	top	of	you.	The	smaller	your	shelter,
the	easier	this	job	will	be.
The	simplest	form	of	shelter	is	a	lean-to	made	from	a	poncho,	a	length	of	rope	and	two
trees.	First	of	all,	make	sure	that	the	back	of	the	lean-to	will	be	into	the	wind.	Tie	support
ropes	 to	 two	 corners	 of	 one	 of	 the	 long	 sides	 of	 the	 poncho.	 Tie	 off	 the	 neck	 opening.
Secure	the	two	support	ropes	to	two	trees	at	about	waist	height	(lower	if	concealment	is
important),	and	peg	out	the	free	side	with	three	short	sticks.	If	there	are	no	trees	around,
youll	have	to	cut	poles	to	use	instead.
If	you	are	in	an	unfamiliar	environment,	begin	looking	for	your	shelter	site	at	least	two
hours	before	sunset.	It	is	important	to	know	how	to	construct	a	variety	of	different	shelters
so	that	you	can	use	whatever	is	to	hand.
Bivi	shelter
A	 poncho	 can	 be	 used	 to	 make	 a	 two-man	 shelter	 known	 to	 British	 soldiers	 as	 a	 bivi
(short	for	bivouac).	In	a	wooded	area,	lay	the	poncho	out	on	the	ground	to	ensure	that
you	have	enough	room,	then	clear	the	ground	area	of	cones,	roots,	stones,	etc.	Attach	the
poncho	 to	 four	 trees	 by	 its	 corners	 and	 make	 sure	 that	 it	 is	 stretched	 taut.	 In	 a	 tactical
situation	it	should	be	no	more	than	50	cm	(20	inches)	above	the	ground.	Tie	the	hood	off
and	tie	it	to	a	branch	to	raise	the	centre	of	the	poncho	so	that	the	rain	can	run	off.
Improvised	lean-to
Making	 the	 maximum	 use	 of	 available	 cover,	 this	 lean-to	 is	 built	 against	 a	 wall	 on	 a
simple	framework	of	branches.
Poncho	lean-to
A	poncho	tied	between	two	trees	makes	a	quick	and	easy	shelter.	Tie	a	short	(10	cm)	stick
to	each	rope,	about	1	cm	from	the	poncho:	this	will	stop	rain	water	running	down	the	rope
into	the	shelter.
Poncho tent
This	is	lower	than	a	lean-to	and	gives	protection	from	the	weather	on	both	sides.	On	the
other	hand,	it	has	less	space	and	restricts	your	field	of	view.
The	basha
If	you	have	no	man-made	materials,	you	can	still	make	a	very	effective	shelter,	a	basha,
although	it	will	take	a	great	deal	longer.	Dont	try	to	be	too	ambitious	to	start	with.	Just
make	a	simple	lean-to	at	first;	you	can	always	make	another	side	to	it	later	on,	if	you	dont
have	to	keep	on	the	move.
Find	two	trees	that	are	close	together	and	facing	in	the	right	direction		the	line	between
them	should	be	at	right	angles	to	the	prevailing	wind.	Cut	a	straight	pole,	about	2.5	cm	(1
inch)	in	diameter,	and	long	enough	for	you	to	lash	to	the	two	trees,	one	or	two	metres	off
the	ground.	Cut	six	or	eight	three-metre	poles	and	lean	them	against	the	first	one.	Weave
saplings,	 vines	 and	 twigs	 through	 and	 around	 the	 sloping	 poles.	 Then	 cover	 these	 with
leaves,	 grass,	 pine	 needles	 or	 anything	 else	 thats	 to	 hand,	 starting	 at	 the	 bottom	 and
working	up.	Put	more	of	this	same	material	inside	to	make	your	bed.	A	similar	basha	can
be	built	by	supporting	the	end	of	the	ridge-pole	on	an	A-frame,	the	other	being	driven	into
a	bank	or	hillside.
One	 advantage	 of	 the	 lean-to	 made	 from	 local	 materials	 is	 that	 it	 blends	 in	 with	 its
surroundings,	and	so	is	far	more	difficult	to	detect	than	one	made	from	a	poncho.
Shelter	can	mean	more	than	just	a	roof	over	your	head.	In	swampy	or	marshy	country,
for	 instance,	 it	 will	 be	 just	 as	 important	 to	 build	 a	 sleeping	 platform	 that	 is	 well	 off	 the
ground,	so	that	you	can	stay	dry.	Remember	that	a	bed	like	this	will	have	to	bear	all	your
weight.	 Theres	 no	 point	 in	 trying	 to	 make	 one	 unless	 you	 have	 really	 substantial	 poles
available.
Instead	 of	 building	 a	 platform,	 you	 can	 make	 a	 simple	 hammock	 out	 of	 a	 poncho,
groundsheet	or	parachute	canopy.	Trees	make	better	supports	than	poles	that	you	have	to
drive	into	the	ground.
Natural	shelters
Often	youll	find	it	easier	and	more	rewarding	to	spend	time	looking	for	a	natural	shelter
rather	than	building	one	of	your	own.	Look	for	caves,	crevices	or	rocks	on	the	side	of	hills
away	from	the	wind,	fallen	trees	and	large	trees	with	low-hanging	branches.
There	are	some	places	best	avoided.	Stay	away	from	low	ground	if	you	can:	these	areas
get	 cold	 and	 damp	 at	 night.	 Thick	 undergrowth	 is	 often	 infested	 with	 insects;	 check	 for
snakes,	 scorpions,	 spiders	 and	 other	 pests.	 And	 wherever	 you	 settle	 make	 sure	 theres
nothing	loose	about	that	could	fall	on	you	in	a	storm.
No	matter	where	you	find	yourself,	remember	that	the	effect	on	your	morale	of	having	a
place	to	come	home	to,	even	if	its	only	a	lean-to	made	out	of	brush	wood,	could	mean
the	difference	between	life	and	death.	Your	will	to	live	is	what	will	really	keep	you	alive,
and	anything	that	strengthens	it	is	in	your	favour.
Making	Fire
Fire	can	be	your	best	friend.	It	keeps	you	warm	and	dries	your	clothes;	it	cooks	your	food
and	purifies	your	water.	But	it	can	be	your	worst	enemy,	too.	In	enemy-held	territory	it	can
give	 away	 your	 position	 quicker	 than	 anything	 else.	 And	 a	 major	 burn	 is	 a	 dreadful
wound,	causing	massive	fluid	loss	and	leaving	you	open	to	infection.
there	is	free	passage	of	air	around		and	especially	up	through		the	fire.
Heat		the	heat	to	start	the	fire		you	have	to	provide.	Friction	in	one	form	or	another	is
the	 usual	 way,	 but	 you	 can	 use	 the	 rays	 of	 the	 sun,	 and	 perhaps	 even	 electricity,	 in	 its
place.
Gathering	fuel
Dead	wood,	as	long	as	its	not	actually	lying	in	water,	will	usually	have	some	dry	material
in	 it	 somewhere,	 but	 the	 best	 sources	 are	 dead	 timber	 thats	 still	 standing,	 and	 dead
branches	that	are	still	attached	to	the	tree.	Look	for	the	bark	peeling	off.
The	 main	 difference	 between	 kindling	 and	 proper	 fuel	 is	 its	 size.	 Remember,	 the
kindling	takes	up	the	sparks	and	glowing	embers	from	the	tinder	and	turns	it	into	flames
that	will	ignite	the	fuel.	Small,	bone-dry	twigs	are	the	best,	but	if	necessary	you	can	make
fire-sticks	by	shaving	larger	pieces	of	shallow	cuts	to	feather	them.	This	is	a	job	much
better	done	in	advance.
Tinder	must	be	dry.	Absolutely,	perfectly	dry.	You	should	have	some	already,	packed	up
securely	in	a	water-tight	box	next	to	your	skin.	If	not,	youll	have	to	find	some.	Dont	look
too	 far	 to	 start	 with:	 you	 wont	 need	 very	 much.	 Try	 the	 lining	 of	 your	 pockets	 and	 the
seams	of	your	clothes.	The	lint	that	collects	there	makes	good	tinder,	except	for	wool.	Dry
bark,	shredded	into	tiny	pieces;	dead	grass,	fern	and	moss;	dead	pine	needles;	downy	seed
heads	from	thistles	and	smaller	plants		all	these	make	good	tinder,	as	long	as	the	material
is	dry.	The	common	factor	is	the	size	of	the	individual	pieces	or	fibres.	They	must	be	tiny,
so	 that	 as	 much	 of	 their	 substance	 as	 possible	 is	 exposed	 to	 the	 air	 and	 to	 the	 spark	 or
flame.
Alternative	technology
There	are	two	other	ways	of	making	fire.	The	bow	and	drill	and	the	fire	saw	both	rely	on
friction	between	two	pieces	of	wood.	You	have	to	make	a	small	part	of	one	of	those	pieces
hot	enough	to	set	the	tinder	going.	It	is	possible		but	youll	only	need	to	try	it	once	to
become	fanatical	about	carrying	matches	with	you	everywhere	you	go!
Fire	bow
Making	a	fire	from	the	friction	of	wood	upon	wood	really	is	a	last-ditch	alternative.	The
few	aboriginal	tribes	that	still	make	fire	this	way	spend	a	very	long	time	selecting	exactly
the	 right	 materials.	 Nevertheless,	 in	 the	 desert,	 where	 its	 perfectly	 dry,	 it	 is	 possible	 to
start	a	fire	in	this	way.
Youll	need:
1.	A	piece	of	green	hardwood,	about	a	metre	(3	feet)	long	and	2.5	cm	(1	inch)	in
diameter.
2.	A	piece	of	dry	hardwood,	30	cm	long	and	1	cm	in	diameter.
3.	A	5	cm	hardwood	cube,	or	a	shell	or	a	suitable	stone.
4.	A	piece	of	dry	softwood,	2.5	cm	thick.
5.	A	cord	for	the	bow-string.
To	make	the	fire	bow:
1.	Make	the	bow	loosely	using	the	cord	and	the	long	piece	of	hardwood.
2.	Round	off	one	end	of	the	short	piece	of	hardwood,	and	taper	the	other	slightly.
3.	Carve	out	the	centre	of	the	hardwood	cube	to	fit	the	taper,	or	find	a	stone	or	shell	of
Fire	saw
Youll	need:
1.	A	piece	of	bamboo,	5-8	cm	in	diameter	and	1/2	metre	long.
2.	A	forked	stick,	to	anchor	it	into	the	ground.
To	make	the	fire	saw:
1.	Split	the	bamboo	lengthways.
2.	Cut	two	notches	in	a	straight	line	across	the	two	exposed	edges	near	to	one	end.
3.	Brace	the	notched	bamboo	with	the	forked	stick.
4.	Fill	the	space	between	the	notches	with	a	handful	of	tinder.
5.	Saw	in	the	notches	until	the	tinder	ignites.
Fire	tongs
1.	Make	a	thong	(a	strip	or	string	of	tough	material)	using	rattan	(a	sort	of	tropical	vine),
leather	or	very	tough	cord.
2.	Split	a	dry	stick	and	hold	the	split	open	with	a	small	wedge.
3.	Run	the	thong	through	the	split.
4.	Place	a	small	wad	of	tinder	in	the	split.
5.	Secure	the	stick	with	your	foot	and	run	the	thong	back	and	forth	to	create	frictional
heat.	The	tinder	will	eventually	ignite.
Vehicle	fuel
If	you	have	a	vehicle	you	have	another	option		use	the	battery.	Rip	out	some	wire	and
attach	a	piece	to	each	terminal.	Touch	the	bare	ends	together	and	youll	get	a	spark.	If	the
vehicle	 is	 petrol-(gasoline)	 driven,	 you	 can	 use	 a	 tiny	 amount	 of	 the	 fuel	 to	 help	 the
process	along,	but	remember	that	petrol	in	its	liquid	form	doesnt	burn.	You	can	only	set
fire	to	it	as	a	vapour.	So,	use	less	than	a	teaspoonful,	soak	some	rag	and	make	the	spark	in
the	air	just	above	the	surface.	Diesel	fuel	doesnt	work	in	this	way		you	need	a	good-size
Poor	conditions
You	may	have	to	build	your	fire	in	the	wet		on	snow,	or	in	a	swamp,	for	example.	In	the
snow	its	easiest	to	build	a	base	out	of	layers	of	green	wood.	In	swamp	or	marshland,	raise
that	platform	up	on	four	legs.
Dont	bother	to	chop	or	even	break	up	long	pieces	of	wood	for	an	open	fire.	Start	at	one
end	and	feed	the	log	in	as	it	burns,	or	lay	it	across	the	fire	and	wait	until	it	burns	through,
then	turn	the	ends	in.
Having	 gone	 through	 all	 the	 pain	 of	 getting	 your	 fire	 going,	 dont	 let	 it	 go	 out!	 Use
well-dried	 hardwood	 during	 the	 day;	 it	 produces	 very	 little	 smoke.	 As	 the	 evening
approaches,	 you	 may	 want	 to	 add	 green	 or	 damp	 fuel	 to	 produce	 smoke	 that	 will	 drive
away	insects.
high) pushed into the ground, so that the pole lies across the top of the fire.
Alternative	fuels
If	you	have	a	vehicle,	almost	every	part	of	it	that	isnt	metal	will	burn.	Mix	oil,	petrol	or
diesel	with	sand	in	a	pit	and	set	fire	to	it.	Rip	out	the	upholstery	and	the	trim	and	use	for
fuel.	 The	 tyres	 will	 burn	 if	 you	 get	 them	 hot	 enough,	 but	 stay	 upwind	 of	 the	 smoke!
Hydraulic	fluid	from	the	brake	and	clutch	systems	is	highly	flammable,	and	so	is	neat	antifreeze.	All	of	this	applies	to	aircraft	as	much	as	ground	vehicles.
Animal	droppings,	if	they	are	perfectly	dry,	are	a	very	good	source	of	fuel:	easy	to	light,
slow-burning	and	almost	smokeless.
After	 a	 while,	 looking	 after	 your	 fire	 will	 become	 second	 nature	 to	 you.	 Youll	 sense
changes	in	its	mood,	and	be	able	to	change	its	character	to	do	different	jobs.
Water
Water	is	a	basic	human	need.	There	is	no	adequate	substitute,	and	without	it	you	cannot
live	more	than	a	few	days.	Within	the	human	body	water	acts	as	a	stabilizer:	it	helps	to
maintain	warmth	in	cold	environments,	and	is	vital	for	staying	cool	in	hot	environments.	It
is	also	part	of	the	bodys	mechanism	for	distributing	food	and	removing	waste.	As	soon	as
you	are	cut	off	from	a	source	of	fresh	water,	you	begin	to	dehydrate.	The	rate	at	which	you
dehydrate	 depends	 on	 a	 number	 of	 factors:	 the	 amount	 of	 water	 your	 body	 already
contains,	the	clothing	you	are	wearing,	the	local	temperature,	how	hard	you	are	working,
whether	you	are	in	shade	or	sunlight,	whether	you	are	smoking	and	whether	you	are	calm
or	nervous.
Effects	of	dehydration
1.	Inability	to	swallow.
2.	Failing	senses.
3.	Breathing	difficulty.
4.	Thirst.
5.	Discomfort.
6.	Speech	difficulty.
7.	Headache.
8.	Inability	to	walk.
9.	Dizziness.
10.	Nausea.
11.	Loss	of	appetite.
12.	Collapse.
You	will	collapse	after	losing	12%	of	your	body	weight.	Heat	exhaustion	is	still	a	killer	on
exercises	 in	 the	 UK	 as	 well	 as	 abroad.	 You	 must	 be	 able	 to	 recognize	 the	 signs	 in	 your
mates;	 it	 doesnt	 have	 to	 be	 a	 hot	 day	 to	 kill	 them.	 If	 all	 the	 danger	 signs	 are	 ignored,
sweating	will	eventually	stop	and	the	victim	will	collapse.
If	you	allow	dehydration	to	continue,	there	will	come	a	point	when	you	can	no	longer
search	for	water.	Your	first	priority	is	to	minimize	further	dehydration	and,	having	done
this,	 you	 must	 find	 water.	 (If	 you	 are	 stranded	 in	 a	 desert	 with	 little	 chance	 of	 finding
water,	stay	still	to	prevent	further	dehydration,	and	make	efforts	to	signal	for	rescue.)
Reducing	dehydration
			Find	shade.
			Move	slowly	and	do	not	smoke.
			Cover	exposed	skin	to	prevent	evaporation	of	sweat.
			Suck	a	pebble	(helps	prevent	exhalation	of	moisture	through	the	mouth).
Finding	water
You	do	not	have	to	be	in	a	desert	to	have	difficulty	finding	water.	Forests	often	offer	such
poor	 visibility	 that,	 although	 surrounded	 by	 water-loving	 trees,	 you	 cannot	 spot	 readily
available	 surface	 water.	 (In	 combat	 conditions,	 however,	 you	 may	 have	 to	 deliberately
avoid	obvious	sources	of	water,	for	fear	of	ambush.)
So	 how	 do	 you	 go	 about	 finding	 water?	 The	 first	 thing	 you	 do	 is	 to	 remember	 the
following	points:
			Water	runs	downhill,	so	make	for	lower	country.
			Where	there	is	water,	there	is	usually	an	abundance	of	lush	vegetation.	If	possible,	learn
to	recognize	the	moisture-loving	plants	in	the	area.	If	this	vegetation	is	wilted	or	dead,
it	probably	indicates	chemical	pollution.
			Animals	need	water,	too.	Observe	the	habits	of	the	local	wildlife:	it	may	lead	you	to	a
source	of	water.
			Grain-and	seed-eating	birds	need	water,	so	observe	them	too.
Dew
Dew	is	one	of	the	most	reliable	sources	of	water	for	the	survivor.	It	can	be	collected	soon
after	 it	 has	 started	 to	 form	 until	 it	 evaporates	 in	 the	 morning	 sunlight.	 Improvise	 a	 mop
from	 an	 absorbent	 article	 of	 clothing.	 Drag	 this	 through	 long	 grass	 or	 use	 it	 to	 wipe	 the
condensed	moisture	from	shrubs	and	rocks.	If	you	do	not	have	a	convenient	mop,	finely
teased,	 non-poisonous	 inner	 barks	 or	 grasses	 can	 be	 used.	 When	 the	 mop	 is	 saturated,
wring	 out	 the	 water	 into	 a	 container.	 Although	 labour-intensive,	 this	 is	 a	 very	 effective
way	to	collect	water.
Dew	itself	is	a	pure	source	of	water,	but	when	you	wipe	it	off	vegetation	and	rocks	you
also	wipe	off	bacteria	and	perhaps	parasites.	It	is	therefore	best	to	boil	this	water	before
consumption.
Ice
Ice	 is	 not	 pure	 and	 should	 always	 be	 boiled	 before	 consumption,	 but	 is	 far	 more
economical	as	a	source	of	water	than	snow.	Icicles	are	often	found	hanging	from	trees	and
rocks,	so	may	provide	you	with	a	ready	source	of	water.	Those	hanging	from	trees	may	be
slightly	stained	brown	by	the	tannin	in	the	bark,	but	unless	they	are	very	heavily	stained
they	will	be	safe	to	drink	after	boiling.
Drinkable	saps
For	short-term	relief	of	thirst,	you	may	be	able	to	tap	the	sap	of	certain	trees.	The	sap	of
maple,	birch	and	sycamore	can	be	tapped	during	the	early	spring	(sycamore	will	produce
sap	 from	 spring	 to	 autumn,	 depending	 on	 local	 conditions).	 Sap	 is	 quenching	 but	 it
contains	 sugar,	 which	 if	 taken	 in	 sufficient	 quantity	 will	 hasten	 dehydration;	 in	 fact,	 the
woodland	Native	Americans	still	boil	maple	and	birch	sap	to	produce	sugar.
Only	mature	trees	should	be	tapped,	and	the	sap	drunk	while	fresh,	as	it	will	ferment	if
stored.	 Some	 plants	 can	 also	 be	 used	 to	 provide	 water.	 (See	 Jungle	 section	 for	 further
tappable	trees.)
Ponds
These	are	principally	a	feature	of	farmland,	and	therefore	a	potential	source	of	water	for
the	evading	soldier.	Such	water	should	always	be	considered	suspect,	as	at	the	very	least
there	will	be	fluke	infestation.	Keep	contact	with	this	water	to	a	minimum,	and	if	used	as	a
source	of	drinking	water,	filter	and	thoroughly	boil	it	before	drinking.
INDIAN	WELL
The	Indian	Well	is	an	easily	prepared	and	efficient	method	of	collecting	reasonably
good	 water.	 Selection	 of	 the	 ground	 is	 all	 important	 and	 the	 water	 produced
requires	filtering	and	boiling.	Also,	it	takes	some	time	to	produce	clear	water,	and
quality	 is	 dependent	 on	 soil	 type.	 In	 practice,	 watch	 out	 for	 sources	 of
contamination,	boil	very	carefully,	and	add	Steritabs.
1.	Dig	a	hole	about	half	a	metre	deep	and	half	a	metre	wide.	Water	will	begin	to
seep	into	the	hole.
2.	You	can	push	a	stick	into	the	sides	of	the	well	to	increase	seepage	of	water	into
the	wet.
3.	Bale	out	this	water	carefully	so	that	you	do	not	stir	up	the	sediment	at	the
bottom	of	the	hole.	Repeat	this	process	until	the	seeping	water	is	fairly	clear.
4.	After	some	time,	the	water	at	the	top	of	the	well	will	be	clear	enough	to	collect.
Be	careful	not	to	disturb	the	muddy	layer	that	usually	lurks	at	the	bottom.
Purifying	water
Now	 youve	 found	 a	 source	 of	 water.	 Is	 it	 safe	 to	 drink?	 The	 answer	 seems	 obvious	 
assume	 the	 water	 is	 dirty	 and	 purify	 it	 	 but	 dehydration	 is	 causing	 you	 to	 be
uncharacteristically	 impatient	 and	 irritable.	 You	 are	 tired,	 hungry,	 lonely	 and	 somewhat
frightened.	 Your	 hands	 and	 shins	 are	 covered	 in	 the	 scratches	 you	 sustained	 searching
what	 seemed	 like	 every	 patch	 of	 vegetation	 in	 the	 last	 hundred	 miles.	 And	 but	 for	 the
incessant	biting	of	the	mosquitoes	you	would	fall	asleep.
You	are	faced	with	water	that	will	need	filtering	and	boiling	before	it	is	safe	to	drink,
but	you	have	no	container	and	no	fire.	Surely	one	little	sip	wont	hurt?
Without	the	support	of	modern	medicine	to	fall	back	on,	wilderness	survival	is	all	about
maintaining	good	health.	The	human	body	is	an	amazing	machine,	but	it	is	finely	tuned:	it
only	 takes	 one	 drop	 of	 contaminated	 water	 to	 make	 you	 ill.	 Of	 the	 many	 waterborne
problems	 you	 may	 develop,	 the	 most	 common	 is	 diarrhoea.	 In	 a	 survival	 situation,
diarrhoea	 may	 prove	 fatal.	 It	 causes	 dehydration	 and	 makes	 hygiene	 very	 difficult,
increasing	the	risk	of	further	unpleasant	infections,	and	destroys	the	will	to	live.
To	make	your	water	safe,	you	will	need	three	things:
			Fire
			A	container
			A	filter
As	 a	 fire	 will	 also	 warm	 you,	 drive	 away	 the	 mosquitoes	 and	 boost	 your	 morale,	 it	 is
usually	best	to	start	this	first.	Hopefully	you	will	have	practised	your	fire-lighting	skill,	as
this	is	a	bad	time	to	learn!
Kettles
Kettles	can	be	made	from	flammable	materials	because	the	water	contained	within	them
prevents	 their	 burning.	 The	 secret	 is	 not	 to	 allow	 the	 flames	 to	 reach	 beyond	 the	 water
level.
In	 some	 tropical	 regions,	 bamboo	 can	 be	 found	 with	 stems	 large	 enough	 to	 be	 turned
into	kettles.	Many	other	containers	can	also	be	improvised	from	bamboo,	and	sometimes
fresh	drinking	water	can	be	found	trapped	in	the	stems.
The	woodland	Native	Americans	routinely	made	kettles	from	birch	bark	while	on	their
travels.	Only	the	outer	bark	is	used.	It	should	be	carefully	removed	from	an	unblemished
section	of	the	trunk,	and	can	be	made	pliable	by	either	soaking	or	gentle	warming	by	the
fire.	The	brown	inside	of	the	bark	is	the	most	durable	side,	and	is	used	to	form	the	outside
of	containers,	which	can	be	simply	made	by	folding.
Cauldrons
Cauldrons	 are	 made	 from	 materials	 that	 will	 hold	 water	 but	 are	 not	 suitable	 for	 direct
heating;	to	boil	water	put	heated	rocks	into	it.
If	your	local	soil	is	clay,	or	clay-like	enough	to	contain	muddy	water,	a	ground	cauldron
can	be	made.	Dig	a	bowl-shaped	depression	in	the	ground	and	smooth	the	inside.	Form	a
raised	rim	at	the	top,	to	help	prevent	humus	falling	into	the	cauldron.	Make	the	cauldron
one	third	larger	than	the	amount	of	water	you	intend	to	boil.	This	will	allow	for	the	water
displaced	by	the	heated	rocks.	To	prevent	sediment	muddying	your	water,	you	will	need	to
line	the	pit.	For	this	you	can	use	either	some	material	(for	example,	a	T-shirt)	or	large	nonpoisonous	 leaves	 such	 as	 dock	 or	 burdock.	 Take	 great	 care	 to	 ensure	 that	 the	 lining	 fits
snugly.	The	water	purified	in	this	type	of	cauldron	will	always	be	a	little	muddy,	but	if	you
leave	it	to	settle	you	can	skim	clear	water	off	of	the	top.
Skin
If	you	are	able	to	catch	an	animal	of	the	size	of	a	rabbit	upwards,	you	will	have	secured
meat	 as	 well	 as	 two	 containers	 good	 enough	 to	 stew	 it	 in:	 if	 you	 are	 careful	 with	 the
skinning	and	gutting,	both	the	skin	and	the	stomach	can	be	used	as	cauldrons.
To	use	the	skin	you	can	leave	the	fur	on	or	take	it	off,	as	you	please.	To	use	the	stomach
it	is	best	turned	inside-out.	You	have	a	choice	when	making	your	skin	cauldron.	You	can
line a pit with it, securing it around the rim by stakes, or you can suspend it from a tripod.
Wooden	bowls
Bowls	and	containers	can	be	carved	out	of	wood.	While	not	as	quickly	constructed	as	the
previous	methods,	wooden	bowls	are	well	within	the	capabilities	of	a	survivor.	If	carefully
made,	they	are	portable	and	very	durable.
The	best	method	of	producing	a	wooden	bowl	is	to	burn	and	scrape.	To	achieve	this,
make	a	small	depression	in	the	centre	of	your	bowl-to-be	and	place	a	couple	of	glowing
coals	in	this	depression.	Then	by	blowing	on	the	coals,	ideally	through	a	reed	straw,	you
can	 use	 them	 to	 char	 the	 surrounding	 wood.	 When	 you	 have	 charred	 a	 patch	 of	 wood,
scrape	it	away	using	a	sharp	stone,	and	begin	the	process	again.	It	does	not	take	long	to
form	a	reasonable-sized	bowl.
Storage	containers
The	manufacture	of	storage	containers	is	a	long-term	prospect.	They	can	be	made	from	the
materials	discussed	above,	and	also	from	clay	pottery	and	tightly-woven	basketry.
Filtering
Having	secured	a	container	in	which	to	boil	your	water,	you	now	need	a	filter	to	remove
the	particles	of	dirt	suspended	in	the	water.
The	simplest	filter	that	can	be	improvised	uses	a	pair	of	ordinary	trousers.	Simply	turn
them	inside-out,	placing	one	leg	inside	the	other,	and	tie	the	leg	off	at	the	bottom.	Soak	the
material	before	use:	this	helps	tighten	the	weave,	making	the	filter	more	efficient.	Suspend
the	filter	so	that	you	can	easily	filter	it,	with	the	container	positioned	underneath	to	collect
the	clean	water	that	drips	out.	Such	filters	can	be	improved	by	filling	them	with	charcoal.
Rock	boiling
Rock	 boiling	 is	 an	 easy	 and	 effective	 way	 to	 purify	 water.	 The	 rocks	 must	 be	 of	 a
manageable	 size	 and	 weight,	 and	 thoroughly	 dry.	 (Rocks	 from	 stream	 beds	 and	 damp
places	contain	moisture	which,	when	heated,	expands,	causing	the	rock	to	explode.	Also,
glass-like	rocks	such	as	flint	and	obsidian	should	be	avoided.)
Heat	 the	 rocks	 in	 your	 fire,	 and	 when	 hot	 transfer	 them	 to	 your	 container	 with	 some
improvised	tongs.	Tap	off	any	ash	before	dropping	them	in	the	water.	Do	not	wait	to	use
these	skills	until	you	have	to:	practise	is	essential	to	success.
than	 a	 quart	 of	 water	 a	 day,	 avoid	 meat,	 or	 dry,	 starchy	 foods,	 or	 those	 that	 are	 highly
flavoured.	Go	for	foods	with	a	high	carbohydrate	content		hard	sweets	and	fruit	bars	are
ideal	 if	 you	 have	 them.	 If	 both	 food	 and	 water	 are	 limited,	 keep	 work	 to	 a	 minimum.
Hunting	animals	is	hard	work		another	reason	to	learn	how	to	survive	on	plants.
Food
Food	is	more	important	to	you	than	you	probably	realize.	In	a	survival	situation	food	is
crucial,	 for	 every	 meal	 you	 cook	 affects	 your	 level	 of	 morale.	 By	 making	 an	 effort	 in
cooking	and	presenting	your	meal,	you	give	your	mind	something	to	work	on,	helping	you
to	retain	your	identity	and	self-esteem.	It	is	also	more	likely	that	you	will	make	full	use	of
the	nutrients	in	your	food,	and	so	remain	fit	and	healthy.	During	the	Second	World	War
many	 soldiers	 were	 stranded	 on	 islands	 in	 the	 Philippines.	 Daily	 diet	 became	 an	 allabsorbing	 part	 of	 their	 life,	 prompting	 the	 saying	 Youve	 got	 to	 have	 an	 appetite	 to
survive.
Plants
After	two	or	three	days	without	food,	you	will	actually	notice	how	you	lack	energy		and
your	morale	will	drop,	your	resistance	to	disease	will	diminish,	and	your	hopes	of	making
a	 quick	 getaway,	 if	 you	 have	 to,	 become	 mere	 wishful	 thinking.	 The	 old	 adage	 that	 an
army	marches	on	its	stomach	is	especially	true	for	a	survivor.	Now	most	of	your	bodys
stored	energy	has	been	used	up	in	building	your	shelter	and	staying	warm,	finding	food	is
the	next	priority.
You	 are	 probably	 thinking	 of	 hunting	 and	 trapping	 meat.	 While	 these	 are	 obviously
important,	few	survivors	are	expert	enough	to	rely	on	their	hunting	skills	for	at	least	the
first	three	to	four	days.	By	that	time	you	should	be	accustomed	to	the	daily	movements	of
the	local	wildlife.	It	is	one	thing	to	catch	a	rabbit	on	a	survival	exercise	in	Yorkshire,	but
quite	another	to	trap	a	maned	wolf	in	South	America.	Dont	neglect	the	major	source	of
food	that	cant	run	away	from	you:	edible	plants.
Meat	or	vegetarian?
For	a	survivor,	the	relative	merits	of	meat	or	plant	diets	are	academic.	You	can	eat	only
what	is	available	to	you,	and	it	is	quite	likely	that	your	diet	will	be	severely	imbalanced.
But	it	will	keep	you	alive.
In	general,	an	all-plant	diet	will	do	you	less	harm	than	an	all-meat	diet,	although	in	the
Arctic	 you	 will	 need	 meat,	 and	 especially	 fat,	 to	 produce	 body	 heat.	 Ideally,	 you	 would
combine	a	meat	and	plant	diet,	in	much	the	same	way	as	you	would	at	home.	The	meat
will	provide	protein	to	build	muscle,	while	the	plants	provide	carbohydrates	and	calories
for	energy,	as	well	as	useful	starches	and	sugars.	If	you	are	injured,	you	may	not	be	able	to
hunt.	So	try	to	include	nuts	and	seeds	in	your	diet,	so	they	will	help	to	replace	the	protein
lacking	in	a	meat-free	diet.
Many	 people	 think	 that	 subsisting	 on	 plants	 is	 like	 being	 reduced	 to	 an	 animal
scrabbling	 around	 popping	 unmentionable	 berries	 and	 roots	 into	 your	 mouth.	 In	 fact,
people	 have	 died	 because	 they	 were	 reluctant	 to	 eat	 plants.	 You	 should	 try	 to	 live	 as
normal	 a	 life	 as	 possible,	 gathering	 enough	 plants	 for	 a	 meal,	 and	 preparing	 them
carefully.	Many	of	the	plants	you	are	eating	were	once	part	of	mankinds	staple	diet,	the
ancestors	of	the	plants	we	presently	cultivate.	Be	adventurous,	and	experiment	with	your
resources.	A	gourmet	feast	around	the	campfire	is	the	greatest	morale	booster	in	the	world!
are	edible.
Mulberry	(Morus	species)
This	tree	has	alternate	simple,	often	lobed,	leaves	with	rough	edges.	The	fruits	are
blue	or	black	and	many-seeded,	and	can	be	eaten	raw	or	cooked	or	dried	for	later
use.
Nodding	onion	(Allium	cernuum)
This	is	just	one	example	of	a	great	number	of	wild	garlics	and	onions.	The	bulbs
and	young	leaves	are	edible	and	if	you	eat	enough	they	will	give	your	body	a	smell
that	will	repel	insects.
Yellow	Nutsedge	(Cyperus	esculentus)
This	is	a	very	common	plant	which	has	a	triangular	stem	and	grass-like	leaves.	It
grows	to	a	height	of	8	to	24	inches	(20	to	60	cm).	Edible	tubers	of	half	to	one	inch
(1	to	3	cm)	in	diameter	grow	at	the	end	of	the	roots.	They	can	be	eaten	raw,	boiled
or	baked.	They	can	also	be	ground	into	a	coffee	substitute.
Pines	(Pinus	species)
The	seeds	of	all	species	of	pine	are	edible,	as	are	the	young	cones	which	appear	in
spring	and	should	be	boiled	or	baked.	The	bark	of	young	twigs	is	edible,	as	is	the
inner	bark	of	thin	twigs.	It	is	rich	in	sugar	and	vitamins	especially	when	the	sap	is
rising.	Pine	resin	can	be	used	to	waterproof	articles	and	made	into	glue	by	heating.
Underground	parts
Edible	roots,	tubers	and	bulbs	are	vital	to	you,	as	they	are	extremely	high	in	stored	starch.
They	are	usually	best	cooked.	In	winter	the	roots	can	often	be	discovered	by	searching	for
the	withered	stems	of	the	plants.
Removing	underground	parts	from	the	earth	is	not	always	easy.	Plants	such	as	first-year
burdock	 have	 a	 particularly	 tenacious	 root,	 which	 requires	 major	 excavation	 before	 you
can	get	it	out.	Use	a	stick	to	dig	a	crater	around	and	under	the	root,	and	lever	it	out.	If	the
ground	is	frozen,	thaw	it	by	lighting	a	fire	or	putting	heated	rocks	above	the	poor.	Roots
can	be	cooked	by	steaming,	pit	baking	or	boiling.
When	 learning	 to	 recognize	 edible	 roots	 make	 certain	 you	 examine	 them	 during	 the
summer,	when	you	can	study	them	attached	to	identifiable	stems.	The	roots	and	bulbs	of
poisonous	plants	are	very	often	the	most	deadly	parts.
The	green	parts	of	most	edible	plants	are	usually	more	bitter	and	fibrous	than	cultivated
vegetables.	 For	 this	 reason	 you	 may	 find	 that	 you	 need	 to	 boil	 them	 in	 more	 than	 one
change	of	water,	but	dont	overcook	them,	or	youll	destroy	their	nutrients.	The	best	way
to	overcome	this	problem	is	to	include	them	in	a	stew.
Fungi
Poisonous	fungi
Before	beginning	to	learn	about	edible	fungi,	make	sure	you	are	familiar	with	the	features
common	to	the	high	poisonous	Amanita	family	of	fungi,	with	their	bulbous	base,	volva
or	 skirt,	 and	 white	 gills.	 In	 fact,	 you	 should	 avoid	 any	 fungus	 with	 white	 gills.	 Amanita
phalloides,	the	death	cap,	is	one	of	the	most	common	deadly	species	of	fungi,	having	all	of
the	above	features	under	a	greenish	yellow	cap.	Avoid	all	Amanitas,	and	all	Iocybes.	Learn
to	recognize	them		they	are	particularly	dangerous	families.
Russula	emetica
Scleroderma	aurantium
Edible	fungi
There	 are	 a	 lot	 of	 myths	 about	 eating	 fungi,	 but	 if	 you	 are	 a	 survivor	 or	 evader,	 edible
fungi	give	you	a	versatile,	easily-gathered	and	tasty	source	of	nourishment.	The	food	value
of	fungi	is	high.	They	provide	valuable	fat,	carbohydrate	and	protein	in	quantities	between
those	 of	 meat	 and	 green	 vegetables.	 More	 importantly,	 they	 are	 good	 stomach	 fillers,
making	 you	 feel	 well	 fed.	 This	 is	 a	 big	 plus	 in	 psychological	 terms.	 But	 fungi	 are	 an
unpredictable	source	of	food,	so	when	you	have	a	chance	to	gather	edible	fungi,	take	it.
You	can	dry	and	store	for	future	use	what	you	dont	eat	immediately.
While	the	vast	majority	of	fungi	are	harmless,	the	small	proportion	that	are	dangerous
can	cause	serious	poisoning,	which	may	be	irreversible.	Never	experiment	with	fungi	you
have	 not	 positively	 identified	 as	 edible.	 There	 are	 many	 old	 wives	 tales	 about	 how	 to
recognize	edible	fungi,	but	never	follow	such	rules.	If	you	do	not	know	the	fungi,	leave
them	alone.
THE	FIELD	MUSHROOM
Usually	 found	 in	 meadow	 or	 pasture,	 these	 are	 the	 mushrooms	 you	 usually	 buy	 in	 the
shops.	They	can	be	dried	for	later	use.
THE	PARASOL	MUSHROOM
A	very	tasty	and	large	mushroom	that	grows	in	woods	and	pastures.	In	the	early	stages	of
development,	before	the	cap	spreads,	it	can	look	like	a	different	species	to	the	untrained
eye.
The	parasol	is	excellent	baked	or	sliced	and	added	to	stews.	The	delicate	top	is	the	best
part	and	has	a	meaty	flavour.	Remember,	some	fungi	are	toxic	if	eaten	raw.	If	in	doubt,
leave	well	alone.	But	the	parasol	(Macrolepiota	procera)	is	fine	whether	raw	or	cooked.
THE	GIANT	PUFFBALL
There	 are	 several	 species	 of	 puffball	 or	 edible	 boletus;	 all	 are	 more	 edible	 when	 young.
They	are	white	or	grey	when	young,	becoming	yellow	or	brown	with	age.
THE	SHAGGY	INK	CAP
The	ink	cap,	which	disintegrates	progressively	into	an	inky	liquid	mess,	is	edible	before
the	rot	has	set	in	and	is	common	in	mixed	woodland.
DRYADS	SADDLE
This	is	a	large	fleshy	fungus	that,	when	cooked,	has	a	similar	flavour	to	meat	and	is	very
filling.
SPARASSIS	CRISPA
This	is	an	edible	fungus	that	usually	grows	on	rotting	tree	trunks	and	fallen	branches.	It	is
commonly	associated	with	pine.
JEWS	EAR	FUNGUS
This	is	found	in	mixed	woodland	throughout	the	year.	It	is	especially	common	in	autumn
and	favours	elder.	It	is	one	of	the	jelly	fungi	and,	although	revolting	to	look	at,	tastes
good.
CHICKEN	OF	THE	WOODS
This	fungus	usually	grows	on	the	sides	of	trees,	has	a	very	tasty	chicken	flavour	and	can
be	eaten	raw.
YOU	CAN	ALSO	EAT:
covered	container,	and	put	it	in	the	pit.	Cover	it	with	a	layer	of	coals	and	a	thin	layer	of
earth.	You	can	also	line	your	pit	with	dry	stones.	Build	a	fire	in	the	pit	then,	as	it	burns
down	scrape	the	coals	back,	put	in	your	container	of	food,	and	continue	as	above.	Bake	or
roast	tough,	heavy-skinned	fruit.	Juicy	fruit	can	be	eaten	raw	or	boiled.
Steaming	 works	 best	 with	 shellfish	 or	 other	 foods	 that	 need	 little	 cooking,	 such	 as
plantains	or	green	bananas.	Wrap	the	food	in	large	leaves	or	moss,	and	put	one	layer	on
the	coals.	Add	another	layer	of	moss	or	leaves,	and	then	another	of	wrapped	food,	and	so
on.	When	your	pit	is	almost	full,	push	a	stick	right	down	through	all	the	layers.	Seal	the	pit
with	 more	 leaves,	 or	 earth,	 and	 then	 remove	 the	 stick.	 Although	 mushrooms	 can	 be
steamed	you	may	find	they	leak	ink	and	discolour	any	foods	in	the	pit	below	them.
and	inedible	parts.	Dont	assume	that	a	part	that	was	edible	when	cooked	can	also
be	eaten	raw.	If	you	want	to	eat	it	raw,	test	it	raw.
Kelp
Lettuce	Laver
Lime	(sap)
Morel	(March)
Nettle
Primrose	(March)
Reedmace	(roots	January,	shoots	February-March)
Salad	Burnet
Scurvy	Grass
Sea	Purslane
Shepherds	Purse
Sorrel
Spruce
Stinging	Nettle
Sweet	Violet
Tansy
Watercress
Wild	Garlic
Wild	Parsnips
Wintercress
Wood	Sorrel
April-June
Alexanders
Balm
Bistort
Biting	Stonecrop
Black	Mustard
Bog	Myrtle
Borage
Brooklime
Broom
Burdock
Carragheen
Chamomile
Chanterelle
Cleavers
Coltsfoot
Comfrey
Coriander
Corn	Salad
Cow	Parsley
Cowslip
Dandelion
Dead-Nettle
Dulse
Elder	(flowers)
Fairy	Ring	Mushrooms
Fat	Hen
Fennel	(leaves)
Field	Poppy
Garlic	Mustard
Giant	Puffball
Good	King	Henry
Gorse
Ground	Elder
Ground	Ivy
Hairy	Bittercress
Hawthorn	(leaves)
Herb	Bennet
Hogweed
Hops	(shoots)
Horseradish
Ivy-Leaved	Toadflax
Jews	Ear
Kelp
Ladys	Smock
Laver
Lime
Lovage	(leaves)
Mallow
Marsh	Samphire
Meadowsweet
Morel
Mugwort
Nettles
Nipplewort
Orache
Pignut	(June)
Plantain
Primrose
Reedmace	(flowers)
Rock	Samphire
Rosebay	Willowherb
Rosemary
St.	Georges	Mushroom
Salad	Burnet
Scurvy	Grass
Sea	Beet
Sea	Kale
Sea	Lettuce
Sea	Purslane
Shepherds	Purse
Silverweed
Sorrel
Sow	Thistle
Spignel	(leaves)
Spruce
Sweet	Cecily
Sweet	Violet
Tansy
Wall	Pennywort
Watercress
Wild	Cabbage
Wild	Celery	(Smallage)
Wild	Garlic
Wild	Strawberry	(June)
Wood	Avens	and	Wood	Sorrel
Woodruff
Yarrow
July-September
Agrimony
Ash
Balm
Barbery
Beefsteak	Mushroom
Bilberry
Black	Mustard
Blackberry
Blackcurrant
Blackthorn	(sloes,	September)
Bog	Myrtle
Borage
Brooklime
Bullace	(September)
Burdock
Caraway
Carragheen
Cep
Chamomile
Chickweed
Cloudberry
Comfrey	(July)
Coriander
Corn	Salad
Crab	Apple
Cranberry
Crowberry
Dandelion
Dulse
Elder	(berries)
Fairy	Ring	Mushroom
Fat	Hen
Fennel
Field	Mushroom
Ground	Elder
Ground	Ivy
Hairy	Bittercress
Hawthorn	(benies)
Hazel	Nuts	(September)
Heather
Hen	of	the	Woods
Herb	Bennet
Hogweed
Hops	(cones)
Horn	of	Plenty
Horseradish
Hottentot	Fig
Jews	Ear
Juniper	(September)
Kelp
Laver
Mallow	(leaves)
Marjoram
Marsh	Samphire
Meadowsweet
Mugwort
Nipplewort
Parasol	Mushroom
Pignut	(until	July)
Poppy
Red	Clover
Rowan
Salad	Burnet
Sea	Beet
Sea	Buckthorn
Sea	Lettuce
Sea	Purslane
Service	Tree
Shaggy	Cap	Mushrooms
Shepherds	Purse
Silverweed
Sloe
Sorrel
Sow	Thistle
Spignel	(roots	and	seeds)
Strawberry
Sweet	Cecily
Tansy
Wall	Pennywort
Watercress
Wild	Celery
Wild	Cherry
October-December
Alexanders	(roots)
Barberry
Beech
Beefsteak	Mushroom
Biting	Stonecrop
Blackberry
Blackthorn	(sloes)
Brooklime
Bullace
Cep
Chanterelle
Chickweed
Corn	Salad
Cowberry
Crab	Apple
Cranberry
Crowberry
Dandelion	(roots)
Dulse
Elder
Shepherds	Purse
Silverweed
Sorrel
Spignel	(roots)
Sweet	Cecily
Sweet	Chestnut
Walnut
Watercress
Wild	Canot
Wild	Rose
Wintercress
Wood	Blewit
Yarrow
Seashore	Food
The	coastline	offers	the	survivor	a	wide	variety	of	food	sources	if	you	know	what	to	look
for.	 The	 major	 problem	 is	 a	 psychological	 one:	 you	 may	 have	 to	 eat	 some	 fairly
unappetising	 items.	 The	 essential	 precaution	 is	 to	 learn	 as	 much	 as	 you	 can	 about	 the
subject	first	by	familiarising	yourself	with	the	food	sources	the	seashore	has	to	offer	and
trying	some	of	the	techniques	described	below.	You	will	be	able	to	overcome	your	initial
reluctance.	 Then,	 if	 you	 find	 yourself	 in	 a	 survival	 situation	 near	 the	 coast,	 you	 have
already	won	half	the	battle.
Drinking	water	is	always	one	of	the	survivors	top	priorities.	By	digging	a	shallow	well
just	above	the	high-water	level	you	will	be	able	to	collect	fresh	(if	a	little	brackish)	water.
Dont	dig	too	deep,	or	the	sea	will	seep	in.	This	is	a	good	technique	to	practise	next	time
you	visit	a	beach.	If	you	have	a	vessel	to	boil	water	in,	boil	sea	water	and	collect	the	steam
in	a	clean	cotton	cloth.	Squeeze	out	the	cloth	and	you	have	distilled,	drinkable	water.	Now
it	is	time	to	forage	for	food.
The	coastline	is	abundant	with	food	sources,	but	there	are	a	few	basic	rules	to	remember
to	avoid	food	poisoning	or	contamination	from	all	the	waste	man	so	thoughtfully	dumps
into	the	sea.	The	edible	items	discussed	here	are	all	standard.
Tropical	beaches	are	more	abundant	but	so	are	the	dangers.	The	basic	rules	are:
1.	Dont	eat	anything	too	brightly	coloured	red,	yellow	or	green.	It	is	a	natural	sign	of
poison	being	present.
2.	Dont	eat	any	items	washed	up	or	away	from	their	natural	environment.
3.	Avoid	anything	with	a	very	strong	smell.
4.	If	in	doubt,	dont	eat	it.
Shellfish
Only	eat	shellfish	you	find	alive;	dead	ones	can	be	used	as	bait.	Bivalve	molluscs	feed	by
filtering	food	particles	out	of	the	water.	They	also	filter	out	and	retain	bacteria	which,	in
warm	weather,	multiply	and	can	cause	food	poisoning	to	humans.	This	is	especially	true	of
mussels	and	oysters,	which	filter	large	quantities	of	water	daily	and	relish	the	warm,	soupy
conditions	near	sewage	outlets.
Clams	(Mya	arenaria)
Common	in	the	middle	and	lower	shore,	clams	look	like	large	mussels	and	can	be	up	to
10-13	 cm	 (4	 inches)	 across,	 Wash	 thoroughly	 as	 for	 cockles	 and	 scald	 for	 10	 minutes.
Remove	the	meat	from	the	shell	and	cut	syphons	off.	The	remaining	meat	should	then	be
fried	or	baked	for	30	minutes	or	boiled	until	tender.
Cockles	(Cardium	edule)
Widely	 distributed	 along	 British	 coasts,	 they	 are	 normally	 found	 25-75	 mm	 (-	 inch)
beneath	the	surface	of	the	beach.	Wash	off	the	mud	and	sand	and	stand	in	clean	water	for
at	least	six	hours.	Drop	into	a	pan	of	boiling	water	and	simmer	for	five	minutes.	Eat	on
their	own	or	with	soup.
Limpets	(Patella	vulgata)
Found	 on	 rocks	 below	 high	 water,	 limpets	 should	 be	 soaked	 for	 about	 six	 hours	 then
boiled	for	five	minutes.	They	can	be	rather	tough,	but	further	boiling	will	tenderize	them.
Mussels	(Mytilus	edulis)
Commonest	 of	 European	 shellfish,	 are	 delicious,	 but	 you	 must	 exercise	 considerable
caution	when	collecting	them.	They	are	responsible	for	most	cases	of	shellfish	poisoning.
Stand	 in	 at	 least	 two	 changes	 of	 fresh	 water	 and	 check	 carefully	 that	 each	 one	 is	 alive
before	cooking.	They	can	be	boiled,	or	baked	in	ashes.
Scallops	(Pecten	maximus)
These	are	the	classic	shells	we	all	recognize;	found	on	the	lower	shore,	they	are	only
uncovered	at	very	low	tides.	Like	clams,	they	require	a	lot	of	cooking.	Wash	and	scald,	cut
away	the	white	and	orange	flesh	and	fry	or	boil	until	cooked.
Whelks	(Buccinum	undatum)
Whelks	 are	 the	 largest	 of	 the	 gastropods	 (coiled	 shells).	 They	 are	 very	 meaty,	 but
require	a	great	deal	of	boiling	otherwise	you	will	still	be	chewing	on	the	same	whelk	hours
later.	Like	the	smaller	winkle,	they	can	be	found	in	rock	pools	and	among	seaweed.
Winkles	(Littorina	littorea)
You	will	need	a	large	number	of	these	small,	spiral-shaped	pointed	shells,	normally	dark
grey	 in	 colour,	 for	 a	 decent	 meal.	 Soak	 them	 in	 fresh	 water	 to	 clear	 them	 of	 sand,	 then
plunge	 into	 boiling	 water	 for	 about	 10	 minutes.	 Extract	 the	 meat	 with	 the	 proverbial
winkle	pin.
Preparing	shellfish
1.	Test	mussels	by	sideways	pressure:	if	the	animal	is	alive	you	will	feel	some
resistance.
2.	Other	shellfish	are	tested	by	forcing	the	shell	open	a	fraction	of	an	inch.	If	the	animal
is	alive	and	well	it	will	shut	again	quickly	once	you	release	the	pressure.	If	it	is
already	open,	opens	wide	with	ease	or	fails	to	shut	again,	it	is	safer	to	assume	the
thing	is	dead	and	that	you	should	not	eat	it.
3.	Always	wash	seashore	edibles	in	plenty	of	fresh	water.	Shellfish	should	be	left	to
stand	in	clean	water	overnight	if	possible.	Check	they	are	still	alive	when	you	come
to	cook	them:	a	single	dead	one	will	contaminate	the	rest	of	your	meal.
4.	Always	cook	thoroughly	to	kill	naturally	present	bacteria.
Seaweeds
Most	seaweeds	are	edible	raw	or	cooked,	and	they	form	a	valuable	addition	to	your	diet
providing	your	water	supply	is	adequate,	because	they	tend	to	make	you	thirsty.	They	are
found	 in	 inshore	 waters	 and	 attached	 to	 rocks	 at	 low	 water.	 In	 addition	 to	 general	 rules,
there	are	three	specific	rules	concerning	seaweed:
			Only	eat	fresh,	healthy	specimens.	Eat	nothing	with	strong	odours	or	flavour:	seaweed
should	be	firm	to	the	touch,	not	wilted,	slimy	or	fishy-smelling.
			Do	not	eat	thread-like	or	slender	forms.	Sea	sorrels	contain	small	amounts	of	sulphuric
acid	which	can	severely	upset	your	stomach.	They	betray	their	presence	by	bleaching
out	other	plants	nearby.	The	test,	if	you	are	not	sure	what	youve	found,	is	to	crush	a
little	of	it	in	your	hand.	The	released	acid	will	make	the	plant	decay	quickly	and	in	5-10
minutes	it	will	give	off	an	unpleasant	odour.
			Inspect	seaweed	carefully	and	shake	out	any	small	organisms,	e.g.	tiny	crabs.
There	are	many	types	of	seaweed.	Those	found	in	Europe	include:
Bladder	wrack:	Fresh	or	dry	fronds	may	be	used,	boiled	in	soups	or	stews.	It	can	also	be
dried	to	make	tea	of	a	sort.
Carragheen	(Irish	moss):	This	is	found	on	the	rockier	Atlantic	shores.	Tough,	feathery
and	many-branched,	it	is	red/purple	to	purple/brown.	Boil	it	and	eat	stewed	with	fish,	meat
or	other	vegetables.
Enteromorpha	intestinalis:	A	mouthful	to	say	but	a	satisfactory	mouthful	to	eat,	this	is
widely	distributed	and	can	be	eaten	raw	or	dried	and	used	in	soups.
Laver:	Found	on	the	Atlantic,	Pacific	and	Mediterranean	coasts,	this	is	plentiful	around
the	UK	and	is	eaten	in	Wales.	A	thin,	leaf-like	transparent	membrane	with	fine,	wavy	flat
fronds,	it	is	red,	purple	and	brown	in	colour.	Cut	just	above	the	base	so	you	dont	kill	the
plant	 off.	 Wash	 it	 thoroughly	 to	 remove	 grit,	 and	 simmer	 slowly.	 It	 can	 be	 eaten	 like
spinach	or	rolled	into	balls,	dipped	in	bread	crumbs	and	fried.	If	survival	cuisine	is	beyond
you,	you	can	still	eat	it	raw.
Sea	lettuce:	Found	in	the	Atlantic	and	Pacific,	this	is	lettuce-like	in	appearance	and	is
coloured	light	to	dark	green.	It	may	be	eaten	raw	or	used	as	a	vegetable.
Shoreline	plants
There	 are	 a	 few	 plants	 found	 along	 the	 shore	 which	 can	 provide	 the	 survivor	 with	 quite
reasonable	food.
Marsh	samphire	(Salicornia)
This	thrives	in	salty	marshlands	along	the	foreshores	of	Europe	and	has	been	described
as	the	next	best	thing	to	asparagus.	Ready	from	the	longest	day	in	June	to	the	last	day	of
August,	 the	 young	 shoots	 can	 be	 eaten	 raw	 in	 salads	 or	 cooked	 in	 a	 little	 boiling	 water.
Drain	 and	 add	 a	 little	 butter	 and	 pepper	 if	 you	 have	 any.	 Eat	 by	 stripping	 the	 soft	 flesh
away	from	the	hard,	spiny	stems	with	your	teeth.	Marsh	samphire	now	appears	on	some
restaurant	menus	as	a	delicacy.
Sea	arrow	grass	(Triglochin	maritima)
Found	near	north	temperate	coasts,	salt	marshes	and	grassy	foreshore	areas,	this	can	be
eaten	raw	but	is	best	added	to	soups	or	boiled	as	a	vegetable.
Sea	beet	(Beta	vulgaris)
Also	 known	 as	 wild	 spinach,	 this	 was	 the	 ancestor	 of	 our	 beetroot,	 sugar	 beet	 and
spinach.	The	leaves	may	be	picked	from	spring	to	autumn.	It	is	full	of	natural	minerals,
especially	iron	and	vitamins	A	and	C.	Wash	the	leaves	well	and	remove	the	thicker	stalks
before	boiling	in	a	very	little	water.	Better	still,	steam	it	for	about	ten	minutes.
Sea	kale	(Crambe	maritima)
A	cabbage-like	plant	growing	in	large	clumps	with	huge,	fleshy	grey/green	leaves,	it	is
found	in	shingle,	sand	dunes	and	along	cliffs	on	north	temperate	coasts	and	it	was	known
to	the	Romans,	who	preserved	it	in	barrels	for	long	sea	journeys.	Pick	young	leaves	and
white	underground	shoots	from	February	to	May.	Boil	briefly,	chop	and	boil	for	a	further
twenty	minutes	in	changed	water.	They	can	also	be	steamed	or	baked.
Crustaceans
These	are	a	major	food	source		but	also	a	common	cause	of	food	poisoning,	so	proceed
with	caution.	Never	eat	a	raw	crustacean.	Cook	them	by	covering	with	sand	and	earth	and
building	 a	 fire	 over	 the	 pile:	 they	 will	 cook	 in	 their	 own	 juices.	 A	 better	 way	 is	 to	 boil
them	in	water.
Crabs,	crayfish,	lobsters,	shrimps	and	prawns	are	found	throughout	the	world	and	all	are
edible.	They	go	off	quickly,	so	eat	them	soon	after	catching	them.	Boil	some	water,	insert
the	crustacean,	and	eat	20-30	minutes	later.
Fish
Fish	can	often	be	found	in	pools	at	low	tide	around	the	bases	of	rocks	and	under	clumps	of
weed,	 and	 eels	 and	 small	 fish	 are	 often	 left	 behind	 by	 the	 tide.	 A	 great	 deal	 of	 fluid	 is
stored	in	the	flesh	and	the	spine	cavity	of	fish	and,	surprisingly,	this	is	not	salty.	Hunting
fish	in	pools	is	not	easy:	traps	and	spears	will	both	work,	but	only	if	you	have	practised
first.	A	maze	trap	works	well	for	flatfish	and	others	in	coastal	areas.	It	should	be	about	22.5	metres	(6-8	feet)	across	with	a	mouth	of	40-50	cm	(2	feet).	The	outer	walls	of	wood	or
stones	should	project	60	cm	or	so	into	the	trap.	Avoid	small,	spiny	fish,	which	are	likely	to
be	 poisonous.	 Fish	 can	 be	 boiled,	 roasted	 in	 a	 fire,	 baked	 in	 clay	 or	 cooked	 on	 a	 spit.
Prepare	them	by	cutting	off	the	heads,	removing	the	guts	and	cleaning	them	out.	A	very
sharp	 survival	 knife	 is	 an	 essential	 item	 here.	 Small	 fish	 can	 be	 eaten	 whole	 without
cleaning.	 Never	 eat	 a	 fish	 with	 a	 suspiciously	 powerful	 odour,	 sunken	 eyes	 or	 slimy	 or
flabby	skin.	If	in	doubt,	prod	it	with	your	thumb:	if	it	remains	dented,	do	not	eat	it.	Use	it
for	bait	instead.
Common	octopus	(Octopus	vulgaris)
You	may	be	able	to	spear	octopus	amongst	the	rocks,	but	the	better	method	is	to	leave	out
large	tin	cans	or	sections	of	pipe	with	a	few	stones	secured	to	the	bottom	just	below	the
low-tide	mark.	Octopi	will	adopt	these	containers	as	lairs	when	they	move	in	at	high	tide:
they	will	form	the	stones	into	a	wall	at	the	open	end	of	the	tin.	The	only	real	problem	is
getting	the	octopus	out	of	the	tin.
Birds
All	sea	birds	are	edible,	either	raw	or	cooked,	although	some	may	taste	a	little	peculiar.
Roasting	and	baking	in	clay	are	good	ways	of	cooking,	but	boiling	is	most	nutritious	as
you	retain	all	the	juices.	Before	cooking,	a	bird	should	be	bled	and	drawn	and	the	feathers
removed,	although	a	small	bird	can	be	rolled	in	clay	and	baked:	the	feathers	and	skin	come
away	when	cooked.	The	livers	are	particularly	good,	and	the	entrails	make	good	bait	for
fishing.	Do	not	attempt	to	kill	or	ear	any	bird	unless	you	are	in	a	genuine	wartime	survival
situation.	All	wild	birds	in	the	UK	are	protected	by	law.
Other	food	sources
Other	possible	food	sources	include	sea	urchins,	sea	cucumbers,	starfish,	razor	shells	and
lug	 worms.	 And	 dont	 forget	 that	 the	 seashore	 will	 be	 inhabited	 by	 dune-dwelling
creatures	such	as	mice,	rabbits	and	lizards:	all	these	can	go	in	the	survivors	pot.	As	in	all
survival	 situations,	 living	 on	 the	 seashore	 is	 all	 about	 making	 the	 maximum	 use	 of
whatever	is	available.
Fishing
If	you	are	fortunate	enough	to	be	stranded	in	an	area	with	a	lake	or	river,	you	have	a	rich
source	of	food	waiting	to	be	gathered.	Fish	are	rich	in	protein,	the	brains	and	skin	are	rich
in	fat,	and	the	meat	can	also	be	stored	long-term.	The	problem	is	how	to	remove	the	fish
from	his	natural	environment	to	yours.
As	 someone	 intent	 purely	 on	 survival,	 you	 cannot	 afford	 any	 sporting	 niceties.	 The
fishing	techniques	you	will	need	to	use	are	usually	outlawed.	You	must	be	able	to	catch
your	 fish	 in	 quantity,	 and	 as	 easily	 as	 possible.	 Before	 you	 actually	 start	 fishing	 remind
yourself	 of	 the	 danger	 of	 water,	 especially	 in	 your	 weakened	 physical	 state.	 Should	 you
fall	 in,	 remember	 the	 tip	 of	 the	 old	 salmon	 fishermen	 	 throw	 your	 arms	 out	 crucifixfashion,	and	try	to	float	down	to	a	shallow	pool	where	you	can	wade	out.	If	you	panic	and
throw	your	arms	up	in	the	air	you	will	only	sink	faster.	(In	crocodile-infested	waters	try	to
stay	as	dry	as	possible!)
While	fish	may	seem	more	easily	trapped	and	hunted	than	other	animals,	you	must	bear
in	mind	that	you	need	to	catch	an	awful	lot	of	fish	to	provide	the	same	volume	of	food	as	a
medium-sized	land	animal.	At	the	end	of	the	day,	your	catch	must	be	big	enough	to	justify
the	time	and	effort.	This	will	be	largely	dependent	on	how	well	stocked	your	river	is.
Whether	you	decide	to	hunt	or	trap	fish,	the	time-honoured	hunting	rules	apply.	Study
the	fish	in	your	locality,	see	where	the	biggest	fish	prefer	to	swim	as	the	position	of	the
sun	 changes,	 get	 to	 know	 their	 habits	 	 especially	 their	 feeding	 habit.	 Once	 you	 have
caught	a	fish,	study	its	stomach	contents	to	find	out	what	it	was	feeding	on.	The	more	you
know,	the	easier	your	task	will	be.
Hunting	fish
Although	 hunting	 fish	 usually	 produces	 a	 smaller	 catch	 than	 trapping	 them,	 it	 can	 be	 a
quick	 way	 to	 a	 short-term	 meal,	 and	 is	 ideally	 suited	 to	 survivors	 on	 the	 move.	 The
hunting	tools	are	also	simpler	and	more	easily	made	than	trapping	gear.
Fish	are	able	to	detect	unusual	disturbances	in	the	water,	and	can	see	movement	above
the	water.	To	avoid	alerting	them	to	your	presence,	always	try	to	minimize	your	movement
and	noise.	Walk	carefully		fish	can	feel	heavy	footfalls	through	the	water.
Tickling
Some	fish,	particularly	trout	and	salmon,	will	allow	you	to	touch	them	while	in	the	water.
To	 catch	 fish	 like	 this	 you	 need	 to	 be	 actually	 in	 the	 water.	 The	 ideal	 type	 of	 stream	 is
wide,	and	shallow	and	clear.
Approach	 your	 fish	 slowly	 and	 carefully,	 with	 your	 hands	 already	 in	 the	 water.	 Once
you	are	close	enough	to	touch	the	fish,	pass	your	upturned	hands	under	him	very	gently.
You	 will	 probably	 fail	 the	 first	 time	 you	 do	 this,	 out	 of	 sheer	 astonishment,	 for	 the	 fish
seem	to	nestle	against	your	hands.	Once	your	hands	are	in	position,	grab	the	fish.	Bend	it
in	your	hands	and	it	wont	slip	away.	In	one	smooth	action,	cast	it	on	to	the	bank.	While
this	technique	does	require	the	confidence	that	comes	with	practice,	it	does	work,	and	can
be	a	very	effective	way	to	catch	fish	in	the	right	circumstances.
Torch	and	blade
At	night,	fish	can	be	attracted	to	light.	Wade	into	a	shallow	stream	with	a	torch	made	of
birch	bark,	and	you	should	be	able	to	catch	the	fish	attracted	by	slashing	at	them	with	the
blunt	end	of	a	machete	or	a	thin	blade	carved	of	wood.	Make	certain	you	hold	the	torch
high	 in	 front	 of	 you	 so	 as	 to	 avoid	 casting	 your	 shadow	 on	 the	 water.	 If	 the	 river	 is	 too
deep	to	wade	into,	you	can	use	the	same	technique	from	the	river	bank,	using	a	long	spear
to	catch	the	fish.
Spear	and	lure
You	can	easily	make	fish	spears	from	available	wood,	and	they	can	be	very	effective.	They
fall	into	two	basic	categories		pin	and	snag.	You	use	the	simplest	spears	to	pin	the	fish	to
the	 river	 bed.	 They	 are	 usually	 made	 of	 a	 single	 piece	 of	 wood,	 pronged	 or	 split	 at	 the
point,	and	crudely	barbed.	They	are	very	quickly	made	and	very	effective.	The	snag	or
leister	spears	are	more	complicated	to	make.	They	work	by	snagging	the	fish	on	barbs
rather	than	pinning	the	fish	to	the	bottom.	For	this	reason	they	are	better	than	pin	spears	in
deep	water.	You	can	make	these	spears	with	detachable	heads	attached	to	the	spear	shaft
by	a	length	of	strong	cordage.	In	this	way	the	fish	can	thrash	around	without	any	risk	of
Maze	traps
These	are	the	simplest	traps	you	can	construct.	They	are	simply	holding	pens,	which	fish
can	enter	easily	but	cannot	leave	because	of	the	design	of	the	entrance.	When	you	make
this	type	of	trap,	make	sure	that	the	stakes	are	securely	hammered	into	the	stream	bed	with
a	stone	maul.	Lash	the	tops	of	the	stakes	with	cordage		your	trap	has	the	constant	flow	of
the	river	to	contend	with.	If	you	do	have	a	net,	set	it	across	a	straight	section	of	river.	If	the
river	is	shallow,	place	the	net	at	an	angle	in	the	water.
Basket	traps
Basket	 traps	 are	 slightly	 more	 complicated	 to	 make	 than	 maze	 traps,	 but	 have	 the
advantage	 that	 you	 can	 carry	 them	 easily	 to	 wherever	 there	 are	 the	 most	 fish.	 Place	 the
basket	 so	 that	 the	 river	 current	 flows	 into	 the	 basket	 entrance	 and	 raise	 the	 downstream
end	out	of	the	water.	Secure	the	basket	with	rocks	or	slim	willow	branches.	If	you	have
time	you	can	also	construct	a	funnel	of	stakes	to	lead	the	fish	into	the	basket.
Nets
Nets	are	the	hardest	fishing	aids	of	all	to	make,	requiring	great	lengths	of	cordage.	Unless
you	have	nylon	cord	to	unravel	for	netting	material	or	a	gill	net	in	your	survival	kit,	this
method	of	trapping	is	an	unrealistic	proposition.	When	you	have	one,	a	net	is	a	first	rate
piece	of	fishing	equipment.
Meat
Meat	 is	 the	 most	 nourishing	 food	 for	 man,	 and	 certainly	 the	 most	 satisfying	 for	 the
fugitive	who	is	surviving	for	any	length	of	time	in	the	wild.	Collecting	and	eating	grubs
may	be	an	easier	option	than	trapping	larger	animals,	but	you	have	to	get	through	a	lot	of
worms	and	caterpillars	to	beat	a	decent	rabbit	or	duck.	Here	we	describe	how	to	set	about
catching	whatever	you	find.
The	first	thing	to	know	is	that	all	animals	are	edible	(but	not	necessary	the	whole	of	the
beast).	The	second	thing	is	that	theyre	nearly	all	very	difficult	to	catch	and	youll	have	to
use	all	your	skills	to	be	successful;	and	that	means	understanding	the	animals	way	of	life.
Daily	habits
Animals	are	usually	fairly	regular	in	their	habits,	using	the	same	paths	and	trails,	drinking
at	the	same	places	on	the	river	bank	and	from	pools,	sleeping	in	the	same	sheltered	places.
They	also	have	a	timetable,	and	stick	to	it;	if	an	animal	went	to	a	certain	place	to	drink	at
dawn	this	morning,	theres	a	very	good	chance	that	it	will	do	the	same	again	tomorrow.
Spend	time	looking	for	signs	of	animals.
If	theres	a	lot	of	animal	activity	going	on,	find	a	hiding-place	and	stay	in	it	until	you
recognize	 the	 local	 wildlife	 patterns.	 It	 will	 make	 trapping	 or	 hunting	 them	 a	 great	 deal
easier.	All	youve	got	going	for	you	is	your	intelligence;	theyve	lived	there	all	their	lives!
Unless	you	have	an	accurate	weapon,	such	as	a	rifle,	shotgun	or	crossbow,	hunting	will
be	 a	 lot	 less	 likely	 to	 provide	 you	 with	 dinner	 than	 trapping.	 In	 a	 hostile	 environment,
where	 there	 are	 enemy	 forces	 or	 natives,	 hunting	 is	 almost	 certain	 to	 be	 impossible
anyway,	but	lets	look	at	some	of	the	basic	skills	youll	need	to	hunt	game	in	the	wild.
Always	assume	that	any	small	animals	in	the	area	will	be	wary	and	quick	to	run	away.
If	 they	 spot	 you,	 hear	 you	 or	 smell	 you	 (remember	 that	 their	 sense	 of	 smell	 may	 be	 a
thousand	times	better	than	yours),	they	will	either	go	to	ground	or	disappear	off	into	the
distance.	Seeing	them	before	they	become	aware	of	you	greatly	increases	your	chances	of
catching	 them.	 They	 often	 use	 the	 same	 pathways	 and	 drinking	 places,	 and	 make
permanent	 homes.	 Look	 for	 their	 signs	 	 tracks,	 paths	 in	 grass,	 faeces,	 dens,	 feedingplaces		and	use	that	intelligence	to	help	you	set	up	a	plan	to	catch	them.
To	survive	in	the	wilderness	you	have	to	become	a	predator		and	that	means	you	have
to	 compete	 with	 other	 animal	 predators	 for	 the	 same	 prey.	 You	 can	 learn	 a	 lot	 about
survival	by	watching	the	animals	around	you.	Notice	how	the	animal	that	makes	the	kill
isnt	always	the	one	who	enjoys	the	meal.
You	 can	 always	 let	 predators	 do	 your	 hunting	 for	 you.	 Watch	 until	 you	 can	 work	 out
their	pattern	of	activity,	then	wait	for	them	to	make	a	kill.	If	you	rush	them	youll	often
cause	them	to	drop	their	prey.
Camouflage	and	approach
Remember,	 the	 fieldcraft	 that	 makes	 you	 a	 good	 foot-soldier	 can	 also	 make	 you	 a	 good
hunter.	 Always	 obey	 the	 rules	 of	 camouflage	 and	 approach.	 Never	 silhouette	 yourself
against	 the	 skyline,	 even	 in	 woodland.	 Always	 move	 upwind	 or	 across	 wind.	 Approach
streams,	 rivers	 and	 waterholes	 very	 carefully,	 especially	 around	 dawn	 and	 dusk.	 Find
cover	and	get	into	it,	and	wait	for	the	animals.	And	stay	still!	Fidgeting	may	cost	you	a
meal		and	that	may	end	up	costing	you	your	life.	Larger	game,	even	if	it	sees	you,	may
not	take	flight	straight	away.	Stop	and	keep	still	until	it	loses	interest,	and	then	approach	in
a	wide	zigzag.	In	hills	and	mountains,	always	try	to	get	above	the	animal	youre	stalking.
Shooting
If	you	are	shooting	game,	the	best	targets	are	the	head,	neck	and	the	spine	just	behind	the
shoulder.	Take	your	time,	and	make	the	first	shot	count		because	youre	not	likely	to	get	a
second	chance.	If	you	hit	and	wound	the	animal	and	it	runs	off,	follow	the	blood	trail.	A
badly	 wounded	 creature	 wont	 have	 the	 strength	 to	 run	 far.	 Give	 it	 the	 chance	 to	 go	 to
ground	 before	 following	 it	 up.	 Approach	 slowly	 and	 then	 make	 the	 kill.	 Dont	 waste
ammunition	if	you	can	finish	it	off	by	clubbing	it.
Trapping
Hunting,	however,	should	take	second	place	to	making	and	setting	traps.	Traps	are	much
more	 likely	 to	 provide	 you	 with	 a	 lasting	 supply	 of	 meat.	 Simple	 ones	 are	 very	 easy	 to
make	and	set:	the	simplest	of	all	is	a	snare		a	slip	noose	firmly	pegged	into	the	ground	or
anchored	 to	 a	 rock	 or	 tree.	 Make	 them	 from	 wire	 if	 its	 available,	 or	 use	 plastic	 fishing
line,	string	or	even	line	made	up	from	natural	fibres.
These	snares	are	especially	effective	when	you	set	them	at	the	entrance	to	burrows	and
dens.
Set	them	in	trees	to	catch	squirrels,	or	make	a	squirrel	pole:	an	8-12	feet	(2.5	to	3.5
m)	 pole	 with	 perhaps	 half	 a	 dozen	 snares	 around	 it,	 leaned	 up	 against	 a	 tree	 used	 by
squirrels.	 It	 may	 sound	 too	 easy,	 but	 squirrels	 are	 inquisitive	 creatures	 and	 will	 often
investigate	 something	 new	 just	 for	 the	 fun	 of	 it.	 Youre	 not	 likely	 to	 be	 able	 to	 kill
anything	larger	than	a	rabbit	or	a	small	cat	with	a	wire	snare,	though	you	may	slow	down
larger	animals	so	that	you	have	a	better	chance	of	clubbing	them	to	death.
Trapping,	even	more	than	hunting,	depends	on	how	well	you	can	read	the	signs.	There
is	no	point	in	placing	a	trap	just	anywhere	hoping	that	an	animal	will	stumble	into	it	by
chance!	Entrances	to	burrows	and	tunnels	are	the	best	place.	Look	for	signs	that	they	are
occupied		fresh	droppings,	signs	of	feeding	and	movement	in	and	out.
clean	the	snails	out	every	day,	and	replace	the	water	and	fodder.	Do	this	for	at	least	five
days.	Clean	the	snails	in	running	water.
To	cook:	Plunge	the	snails	into	boiling	water	for	three	minutes.	Remove	from	shells,	cut
off	the	tortillon	(the	last	bit	out	of	the	shell),	and	rinse	in	clean	water.	Simmer	for	60-90
minutes	in	any	vegetable	soup	you	can	manage.
Once	you	have	a	store	of	dried	meat,	you	can	consider	making	pemmican,	the	survivors
home-made,	 high-energy,	 high-protein	 emergency	 ration.	 Pemmican	 is	 ideal	 for	 long
hunting	trips	or	if	you	intend	to	make	a	break	from	civilisation.
Take	your	brittle	dried	meat	and	pound	it	between	two	rocks	until	it	is	a	powder.	You
now	have	the	equivalent	of	a	survival	stock	cube.	Next,	mix	the	powdered	meat	with	sundried	 berries	 and	 plenty	 of	 rendered	 fat.	 Form	 the	 resulting	 sticky	 mass	 into	 palm-sized
pellets	and	place	these	in	the	cleaned	large	intestine	of	an	animal.	Seal	the	ends	by	tying
and	with	fat.	You	now	have	a	survival	sausage	which	can	be	eaten	as	it	is,	or	sliced	and
added	to	stews,	or	fried	on	a	hot	stone.
Precautions	against	flies
Until	the	surface	of	the	meat	has	dried	you	run	the	risk	of	flies	laying	their	eggs	in	it.	You
can	prevent	this	with	two	simple	precautions.	Either	site	your	drying	rack	in	a	sunny	and
windy	location	or,	the	more	effective	method,	lay	a	slow	smouldering	fire	under	the	rack.
This	 will	 speed	 up	 the	 drying	 process	 as	 well	 as	 keeping	 off	 insects.	 Make	 absolutely
certain,	however,	that	the	fire	is	giving	out	only	a	low	heat	and	not	much	smoke.	Dont	use
green	vegetation	to	produce	the	smoke,	or	you	will	taint	the	meat.	If	you	need	to	increase
the	smoke,	use	some	damp	wood	chips	or	bark	from	a	non-poisonous	tree.
Freezing
In	Arctic	conditions	you	may	be	able	to	store	your	meat	by	letting	it	freeze.	But	remember
	 even	 when	 frozen,	 the	 scent	 of	 the	 meat	 will	 be	 detected	 by	 other	 hungry	 predators.
Make	certain	it	is	out	of	their	reach.
Be	sure	that	you	will	be	able	to	cope	with	the	meat	once	it	is	frozen.	The	most	common
mistake	made	by	survivors	is	to	freeze	large	pieces	of	meat.	Instead,	butcher	it	into	meal
size.
Preserving	fish
Your	fish	can	be	preserved	along	with	your	meat.	Treat	fish	in	the	same	way	as	meat		dry
it,	or	make	it	into	pemmican.	The	only	difference	is	that	fish	goes	off	far	more	quickly,	so
it	must	be	dried	as	fast	as	possible.	In	all	but	the	sunniest	weather,	this	will	mean	you	have
to	use	a	smudge	fire	or	a	smoke	house.
Smoking
You	can	also	deliberately	flavour	fish	by	smoking	it.	To	do	this	you	will	need	to	hang	the
fish	 in	 a	 smoke	 house.	 Score	 the	 flesh	 before	 hanging,	 so	 that	 the	 smoke	 permeates	 the
flesh	better.	Smoking	fish	in	a	smoke	house	is	little	different	to	operating	a	smudge	fire.	A
slow	trickle	of	wood	smoke	does	the	trick.	Once	you	have	started	smoking	the	fish,	check
it	on	a	regular	basis.	There	are	two	stages	in	smoking	fish:	half	smoking	and	full	smoking.
Half-smoked	fish	is	still	soft	and	flavoured	of	wood,	ready	for	eating.	Fully-smoked	fish	is
dry	and	brittle.	Treat	it	the	same	way	as	dried	meat.
Fish	 pemmican	 is	 certainly	 an	 acquired	 taste	 when	 eaten	 raw.	 But	 it	 is	 an	 excellent
addition	to	soups	and	stews,	and	can	be	fried	to	make	delicious	fish	cakes.
Preserving	fungi
If	you	are	lucky	you	may	be	stranded	during	a	glut	of	edible	fungi.	To	preserve	them	for
future	 use,	 you	 can	 dry	 them.	 First	 clean	 each	 individual	 fungus,	 cutting	 out	 any	 parts
attacked	by	insects.	Be	particularly	thorough	with	fungi	that	have	gills	or	pores,	as	these
are	a	favourite	breeding-ground	for	grubs.
Preserving	plants
In	general,	plant	foods	are	best	used	fresh.	But	at	the	onset	of	winter,	you	must	certainly
consider	 stockpiling	 your	 supplies.	 The	 easiest	 parts	 of	 plants	 to	 preserve	 are	 the	 young
green	leaves	used	for	teas.	Dont	pick	the	leaves	and	store	them	in	containers		simply	dry
the	stalks	of	the	plant	itself.	With	plants	such	as	nettles,	use	the	fibres	in	the	dried	stem	for
cordage.	Store	bundles	of	useful	herbs	in	your	shelter	or	smoke	house.	Dry	and	grind	up
roots	to	use	as	flour,	or	bury	them	in	layers	of	dry	sand.	Cover	this	to	keep	it	dry.
Preserving	nuts,	fruits	and	seeds
Nuts	are	best	stored	either	as	a	flour	or	in	open	containers,	still	in	their	shells.	Keep	them
dry	and	stir	them	regularly	to	prevent	mildew.	Dry	fruits	by	laying	them	on	warm	stones	in
the	sun	with	lids.	Above	all	keep	them	dry.
The	best	way	to	store	seeds	long-term	is	by	parching	them.
Only	 make	 flour	 in	 small	 batches.	 Otherwise	 you	 risk	 losing	 your	 whole	 crop	 to
weevils.
Storing	food
Your	 food	 store	 must	 be	 safe	 from	 mammals,	 must	 be	 dry,	 and	 must	 have	 a	 constant
temperature.	 A	 properly-constructed	 smoke	 house	 will	 meet	 many	 of	 these	 criteria,	 but
dont	use	it	to	store	all	your	food.	Never	keep	all	your	eggs	in	one	basket	is	the	golden
rule	when	storing	your	life-saving	food.
The	easiest	larder	to	make	is	an	underground	cache.	Try	to	find	a	dry	sheltered	piece	of
ground		for	example,	under	an	overhanging	bush	or	log.	Dig	a	hole	about	two	feet	deep
and	line	the	pit	with	bark	slabs.	Birch	or	cherry	bark	is	ideal	for	this.	Further	line	the	pit
with	dried	and,	if	possible,	smoked	grass.	Place	your	food	packages	into	the	pit,	followed
by	 more	 grass.	 Then	 add	 dried	 aromatic	 herb	 (such	 as	 marjoram)	 to	 disguise	 any	 scent
from	the	food.	Finally,	seal	the	pit	with	bark	and	the	soil	you	originally	removed.
Take	care	to	note	exactly	where	you	have	buried	the	food,	or	mark	the	location	so	that
you	can	find	it	again	even	after	a	heavy	snowfall.
Scavenged	food
No	animal	will	stop	itself	stealing	your	food	out	of	a	sense	of	fair	play.	In	the	same	way,
dont	 miss	 any	 opportunity	 to	 steal	 from	 a	 wild	 animal.	 You	 can	 turn	 even	 the	 rotting
remains	of	a	predators	meal	into	a	life-saving	stew	if	you	are	hungry	enough,	Skin	and
gut	the	remains	in	the	normal	way,	and	then	thoroughly	boil	the	rancid	meat	for	as	long	as
possible.	To	eat	the	stew	you	will	need	to	hold	your	nose,	but	it	will	keep	you	alive.
This	emergency	stew	cannot	be	re-heated.	Discard	what	you	dont	eat.	If	you	re-heat	it,
Medicinal	plants
On	the	run	from	enemy	forces	behind	the	lines,	or	stranded	in	the	middle	of	nowhere	with
no	resources	apart	from	your	personal	skills,	you	have	little	access	to	modern	medicine.
You	must	learn	how	to	use	whatever	is	available.
The	first	lesson	of	survival	medicine	is	not	to	get	sick	or	injured	to	start	with.	This	is	not
as	silly	as	it	sounds.	Soldiers	have	the	advantage	of	being	young	and	fit,	inoculated	against
some	diseases	and	trained	in	hygiene,	but	over-confidence	can	undo	all	this.	A	Para	once
got	his	jaw	broken	after	prodding	a	600-lb	black	bear	with	a	stick,	and	another	squaddie
on	exercise	in	the	UK	was	bitten	by	an	adder	that	was	sunning	itself	on	a	rock.	He	thought
he	was	quick	enough	to	catch	it	behind	the	head	with	his	finger	and	thumb:	when	he	woke
up	in	hospital	four	days	later,	he	knew	he	wasnt!
Treat	all	animals	with	respect,	particularly	large,	nasty	ones	and	small	venomous	beasts.
Generally	speaking,	if	you	dont	bother	them,	they	wont	bother	you.	All	animal	bites	are
dangerous.	They	easily	go	septic,	especially	bites	from	carnivorous	animals	whose	fangs
cause	deep,	narrow	wounds	that	soon	close,	leaving	bacteria	behind:
Sensible	precautions
As	 a	 lone	 survivor	 you	 have	 to	 take	 good	 care	 of	 your	 feet.	 Keep	 your	 shoes	 on	 and
improvise	 some	 footwear	 if	 you	 havent	 got	 any.	 Your	 feet	 might	 be	 hardened	 against
stones	you	tread	on,	but	they	wont	protect	you	against	snakes.
Dont	 paddle	 about	 in	 water	 with	 bare	 feet.	 Poisonous	 fish	 such	 as	 the	 lion	 fish	 lie
motionless	in	the	sand,	with	venomous	spines	waiting	to	be	trodden	on.	If	you	have	to	go
barefoot	through	the	shallows,	shuffle	along	rather	than	taking	proper	steps,	and	prod	the
ground	in	front	of	you	with	a	stick	to	clear	anything	nasty	out	of	the	way.	This	is	not	a
problem	confined	to	the	tropics:	on	a	recreational	outing	in	Yorkshire	in	the	UK,	someone
stood	on	a	weaver	fish	and	within	an	hour	was	unable	to	walk.	Imagine	that	in	a	survival
situation.
Never	wade,	swim,	or	even	walk	through	fresh	water	in	the	tropics.	In	much	of	Africa,
South-East	 Asia	 and	 South	 America,	 the	 bilharzia	 worm	 is	 endemic.	 It	 burrows	 through
your	skin	to	lodge	in	your	bladder,	bowels,	liver	or	intestines.	If	you	have	to	drink	water
from	such	a	source,	boil	it	thoroughly,	chlorinate	it	or	leave	it	for	48	hours:	any	of	these
methods	kills	off	the	larvae.
It	is	wise	to	keep	reasonably	covered	up	to	avoid	insect	stings,	even	in	a	hot	climate.
The	vile-smelling	leaves	of	the	elder	tree	rubbed	on	exposed	parts	will	keep	the	worst	of
the	insects	at	bay.	Peppermint	and	bog	myrtle	are	also	fairly	effective,	as	is	a	decoction	of
pine	bark	or,	in	the	tropics,	camphorwood.	None	are	as	effective	as	chemical	bug	juice.
These	common-sense	precautions	may	seem	obvious	and	even	tiresome,	but	remember:
it	is	the	man	who	has	the	self-discipline	and	character	to	observe	the	dos	and	donts,	even
when	at	the	end	of	his	tether,	who	is	most	likely	to	survive.
How	to	use	herbs
To	get	the	maximum	value	from	herbs	you	have	to	know	the	processes	used	to	extract	the
goodness,	 how	 to	 apply	 them,	 and	 whether	 they	 may	 be	 used	 internally	 or	 externally.
Different	herbs	and	treatments	require	different	methods.
Internal	preparations
Infusion:	 An	 infusion	 is	 made	 by	 pouring	 boiling	 or	 near-boiling	 water	 on	 the	 relevant
plant	or	parts	of	a	plant.	Leave	for	3-5	minutes;	longer	for	tougher	plants.
Decoction:	Boil	the	plant	for	as	long	as	needed	to	get	the	goodness	from	the	herb.	The
tougher	its	tissues,	the	longer	you	have	to	boil.	Decoctions	are	usually	necessary	for	bark,
stalks,	 roots	 and	 seeds.	 A	 cup	 of	 tea	 is	 an	 infusion;	 a	 pot	 of	 non-instant	 coffee	 is	 a
decoction.
Maceration:	Chop	or	crush	the	plant	and	leave	for	several	hours	in	water.	Use	within	12
hours.
Powder:	Dry	the	plant	and	then	crush	it.	Be	careful;	powders	are	very	concentrated.
Preparations	for	external	use
Poultice:	Chop	or	crush	the	plant	into	a	mash,	then	heat	it.	Contrary	to	popular	belief,	it
does	not	need	to	be	very	hot.	Apply	the	poultice	to	the	appropriate	area	and	remove	after
five	minutes,	then	re-heat	and	re-apply.	Several	short	applications	are	better	than	one	long
application.
Compress:	Soak	a	piece	of	cloth	or	a	chunk	of	suitable	moss	in	a	strong	decoction	or
infusion	and	hold	it	in	place	for	about	10	minutes.
Dressing:	 Dressings	 are	 simply	 compresses	 made	 from	 weaker	 mixtures.	 Change	 the
first	few	dressings	on	a	wound	or	ulcer	every	two	hours,	then	gradually	increase	the	time
between	changes	to	a	maximum	of	12	hours.
Herbal	remedies
Like	most	worthwhile	skills,	learning	about	herbs	takes	time	and	effort.	Dont	wait	until
you	need	them	before	you	try	to	use	them.	The	golden	rule	is:	do	not	swallow	anything
unless	you	have	made	a	positive	identification.	In	the	UK	alone	there	are	at	least	a	score	of
plants	that	can	kill	you	and	many	more	that	will	make	you	very	ill.	The	following	are	very
safe,	 very	 effective	 and	 easily-identifiable	 herbs	 which	 have	 preventive	 and	 curative
properties.
Garlic
The	 onion	 family	 includes	 leeks,	 chives,	 shallots,	 garlic,	 garlic	 mustard	 (Jack	 by	 the
hedge)	 and	 ramsons	 (bears	 garlic).	 Hedge	 garlic	 and	 ramsons	 are	 very	 common	 in
temperate	climates	and	the	sub-tropics.	They	are	safe	to	use:	if	it	smells	like	garlic,	its	a
member	of	the	garlic	family.	Garlic	was	so	revered	as	a	healing	plant	by	the	Egyptians	that
they	worshipped	it	as	a	god.	As	a	lone	survivor,	you	may	come	to	appreciate	their	point	of
view.
Garlic	 contains	 an	 antibiotic	 (allicine)	 and	 vitamins	 A,	 B	 and	 B2.	 It	 is	 an	 intestinal
disinfectant	and	helps	protect	you	against	food	poisoning,	amoebic	dysentery,	typhoid	and
other	 infectious	 diseases	 (which	 is	 why	 it	 was	 used	 by	 medieval	 grave	 robbers).	 It	 kills
tapeworms	 and	 round	 worms	 if	 eaten	 in	 large	 quantities,	 relieves	 cramps,	 lowers	 blood
pressure	and	fights	fever.	Garlic	aids	digestion	and	stimulates	the	appetite.	It	can	also	be
used	as	a	compress.
The	most	common	garlic	is	garlic	mustard,	followed	by	ramsons.	The	latter	is	delicious:
you	will	find	it	forming	thick	carpets	in	damp	woods,	ravines	and	riverbanks.	The	whole
plant	is	edible	and	the	seeds	(which	taste	incredibly	strong)	can	be	kept	for	years.
Thyme	(Thymus	serpyllum)
Wild	thyme	is	common	throughout	the	temperate	zone	and	sub-tropics.	It	contains	thymol,
a	very	strong	antiseptic	with	few	side-effects:	it	is	retained	in	the	gut	and	released	into	the
bloodstream	to	counter	infection	throughout	the	body.	Thyme	helps	kill	worms	and	cures
diarrhoea,	although	not	quickly.	For	the	evader	it	has	another	advantage:	it	reduces	your
body	scent,	which	can	give	you	a	valuable	edge	against	tracker	dogs.
Delicious	when	added	to	stews	(the	best	way	to	take	your	medicine),	it	can	also	be	used
to	make	a	tea.	Sip	it	for	coughs	and	gargle	with	it	to	ease	sore	throats.
Comfrey
Comfrey	is	the	best	herb	to	help	mend	broken	bones.	The	plant	contains	starch	and	sugar,
particularly	in	the	roots,	and	it	is	rich	in	mucilage	(a	gum-like	substance)	and	tannin.	The
old	 country	 names	 for	 it	 are	 boneset	 and	 knitbone,	 which	 describe	 one	 of	 its	 many
uses.	Its	chemical	action	reduces	swelling	at	the	site	of	a	fracture	and	fosters	union	of	the
bone,	and	the	root	can	be	used	to	help	make	a	cast	because	the	mucilage	causes	it	to	stiffen
as	it	dries,	providing	the	vital	rigidity.
The	plant	grows	3-5	feet	(l-2	m)	tall	in	ditches,	by	roadsides,	on	waste	ground,	beside
river	banks	and	in	woods.	It	flowers	blue,	purple	or	white	between	June	and	October.	The
yellow	 tuberous	 comfrey	 flowers	 from	 March	 to	 June	 and	 lacks	 the	 thick	 root	 of	 the
common	comfrey.
Anaesthetics
Many	plants	in	Europe	can	reduce	the	agonising	pain	of	bone-setting	and	other	injuries.
The	 snag	 is	 that	 they	 can	 also	 produce	 unconsciousness	 or	 death.	 Their	 chemical
composition,	 and	 therefore	 their	 effects,	 vary	 according	 to	 the	 soil,	 weather	 and	 time	 of
year,	 so	 never	 experiment	 with	 any	 of	 the	 following:	 hemlock,	 dropwort,	 thorn-apple,
henbane,	 deadly	 night-shade,	 wolfsbane	 or	 yew.	 Some	 of	 their	 poisons	 are	 used	 as
homeopathic	remedies,	but	a	little	learning	is	a	dangerous	thing:	unless	you	are	thoroughly
trained,	leave	these	plants	alone.
Feverfew	 is	 your	 best	 herbal	 anaesthetic.	 It	 is	 chemically	 similar	 to	 aspirin,	 but	 takes
some	time	to	have	an	effect.	It	is	sometimes	prescribed	as	a	cure	for	migraine:	you	can	buy
it	in	tablets	which	cost	less	than	the	price	of	a	prescription	for	similar	controlled	drugs,	or
you	 can	 eat	 it	 in	 its	 natural	 form	 	 one	 leaf	 a	 day	 is	 the	 dosage.	 Unfortunately,	 it	 tastes
disgusting:	 roll	 it	 into	 a	 pill	 and	 knock	 it	 back	 quickly.	 Incidentally,	 dont	 neglect	 the
humble	aspirin	tablet	in	your	kit		it	is	a	very	useful	and	effective	drug.
Treatments
Because	 you	 cant	 foresee	 the	 terrain	 where	 you	 will	 be	 injured,	 make	 yourself	 familiar
with	 plants	 from	 many	 different	 habitats.	 The	 following	 cures	 are	 from	 ten	 of	 the	 safest
and	commonest	medicinal	plants	to	be	found	in	the	temperate	zone.	Familiarize	yourself
with	these	before	studying	further.
Bleeding
A	plant	with	haemostatic	properties	will	help	stop	bleeding.	You	probably	wont	have	such
plants	readily	to	hand	when	you	first	find	yourself	in	survival	conditions,	so	prepare	and
store	these	herbs	in	your	survival	medicine	chest.	The	dried	and	powdered	root	of	bistort
(Polygonum	bistorta)	can	be	applied	direct	to	external	wounds.
Use	an	infusion	of	the	green	stem	of	horsetail	(Equisetum	arvense)	to	wash	the	wound.
It	will	help	stop	the	bleeding.
Antiseptic
To	 prevent	 wounds	 becoming	 infected	 they	 can	 be	 washed	 with	 an	 infusion	 made	 with
these	medicines:
1.	Greater	plantain	(Plantago	major)	leaves	and	stem.	In	an	emergency,	chew	the	leaf	of
this	plant	to	a	pulp	and	use	it	directly	on	the	wound.
2.	Selfheal	(Prunella	vulgaris)	flowering	stems.	This	plant	too	can	be	chewed,	for	a
quickly	prepared	pulp.
3.	Dried	burdock	(Arctium	lappa)	root,	made	into	an	infusion.	This	is	ideal	to	prepare
for	long	journeys.	The	leaves	can	also	be	infused	but	are	less	potent.
4.	Birch	(Betula	pendula)	leaves	when	infused	make	an	all-purpose	disinfectant.
Digestive	disorders
An	excellent	cure	for	diarrhoea	is	charcoal	and	a	herbal	tea.	Remember	to	keep	your	fluid
intake	high	when	suffering	from	diarrhoea.
Five	plants	to	aid	digestive	disorders:
1.	Dandelion	(Taraxacum	officinale)	leaves,	washed	and	eaten	raw,	or	cooked	like
spinach,	are	an	excellent	aid	to	digestion.	Try	to	include	some	in	your	survival	diet	as
a	preventative.
2.	Dog	rose	(Rose	canina)	petals	and/or	hip	are	a	very	good	stomach-settler.	Before
eating	any	of	the	vitamin-C-rich	hips,	remove	the	hairy	seeds	inside	them.
3.	Water	mint	(Mentha	aquatica)	leaves	and	stems	can	be	used	as	an	infusion.	This
plant	is	also	useful	to	flavour	survival	stews.	Dont	eat	large	quantities.
4.	Horseradish	(Armoracia	rusticana)	roots	and	leaves	in	your	daily	diet	will	add
digestion	and	help	prevent	problems.	The	scrapings	from	the	root	make	a	strong
flavouring	for	stews.
5.	Selfheal	flowering	stems,	infused,	ease	upsets.	You	can	also	prepare	the	leaves	like
spinach	and	include	them	in	your	diet.
For	severe	digestive	disorders	such	as	dysentery,	use	an	infusion	of	powdered	bistort	root.
the	wound	and	your	heart.	Remove	tentacles	or	spines,	but	not	with	your	bare	hands.	Any
form	of	dilute	acid,	e.g.	vinegar	or	lemon	juice,	prevents	further	releases	of	venom.	Fish
venoms	are	destroyed	by	heat	and	the	pain	is	eased	greatly	by	the	application	of	hot	water.
Also,	 the	 venom	 has	 a	 short-lived	 effect,	 so	 a	 casualty	 who	 is	 not	 breathing	 and	 has	 no
pulse	can	be	brought	round	by	cardiac	massage	and	mouth-to-mouth	resuscitation.
Snake	bite
An	old	farmer	in	Texas	who	reared	rattlesnakes	for	their	meat	and	skin	was	bitten	by	them
four	times.	He	nearly	died	the	first	time.	Later,	when	living	with	Navajo	Indians,	he	was
bitten	again.	They	applied	a	tourniquet	between	the	bite	and	his	heart,	which	is	standard
procedure.	But	then	they	cut	an	onion	in	half	and	pressed	it	against	the	bite;	when	it	turned
green,	they	threw	it	away	and	applied	the	other	half.	The	procedure	was	continued	with
more	 onions	 until	 no	 green	 showed.	 Although	 he	 continued	 to	 feel	 ill,	 the	 worst	 of	 the
sickness	passed	in	two	days	instead	of	the	normal	five	or	six.
The	moral	is	that	with	a	knowledge	of	both	modern	and	folk	medicine,	you	can	adapt	to
find	the	best	possible	course	of	action	in	circumstances	where	most	people	would	give	up
and	die.	(For	more	information	on	snake	bites	see	p317.)
Tips	on	preparing	medicines
The	 secret	 of	 successful	 cures	 lies	 in	 how	 you	 choose	 and	 prepare	 your	 herbs.	 Try	 to
collect	only	healthy	plants,	from	areas	of	unpolluted	ground.	In	wilderness	areas,	the	best
places	 to	 search	 for	 herbs	 are	 by	 water	 sources	 and	 where	 forest	 meets	 grassland.	 In
escape	and	evasion	situations,	the	edges	of	fields	and	along	forestry	rides	are	the	places	to
search.
Having	 gathered	 your	 herbs,	 shake	 them	 clean	 of	 dust	 and	 insects.	 Most	 of	 the	 cures
involve	infusions,	which	basically	means	preparing	the	herb	as	a	tea.	Never	boil	your	herb.
Instead,	allow	it	to	brew	in	water	just	off	the	boil.	This	will	retain	all	of	the	goodness	in
the	plant.
Make	paste	for	poultices	by	grinding	up	the	herb	between	two	rocks,	with	a	little	water.
Apply	this	directly	to	the	wound	and	wrap	with	cloth	or	large	leaves.
You	will	have	to	judge	the	strength	of	your	herbal	cures	by	eye,	as	each	plant	has	its
own	character,	depending	on	the	season	or	its	location.	If	in	doubt,	always	under-medicate.
NOT	A	WEAPON
The	survival	knife	is	just	that		for	survival.	The	characteristics	of	a	good	survival
knife	are	not	those	of	a	weapon.
Besides,	the	law	in	many	countries	is	strict	and	you	may	be	committing	a	crime
if	you	own	one	without	good	reason		and	in	some	places	if	you	own	one	at	all.
They	are	not	for	kids.	When	you	buy	one	you	also	buy	into	a	professional,	adult
level	of	responsibility	in	its	use	and	security.
Selecting	the	knife
When	 choosing	 your	 knife,	 find	 a	 reputable	 dealer	 with	 a	 large	 range	 of	 quality	 knives.
Often	the	best	shops	stock	custom	knife	maker	ranges.	Do	not	limit	your	choice	of	knife	to
those	described	as	Survival	Knives:	there	are	many	hunting	knives	eminently	suited	to
survival	use.	Try	also	to	be	practical.	There	are	many	beautiful	knives	for	sale,	well	made
and	by	top-class	manufacturers;	but	they	are	not	all	practical	for	the	specialized	use	you
will	be	demanding.
You	must	always	carry	your	knife	with	you;	you	never	know	when	youll	need	it.	This
means	that	your	knife	must	be	a	convenient	size	to	be	carried	without	becoming	a	drag,
and	must	also	be	capable	of	carrying	out	all	those	basic	camp	chores	such	as	opening	tins,
hammering	tent	pegs,	cutting	string	and	so	on.	And	if	you	become	stranded	or	have	to	go
to	ground,	it	will	have	to	do	the	job	of	a	small	axe	as	well,	so	it	must	be	strong.	Generally
speaking,	 a	 fixed	 blade	 is	 the	 better	 option	 as	 it	 is	 stronger	 and	 more	 rugged,	 but	 most
professionals	carry	two	knives:	a	large	fixed	blade	and	a	small	folding	blade.
The	metal
There	are	really	only	two	basic	choices:	carbon	steel	or	stainless	steel.	Carbon	steel	will
rust	(generally	speaking)	unless	cared	for,	whereas	stainless	steel	should	not.	It	is	widely
recognized	that	carbon	steel	takes	a	keener	edge	than	stainless,	although	in	some	modem
aircraft	and	cutlery,	stainless	steels	are	challenging	this	traditional	concept.	Stainless	steel
should	hold	its	edge	longer	than	carbon	steel,	but	is	in	many	cases	harder	to	sharpen.
In	most	cases,	stainless	steel	would	be	the	best	choice.	Take	the	advice	of	a	reputable
dealer,	as	there	are	many	varieties	in	use,	in	many	cases	alloyed	with	other	metals	such	as
vanadium,	molybdenum	and	chromium	to	change	their	qualities.	In	general,	avoid	divers
knives	(unless	made	by	a	reputable	manufacturer),	as	the	steel	is	usually	very	poor.
When	 you	 are	 finding	 out	 about	 the	 type	 of	 steel	 used,	 try	 also	 to	 find	 out	 about	 the
temper.	If	a	knife	is	under-tempered	it	will	be	strong	but	will	not	take	an	edge;	if	it	is	overtempered,	 it	 could	 shatter	 in	 use.	 There	 is	 a	 tendency	 for	 manufacturers	 to	 over-temper
blades!
Size,	weight	and	balance
The	wise	traveller	tries	to	reduce	the	weight	of	his	pack,	but	when	travelling	far	off	the
beaten	track	dont	try	to	economize	on	the	weight	of	your	knife.	You	need	a	knife	with	a
weighty	 blade,	 as	 this	 reduces	 the	 force	 you	 need	 to	 apply	 and	 allows	 more	 control	 and
efficiency.	But	if	you	choose	a	blade	that	is	too	heavy,	it	will	cause	fatigue	in	your	fingers,
wrist	and	arm,	and	this	can	lead	to	dangerous	accidents.
The	 length	 and	 weight	 of	 your	 knife	 are	 critical	 factors,	 bur	 no	 real	 formula	 exists	 to
help	you	choose.	In	jungles,	machetes	and	long,	light	knives	are	the	norm,	but	for	more
general	use	these	are	really	too	long.	As	a	rough	guide,	dont	choose	a	knife	that	is	more
than	two	and	a	half	times	the	length	of	your	hand,	and	no	less	than	one	and	a	half	times
long.
Leverage	principle
To	illustrate	the	principle,	imagine	that	you	are	striking	a	nail	into	a	piece	of	wood	with	a
one-metre	steel	bar.	If	you	want	to	achieve	the	same	result	with	a	bar	50	centimetres	long,
you	 must	 either	 use	 a	 lot	 more	 force	 or	 a	 heavier	 bar.	 The	 shorter,	 heavier	 bar	 is	 more
controllable	as	it	exerts	less	leverage	on	the	wrist,	and	can	be	used	in	more	confined	space.
The	same	is	true	of	knife	lengths.
Once	 you	 have	 chosen	 the	 length	 and	 weight	 of	 your	 blade,	 try	 to	 decide	 where	 the
point	 of	 balance	 lies.	 Ideally	 it	 should	 be	 just	 in	 front	 of	 the	 guard.	 This	 means	 that	 the
knife	is	slightly	blade-heavy,	yet	easily	controlled	by	adjusting	your	grip.	If	the	point	of
balance	 is	 too	 far	 forward	 it	 will	 cause	 muscle	 strain,	 which	 makes	 the	 knife	 slip	 from
your	grasp.	The	more	common	fault	is	that	the	knife	is	too	handle-heavy.	Excess	weight	in
the	grip	is	a	burden,	as	it	does	not	contribute	to	the	blades	cutting	ability.
Features	and	fittings
Grip:	The	most	important	fitting	to	your	knife	is	the	grip;	probably	the	commonest	fault	in
most	survival	knives	is	the	way	by	which	the	grip	is	attached.	The	part	of	the	blade	that
goes	to	make	up	the	handle	is	called	the	tang.	In	many	knives,	this	narrows	at	the	join	of
the	guard	and	grip.	This	is	an	inherent	weakness,	at	the	point	of	greatest	strain.	The	ideal
attachment	 is	 what	 is	 called	 full	 tang,	 where	 the	 blade	 remains	 the	 width	 of	 the	 grip
throughout.
Guard:	The	guard	is	an	important	feature	of	any	survival	knife.	Its	purpose	is	to	prevent
your	fingers	slipping	forward	onto	the	sharp	edge	while	using	the	knife.	Remember:	even
the	smallest	cut	can	fester	and	prove	fatal	under	survival	conditions.
Point:	 The	 point	 of	 your	 knife	 is	 another	 important	 feature.	 It	 needs	 to	 be	 sharp,	 and
strong	 enough	 to	 pry	 with.	 It	 is	 an	 advantage	 if	 it	 falls	 below	 the	 horizontal	 mid-line	 of
your	 knife:	 this	 is	 a	 true	 drop	 point,	 and	 prevents	 the	 point	 snagging	 the	 flesh	 of	 an
animals	stomach	wall	during	skinning	and	gutting.
Saws:	Saws	are	a	regular	feature	of	survival	knives.	Do	not	expect	them	to	saw	through
wood.	 They	 will,	 however,	 cut	 grooves	 in	 wood	 and	 cut	 ropes,	 making	 them	 a	 useful
additional	feature,	although	not	essential.
Gristle	 saws	 are	 sometimes	 found	 in	 front	 of	 the	 guard.	 These	 again	 are	 a	 useful
additional	feature	that	will	find	many	uses.
Hollow	handles:	Designed	to	accommodate	useful	survival	tools	such	as	fishing	lines	or
firelighting	 aids,	 they	 are	 an	 excellent	 addition	 as	 long	 as	 they	 do	 not	 weaken	 the	 grip.
Hollow	handles	do	often	mean,	however,	that	the	tang	not	only	narrows	but	also	shortens
as	well.	While	not	all	hollow	handles	are	weak,	take	great	care	in	your	choice.
Sheaths:	Sheaths	are	an	important	feature	of	any	knife.	As	well	as	protecting	the	knife,
they	 must	 be	 strong	 enough	 to	 protect	 you	 from	 injury	 if	 you	 fall	 on	 the	 encased	 blade.
Good-quality	leather	sheaths	are	almost	as	good	as	the	very	strong	scabbards	being	made
from	modern	plastics,	but	beware	of	cheap	leather.	If	you	find	a	good	knife	that	has	a	poor
sheath	you	may	be	able	to	have	a	better	sheath	made	for	it.
The	 method	 of	 carrying	 the	 sheath	 is	 entirely	 up	 to	 you,	 and	 you	 may	 want	 to	 make
some	modifications.	You	may	also	consider	taping	additional	survival	gear	to	the	outside
of	your	scabbard,	as	long	as	you	dont	end	up	looking	like	a	Christmas	tree.
Personalising	your	knife
Having	carefully	selected	your	knife,	work	it	in,	personalise	it,	practise	using	it	and,	above
all,	look	after	it.	Your	life	may	one	day	depend	on	it.	Your	choice	of	survival	knife	speaks
of	your	knowledge	of	survival;	the	state	it	is	in	and	the	way	in	which	you	use	it	speak	of
your	experience.	To	a	survivor,	a	knife	is	the	most	versatile	life-saving	aid.	To	a	survival
expert	 it	 is	 a	 craftsmans	 tool,	 treated	 with	 the	 same	 care	 and	 attention	 as	 a	 master
carpenters	chisels.	It	is	not	toyed	with:	it	remains	in	its	sheath	until	it	is	needed,	and	is
then	used	with	great	dexterity	and	ease	for	a	multitude	of	tasks	before	being	returned	to	its
resting	place.
The	grip:	The	best	place	to	begin	your	personalisation.	It	is	an	essential	feature	of	your
knife,	and	must	allow	for	exact	and	secure	control	of	the	blade	in	many	differing	uses	and
environments.
1.	If	a	grip	is	too	large	you	will	not	be	able	to	hold	onto	it	for	heavy	cutting.
2.	If	a	grip	is	too	small	you	will	have	to	clench	it	tightly	for	heavy	cutting;	this	is	very
tiring	and	dangerous.	Blisters	and	severe	hand	cramps	can	result.
3.	If	a	grip	is	too	long	it	may	pull	out	from	your	hand.
4.	lf	a	grip	is	too	short	you	will	not	be	able	to	hold	onto	the	knife	correctly,	which	may
be	dangerous.
As	a	general	rule,	it	is	better	to	have	a	grip	that	is	slightly	too	big,	as	it	is	less	tiring	to	use
than	 too-small	 grip	 	 and	 when	 your	 hand	 tires	 you	 will	 have	 accidents.	 A	 large	 grip	 is
easier	 to	 hold	 when	 wearing	 gloves.	 Your	 grip	 should	 be	 easy	 to	 hold	 in	 a	 variety	 of
different	ways,	with	no	sharp	edges	or	protuberances	that	will	impede	its	use.	It	should	be
the	correct	shape	in	cross	section,	which	is	a	blunt	oval	shape.
GRIP	CROSS-SECTIONS
Altering	the	grip	may	seem	a	drastic	thing	to	do,	but	once	the	knife	fits	your	hand,
there	 will	 be	 a	 visit	 improvement	 in	 its	 effectiveness	 as	 it	 will	 take	 less	 effort	 to
use.
PARALLEL	SHARPENING
Once	you	have	a	professional	edge,	make	sure	you	do	not	destroy	it	while	honing.
A	 common	 failing	 is	 to	 tilt	 the	 edge	 too	 sharply;	 this	 gradually	 blunts	 the	 knife.
These	 cross-sections	 of	 the	 blade	 show	 the	 right	 and	 wrong	 methods,	 and	 the
results	of	each.
Honing
Having	sharpened	your	knife,	a	really	razor-like	edge	can	be	achieved	by	lightly	honing
with	a	ceramic	rod.	Use	this	before	all	major	cutting	to	help	maintain	the	edge.
Common	uses	for	your	knife
Slashing:	 Grip	 the	 knife	 as	 far	 back	 as	 possible.	 Use	 long,	 sweeping	 motions	 with	 a
straight	arm.
Chopping:	Grip	the	knife	further	forward,	with	your	cutting	action	more	from	the	elbow
IMPORTANT:	 The	 privilege	 of	 owning	 a	 survival	 knife	 is	 one	 that	 all	 survival	 students
must	uphold	and	defend.	Be	professional	in	your	approach	and	your	use	of	your	knife,	and
be	seen	to	be	professional.
	
Bows
One	 surprising	 omission	 from	 most	 survival	 training	 and	 survival	 literature	 (including
Special	 Forces)	 is	 a	 weapon	 that	 has	 been	 used	 by	 millions	 of	 men	 and	 women,	 and	 all
young	boys,	from	the	Stone	Age	to	the	present:	the	bow	and	arrow.	This	may	be	because
the	skills	of	bow-maker,	arrowsmith,	fletcher	and	archer	are	not	perfected	overnight,	and
you	dont	learn	them	best	in	a	survival	situation.
The	bow	and	arrow	have	been	ignored	in	survival	training	because	some	knowledge	of
tree	 types	 is	 necessary,	 and	 professional	 bow-makers	 insist	 that	 wood	 must	 be	 seasoned
for	three	years	to	make	a	bow.	Neither	of	these	notions	will	hold	water.	A	soldier	should
be	knowledgeable	about	nature,	especially	if	he	is	trained	in	survival	techniques.	But,	yes,
a	longbow	must	be	seasoned	for	three	years		if	you	want	one	that	will	last	for	years	and
can	drive	an	arrow-head	through	the	breastplate	of	a	knight	at	400	metres.	But	thats	rather
unlikely	 on	 the	 modern	 battlefield.	 Most	 survivors	 or	 evaders,	 if	 offered	 a	 weapon	 that
would	 get	 their	 dinner	 and	 kill	 an	 enemy	 at	 a	 range	 of	 up	 to	 150	 metres,	 would	 say,
Thatll	do	nicely,	thank	you.	That	weapon	can	be	made	in	as	little	as	four	hours,	and	not
more	than	a	couple	of	days	depending	on	materials	available,	and	the	power	required.
Bows	and	the	law
Game	hunting	with	bows	is	illegal	almost	everywhere,	so	dont	do	it.	Target	shooting	can
teach	you	the	basics	of	archery,	but	it	cannot	prepare	you	for	survival	archery.	The	nearest
you	can	get	is	to	try	the	sport	of	field	archery,	in	which	you	shoot	different-shaped	targets
at	unknown	ranges	deployed	in	woods	and	fields.	This	enables	you	to	practise	instinctive
shooting	without	getting	jailed	for	poaching.
Shooting	tips
A	 strong	 upper	 body	 is	 both	 necessary	 for,	 and	 developed	 by,	 archery.	 You	 need	 this
strength	to	draw	the	bow	and	to	hold	your	aim.	In	a	survival	situation	your	strength	may
be	reduced,	perhaps	greatly,	by	hunger,	fatigue,	illness	or	injury.	If	so,	do	not	try	ambitious
shots.	Use	a	shorter	draw	length		the	distance	the	arrow	is	drawn		and	engage	your
target	from	as	close	a	range	as	possible.	A	quick,	instinctive	shot	is	less	likely	to	be	wrong
because	of	fatigue.	In	fact,	this	is	often	the	best	way	to	shoot	in	any	case.	Field	archery	is
mostly	 snap	 shots,	 perhaps	 at	 moving	 targets,	 and	 target	 archery	 bears	 as	 much
resemblance	to	it	as	shooting	on	the	range	does	to	field-firing	or	combat	shooting.	Some
archers	are	always	more	accurate	with	an	instinctive	shot	than	an	aimed	shot.	Use	the	style
that	suits	you	best.
What	to	wear
Note	 the	 dress	 of	 the	 bowman.	 Do	 not	 wear	 headgear	 with	 a	 peak	 	 a	 fatigue	 cap	 for
example		even	when	shooting	into	the	sun,	as	it	will	foul	your	draw.
Gloves	are	one	of	the	most	under-emphasized	survival	items.	After	a	few	days	of	using
fires,	building	or	collecting	and	using	sharp	or	toxic	materials,	your	hands	will	get	rather
painful.	 For	 the	 archer,	 gloves	 prevent	 your	 holding	 arm	 being	 painfully	 bruised	 by	 the
string.	Pressure	on	the	fingers	on	your	drawing	hand	can	be	very	painful	without	gloves,
and	is	distracting	in	the	aim.	But	you	can	make	a	shooting	tab	and	a	bracer	from	hide.
If	the	skirt	of	your	jacket	is	hanging,	or	if	the	sleeves	are	bulky,	remove	the	jacket,	or	it
will	foul	the	string	when	you	release	it,	causing	loss	of	speed,	range	and	accuracy.
Making	a	bow
The	first	step	on	the	road	to	equipping	yourself	with	a	bow	and	some	arrows	is	to	find	the
materials	 from	 which	 youll	 make	 them	 	 which	 means	 knowing	 how	 to	 recognize	 the
right	wood	where	its	growing.	You	may	already	be	familiar	with	the	species	of	tree	and
shrub	mentioned	already,	of	course.	If	not,	the	best	ways	to	find	out	about	them	are	to	ask
someone	whos	country-wise	to	show	them	to	you,	or	to	go	to	a	botanical	garden.	If	the
idea	of	visiting	a	botanical	garden	seems	weird,	bear	in	mind	that	paragraph	87	of	the	old
Air	 Ministry	 publication	 on	 jungle	 survival	 recommends	 unit	 visits	 for	 aircrew.
Servicemen	 in	 survival-oriented	 units	 should	 ask	 their	 CO	 to	 arrange	 a	 day	 visit,	 which
most	parks	and	gardens	anywhere	in	the	world	will	be	happy	to	set	up.	A	days	visit	will
give	you	all	the	knowledge	you	need	about	trees	to	find	the	material	for	a	bow.	On	top	of
that,	 youll	 learn	 to	 recognize	 a	 huge	 variety	 of	 edible,	 medicinal	 and	 otherwise	 useful
plants.	If	you	think	its	a	waste	of	a	days	training,	just	think	about	it		it	beats	the	hell	out
of	square-bashing,	or	humping	a	loaded	Bergen	over	50	kilometres.
Lets	 assume	 youve	 now	 armed	 yourself	 with	 a	 fair	 knowledge	 of	 the	 local	 flora.	 So
what	do	you	look	for?
Hard,	well-seasoned,	springy	woods	are	best	for	making	a	bow.	Dont	even	think	about
making	one	from	softwoods	such	as	pine,	fir,	new	elder	shoots,	larch,	spruce,	and	so	on.
Youll	only	be	wasting	valuable	time	and	energy.	Look	for	hardwoods	like	wych	elm,	elm,
oak,	 ash,	 rowan,	 birch,	 greenheart,	 wild	 rose,	 hornbeam,	 dagame	 (lemonwood),	 osage
orange,	juniper	and	ironwood.	Some	of	these	will	make	a	good	bow,	and	some	will	make	a
passable	one.	None	will	make	a	bow	equal	to	the	king	of	bow	woods,	the	yew.
POISONOUS	YEW
Yew	 grows	 in	 most	 of	 Asia,	 the	 Americas	 and	 throughout	 Europe.	 Its	 very	 common	 in
southern	England,	and	youll	see	it	in	churchyards,	estates,	parks	and	gardens.	Be	careful
with	it.	The	leaves,	berry	arils	(an	extra	covering	over	the	fruit)	and	sap	contain	a	deadly
nerve	poison,	taxine.	Celtic	warriors	dipped	their	arrows	in	the	yew	sap,	just	to	make	sure!
So	dont	use	the	leftovers	from	your	bow-making	as	skewers	or	spoons	or	whatever.	You
wont	come	to	any	harm	from	handling	yew,	though,	as	long	as	you	wash	the	sap	off	your
hands.
A	QUICK	ONE
You	can	make	an	excellent	bow	very	quickly		seasoning	the	wood	in	a	day,	over	a	fire	
from	rowan.	(This	is	sometimes	called	mountain	ash	in	England).	Ideally,	you	should	take
the	wood	from	a	slim	sapling	growing	in	dense	wood.	This	is	because	trees	growing	close
together	have	to	shoot	for	the	sun,	and	so	grow	slim	and	straight	with	few	branches	low
on	the	trunk:	just	what	you	need	for	a	bow.	You	dont	harm	the	environment	by	taking	a
few	of	these	saplings,	since	you	help	the	other	trees	to	spread.	And	if	you	cover	or	dirty
the	stump,	you	wont	leave	any	sign	of	your	presence	to	be	spotted	from	the	air.
Rowan	 bows	 are	 sweet	 to	 use,	 giving	 no	 jar	 or	 kick.	 But	 they	 do	 creak	 ominously
when	youre	shooting	them	in.	It	takes	fine	judgment	and	a	steely	nerve	to	find	out	how
far	you	can	draw	them		but	then	a	good	bow	properly	drawn	is	seven-eighths	broken!
THE	CORRECT	SIZE	OF	A	BOW
When	deciding	what	length	to	make	your	bow,	consider	the	following:
1.	The	longer	the	bow	is,	the	better	it	will	resist	a	given	pull.
2.	If	you	change	your	mind	and	shorten	an	existing	bow	it	will	shoot	further	for	the
same	draw	but	will	be	harder	to	pull	and	is	more	likely	to	break.
3.	Experiment	to	find	your	ideal	draw	length	and	try	to	make	your	bow	to	suit,	but	any
bow	drawing	between	60	and	90	cms	(2	to	3	feet)	will	be	sufficient	for	most	survival
archery.	A	bow	should	not	bend	in	the	middle		the	central	foot	or	so	should	be
rigid.	To	determine	the	position	of	the	handgrip,	find	the	centre	of	the	bow,	then	mark
75	mm	(3	inches)	below	and	25	mm	(1	inch)	above.	This	section	will	be	the	handle.
The	arrow	is	shot	from	the	bow	centre	while	you	grip	beneath	it.	The	upper	part	of
the	bow	should	be	cut	slightly	more	than	the	lower	in	order	to	compensate	for	the
handle.	Trim	your	bow	to	its	finished	size,	then	cut	the	nocks	at	either	end.
TOOLS
Once	youve	selected	your	bow	stave,	youll	need	some	tools	to	carve	the	actual	bow	from
it.	Professional	bowmakers	first	use	a	hammer	and	steel	wedges	to	split	logs	into	workable
dimensions.	Then	a	small	hand-axe	trims	the	stave	to	the	rough	shape	and	size	of	the	bow.
A	spokeshave	brings	it	down	to	the	exact	size,	with	final	minute	shavings	removed	with
shards	of	glass.	In	the	middle	of	nowhere	and	on	the	run	youre	not	too	likely	to	have	any
of	these.	But	an	issue-type	machete	or	a	heavy	survival	knife	will	do	the	job,	given	some
skill	and	elbow	grease.
Its	always	worth	having	at	least	Stanley	knife	blades	in	your	survival	kit.	You	can	use
them	on	their	own	as	scalpels	for	fine	work,	and	you	can	use	one	to	cut	its	own	wooden
handle.	 You	 can	 use	 the	 Stanley	 to	 make	 your	 bow	 from	 scratch,	 but	 its	 invaluable	 for
making	arrows.	If	you	havent	got	any	of	these,	then	its	back	to	basic	Stone-Age	survival
technology.
SEASON	THE	WOOD
Now	to	making	the	bow.	Look	for	a	branch	or	trunk	of	the	right	wood	thats	as	straight	as
possible.	It	should	be	at	least	6	feet	6	inches	(2	metres)	long,	although	you	can	go	as	short
as	4	feet	(1.25	m).	If	you	can	get	a	piece	of	seasoned		that	is,	properly	dried-out		wood,
terrific.	 Look	 for	 uprooted	 trees,	 cuttings	 and	 trimmings,	 at	 rail	 and	 roadsides,	 and	 near
farms	and	houses.	In	conventional	bow-making	the	entire	log	is	seasoned,	sometimes	for
years,	and	then	thinned	down	to	a	bow.	Survivors	have	to	reverse	the	process,	and	cut	out
the	rough	bow	and	then	dry	it.	This	is	a	lot	faster,	though	it	may	cause	some	warping.	Trim
the	stave	to	the	approximate	size	of	the	bow,	leaving	a	good	quarter-inch	surplus	in	both
thickness	and	breadth.
DRYING	OUT
At	this	point,	decide	how	quickly	you	need	your	bow.	Some	woods	you	can	use	straight
off,	but	all	of	them	improve	enormously	with	drying	out.	In	a	very	hot	climate	a	day	or
two	 makes	 a	 huge	 difference,	 and	 the	 bow	 keeps	 improving	 as	 you	 use	 it.	 In	 cold	 or
temperate	climates	you	will	have	to	dry	it	over	or	near	the	fire.	Yew	and	rowan	make	the
best	quick-dried	bows.	While	you	have	the	bow	near	the	fire,	you	may	as	well	make	sure
that	the	stave	is	straight	when	viewed	from	the	back	or	belly.
If	you	heat		or,	preferably,	steam		the	staff	where	its	bent,	you	can	put	it	permanently
into	shape	by	applying	pressure	in	the	right	direction.	This	doesnt	set	up	any	stresses	in
the	wood.
You	 can	 also	 re-curve	 or	 reflex	 the	 bow	 by	 the	 same	 method.	 But	 if	 the	 stave	 youve
chosen	is	naturally	reflexed,	or	re-curved	at	one	end	or	the	other,	dont	straighten	it.	If	it
aint	broke,	dont	fix	it!
MAKING	THE	STRING
The	English	longbowmen	of	the	Middle	Ages	used	bow	strings	able	to	take	a	weight	of
140	 lbs	 (60	 kg),	 and	 these	 were	 made	 from	 the	 stalks	 of	 the	 common	 stinging	 nettle.
Unfortunately	 this	 takes	 a	 long	 time	 to	 master,	 so	 the	 average	 survivor	 must	 improvise.
Silk	is	ideal	for	a	bow	string	because	it	stretches	very	little,	but	it	is	not	available	in	every
survival	situation.	Nylon	paracord	is	a	more	feasible	material.	Although	it	does	stretch	a
little,	this	can	be	taken	up	when	bracing	the	bow.	Paracord	has	the	bonus	of	being	near	rotproof	and	very	strong.
BRACING	A	BOW
Putting	 the	 string	 on	 a	 bow	 is	 called	 bracing,	 and	 it	 is	 very	 important	 to	 get	 this	 right.
Place	your	hand	thumbs	up	on	the	back	of	the	bow:	the	string	should	touch	your	thumb
when	correctly	braced.	You	need	not	be	too	slavish	to	this	rule	with	a	survival	bow,	but	the
nearer	 the	 better.	 Use	 a	 timber	 hitch	 to	 tie	 the	 bottom	 end	 of	 the	 string	 permanently	 in
place	and	a	simple	loop	to	attach	it	at	the	top.	When	you	need	the	bow,	brace	it	and	slip	on
the	top	loop.	Always	unstring	the	bow	when	not	in	use	or	it	will	lose	strength,	and	never
leave	it	standing	on	end.
Arrows
The	arrow	is	at	once	both	beautifully	simple	and	extremely	sophisticated.	It	is	a	missile,
developed	by	human	ingenuity	over	thousands	of	years.	Many	of	the	lessons	learnt	in	the
manufacture	of	millions	of	these	missiles,	with	hundreds	of	variations,	were	forgotten	after
the	Middle	Ages,	only	to	be	painstakingly	re-learnt	by	twentieth-century	missile	scientists.
For	survival	purposes,	you	will	not	have	to	make	an	arrow	anywhere	near	as	good	as	those
used	at	Agincourt,	which	had	heavy	armour-piercing	warheads	and	had	to	withstand	120
lb	of	thrust	from	the	string.
The	 first	 thing	 to	 learn	 about	 arrows	 is	 that	 the	 missile	 (the	 arrow)	 must	 match	 its
launcher	(the	bow).	At	this	stage,	an	explanation	of	whats	known	as	the	Archers	Paradox
is	helpful.
Due	to	the	impact	of	the	string,	the	inertia	in	the	arrow,	and	the	fact	that	the	arrow	is	set
at	an	angle	to	the	string	(which	is	in	line	with	the	centreline	of	the	bow)	and	the	edge	of
the	bow,	the	arrow	actually	bends	over	the	bow	when	you	release	it.	You	will	not	see	this
with	 the	 naked	 eye,	 but	 it	 does	 happen.	 When	 it	 leaves	 the	 bow,	 the	 arrow	 springs	 the
other	way	and,	after	a	few	more	bucks,	straightens	out	and	flies	off	to	your	target.	If	the
arrow	is	too	weak	for	the	bow,	therefore,	it	will	wobble	in	flight	and	lose	power.	It	may
also	 break,	 usually	 about	 six	 inches	 from	 the	 nock	 (the	 notch	 into	 which	 the	 bowstring
fits),	usually	with	jagged	edges,	and	usually	getting	stopped	by	the	inside	of	your	wrist,
which	is	damned	painful.	If	the	arrow	is	too	strong,	it	will	go	off	a	little	to	your	left	(if	you
are	right-handed).
For	survival	purposes,	you	dont	have	to	match	bow	and	arrow	exactly.	Instead,	learn
how	 each	 of	 your	 arrows	 flies.	 It	 is	 better	 in	 every	 way	 to	 err	 on	 the	 side	 of	 the	 strong
arrow.
WOODS	TO	USE
So	 now	 we	 have	 the	 theory,	 lets	 make	 some	 arrows	 before	 we	 starve	 to	 death!	 Good
woods	are	birch,	ash,	hornbeam,	alder,	willow,	bamboo,	ramin	(gonystylus),	pine,	fir,	oak,
elm,	beech,	elder,	dog	rose,	bramble	and	some	reeds.	As	a	survivor	you	will	do	best	by	not
confining	yourself	to	the	rules,	but	to	use	your	common	sense.
The	simplest,	quickest	and	most	versatile	wood	is	bamboo,	which	is	not	confined	to	the
jungle	 but	 common	 worldwide.	 Bamboo	 breaks	 always	 have	 many	 dead	 canes	 amongst
the	green:	these	can	be	used	instantly		dry	the	green	ones	near	the	fire,	or	leave	them	for
a	few	days	after	cutting.	Dont	forget	that	you	can	eat	the	young	shoots,	raw	or	cooked,
after	 you	 remove	 the	 poisonous	 hairs	 along	 the	 edges	 of	 the	 leaves!	 Next	 (for	 ease,	 not
quality)	come	strong	reeds,	followed	by	willow.	Surprisingly,	thick	bramble	and	wild	rose
can	provide	good	arrows.	The	thorns	are	easily	removed	with	your	front	teeth,	leaving	a
nice	round	shaft.
THE	SHAFT
The	arrow	should	be	as	straight	as	you	can	make	it,	as	bends	and	kinks	cause	inaccuracy
and	wind	resistance.	Use	steam,	or	bend	it	over	a	warm	stone,	to	straighten	it,	as	you	did
making	your	bow.	Some	woods	you	can	straighten	cold,	either	by	bending	and	holding	for
a	minute,	or	by	tying	the	bow	with	thread	or	string	and	leaving	it	for	an	hour	or	so.
It	 is	 easier	 than	 you	 think	 to	 cut	 an	 arrow	 from	 a	 billet	 of	 wood,	 especially	 the
softwoods	 such	 as	 pine,	 using	 your	 knife	 or,	 better	 still,	 your	 Stanley	 blade	 from	 your
survival	tin,	suitably	mounted.
If	 you	 have	 the	 time,	 it	 is	 then	 back	 to	 Stone-Age	 technology	 for	 a	 sanding	 block,	 to
give	 perfect	 roundness.	 Make	 this	 from	 two	 pieces	 of	 sandstone,	 about	 2	 by	 by	 1	 inch.
Chip	out	a	semi-circular	groove	along	the	length	of	each	one.	When	you	put	one	on	top	of
the	other,	they	should	make	a	circular	groove	thats	the	same	diameter	as	you	want	your
arrows	to	be.	Draw	the	arrow	through	these	blocks	until	its	smooth.	A	far	better	device,	if
you	can	make	one,	is	a	small	steel	plate	inch	thick	with	a	V	cut	in	it.	This	cuts	better,
and	allows	you	to	vary	the	diameter	of	the	arrow.
THE	FLIGHTS
By	far	the	easiest	way	to	fit	the	flights	is	to	use	plastic		not	quite	as	good	as	feathers,	but
requiring	 much	 less	 skill,	 time	 and	 effort.	 Sadly,	 there	 is	 no	 shortage	 of	 plastic	 litter
anywhere.	 Near	 houses,	 where	 farmers,	 climbers	 and	 forestry	 workers	 are,	 along	 any
roadside,	beach	-in	fact,	just	about	anywhere		you	will	find	a	profusion	of	plastic	drink
bottles,	oil	cartons,	milk	cartons,	etc.	Cut	them	into	strips	with	your	Stanley	blade	or	knife.
If	 necessary,	 put	 them	 momentarily	 in	 boiling	 water	 or	 near	 heat	 for	 a	 few	 seconds	 to
soften	them,	then	smooth	them	flat.	Fix	them	by	cutting	one	slot	through	the	arrow	for	a
pair	of	flights	and	a	groove	at	right	angles	for	the	third	flight.
If	 you	 use	 feathers,	 those	 of	 geese	 or	 large	 gliding	 birds	 are	 best	 	 for	 example	 the
eagle,	buzzard,	hawk,	flamingo,	pelican,	crow,	seagull	or	turkey.	Good	places	to	find	them
are	farmers	or	gamekeepers	gibbets:	rows	of	dead	crows	hanging	upside	down	on	fences
to	scare	other	crows	away.	Use	the	large	flight	feathers	from	the	wing.	Do	not	mix	feathers
from	right	and	left	wings,	if	you	can	help	it		it	causes	wobbling	and	loss	of	power,	as	they
set	up	opposing	wind	currents.
You	 can	 make	 your	 arrowheads	 out	 of	 steel,	 slate,	 stone,	 bone,	 flint,	 horn,	 glass,	 or	 just
sharpened	wood.	You	can	even	use	staples	from	a	fence	post.	For	the	nock,	its	simplest
just	to	groove	the	wood.	Put	a	whipping	above	the	nock	to	prevent	it	splitting,	if	necessary.
Shooting	the	bow
Although	you	can	shoot	without	them,	it	is	far	better	to	have	a	pair	of	gloves,	or	a	shooting
tab	and	a	bracer,	to	stop	the	inside	of	your	bow	arm	being	bruised	by	the	string.	You	can
easily	make	a	bracer	out	of	rabbit	skin	or	hide,	and	a	shooting	tab	too.	If	you	have	a	jacket
with	 close-fitting	 sleeves,	 you	 can	 do	 without	 the	 bracer.	 But	 a	 glove	 or	 shooting	 tab	 is
virtually	indispensable,	as	the	pressure	of	the	string	on	the	fingers	is	painful	and	can	be
very	distracting	in	the	aim.
BRACE	THE	BOW
First	youve	got	to	brace	or	put	the	string	on	the	bow.	The	correct	height	from	the	back
of	 the	 bow	 to	 the	 string	 was	 covered	 in	 Making	 a	 bow.	 Dont	 be	 a	 slave	 to	 this
dimension	for	a	survival	bow,	especially	when	you	first	use	it.	Use	a	timber	hitch	for	the
bottom	end,	permanently	in	place,	and	a	simple	fixed	loop	for	the	top.	When	you	need	to
use	the	bow,	just	brace	it	by	slipping	on	the	top	loop.
Shooting
Archery	 can	 be	 broken	 down	 into	 five	 component	 skills:	 standing,	 nocking,	 drawing,
aiming	and	loosing.	The	principles	outlined	below	hold	good	in	target	and	field	shooting,
although	it	is	not	always	possible	to	stand	correctly	in	field	shooting.
Here	are	the	ideals	in	the	five	disciplines.
STANDING
Put your feet in the stand at ease position, at right angles to the target. Leave only about
eight	 inches	 between	 your	 heels.	 Keep	 your	 knees	 straight,	 body	 upright	 and	 turned
towards	the	target,	so	that	if	a	line	were	drawn	through	your	shoulders	it	would	run	to	the
target
NOCKING
Hold	 the	 bow	 with	 your	 left	 hand	 (right	 hand	 for	 left-handed	 people).	 Without	 touching
the	flights,	engage	the	nock	in	the	whipping	on	the	string	(if	fitted).	The	nock	should	be	in
the	exact	centre	of	the	string,	with	the	arrow	resting	on	the	mid-point	of	the	bow,	on	the
left-hand	edge	of	the	bow	(right-hand	side	for	left-handed	people).	You	can	make	a	mark
in	the	middle	of	the	bow	to	ensure	quick,	accurate	nocking.
DRAWING
Place	the	fingers	with	index	finger	above,	and	next	two	fingers	below,	the	arrow.	You	will
probably	 prefer	 the	 three-finger	 draw,	 but	 the	 two-finger	 draw	 did	 not	 harm	 mediaeval
Englishmen!	If	the	terrain	permits,	your	weight	should	be	evenly	distributed	on	both	feet.
Bring	your	bow	across	your	body	at	waist	level,	and	slightly	incline	the	head.	This	helps
the	chest	muscles	to	assist	the	draw.	Both	arms	should	be	bent	at	this	point,	and	your	body
relaxed.
Begin	to	straighten	your	arms	and	bring	the	bow	up	as	you	continue	the	draw	smoothly
and	continuously	to	the	full	draw	position.
For	 target	 archery,	 exactly	 the	 same	 draw	 length	 is	 taken	 for	 every	 shot.	 In	 survival
archery	this	is	not	always	possible	(due	to	illness	or	fatigue),	or	desirable.	And	you	are	not
very	likely	to	have	produced	such	perfectly	matched	arrows;	it	is	far	better	to	know	how
each	arrow	flies.
AIMING
Make	 a	 straight	 mark,	 or	 marks	 for	 different	 ranges,	 on	 the	 outside	 of	 the	 bow.	 If	 your
arrow	 lengths	 and	 draw	 lengths	 are	 uniform,	 line	 up	 the	 arrowhead	 on	 the	 point	 of	 aim.
Remember	that	the	target	and	the	point	of	aim	may	not	be	the	same,	due	to	windage	(air
resistance	 or	 wind	 force	 on	 the	 projectile)	 or	 range.	 The	 trick	 is	 to	 get	 the	 line	 of	 sight
between	 your	 eye,	 sight	 marks	 or	 arrowhead,	 and	 the	 aiming	 point	 to	 coincide	 with	 the
trajectory	of	the	arrow.	In	field	archery	it	is	usually	far	better	to	make	a	quick	draw,	aim
and	shoot.
Remember	the	Archers	Paradox?	This	can	affect	your	aim	at	very	close	range	(up	to	10
yards/9	metres),	and	if	the	arrow	is	too	rigid	it	will	tend	to	go	to	the	right,	at	any	range.
Compensate	for	these	problems	by	aiming	off.
LOOSING
Letting	go	of	the	string,	or	loosing,	is	one	of	the	most	important	aspects	of	archery.	It	is	a
lot	easier	to	achieve	a	correct	loose	than	it	is	to	describe	it	accurately		a	fact	agreed	upon
by	all	writers	on	the	subject!
The	 loose	 should	 be	 both	 sharp	 and	 smooth,	 with	 the	 bow	 arm	 kept	 rigidly	 in	 place.
This	is	important,	as	the	sudden	release	of	the	load	on	the	muscles	of	the	bow	arm	tends	to
make	 you	 push	 the	 bow	 to	 your	 inside	 before	 the	 arrow	 has	 cleared	 the	 bow,	 or	 to	 pull
hard	 the	 other	 way	 in	 anticipation.	 Something	 similar	 happens	 when	 a	 rifleman	 or
machine-gunner	tenses	in	expectation	of	the	recoil	after	squeezing	the	trigger,	and	pulls	or
It	is	best	to	follow	through,	that	is,	stay	in	the	aim,	eyes	on	the	aiming	mark,	until	the
fall	of	the	shot,	just	as	you	do	with	a	firearm		unless,	of	course,	your	target	can	do	you
some	damage,	or	is	likely	to	escape!
In	all	the	above	aspects	of	archery,	strange	as	it	may	seem,	your	posture	and	movements
should	be	smooth,	graceful	and	pleasing	to	the	eye	of	the	beholder.	This	has	been	accepted
by	all	writers	and	instructors	of	archery	through	the	centuries.	It	is	not	just	for	aesthetic
appeal:	for	various	reasons,	if	it	is	not	done	gracefully	and	smoothly,	missed	targets	and
pulled	muscles	are	the	result!
The	quarry
This	may	be	fish,	fowl,	four-legged	and	furry		or	your	enemy.	It	is	important	to	have	the
right	 bow	 and	 the	 right	 arrow	 for	 your	 particular	 prey.	 A	 heavy	 bow,	 shooting	 steel
broadheads,	will	kill	anything	including	an	elephant		if	it	hits	it.	The	bows	and	arrows	in
English	 fifteenth-century	 warfare	 would	 kill	 a	 man	 at	 300	 metres	 	 even	 through	 chain
mail	 and	 steel	 plate.	 But	 this	 is	 ridiculous	 overkill	 for	 fish	 and	 birds:	 a	 heavy	 bow	 is
difficult	to	aim,	tiring	and	unnecessary.	Ordinary	arrows	are	all	right.
On	 larger	 game,	 you	 achieve	 the	 kill	 by	 penetrating	 a	 vital	 organ,	 or	 by	 causing	 a
haemorrhage.	 Tests	 indicate	 that	 flint	 has	 better	 flesh-penetrating	 properties	 than	 steel.
American	 archer	 Bob	 Swinhart	 boasted	 of	 shooting	 buffalo	 and	 rhino	 with	 a	 90	 lb	 bow
and	 steel	 broadheads,	 leopards	 with	 a	 70	 lb	 bow,	 and	 a	 five-ton	 bull	 elephant	 from	 15
yards	using	a	100-lb	bow	and	five	arrows.	But	he	did	have	a	back-up	rifleman	beside	him,
and	it	would	have	been	some	sort	of	world	record	to	have	missed	an	elephant	at	15	yards!
Barbed	 arrows	 are	 only	 for	 holding	 fish;	 on	 birds	 and	 game	 they	 are	 cruel	 and
unnecessary.	For	an	evader	they	can	be	positively	fatal		to	you.	If	you	shoot	game	with	an
unbarbed	arrow	it	either	kills	it,	or	falls	out	in	a	very	short	time.	If	you	do	not	retrieve	it,
there	is	not	much	chance	of	it	being	found	by	anyone.	But	a	barbed	arrow	will	stay	in,	and
if	 you	 dont	 find	 your	 prey,	 it	 will	 probably	 fester.	 A	 dead	 animal	 surrounded	 by
scavengers	will	surely	be	spotted,	and	you	have	left	your	calling	card	stuck	in	it!
Spears
On	your	foraging	excursions,	you	have	spotted	signs	of	large	mammals.	If	you	can	catch
one	 you	 will	 provide	 yourself	 with	 a	 large	 amount	 of	 meat	 that	 can	 be	 preserved	 and
stored,	as	well	as	useful	skin	and	bone.	But	how	do	you	catch	the	animal?	Of	the	many
hunting	 techniques	 at	 your	 disposal,	 the	 age-old	 method	 of	 spear	 hunting	 is	 a	 practical
answer.	Spears	are	easy	to	make,	easy	to	learn	how	to	use,	and	allow	you	to	hunt	while	on
the	 move.	 In	 fact,	 spears	 are	 so	 effective	 that	 early	 man,	 hunting	 in	 bands,	 was	 able	 to
catch	animals	as	big	as	mammoths.	In	areas	where	there	are	large	carnivores	that	pose	a
serious	threat	to	your	survival	(obviously	best	avoided),	a	spear	is	about	the	most	effective
deterrent	 you	 can	 carry	 with	 you,	 as	 these	 predators	 will	 almost	 certainly	 have
encountered	 horns	 and	 antlers	 and	 have	 therefore	 learned	 to	 respect	 long,	 sharp	 points.
There	 are	 even	 Native	 American	 tales	 of	 grizzly	 bears	 backing	 away	 from	 spears,	 but
dont	count	on	it!
Simple	spears
The	quickest	and	simplest	spear	you	can	make	is	the	self	spear.	In	its	crudest	form,	this
is	 simply	 a	 straight	 piece	 of	 hard,	 natured	 wood	 with	 a	 sharpened	 point.	 You	 can	 vastly
improve	it	by	fire-hardening	the	point	and	fashioning	it	into	a	leaf-shaped	blade.	But	the
self	spear	is	a	primitive	and	brutal	weapon	and	a	skilled	survivor	should	make	every	effort
to	kill	as	cleanly	as	possible,	reducing	the	suffering	of	his	prey	to	the	minimum.
An	 effective	 spear	 must	 have	 a	 sharp	 cutting-edge	 that	 is	 wide	 enough	 to	 cause
maximum	 bleeding,	 but	 not	 so	 wide	 that	 it	 prevents	 the	 spear	 penetrating	 to	 the	 vital
organs.	So	the	most	important	part	of	a	spear	is	the	point.	As	a	survivor,	you	can	never	be
certain	 of	 precisely	 what	 raw	 materials	 you	 will	 have	 to	 hand,	 so	 the	 broader	 your
knowledge	of	spear	design	the	better.
Basically,	spears	fall	into	one	or	both	of	two	categories:	thrusting	spears	and	throwing
spears.	As	the	name	suggests,	thrusting	spears	are	used	at	very	close	range,	so	the	spear
point	can	be	broad,	as	the	impact	force	is	guaranteed	to	be	great.	Throwing	spears,	on	the
other	hand,	are	used	at	a	distance:	they	need	to	be	light	so	that	they	can	fly	fast,	and	the
point	needs	to	allow	penetration,	as	the	impact	force	of	a	throwing	spear	can	vary	greatly.
Throwing	spear	points	are	also	often	barbed.	The	design	you	choose	should	be	tailored	to
meet	your	circumstances,	and	with	a	specific	prey	in	mind.	Obviously	you	will	be	limited
in	 raw	 materials.	 If	 you	 have	 difficulty	 finding	 a	 suitable	 spear	 shaft,	 consider	 using	 a
lighter	material		reed	bamboo	or	elder		with	a	short,	hardwood	foreshaft.	The	length	of
the	spear	is	also	important.	Where	dangerous	animals	are	concerned,	you	will	obviously
need	a	long	spear,	but	if	you	are	in	an	area	of	scrub	bush	you	may	find	a	long	spear	too
unwieldy.	Try	to	achieve	the	right	balance	of	factors.	Lastly,	make	sure	you	are	happy	with
its	feel	and	heft.
Hunting	with	spears
To	hunt	with	spears	you	need	to	be	as	close	to	your	prey	as	possible.	You	can	do	this	only
by	careful	stalking	and	attention	to	camouflage	and	descenting.
Hunting	with	thrusting	spears
These	 are	 used	 from	 lying-up	 positions	 beside	 frequently-used	 animal	 runs.	 As	 the
animal	passes	by,	you	thrust	the	spear	into	it.	The	best	hiding-place	is	in	a	tree	above	the
run,	as	large	game	rarely	looks	up.	An	added	bonus	in	such	a	hiding-place	is	that	you	can
drop	 on	 your	 prey,	 imparting	 the	 full	 force	 of	 your	 body-weight	 to	 your	 spear.	 The
disadvantage	of	this	hunting	method	is	that	it	is	static:	you	may	spend	many	fruitless	hours
THE	DESERT
The	 very	 word	 desert	 conjures	 up	 images	 of	 shimmering	 sand	 dunes	 and	 oases	 of
refreshing	sweet,	blue	water	surrounded	by	vivid	green	palm	trees		but	in	deserts	like	the
Sahara	reality	is	very	different.	Only	17%	of	the	Saharas	3.5	million	square	miles	consists
of	 sand	 dunes.	 The	 rest	 is	 a	 mixture	 of	 broken	 plateaux,	 weird	 rock	 formations,	 endless
gravel,	dust	plains	and	arid	mountains.	The	Sahara,	from	the	Arab	word	meaning	empty
place,	is	truly	vast.	Solitude	and	loneliness,	coupled	with	fear,	become	a	real	test	of	your
character	and	will	to	survive	in	this	intimidating	place.	The	worlds	other	great	deserts	are
scarcely	 less	 daunting:	 the	 Arabian	 (500,000	 square	 miles);	 the	 Gobi	 in	 Mongolia
(400,000	 square	 miles);	 the	 Kalahari	 in	 southern	 Africa	 (300,000	 square	 miles);
Patagonian	desert	(Argentina,	Chile,	260,000);	Great	Basin	Desert	(USA,	190,000);	Great
Victoria	Desert	(Australia,	134,653).
Basic	rules
If	youre	not	acc	limatized	to	the	desert	be	extremely	cautious	during	the	critical	first	three
or	four	days	of	working	in	summer	heat.	Sweating	washes	salts	and	other	minerals	out	of
the	body,	so	make	it	your	business	to	increase	your	water	and	salt	intake	to	compensate.
Avoid	salt	tablets		they	can	cause	damage	to	your	stomach	lining	by	lying	undissolved
against	the	stomach	wall.	Simple	table	salt	taken	with	water	is	adequate.	A	guide	to	how
much	 salt	 you	 need	 is	 taste.	 If	 the	 salt	 seems	 to	 have	 little	 or	 no	 flavour,	 increase	 your
intake	until	it	tastes	normal.
Diarrhoea	 is	 doubly	 serious.	 While	 you	 suffer,	 fluids	 and	 essential	 salts	 tend	 to	 pass
unused	through	the	body.	Cooling	fluids	fail	to	reach	the	skin	surface	in	the	form	of	sweat,
your	body	thermostat	fails	and	youll	have	heat	illness	as	well.
Serious	sunburn	also	damages	the	sweat	ducts	and	so	stops	the	skin	surface	cooling.
Choose	 lightweight,	 loose	 and	 comfortable	 clothes.	 The	 looseness	 provides	 insulation
and	prevents	excessive	evaporation	of	sweat.	Dress	like	the	Bedouin	of	North	Africa,	light
and	light-coloured		which	reflects	heat.	Make	sure	your	head	is	covered,	and	if	necessary
wrap	material	over	your	mouth	to	keep	out	sand.	Members	of	22	SAS	wear	the	traditional
Arab	head-dress,	the	shemagh,	a	fringed-cotton	wrap-around	scarf	which	can	be	used	to
protect	 the	 head,	 eyes,	 nose,	 mouth	 and	 neck	 from	 sun	 and	 sand.	 Sandals	 are	 common
favourites	 for	 footwear,	 but	 beware	 of	 thorns,	 snakes	 and	 scorpions.	 If	 you	 expect	 the
going	 to	 be	 rocky	 or	 difficult,	 military-pattern	 or	 lightweight	 desert	 boots	 are	 best.	 You
will	appreciate	the	ankle-support	that	boots	give	you.	Every	time	you	don	footwear	check
for	scorpions	of	other	dangerous	fauna.
Remember,	 survival	 in	 the	 desert	 is	 a	 matter	 of	 knowledge	 of	 the	 terrain,	 and
minimising	risks.	As	with	all	other	extreme	environments,	you	should	not	expose	yourself
to	 danger	 without	 proper	 training.	 The	 heat	 and	 the	 sun	 are	 your	 enemies;	 water	 and
shelter	are	your	friends.	Without	water	you	will	be	dead	within	a	day;	and	if	you	cant	find
shelter,	 wear	 loose	 clothing.	 Try	 to	 avoid	 exposing	 yourself	 to	 the	 sun;	 you	 dont	 see
desert	nomads	working	on	their	tans!
Types	of	terrain
Each	 type	 of	 terrain	 seemingly	 blends	 into	 another.	 There	 are	 five	 different	 types:
mountainous,	 rocky	 plateau,	 sand	 dune,	 salt	 marsh	 and	 highly	 dissected	 rocky	 terrain
called	gebel.
Sand	dunes:	These	are	usually	extensive	areas	covered	with	sand	and	gravel.	Some	dunes
may	be	over	300	metres	high	and	10	to	15	miles	long;	others	will	be	completely	flat.	They
can	be	devoid	of	plant	life	or	covered	in	scrub	up	to	two	metres	in	height.	Any	form	of
travel	through	sand	dune	deserts	should	be	avoided.
Salt	lakes:	 If	 a	 large	 volume	 of	 water	 enters	 a	 basin,	 a	 lake	 may	 develop.	 However,	 the
water	has	a	very	high	salt	content	and	is	undrinkable.
Salt	marshes:	This	type	of	terrain	has	a	highly	corrosive	effect	on	boots,	clothing	and	skin.
Rocky	plateau	deserts:	These	are	characterized	by	many	solid	or	broken	rocks	at	or	near
the	 surface,	 and	 there	 may	 be	 sand	 dunes	 around	 the	 plateau.	 Rock	 outcrops	 may	 offer
cover	and	shade.	The	rocks	often	form	natural	cisterns	which	collect	water	after	rains.
Mountain	deserts:	High-altitude	deserts	have	thin	air	and	little	or	no	vegetation.	Sunburn
is	a	real	danger,	and	movement	at	altitude	requires	extra	physical	exertion.
TEMPERATURE	CONVERSION
Most	of	the	worlds	military	use	the	Celsius	scale,	but	some	readers	may	be	more
familiar	with	Fahrenheit.	Here	are	some	approximate	conversions.
50	C
120 F
30 C
90 F
20 C
70 F
10 C
50 F
0 C
32 F
-10 C
15 F
-24 C
-5 F
-30 C
-20 F
Climatic	elements
Temperature	variation:	The	temperature	may	vary	from	as	much	as	55	C	during	the	day
down	 to	 10	 C	 at	 night:	 warm	 clothes	 are	 essential.	 Obviously,	 work	 or	 travel	 at	 night
requires	less	water	than	day,	but	in	most	deserts,	moving	by	night	is	so	hazardous	as	to	not
be	a	viable	option.
Its	counter-intuitive	but	prepared	for	dangerously	low	temperatures	in	the	desert		the
legendary	 SAS	 Bravo	 Two	 Zero	 mission	 of	 the	 Gulf	 War	 was	 severely	 hampered	 by
freezing	weather,	which	caused	the	patrol	to	become	split	up.
Rainfall:	It	does	rain	in	the	desert	on	high	ground,	and	when	it	does,	rainwater	runs	off
very	 quickly	 in	 the	 form	 of	 flash	 floods.	 The	 floods	 excavate	 deep	 gullies	 and	 ravines
known	as	wadis.	Vegetation	may	appear	after	rain,	but	the	water	evaporates,	leaving	the
lands	as	barren	as	before.
Burning	sand:	The	temperature	of	the	desert	sand	and	rock	averages	15	to	20	degrees
more	than	that	of	the	air,	so	if	the	air	temperature	is	45	C	then	the	sand	would	be	around
60	C.	You	will	be	unable	to	walk	around	without	adequate	foot	protection.
Never	 attempt	 to	 cross	 a	 desert	 area	 in	 a	 single	 vehicle;	 always	 travel	 in	 convoy.	 The
best	way	of	surviving	is	not	to	endanger	yourself	in	the	first	place.
First	aid
An	 individual	 first	 aid	 kit	 for	 the	 desert	 depends	 on	 personal	 choice	 and	 allergies.	 Seek
your	 doctors	 advice	 if	 you	 have	 any	 doubt	 about	 personal	 medications.	 You	 may	 also
need	a	prescription	for	some	of	the	items	suggested.	Your	kit	may	contain	some	or	all	of
the	following:
Butterfly	sutures
Surgical	blade
Plasters		assorted	sizes	and	waterproof
Potassium	permanganate	as	general	disinfectant
Mild	painkillers	for	toothache,	headaches,	e.g.	codeine	phosphate
lntestinal	sedative,	e.g.	Immodium
Antibiotic	cream	and	tablets
Anti-histamine	for	bites,	stings,	irritant	rashes,	e.g.	Piriton
Water	sterilising	tablets,	e.g.	Puritabs
Water
Remember,	it	is	the	water	in	your	body	that	keeps	you	alive,	not	the	water	in	your	water
bottle.	 Dont	 ration	 your	 water	 intake	 to	 little	 sips:	 that	 will	 not	 prevent	 dehydration.	 If
you	 drink	 only	 enough	 to	 satisfy	 your	 thirst	 you	 can	 still	 suffer	 from	 dehydration.	 Your
water	intake	must	remain	sufficient	to	make	you	urinate	three	times	daily.	Healthy	urine	is
a	pale	straw	colour.
In	summer	in	the	Sahara,	you	will	need	to	drink	up	to	6	litres	(10	pints)	of	fluid	daily	
and	may	well	need	8	litres.	Keep	your	clothing	 on,	 as	 the	 insulating	 effect	 of	 a	 layer	 of
clothes	will	reduce	evaporation	of	sweat	and	reflect	direct	sunlight.
Dehydration
The	 maximum	 water	 loss	 your	 body	 can	 tolerate	 is	 probably	 as	 high	 as	 20%.	 However
12%	 is	 a	 more	 practical	 maximum.	 You	 wont	 be	 capable	 of	 making	 rational	 decisions
after	losing	a	fifth	of	your	body	fluids.
The	 body	 absorbs	 heat	 from	 direct	 sunlight	 and	 from	 the	 atmosphere.	 You	 will	 also
absorb	heat	reflected	from	the	ground	or	from	direct	contact	with	the	ground.	Any	increase
in	 body	 temperature	 of	 3	 or	 4	 C	 (6	 to	 8	 F)	 above	 normal	 (98.6	 F	 or	 37	 C)	 for	 any
extended	period	can	cause	coma	and	death.	Your	body	attempts	to	dispose	of	this	excess
heat	by	sweating,	which	can	lead	to	loss	of	body	fluids	and	dehydration.
Drink	early	in	the	morning	while	temperatures	are	low.
If	you	lie	up	during	the	heat	of	the	day,	remember	that	ground	temperatures	may	be	as
much	as	15	C	hotter	than	the	air	temperature.	Break	through	the	crust	of	the	desert	into
soft	sand	and	you	will	find	the	temperature	is	as	much	as	30	cooler	at	45	cm	deep.	So	try
to	 rest	 in	 deep	 shade	 or	 about	 45	 cm	 above	 or	 below	 ground	 level.	 Bushmen	 of	 the
Kalahari	Desert	urinate	into	holes	in	the	ground	and	lie	in	them	in	the	heat	of	the	day	to
reduce	sweating.
Dont	smoke	or	breathe	through	an	open	mouth.	This	exposes	the	mucous	membrane	to
the	dry	atmosphere,	increasing	your	rate	of	dehydration.	Reduce	conversation	for	the	same
reason.
AVOIDING	DEHYDRATION
Keep	 activity	 to	 a	 minimum	 during	 the	 day	 to	 minimize	 water	 loss.	 Take	 sips	 of
water	often	rather	than	normal	drinking	or	gulping.
Finding	water
If	you	are	near	a	water	supply	stay	there	and	set	up	ground-to-air	distress	signals.	If	you
have	to	keep	moving,	look	for	signs	that	indicate	the	direction	of	a	water	supply.
Water	sources	are	often	indicated	by	animal	trails	and	droppings	or	birds	in	flight.	But
dont	rely	entirely	on	wild	animals	as	a	guide	to	water	in	the	desert.	Some	are	so	adapted
that	they	do	not	need	a	regular	water	intake	as	we	do.	Dorcas	gazelles,	jerboas	and	gerbils,
for	example,	extract	all	the	moisture	they	need	from	their	foodstuffs.	Foxes,	jackals	and
hyenas,	 however,	 do	 not	 stray	 too	 far	 from	 water.	 Listen	 for	 the	 sounds	 of	 birds	 and
baboons	 at	 early	 morning	 or	 evening.	 Quail	 fly	 towards	 water	 in	 the	 evening	 and	 away
from	it	in	the	morning.	Doves	use	the	water	both	morning	and	evening,	but	it	may	be	a
long	way	off.	Some	turtle	doves	will	fly	50-75	kilometres	to	water.	Camels	will	eventually
lead	to	water		but	remember	that	a	camel	can	walk	vast	distances	between	water	stops.	In
camels,	the	water	is	stored	in	the	stomach,	and	Arabs	in	dire	straits	have	been	known	to
kill	the	animal	and	use	this	store	of	water.
Dont	 make	 the	 mistake	 of	 thinking	 that	 tyre	 tracks	 will	 lead	 to	 water	 	 you	 could
mistakenly	follow	your	own	tracks	or	those	of	someone	else	who	is	equally	lost.	In	some
parts	of	the	Sahara	the	main	road	is	as	much	as	15	kilometres	wide.
Study	 the	 rock	 in	 your	 surroundings:	 sandstone	 will	 absorb	 water	 after	 a	 rainstorm,
basalt-type	 rocks	 will	 pool	 it	 on	 the	 surface.	 Dry	 stream	 beds	 or	 wadis	 sometimes	 have
water	below	the	surface:	finding	it	is	the	problem.	Look	for	greenery	on	the	outside	of	a
bend	in	a	water	course,	and	dig	at	its	lowest	point.	You	may	have	to	dig	deeper	than	your
own	height.	Kalahari	bushmen	cut	a	hollow	stem	from	a	bush,	pack	and	wind	dry	grass
around	the	bottom	to	act	as	a	filter,	then	insert	this	into	moist	sand	in	an	old	riverbed	and
suck.	Eventually	water	comes	into	the	mouth.	You	may	find	it	infinitely	easier	to	pack	wet
sand	into	a	sock	or	cloth	and	wring	hard.	If	you	do	find	water,	think	before	you	camp	in
the	wadi	itself.	If	it	rains,	wadis	fill	up	with	remarkable	speed	and	become	raging	torrents.
Only	drink	your	own	urine	in	the	direst	emergency;	it	contains	a	lot	of	salt.
Purifying	water
Treat	all	water	in	the	desert,	no	matter	where	from,	as	suspect.	Filter	dirty	water	through
several	layers	of	cloth	or	a	Millbank	bag	to	remove	solids.	Even	radio-active	fallout	can	be
removed	 in	 this	 manner.	 Purifying	 the	 water	 involves	 killing	 the	 germs.	 To	 do	 this	 use
purifying	 agents	 such	 as	 Puritabs,	 Halzone,	 Chloromine	 T,	 iodine,	 permanganate	 of
potash,	or	simply	boil	it	for	between	three	and	five	minutes.	Add	charcoal	while	the	water
is	 boiling	 to	 remove	 disagreeable	 flavours.	 Agitate	 it	 to	 restore	 its	 taste,	 or	 add	 a	 small
pinch	 of	 salt.	 There	 are	 many	 chemical	 purifiers,	 and	 the	 choice	 is	 a	 matter	 of	 personal
taste.	Generally,	the	water	needs	to	stand	for	up	to	30	minutes	to	allow	the	chemical	time
to	act	properly.
The	penalty	you	will	pay	for	not	purifying	your	water	properly	or	neglecting	to	prepare
food	carefully,	or	for	lack	of	hygiene	generally,	is	a	severely	upset	stomach.	This	in	turn
can	 lead	 to	 dehydration	 and	 heat	 illness	 through	 loss	 of	 body	 fluids.	 Treat	 an	 upset
stomach	with	a	proprietary	preparation,	or	if	you	dont	have	one,	use	crushed	charcoal	or
burnt	crushed	bone.	Neither	taste	very	pleasant	but	both	are	effective.	The	tartaric	acid	in	a
very	strong	brew	of	tea	will	also	help.	Continue	to	drink	plenty	of	fluids	during	treatment.
Carrying water
If	 you	 have	 any	 control	 over	 your	 circumstances,	 think	 about	 how	 you	 will	 carry	 your
water	 supply.	 Always	 take	 25%	 more	 than	 you	 think	 you	 need,	 in	 several	 containers	 of
unbreakable	 material.	 Glass	 and	 thin	 plastic	 containers	 are	 non-starters.	 Conventional
military	water	bottles	in	tough	plastic	or	aluminum	are	reliable,	as	are	some	of	the	civilian
versions.	 Avoid	 carrying	 single	 one-	 or	 two-gallon	 containers.	 Desert	 terrains	 are
unforgiving		a	slip	can	result	in	all	your	water	supply	being	lost.	A	condom	from	your
survival	 kit	 (carried	 inside	 a	 sock	 for	 additional	 support)	 makes	 an	 excellent	 portable
container.
Signal	flares
Pen	torch
Tube	of	Dextrose	tablets
Heliograph
Ground-to-air	recognition	tables	and	Morse	code	sheet
Marker	panel	in	fluorescent	material
Whistle
Condom	for	water-carrying
Water	purification	tablets
Magnifying	glass
Desert	hazards
Many	 of	 the	 creatures	 that	 live	 in	 the	 desert	 are	 potentially	 dangerous,	 from	 bats	 and
snakes	to	scorpions	and	centipedes		and	even	dogs	and	spiders.	Heat	exhaustion,	malaria
and	storms	all	offer	their	own	hazards	as	well.
Bites
When	on	your	own	in	the	desert,	avoid	suspect	animals	at	all	times.	Rabies	virus	is	carried
in	the	saliva	of	an	infected	animal	and	enters	your	body	through	breaks	in	the	skin.	Even	a
lick	from	a	friendly	but	infected	animal	can	infect	you	through	a	cut	or	abrasion.	Potential
carriers	include	dogs,	cats,	bats,	and	some	types	of	rodents.	If	you	are	bitten	by	any	animal
get	a	tetanus	booster	as	soon	as	possible.
Scorpion	stings
There	 are	 two	 common	 types	 of	 potentially	 lethal	 scorpion	 in	 the	 Sahara:	 Androctonus
australis	 and	 Androctonus	 buthidae	 (also	 known	 as	 fat-tailed	 scorpion	 because	 of	 its
massive	 tail),	 which	 is	 often	 cited	 as	 the	 worlds	 most	 dangerous.	 Drop	 for	 drop,	 their
venom	is	as	toxic	as	that	of	a	cobra	and	can	kill	a	man	in	four	hours.	If	the	scorpion	stings
in	self-defence	it	will	usually	inject	the	maximum	dose	of	poison.
The	 sting	 of	 a	 buthid	 scorpion	 produces	 intense	 pain	 at	 the	 site	 of	 the	 sting,	 often
without	 discoloration	 apart	 from	 a	 small	 area	 of	 gooseflesh.	 A	 feeling	 of	 tightness	 then
develops	in	the	throat,	so	that	the	victim	tries	to	clear	imaginary	phlegm.	The	tongue	feels
thick,	 and	 speech	 becomes	 difficult.	 The	 casualty	 becomes	 restless,	 with	 involuntary
twitching	of	the	muscles.
Sneezing	bouts	and	a	runny	nose	follow.	There	is	an	uncontrolled	flow	of	saliva,	which
may	become	frothy.	The	heart	rate	will	increase,	followed	by	convulsions.	The	extremities
turn	blue	before	the	casualty	dies.	The	whole	sequence	of	events	may	take	as	little	as	45
minutes	or	as	long	as	12	hours.
Snakes
Snakes	are	permanent	residents	in	most	parts	of	the	desert.	They	hibernate,	however,	and
so	 youll	 see	 fewer	 snakes	 in	 winter.	 Most	 are	 venomous,	 so	 regard	 any	 snake	 bite	 as
suspect	and	treat	it	as	promptly	as	possible.	Simple	precautions	against	snake	bite	include
shaking	 out	 boots	 and	 sleeping	 bags	 before	 you	 use	 them,	 and	 using	 a	 torch	 after	 dark.
Dont	 go	 barefoot:	 certain	 types	 of	 snake	 actually	 bury	 themselves	 in	 the	 sand,	 leaving
only	 their	 nostrils	 and	 eyes	 showing.	 They	 ambush	 their	 prey	 	 including	 you	 	 in	 this
fashion	and	are	extremely	difficult	to	spot.
If	you	get	bitten	by	a	snake,	study	the	pattern	of	teeth	punctures.	If	there	are	two	welldefined	punctures,	the	bite	will	be	that	of	one	of	the	viper	group.	Non-poisonous	snakes
with	solid	fangs,	and	mildly	venomous	back-fanged	snakes,	make	a	horseshoe-shaped	row
of	teeth	marks.	It	takes	only	5	mg	of	venom	from	the	saw-scaled	viper	to	kill	a	man.	As
with	scorpion	stings,	defensive	bites	tend	to	contain	the	maximum	amount	of	venom.
However,	not	every	snake	bite	is	fatal.	Youre	more	likely	to	survive	a	bite	to	the	shin
than	one	deep	in	the	muscular	tissues	of	the	thigh	or	calf.
The	 ideal	 treatment	 for	 a	 snake	 bite	 is	 to	 immobilize	 the	 casualty	 and	 administer
sedatives.	 Ice	 is	 put	 on	 the	 bite	 site,	 a	 tourniquet	 is	 applied	 and	 loosened	 at	 frequent
intervals,	and	the	casualty	is	evacuated	to	hospital	for	treatment	with	antivenin	(an	antivenom	product),	adrenalin	and	plasma.	The	snake	is	killed	for	hospital	identification.
In	reality,	you	will	probably	be	able	only	to	attempt	to	restrict	the	amount	and	rate	of
venom	entering	the	bloodstream	by	applying	a	tourniquet	between	the	bite	and	the	heart.
The	tourniquet	must	not	cut	off	the	blood	supply	entirely		this	can	cause	tissue	damage
and	 possibly	 gangrene	 and	 kidney	 failure.	 Release	 the	 pressure	 each	 half-hour	 until	 you
get	help.	The	patient	must	also	be	rested	as	much	as	possible,	and	kept	calm.	Panic	can
become	a	major	problem		it	increases	the	heart	rate	and	so	speeds	the	circulation	of	the
venom	in	the	blood.	Physical	exertion	must	also	be	avoided.
This	 list	 is	 far	 from	 exhaustive,	 but	 you	 will	 want	 to	 familiarize	 yourself	 with	 the
following	species	of	snake	at	least:
Egyptian	cobra:	Typically	about	2	metres	long,	the	Egyptian	cobra	can	be	black,	brown	or
yellow.	Some	examples	are	light	brown	with	darker	cross-bands.	It	likes	cultivated	land,
rocky	 hillsides,	 old	 ruins	 and	 even	 rural	 villages.	 The	 venom	 is	 a	 very	 powerful
neurotoxin:	it	attacks	your	nervous	system,	making	it	hard	to	breathe.
Sand	 viper:	 Well	 camouflaged	 and	 only	 about	 60	 cm	 long,	 the	 sand	 viper	 is	 found
throughout	 North	 Africa.	 Its	 venom	 is	 haemo-toxic:	 it	 attacks	 your	 circulatory	 system,
causing	tissue	damage	and	internal	bleeding.
Boomslang:	Deadly	poisonous	and	found	throughout	sub-Saharan	Africa.
Horned	desert	viper:	Found	in	Africa,	Iran,	Iraq	and	the	Arabian	Peninsula.	Buff-coloured
with	scale	over	each	eye.	Dangerously	poisonous.
Puff	 adder:	 Found	 in	 a	 range	 of	 yellow,	 orange	 and	 brown	 hues,	 but	 with	 distinctive
black/brown	 chevrons.	 Dangerously	 poisonous.	 Found	 in	 Africa,	 Saudi	 Arabia	 and	 parts
of	the	Middle	East.
Death	adder:	Deadly.	Found	in	Australia,	Moluccas,	and	New	Guinea.	Between	1	foot	6
inches	and	3	foot	in	length,	with	colour	ranging	from	brown	to	yellow.
Taipan:	Deadly.	Found	in	Northern	Australia	and	southern	New	Guinea.
Mojave	 rattlesnake:	 Found	 in	 Mexico	 and	 US.	 Sandy	 in	 colour,	 with	 diamond-shaped
marks	on	the	tail.	Grows	up	to	4	feet	in	length.	Deadly.
Other	dangerous	bites	and	stings
Camel	spider:	The	camel	spider,	or	wind	scorpion	as	it	is	known	to	the	Arabs,	grows	to
15-20	 cm	 in	 length	 and	 has	 some	 very	 anti-social	 eating	 habits.	 When	 not	 eating	 its
fellows,	the	camel	spider	will	eat	beetles,	scorpions	and	even	small	lizards	at	great	speed
by	injecting	a	venom	that	dissolves	the	internal	organs	of	the	prey,	and	then	sucking	out
the	resulting	juices.
Mexican	 bearded	 lizard:	 Grows	 up	 to	 3	 feet	 in	 length.	 Black	 or	 black	 and	 bladed
yellow.	Found	in	Mexico	and	Central	America.	Dangerously	poisonous.
Bites	and	stings:	emergency	first	aid
Opinions	 differ	 on	 whether	 to	 cut	 and	 suck	 or	 not.	 This	 treatment	 may	 worsen	 the
situation,	as	any	wound	inside	the	mouth	will	allow	the	venom	to	enter	into	the	system.
When	 youre	 on	 your	 own,	 there	 may	 be	 some	 value	 in	 cutting	 and	 bleeding	 as	 an
alternative	to	simply	sitting	and	hoping	that	the	snake	was	not	venomous.	You	can	easily
shed	 a	 pint	 of	 blood	 without	 any	 ill-effects,	 and	 this	 may	 be	 all	 you	 need	 to	 do	 to	 save
your	life.	Simply	cut	yourself	deep	enough	to	bleed	freely	with	a	clean	knife	at	both	entry
points.	Then	wash	the	cut	in	a	solution	of	potassium	permanganate.	Do	not	urinate	into	the
cut.
Overheating
Two	 conditions	 can	 arise	 from	 overheating;	 heat	 exhaustion	 and	 heat	 stroke.	 Heat
exhaustion	 usually	 affects	 people	 performing	 strenuous	 physical	 exercise	 in	 hot,	 humid
climates,	and	is	caused	by	loss	of	salt	and	water	from	the	body.	It	will	be	aggravated	by
stomach	upset,	diarrhoea	or	vomiting.	Remove	the	casualty	to	a	cooler	environment	and
replace	lost	fluids	and	minerals.	Seek	medical	aid.
Heat	 stroke	 is	 caused	 by	 a	 very	 high	 environmental	 temperature	 or	 a	 feverish	 illness
(such	as	malaria)	and	leads	to	a	greatly	increased	body	temperature.	It	develops	when	the
body	 can	 no	 longer	 control	 its	 temperature	 by	 sweating	 and	 can	 occur	 quite	 suddenly.
Reduce	the	casualtys	temperature	as	quickly	as	possible	and	get	medical	help.
Malaria
This	 very	 debilitating	 illness	 is	 caused	 by	 the	 bite	 of	 the	 female	 Anopheles	 mosquito,
which	breeds	in	stagnant	water.	Take	a	course	of	anti-malaria	tablets	before	you	enter	into
an	area	where	the	disease	is	endemic,	continue	the	treatment	throughout	your	stay	in	the
country	and	for	the	medically-advised	period	on	your	return.	See	your	doctor	for	advice	on
the	type	of	anti-malarial	treatment	recommended	for	the	area.	In	an	emergency,	quinine	is
Dust	storms
Generally,	these	are	either	limited	to	a	height	of	about	6	feet	or	rise	hundreds	of	feet	high.
In	 either	 case,	 if	 visibility	 is	 restricted,	 seal	 all	 equipment	 likely	 to	 be	 affected	 and	 be
prepared	to	sit	it	out.	This	is	preferable	to	getting	lost	or	even	injured	in	the	poor	visibility.
During	 severe	 dust	 storms,	 the	 air	 temperature	 can	 soar	 up	 to	 58	 C	 (135	 F),	 while
simultaneously	the	moisture	content	will	drop	to	only	a	few	per	cent.	A	long-lasting	dust
storm	can	cause	serious	dehydration;	you	can	lose	up	to	a	quart	of	moisture	in	sweat	in
one	hour	in	these	conditions.
A	side-effect	of	a	prolonged	severe	dust	storm	is	the	rise	in	atmospheric	electricity	due
to	 sand	 friction.	 This	 can	 cause	 severe	 headaches	 and	 nausea,	 but	 can	 be	 neutralized	 by
earthing	yourself	to	the	ground.
Magnetic	compasses	will	be	affected	in	these	conditions.	The	wisest	course	will	be	to
stay	where	you	are.	Always	carry	a	spare	compass.
Emergency	survival
When	you	find	yourself	stranded	in	a	desert,	youll	have	to	make	up	your	mind	whether	to
stay	where	you	are,	or	try	to	move	on.	Its	a	decision	governed	by	circumstances.	If	youve
been	travelling	by	aircraft,	the	pilot	will	have	filed	a	flight	plan.	Similarly,	employees	of
oil	and	water	prospecting	companies	and	suchlike	organisations	file	a	route	plan	with	an
estimated	time	of	arrival.	In	the	event	of	your	non-arrival,	a	search-and-rescue	plan	will	be
put	into	action.	Clearly,	the	best	course	here	will	be	to	remain	with	the	aircraft	or	vehicle
until	help	arrives.
The	 problems	 arise	 if	 youre	 stranded	 while	 engaged	 on	 military	 activities	 or	 on
expeditions	to	more	remote	regions,	where	the	chances	of	rescue	are	slim	at	best.	In	one
region	of	the	Sahara,	some	43	people	died	in	a	single	year.	These	are	recorded	deaths:	the
actual	figure	may	be	higher.	In	temperate	or	tropical	zones	the	environment	is	relatively
kind,	and	the	survivor	is	rarely	far	from	materials	water,	foodstuffs	and	people	to	assist	in
an	emergency.	The	desert	militates	against	this,	and	the	decision	to	stay	or	move	is	much
more	difficult	to	make.	You	must	consider	your	assets,	equipment,	physical	state,	mental
state,	navigational	skills	and	equipment,	water,	food,	location	and	the	size	of	your	party.
Then	 you	 must	 weigh	 these	 against	 the	 distances	 involved,	 the	 terrain,	 your	 chances	 of
rescue,	weather,	temperatures,	etc.
VITAL	SKILLS
To	 improve	 your	 chances	 of	 survival	 in	 the	 desert,	 learn	 and	 practise	 these	 basic
skills	 before	 going	 abroad.	 The	 average	 soldier	 will	 be	 familiar	 with	 most	 of	 the
following	but	may	find	one	or	two	techniques	that	arent	in	the	Army	manual.
			Map	reading
			Compasses,	bearings,	back	bearings	and	variations
The	seashore
No,	not	a	desert,	but	sand	anyway,	and	there	are	plenty	of	barren	islands	where	you	may
be	 forced	 to	 search	 for	 fresh	 water.	 You	 can	 be	 sure	 of	 finding	 fresh	 water	 where	 rivers
discharge	into	the	sea.	(The	term	fresh	means	non-salt,	rather	than	drinkable).	All	water
will	be	heavily	polluted,	so	take	all	precautions	to	make	sure	the	water	you	drink	is	sterile.
You	 can	 also	 get	 fresh	 water	 by	 digging	 several	 beach	 wells.	 Dig	 the	 holes	 a	 safe
distance	 above	 the	 high-water	 mark,	 and	 deep	 enough	 to	 permit	 water	 to	 collect	 in	 the
bottom.	 Skim	 off	 and	 use	 only	 the	 top	 layer	 of	 water	 	 this	 will	 be	 less	 salty	 than	 the
denser	 sea	 water	 below	 it.	 Obviously,	 the	 sea	 shore	 also	 has	 plenty	 of	 things	 living	 or
growing	on	it	that	you	can	eat,	starting	with	seaweed.
Mayday	Signals
Set	signal	fires	in	threes,	arranged	in	a	large	triangle	with	sides	approximately	20	metres
long.	In	daylight	the	glare	from	the	ground	and	from	the	air	reduces	the	visibility	of	wood
fires	as	wood	in	the	desert	is	so	dry	that	it	is	smokeless.	Add	oil,	rubbery	plastic	or	green
plants,	if	available,	to	generate	smoke.
You	 can	 also	 use	 mirrors	 for	 signalling	 over	 long	 distances	 in	 the	 desert.	 Fluorescent
signal	panels	are	another	useful	addition	to	your	kit.
Set	ground	signals	too.	These	last	a	long	time	and	need	little	or	no	maintenance.	Lay	out
a	 large	 SOS	 in	 stone,	 preferably	 of	 contrasting	 colour	 to	 the	 ground,	 but	 at	 least	 large
You	should	carry	a	copy	of	the	Morse	alphabet	in	your	survival	kit	and	try	to	memorize
the	 Mayday	 signal	 along	 with	 the	 newer	 Pan	 signal.	 This	 is	 a	 lower-priority	 signal
recognized	by	all	international	maritime	and	aircraft	crews.	Learn	the	international	distress
signal,	and	the	reply.	The	distress	signal	is	six	flashes	of	light,	six	blasts	of	a	whistle	or	six
waves	of	a	signal	flag	followed	by	a	break	of	one	minute	before	repeating	the	sequence.
The	response	is	three	long	blasts,	waves	or	flashes.
The	heliograph
The	 Mk	 3	 signal	 mirror	 issued	 to	 US	 forces	 is	 a	 handy	 heliograph	 which	 you	 can	 hang
around	 your	 neck	 when	 not	 in	 use.	 Make	 sure	 the	 reflective	 side	 is	 against	 your	 chest
when	not	in	use.
1.	Reflect	sunlight	from	the	mirror	on	to	a	nearby	surface	like	a	rock	or	your	hand.
2.	Slowly	bring	the	mirror	up	to	eye-level	and	look	through	the	sighting	hole.	You	will
see	a	bright	spot	of	light	which	is	the	aim	indicator.
3.	Hold	the	mirror	near	to	your	eye	and	move	it	so	that	the	aim	indicator	is	on	the	target.
CAUTION:
Dont	flash	the	mirror	rapidly.	In	a	combat	zone,	a	pilot	might	mistake	the	distant
twinkling	for	ground	fire	and	treat	you	to	a	rocket	attack!	Dont	hold	the	light	on
someones	cockpit	either,	or	you	could	dazzle	the	pilot.	Mirror	signals	can	be	seen
for	 many	 miles,	 even	 in	 hazy	 weather,	 so	 keep	 sweeping	 the	 horizon	 even	 if
nothing	is	in	sight.	In	a	combat	zone	where	you	could	attract	the	enemys	attention
you	must	obviously	wait	and	positively	identify	an	aircraft	before	signalling.
Signalling	with	an	air	signal	panel
Air	 panels	 are	 light,	 easy	 to	 carry	 and	 should	 be	 carried	 by	 at	 least	 two	 members	 of	 a
patrol.	The	US	issue	VS-17	signalling	panel	is	a	simple	plastic	sheet	that	is	violet	on	one
side	and	orange	on	the	other.	Use	the	orange	side	to	initially	attract	the	pilots	attention.
Flashing	 the	 panel	 will	 make	 it	 easier	 to	 spot.	 You	 can	 then	 use	 the	 panel	 to	 pass
information	 as	 shown.	 You	 can	 use	 any	 reasonable	 substitute	 for	 the	 panel,	 e.g.	 life	 raft
sails,	bright-coloured	rain	jackets,	etc.
Navigation
With	a	map	and	compass	you	should	be	able	to	establish	your	position.	Without	these,	you
will	have	to	improvise.	Here	is	a	reminder	of	some	simple	orientation	methods	previously
described.
To	find	north,	first	establish	south	by	pointing	the	hour	hand	of	your	watch	towards	the
sun.	Then	find	the	mid-point	between	the	hour	hand	and	the	12	oclock	position.	The	line
from	the	centre	of	your	watch	to	here	points	south.	Remember	that	if	you	are	in	a	desert	in
the	southern	hemisphere	the	procedure	is	slightly	different.	Point	the	12	oclock	position
towards	the	sun	and	bisect	the	angle	between	the	12	oclock	position	and	the	hour	hand.
This	 points	 north.	 A	 digital	 watch	 can	 be	 used	 for	 the	 same	 task,	 despite	 opinion	 to	 the
contrary.	 Either	 mark	 with	 a	 grease	 pencil	 or	 imagine	 the	 conventional	 watch	 face	 and
hands	that	show	the	time	overlaid	on	the	digital	face.	Then	continue	as	above.
Remember	 that	 the	 sun	 rises	 in	 the	 east	 and	 sets	 in	 the	 west	 to	 within	 a	 few	 degrees.
Remember	 also	 that	 in	 the	 northern	 hemisphere	 the	 sun	 is	 to	 the	 south	 of	 us	 and	 in	 the
southern	hemisphere	the	sun	passes	to	the	north	of	us.
length	as	the	shadow	line	youve	just	drawn.	In	the	afternoon,	when	the	tip	of	the	shadow
touches	the	drawn	arc	once	more,	draw	a	further	line	from	the	arc	to	the	base	stick.	Bisect
the	angle	formed	between	the	two	lines	and	the	resulting	line	will	indicate	north-south.
Night	navigation
If	you	move	at	night,	you	will	need	to	be	able	to	recognize	certain	star	constellations	that
either	point	the	way	north	or	point	to	the	North	Star	(sometimes	known	as	the	Pole	Star).
The	 constellations	 to	 learn	 are	 the	 Plough,	 Orion	 and	 Cassiopeia.	 They	 appear	 at
different	times	during	the	night	throughout	the	year	and	revolve,	so	they	may	well	appear
upside-down	 when	 compared	 with	 conventional	 star	 charts.	 You	 must	 learn	 your
constellations	before	you	set	out	on	any	journey	that	involves	the	risk	of	being	stranded.
And	practise	all	your	survival	skills	before	you	need	to	use	them.
Survival	tips
Staying	put
Aircraft	wrecks:	 In	 some	 desert	 areas	 there	 are	 many	 aircraft	 wrecks	 left	 over	 from	 the
war.	These	usually	have	wreck	painted	across	the	wings.	Make	sure	your	aircraft	cannot
be	 mistaken	 for	 a	 wreck	 by	 having	 at	 least	 one	 signal	 operative	 at	 any	 one	 time.	 If	 you
can,	put	out	a	large	SOS	in	wreckage	or	stone	on	a	stretch	of	the	beach.
Aircraft	 kit:	 All	 commercial	 aircraft	 must	 carry	 a	 dinghy	 if	 they	 are	 travelling	 over
water.	In	addition	you	will	have	the	survival	kit	in	the	dinghy,	a	first	aid	kit	and	what	you
can	salvage	from	the	aircraft	itself.
Air	panel:	Make	sure	you	carry	a	fluorescent	air	panel	in	your	survival	kit.	These	can	be
used	not	just	to	draw	the	initial	attention	of	a	rescue	aircraft	but	also	to	pass	messages	to
the	aircraft.
Signal	fires:	Signal	fires	should	be	set	in	the	shape	of	a	triangle	with	the	fires	20	metres
apart.	These	are	useless	in	the	intense	sunlight	of	the	day	unless	you	use	plant	material	or
oil	to	produce	smoke.	Smothering	a	fire	with	leaves	tends	to	produce	white	smoke,	and	oil
produces	 black	 smoke.	 Make	 sure	 you	 produce	 a	 colour	 that	 contrasts	 with	 the
background.
Limit	movement:	Any	essential	work	should	be	done	at	night.	During	the	day,	get	under
cover,	put	something	between	you	and	the	hot	ground	and	stay	there.	Stay	in	the	shade:	If
you	 stay	 in	 the	 shade	 quietly,	 fully	 clothed,	 not	 talking,	 keeping	 your	 mouth	 closed	 and
breathing	 through	 your	 nose,	 your	 water	 requirement	 will	 drop	 dramatically	 and
consequently	you	will	last	a	lot	longer.
Conserving	 sweat:	 In	 this	 situation	 you	 are	 not	 going	 to	 have	 unlimited	 amounts	 of
water,	so	if	you	cannot	control	the	amount	of	water	you	take	in,	you	have	to	control	the
amount	your	body	loses.	This	means	complete	body	coverage.	Roll	your	sleeves	down	and
cover	your	head	and	neck.	This	will	protect	your	body	from	the	hot	sand-laden	winds	and
the	 direct	 rays	 of	 the	 sun.	 Your	 clothes	 will	 absorb	 your	 sweat	 and	 keep	 it	 against	 your
skin	so	you	gain	the	full	cooling	effect.
Voluntary	 dehydration	 is	 a	 risk:	 when	 you	 are	 thirsty	 you	 will	 generally	 drink	 only
65%	of	your	daily	requirement.	To	avoid	this	voluntary	dehydration	at	temperatures	below
35	 C/100	 F	 drink	 one	 pint	 of	 water	 every	 hour.	 At	 temperatures	 above	 35	 C/	 100	 F
drink	two	pints	every	hour.
Food	discipline:	If	water	is	scarce,	do	not	eat.	Water	is	required	for	digestion	of	food,
and	you	need	that	water	for	cooling.
Health	hazards:	The	sudden	and	extreme	temperature	shifts	from	day	to	night	can	cause
chills,	chest	infections	and	even	pneumonia.
Insects:	Lice,	mites,	wasps	and	flies	which	are	drawn	to	man	as	a	source	of	water	and
food	are	extremely	unpleasant	and	may	carry	disease.	Old	buildings,	ruins	and	caves	are
favourite	habitats	for	spiders,	lice,	scorpions,	centipedes	and	other	wildlife	that	can	make
life	unbearable.	Take	extra	care	when	sheltering	in	these	areas.	Always	wear	gloves,	and
do	not	sit	down	or	lie	down	without	visually	inspecting	the	area	first.
Moving	out
You	must	prepare	for	every	eventuality:	that	includes	having	to	walk	out.	Do	it	with	a	5gallon	 water	 jerry-can	 mounted	 on	 an	 aluminium	 rucksack	 frame	 with	 shelter	 kit	 and
sleeping	bag	fixed	on	top.
Estimating	distance:	If	you	do	decide	to	send	off	a	party	to	find	help,	remember	that	in
the	desert	things	always	seem	closer	than	they	are	by	a	factor	of	three.	So	a	rough	guide	is
that	anything	that	looks	one	mile	away	is	in	reality	three	miles	away.
Night	marching:	 Although	 you	 will	 conserve	 water	 by	 moving	 at	 night,	 visibility	 on
moonless	 nights	 is	 extremely	 poor	 and	 travelling	 is	 very	 hazardous.	 Dangers	 include
getting	lost,	falling	into	ravines	and	missing	water	sources.	Conversely,	moonlit	nights	are
usually	crystal-clear,	with	none	of	the	problems	associated	with	daylight	moves;	winds	die
down	 and	 haze	 and	 glare	 disappear,	 you	 will	 be	 able	 to	 see	 lights	 at	 great	 distance	 and
noise	will	carry	further.
Sandstorms:	Sandstorms	or	sand-laden	winds	occur	regularly	in	most	desert	areas:	for
example,	the	Siestan	or	desert	wind	of	Afghanistan	and	Iran	can	blow	up	constantly	for
up	 to	 120	 days.	 Wind	 speeds	 in	 the	 storm	 could	 reach	 70	 to	 80	 miles	 per	 hour	 by	 early
afternoon.	Major	dust	storms	can	be	expected	at	least	once	a	week.	When	confronted	with
this	you	should	take	cover	and	mark	its	direction	of	travel.	These	storms	will	affect	radio
transmissions.
THE	JUNGLE
Tropical	jungles	are	characterised	by	high	temperatures,	frequent	and	heavy	rainfall	(more
than	6	feet	per	annum),	and	high	humidity.	Typical	jungles	occur	in	South	and	Central
America,	South-East	Asia,	West	and	Central	Africa.	Primary	jungles	contain	trees	that	can
grow	up	to	60	metres,	forming	a	thick	canopy	preventing	light	from	reaching	the	jungle
floor.	 In	 secondary	 jungle,	 which	 results	 from	 the	 clearance	 of	 primary	 jungle	 for
cultivation,	light	reaches	the	ground,	leading	to	a	dense	growth	of	grasses,	ferns,	vines	and
shrubs	 which	 makes	 travel	 difficult.	 Whether	 primary	 or	 secondary,	 the	 jungle
environment	 tends	 to	 produce	 a	 combat	 scenario	 where	 engagements	 are	 close-up.
Hacking	through	the	jungle	is	noisy,	leaves	an	obvious	trail,	is	exhausting,	and	is	likely	to
produces	masses	of	cut-off	plants,	all	of	which	can	scratch	your	skin	and	produce	a	wound
through	which	bacteria	can	enter.	The	SAS,	who	call	the	jungle	the	ulu,	aims	to	make
100	yards	an	hour	in	the	jungle.
Basic	rules
An	environment	with	thick,	often	sharp,	vegetation,	together	with	a	host	of	biting	insects,
leeches,	 scorpions,	 snakes,	 centipedes	 and	 chigoe	 fleas	 or	 jiggers,	 requires	 clothing	 that
will	 repel	 these	 enemies.	 In	 the	 jungle,	 remaining	 healthy	 and	 free	 from	 disease	 is
paramount.	Wear	thick	trousers	and	specialist	lightweight	boots,	the	US-issue	jungle	boot
being	a	favourite.	The	feet	and	legs	must	be	protected	at	all	times.	Use	insect	repellent	to
keep	biting	insects	at	bay.
Special	Forces	soldiers	are	instructed	to	have	two	sets	of	clothing	with	them:	a	wet	set
for	wearing	in	the	humid	jungle	during	the	day	(keep	wrapped	in	plastic),	and	a	dry	set	to
wear	at	night.
Shelter
Flooding,	snakes,	and	millipedes	are	all	good	reasons	for	a	platform	shelter	with	a	base	off
the	ground.	Find	four	trees,	or	position	four	wrist-thick	poles	into	the	ground	at	the	corners
of	a	rectangle	big	enough	to	take	your	body.	Lash	poles	cross-across	at	both	shorter	ends,
then	lash	poles	along	the	long	sides	so	the	ends	also	rest	on	the	shorter	poles.	You	now
have,	when	looked	at	from	above,	a	square	frame.	Lay	cross	bars	all	along	the	length	of
the	 bed,	 and	 cover	 with	 leaves.	 Finally,	 lash	 a	 light	 pole	 horizontally	 to	 the	 top	 of	 the
uprights	to	create	a	sloping	roof.	For	waterproof	roof	tiles	and	walls	use	overlapping	or
woven	leaves	of	atap	(the	nipa	palm),	banana,	elephant	grass	or	similar.	Bamboo	makes	an
excellent	 building	 material,	 but	 beware	 it	 can	 split	 and	 painfully	 injure	 than	 unwary
handler.
If	 you	 cannot	 make	 a	 shelter,	 a	 hammock	 will	 serve	 you	 well,	 especially	 if	 it	 is	 a
specialist	one	with	an	integrated	mosquito	net.	Outside	a	combat	zone,	build	a	smoky	fire
Water
Although	water	is	often	plentiful	in	the	jungle,	this	is	not	always	the	case,	and	you	will	be
needing	an	intake	of	around	seven	litres	of	water	a	day	(because	of	high	perspiration-rate)
to	remain	healthy.
Finding	water
The	best	source	of	water	in	the	jungle	is	a	fast-flowing	stream:	look	for	bees,	finches	and
pigeons,	all	of	which	will	head	for	water	during	the	course	of	the	day.	Water	from	a	clear
fast-flowing	stream	with	a	stony	bottom	is	likely	to	be	safe,	but	boil	or	purify	if	in	doubt.
Hollows	 and	 some	 plants	 will	 collect	 water,	 and	 a	 rain	 trap	 can	 easily	 be	 made	 with
large	leaves	to	funnel	water	into	a	receptacle.	If	there	is	no	rain,	you	can	make	a	version	of
the	desert	still	(see	xxx),	or	vegetation	stills.	For	a	vegetation	still,	tie	a	translucent	plastic
bag	around	a	leafy	branch	in	a	sunny	location.	The	branch	should	be	bowed	(by	tying)	so
the	water	from	transpiration	will	collect	at	one	end.
little.	 If	 again	 nothing	 happens,	 eat	 a	 little	 more.	 In	 general	 it	 is	 inadvisable	 to	 eat	 any
plant	 that	 is	 brightly	 coloured,	 as	 shrill	 coloration	 is	 often	 a	 warning	 that	 the	 plant	 is
poisonous.
Bamboo:	Found	in	many	parts	of	the	world;	young	shoots	can	be	eaten	raw,	but	remove
the	black	hairs	which	are	irritants.
Bael	fruit:	Found	in	Burma,	India	and	throughout	South-East	Asia.
Bignay:	Shiny	evergreen,	common	throughout	South-East	Asia	and	northern	Australia.
The	red	or	black	fruit	can	be	eaten	raw.
Breadfruit:	 Tree	 with	 dark	 green	 leaves	 and	 large,	 green,	 round	 fruits,	 which	 can	 be
cooked	in	a	multitude	of	ways:	baked,	boiled,	roasted,	fried.	Found	in	the	South	Pacific,
Polynesia	and	the	West	Indies.
Coconut:	 Common	 throughout	 the	 tropics,	 particularly	 near	 the	 coast.	 Aside	 from	 the
white	meat	inside	the	shell,	the	palm	cabbage	at	the	top	of	the	tree	can	be	cooked.
Mango:	 Grown	 throughout	 the	 tropics,	 with	 the	 large	 fleshy	 fruit	 familiar	 from
supermarket	shelves.
Manioc:	Also	known	as	cassava	or	tapioca,	and	produces	large	tubers	that	are	a	staple	in
many	parts	of	the	world.	However,	the	tubers	are	poisonous	raw	and	must	be	cooked.
Rattan	palm:	Common	in	rainforests.	Roast	or	eat	the	palm	heart	raw.
Water	 lily:	 Widely	 found	 on	 waterways	 and	 lakes	 throughout	 temperate	 as	 well	 as
subtropical	regions.	Roast	seeds	and	roots.
Taro:	Plant	which	grows	to	3	feet	high	with	distinctive	heart-shaped	leaves.	Poisonous
raw,	so	boil	roots,	young	leaves	and	stalks.
Wild	 yam:	 Ground	 creeper	 common	 throughout	 the	 tropics,	 whose	 tuber	 is	 a	 staple
starchy	foodstuff.	Again,	can	be	poisonous	raw,	so	cook.
Wild	rice:	Tall	grass	found	in	areas	producing	the	familiar	grain.	Needs	to	be	threshed
and	winnowed	to	be	made	easily	palatable.
Few	Special	Forces	troopers	are	vegetarians,	and	there	is	plenty	of	fauna	in	the	jungle.
Wild	deer,	pigs,	and	birds	can	be	hunted.	(see	p267	for	trapping).	Snakes	and	lizards	can
also	be	eaten.	Rivers	are	full	of	fish,	but	boil	the	fish	well	on	catching,	as	they	can	be	full
of	parasites.	Keep	your	eyes	open	in	rivers:	some	fish	are	dangerous	(stingrays,	piranhas)
and	rivers	are	the	abode	of	poisonous	snakes	and	dangerous	animals,	such	as	crocodiles
and	hippos.
Making	a	fire
Since	everything	in	the	jungle	is	wet,	fire-starting	can	be	a	trial.	You	need	to	take	standing
dead	wood	and	shave	off	the	outside.	Dead	bamboo	makes	good	tinder.	So	does	a	termites
nest.
As	well	as	stout	boots	and	trousers	(Special	Forces	never	wear	shorts	in	the	jungle),	you
will	 need	 an	 insect	 repellent.	 If	 you	 do	 not	 have	 one,	 smearing	 mud	 on	 your	 face	 and
hands	 will	 offer	 some	 protection.	 If	 you	 take	 off	 your	 footwear,	 always	 check	 for
scorpions,	snakes	and	insects	before	donning	in	the	morning.	Shake	them	out.	Likewise,
shake	out	any	clothes	and	check	pockets	before	putting	on	clothes.
Leeches	 are	 widespread	 in	 the	 humid	 jungle	 environment,	 and	 are	 not	 just	 found	 in
water.	 Usually	 they	 take	 their	 fill	 of	 your	 blood,	 then	 drop	 off.	 If	 you	 need	 to	 remove
them,	do	not	pull	them	off.	Their	jaws	will	remain	locked	in	your	flesh	and	turn	septic.	The
tried	and	tested	method	is	to	apply	a	cigarette	to	their	rear	end;	if	you	dont	smoke	(and	if
you	 are	 intending	 to	 join	 Special	 Forces	 you	 should	 not	 be	 a	 smoker),	 dab	 them	 with	 a
flame,	salt	or	alcohol.
For	snake	bites	see	p317.	Spider	bites	should	be	treated	in	the	same	manner.	Snakes	are
best	avoided;	if	you	have	to	kill	the	snake	strike	it	on	the	head.
Jungle	hygiene
Cuts	and	scratches	must	be	cleansed	and	covered	as	soon	as	possible.	Defecate	in	a	river
(as	the	locals	are	likely	to	do),	or	scrape	away	an	area	of	earth	and	bury.	For	once,	shaving
can	be	dropped	due	to	the	dangers	of	infection	in	cuts.	In	the	jungle,	water	for	washing	
let	alone	drinking		may	need	to	be	purified	before	use.	Among	the	waterborne	diseases
prevalent	in	the	tropics	is	leptospirosis,	spread	via	the	urine	of	infected	aaimals,	notably
rats.
The	 density	 of	 the	 jungle	 makes	 navigation	 difficult.	 Special	 Forces	 troops	 are	 taught
cross-graining,	 where	 you	 follow	 a	 compass	 and	 pace	 the	 distance	 travelled,	 working
out	 your	 position	 by	 dead	 reckoning.	 Any	 paths	 used	 by	 locals	 are	 liable	 to	 be	 places
where	ambushes	are	mounted.	Patrol	movements	are	likely	to	be	single-file,	and	to	avoid
the	difficulties	and	dangers	of	hacking	paths	with	machetes	progress	is	likely	to	be	slow.	If
you	 wish	 to	 return	 to	 a	 position,	 mark	 your	 trail	 by	 cuts	 in	 trees	 or	 piles	 of	 stones.	 In	 a
survival	situation	head	for	water,	and	follow	the	downwards	course	of	a	stream	or	river	
eventually	you	will	encounter	human	habitation.	Rafts	can	be	made	from	the	abundance	of
local	 materials.	 Cut	 notches	 in	 the	 wood	 for	 ropes	 (vines	 are	 fine)	 so	 they	 do	 not	 slip.
When	hacking	through	the	ulu	is	the	only	option,	chop	down	at	an	angle	with	a	machete
rather	than	horizontally.	Keep	the	blade	sharp.
Weapon-handling
Standard	patrol	rules	in	the	jungle	include	each	man	being	equipped	with	one	magazine
full	of	tracer	bullets,	which	can	be	used	to	identify	enemy	positions.	Magazines	in	ammo
pouches	are	usually	placed	upside-down,	with	the	bullets	pointed	away	from	the	body;	this
keeps	dirt	and	water	out	of	them.	Grenades	are	not	carried	on	the	chest.
On	patrol	in	the	jungle,	Special	Forces	troopers	do	not	shoot	from	the	hip:	they	keep	the
butt	 against	 the	 shoulder,	 the	 trigger-finger	 on	 the	 trigger	 guard.	 At	 the	 first	 sign	 of
trouble,	the	Special	Forces	soldier	can	raise	the	gun	and	fire,	leaning	into	the	weapon	as	he
does	so.	Since	weapons	must	work	each	time,	every	time,	in	the	jungle	it	is	standard	that
weapons	are	cleaned	and	oiled	at	night.
THE	ARCTIC
Survival	in	Arctic	and	sub-Arctic	conditions	is	survival	against	constant	attack.	Day	and
night,	without	respite,	the	cold	lays	siege	to	your	body.	There	is	no	let-up;	staying	alive
requires	 attention	 to	 detail	 for	 24	 hours	 a	 day.	 Clothes,	 shelter	 and	 food	 are	 your	 major
weapons	 against	 the	 cold	 	 plus	 a	 strong	 will	 to	 survive.	 Without	 the	 will,	 the	 battle	 is
already	lost.	Air	temperatures	of	-40	C	and	wind	velocities	of	30	knots	are	common	in
Arctic	and	sub-Arctic	terrains.	In	these	conditions,	without	clothes,	you	would	be	dead	in
about	15	minutes.
Basic	Survival
Clothing
The	 most	 effective	 clothing	 provides	 a	 system	 of	 layers	 that	 trap	 warm	 air	 to	 form	 an
effective	insulation.	If	you	are	caught	out	in	Arctic	conditions	because	of	vehicle	failure,
air	crash,	etc.	improvise	layered	clothing	and	insulation.
Outer-shell	 garments	 should	 be	 windproof.	 Arctic	 conditions	 are	 usually	 dry,	 and
waterproof	 outers	 (unless	 they	 are	 of	 breathing	 material	 such	 as	 Gore-Tex)	 should	 be
avoided,	 as	 they	 cause	 condensation	 to	 build	 up	 inside,	 soaking	 your	 inner	 garments.
Many	 fabrics	 lose	 their	 insulating	 efficiency	 when	 they	 are	 wet.	 Goose	 and	 duck	 down,
very	popular	in	dry-cold	outer	garments,	clump	disastrously	when	wet,	losing	the	lofted
air	 spaces	 that	 give	 them	 their	 insulating	 qualities.	 Cotton	 garments	 and	 kapok	 quilt
fittings	also	become	heavy	and	cold.	Wool,	on	the	other	hand,	functions	well	when	wet,	as
do	 a	 range	 of	 modern	 synthetic	 materials	 such	 as	 polyester,	 which	 can	 be	 woven	 into
single-layered	 clothing,	 used	 as	 quilting	 fillers,	 or	 processed	 into	 thick	 piles	 and	 fleeces
which	have	the	added	advantage	that	they	wick	moisture	away	from	inside	layers.
Keep	clothing	dry
In	cold	temperatures,	your	inner	layers	of	clothing	can	become	wet	from	sweat,	and	your
outer	layer,	if	not	water-repellent,	can	become	wet	from	snow	and	frost	melted	by	body
heat.	 Wear	 water-repellent	 outer	 clothing,	 if	 available.	 It	 will	 shed	 most	 of	 the	 water
collected	 from	 melting	 snow	 and	 frost.	 Before	 entering	 a	 heated	 shelter,	 brush	 off	 the
snow	and	frost.
Despite	 the	 precautions	 you	 take,	 there	 will	 be	 times	 when	 you	 cannot	 avoid	 getting
wet.	 At	 such	 times,	 drying	 your	 clothing	 may	 become	 a	 major	 problem.	 On	 the	 march
hang	your	damp	mittens	and	socks	on	your	pack;	sometimes	the	wind	and	sun	will	dry	this
clothing.	 Or	 you	 can	 put	 damp	 socks	 or	 mittens,	 unfolded,	 near	 your	 body	 so	 that	 your
body	heat	can	dry	them.	In	bivouac,	hang	damp	clothing	inside	the	tent	near	the	top,	using
drying	 lines	 or	 improvised	 racks.	 You	 may	 even	 be	 able	 to	 dry	 each	 item	 by	 holding	 it
before	an	open	fire.	Dry	leather	items	slowly.	If	no	other	means	are	available	for	drying
your	boots,	put	them	between	the	sleeping	bag	shell	and	liner.	Your	body	heat	will	help	to
Frostbite
The	prime	dangers	of	cold-weather	conditions	are	frostbite	and	hypothermia,	as	the	cold
strikes	at	both	the	outer	and	inner	body.	Your	extremities		hands,	feet,	ears	and	nose		are
particularly	 susceptible	 to	 frostbite,	 but	 any	 exposed	 skin	 is	 at	 risk,	 and	 the	 risk	 is
multiplied	by	wind	speed.
The	 wind-chill	 factor	 transforms	 modestly-cold	 temperatures	 into	 deadly,	 tissuedestroying	 assaults	 on	 the	 body.	 An	 18-mph	 wind	 in	 a	 9.5	 C	 temperature	 results	 in	 a
-23.3	 C	 wind-chill	 temperature.	 At	 wind-chill	 temperatures	 below	 -6	 C	 exposed	 flesh
freezes	 in	 60	 seconds	 or	 less.	 An	 ambient	 temperature	 (measured	 by	 thermometer)	 of
-28.8	C	is	converted	by	a	35-mph	wind	into	a	deadly	-59.4	C	wind-chill	temperature.	At
this	level,	flesh	freezes	in	30	seconds.
Removing	 a	 mitten	 long	 enough	 to	 undo	 clothing	 and	 urinate	 can	 result	 in	 frostbitten
fingers.	 Deep	 frostbite,	 which	 can	 result	 in	 lost	 fingers,	 toes	 or	 even	 limbs,	 kills	 by
incapacitating	the	victim.	But	gangrene	can	also	easily	set	in,	and	that	will	indeed	see	you
off	unless	you	get	medical	help.	The	first	sign	of	frostbite	may	be	a	waxy	whiteness	on	the
skin.	 Keep	 a	 close	 eye	 on	 your	 companions	 for	 these	 patches.	 If	 you	 are	 on	 your	 own
periodically	feel	your	face	and	ears	for	the	typical	numbness.
It	is	easier	to	prevent	frostbite	or	to	stop	it	in	its	early	stages	than	to	thaw	out	and	take
care	of	badly-frozen	flesh.
1.	Wear	enough	clothing	for	protection	against	cold	and	wind.
2.	Clothing	and	equipment	must	not	restrict	the	circulation.
3.	Do	not	touch	cold	metal	or	oils	at	extreme	low	temperatures.
4.	Avoid	unnecessary	exposure	to	strong	winds.
5.	Exercise	the	face,	fingers	and	toes	to	keep	them	warm	and	detect	any	signs	of
numbness.
6.	Watch	your	buddy	for	any	signs	of	frostbite;	he	should	do	the	same	for	you.
7.	Thaw	any	frozen	spots	immediately.
If	you	encounter	frostbite:
			Rub	snow	onto	the	area	until	the	whiteness	or	numbness	disappears.
			Alternatively,	gently	compress	the	affected	area	with	a	warm	hand,	or	put	affected
hands	inside	clothing	near	the	body,	or	if	feet	affected	put	inside	companions	clothing
near	body.
			Do	NOT	vigorously	rub	the	frostbitten	area	directly;	you	are	likely	to	break	the	skin,
leading	to	an	open	wound	and	infection.
			Do	NOT	burst	blisters;	dust	well	with	antiseptic	powder	instead.
			Do	NOT	put	affected	areas	into	warm	water;	use	body	warmth.
			Seek	medical	help	asap.
Hypothermia
Hypothermia	occurs	when	the	temperature	of	the	inner	body	core,	which	houses	the	vital
organs,	falls	below	35	C.	The	normal	inner	body	temperature	is	36.8	C.	As	hypothermia
sets	 in,	 movements	 slow	 up,	 thought	 processes	 are	 dulled,	 and	 you	 begin	 to	 lose	 coordination.	Youre	dying	on	your	feet,	though	you	probably	wont	know	it.	Your	speech
becomes	slurred.	When	your	body	temperature	falls	to	25	C	and	below,	death	is	almost
inevitable.
One	of	the	best	ways	of	dealing	with	hypothermia	is	to	put	the	victim	naked	inside	a
sleeping	 bag	 with	 another	 person,	 also	 naked.	 A	 second	 person	 can	 also	 administer	 the
warm	 sweet	 drinks	 (such	 as	 honey,	 dextrose,	 sugar	 or	 cocoa)	 and	 food	 necessary	 for
recovery.	Do	not	force	an	unconscious	person	to	drink.
If	 you	 manage	 to	 get	 back	 to	 civilisation,	 the	 hypothermia	 victims	 torso	 can	 be
immersed	in	a	warm	bath		that	is,	a	bath	just	right	for	a	baby.	Dip	in	your	elbow:	if	the
water	 temperature	 is	 comfortable	 for	 your	 elbow	 it	 will	 be	 comfortable	 for	 the	 patient
(about	 38-40	 C).	 Be	 careful:	 start	 with	 the	 trunk	 area	 first,	 otherwise	 theres	 a	 risk	 of
cardiac	arrest	and	shock	when	the	whole	body	is	immersed.	The	patient	will	be	needing	to
lie	near	flat	on	his	back	with	his	legs	out	of	water.	A	victim	will	also	need	some	time	to
recover,	because	the	attack	will	have	profoundly	affected	the	circulatory	system.
Overheating
When	you	get	too	hot,	you	sweat	and	your	clothing	absorbs	the	moisture.	This	affects	your
warmth	in	two	ways:	dampness	decreases	the	insulating	quality	of	clothing,	and	as	sweat
evaporates,	your	body	cools.
Adjust	your	clothing	so	that	you	do	not	sweat.	You	can	do	this	by	partially	opening	your
parka	or	jacket,	by	removing	an	inner	layer	of	clothing,	by	removing	heavy	mittens	or	by
throwing	 back	 your	 parka	 hood	 or	 changing	 to	 a	 lighter	 head	 covering.	 The	 head	 and
hands	act	as	efficient	dissipators	when	overheated.
Trench	foot
Trench	 foot	 and	 immersion	 foot	 result	 from	 many	 hours	 or	 days	 of	 exposure	 to	 wet	 or
damp	conditions	at	a	temperature	just	above	freezing.	The	feet	become	cold	and	swollen
and	have	a	waxy	appearance.	Walking	becomes	difficult	and	the	feet	feel	heavy	and	numb.
The	nerves	and	muscles	suffer	the	most	damage,	but	gangrene	can	also	occur	in	extreme
cases	and	it	may	become	necessary	to	have	the	foot	or	leg	amputated.	Trench	foot	was	a
common	ailment	of	soldiers	in	the	First	World	War,	hence	its	name.
The	best	preventative	is	to	keep	the	feet	dry.	Carry	extra	socks	with	you	in	a	waterproof
packet.	 Wet	 socks	 can	 be	 dried	 against	 the	 body.	 Wash	 your	 feet	 daily	 and	 put	 on	 dry
socks.
The	 treatment	 is	 to	 clean	 the	 feet	 with	 soap	 and	 warm	 (not	 hot)	 water,	 dry	 them	 and
keep	them	raised.	Put	on	dry	socks.	Do	not	massage	or	rub	feet.
Dehydration
In	cold	weather	bundled	up	in	many	layers	of	clothing,	you	may	be	unaware	that	you	are
losing	body	moisture.	Your	heavy	clothing	absorbs	the	moisture,	which	evaporates	in	the
air.	You	must	drink	water	to	replace	this	loss	of	fluid.	Your	need	for	water	is	as	great	when
Hygiene
Although	washing	yourself	daily	may	be	impractical	and	uncomfortable	in	a	cold	climate,
you	must	do	it.	Washing	helps	to	prevent	skin	rashes	that	can	develop	into	more	serious
problems.
In	some	situations,	you	may	be	able	to	take	a	snow	bath.	Take	a	handful	of	snow	and
wash	 your	 body	 where	 sweat	 and	 moisture	 accumulate,	 such	 as	 under	 the	 arms	 and
between	the	legs,	front	and	rear,	and	then	wipe	yourself	dry.
If	you	cannot	bathe,	periodically	wipe	yourself	dry	in	these	areas.	If	possible,	wash	your
feet	 daily	 and	 put	 on	 clean,	 dry	 socks.	 Change	 your	 underwear	 at	 least	 twice	 a	 week.	 If
you	are	unable	to	wash	your	underwear,	take	it	off,	shake	it	and	let	it	air	out	for	an	hour	or
two.	If	you	are	with	natives	or	using	a	shelter	that	has	been	used	before,	check	your	body
and	 clothing	 each	 night	 for	 lice.	 If	 your	 clothing	 has	 become	 infested,	 use	 insecticide
powder	if	you	have	some.
You	have	to	strike	a	balance	between	hygiene	and	warmth.	Shaving	daily,	for	instance,
may	well	be	discouraged,	because	it	removes	oils	that	protect	the	face	from	frostbite.
Shelter
The	Arctic	terrain	of,	for	example,	northern	Norway	restricts	freedom	of	movement	and	is
well	suited	to	defence	by	small	units.	On	the	other	hand,	transport	of	logistic	support	and
reinforcements	 is	 very	 difficult.	 Even	 if	 you	 do	 receive	 reinforcements	 you	 will	 still	 be
heavily	outnumbered	by	enemy	forces,	and	so	there	is	a	good	chance	that,	either	alone	or
with	 your	 unit,	 you	 will	 find	 yourself	 in	 a	 struggle	 for	 survival	 as	 you	 try	 to	 evade	 the
enemy.	If	you	are	in	the	treeline,	you	may	find	that	the	snow	is	not	deep	enough	to	build
snow	shelters,	but	you	can	make	brushwood	shelters.	There	are	five	basic	designs	which
you	can	adapt	to	suit	your	purpose	or	the	conditions:
1.	Single	lean-to	shelter
2.	Double	lean-to	shelter
3.	Wigwam-style	shelter
4.	Tree	pit	shelter
5.	Fallen-tree	shelter
Basic	building	rules
The	 lean-to	 designs	 are	 the	 simplest,	 but	 the	 wigwam	 is	 the	 best,	 warmest	 and	 most
comfortable.	 The	 tree	 pit	 and	 fallen	 tree	 are	 best	 used	 in	 tactical	 situations.	 If	 you	 have
these	basic	designs	in	your	mind,	you	can	adapt	them	to	most	circumstances.
Build	 the	 main	 wall	 with	 its	 back	 to	 the	 prevailing	 wind,	 and	 weave	 it	 thickly	 with
whatever	wood	or	branches	are	available.	A	small	wall	can	be	built	downwind	to	provide
reflection	for	the	heat	from	a	fire.	You	can	use	snow	to	reinforce	the	woven	wall,	but	it
should	not	go	too	high	up	or	it	will	melt	into	the	bivi	from	the	roof.
If	possible,	dig	down	to	ground	level	for	the	fire.	If	this	is	impossible,	build	a	good	solid
firebase	of	mixed	layers	of	logs,	snow	and	brushwood.	You	can	burn	an	open	fire	in	all
types	of	brushwood	shelter	except	the	tree	pit:	in	this	case	the	walls	are	inclined	to	melt
back	and	the	bivi	collapse.
The	single	lean-to	shelter:	The	only	problem	with	these	shelters	is	that	you	must	have	a
knife,	saw	or	axe.	The	Eskimos	have	shown	that	with	a	knife	you	survive;	without	one	you
need	a	miracle.
When	building	this	lean-to	make	sure	it	is	tactically	located	so	that	you	can	build	a	fire
large	enough	to	spread	the	warmth	equally	throughout	the	shelter.	The	shelter	is	improved
by	 using	 a	 reflector	 of	 green	 logs	 with	 the	 fire.	 With	 the	 reflector	 correctly	 placed,	 the
warm	 air	 from	 the	 fire	 should	 circulate	 as	 shown	 below.	 It	 is	 vital	 the	 sleeping	 shelf	 is
insulated	from	the	ground,	as	without	it	you	will	rapidly	lose	body	heat	to	the	ground.
The	double	lean-to	shelter:	A	larger	group	will	be	able	to	produce	the	more	ambitious
double	 lean-to,	 which	 is	 a	 lot	 warmer	 than	 the	 single	 lean-to.	 It	 consists	 of	 two	 singles
with	 the	 high,	 open	 sides	 facing	 each	 other	 across	 the	 fire.	 The	 fire	 reflector	 is	 not
required.	As	with	the	single	lean-to,	side	walls	can	be	added.
Teepee	or	wigwam	shelters:	This	is	a	tent	construction	which	can	be	easily	built	using	a
parachute	(parateepee).	It	is	possible	to	cook,	eat,	sleep	and	make	signals	from	inside.	You
need	 a	 number	 of	 good	 poles	 about	 3	 to	 4	 metres	 (10	 to	 13	 feet)	 long,	 or	 you	 can
improvise	as	shown.
The	 tree-pit	 shelter:	 This	 is	 a	 good	 option	 in	 an	 evasion	 environment	 when	 the	 only
people	looking	for	you	are	the	enemy.	The	only	drawback	is	that	a	fire	tends	to	melt	the
walls	and	cause	a	collapse.
The	fallen-tree	shelter:	This	is	a	mixture	of	the	teepee	and	the	tree-pit	solutions,	and	its
design	will	contain	greater	or	lesser	elements	of	each	according	to	the	circumstances.
Tents	and	tentsheets
Tents	can	sleep	five	or	ten	men	and	are	large	and	bulky;	they	tend	to	be	used	in	base	areas,
and	generally	have	to	be	carried	on	a	vehicle	or	on	a	pulk		a	man-towable	sledge.	The
tents	used	by	British	forces	are	the	Canadian	single-pole	or	British	ridge	tent.
If	you	are	working	in	small	groups	you	will	not	be	able	to	carry	a	tent,	so	you	will	each
carry	 a	 tentsheet.	 In	 its	 simplest	 form	 this	 is	 a	 diamond	 of	 canvas	 with	 buttons	 and
buttonholes	on	each	edge.	They	can	be	joined	together	to	form	a	tent	of	almost	any	size,
but	 normally	 it	 would	 be	 for	 eight	 to	 ten	 men:	 the	 tent	 group.	 Tentsheets	 give	 you	 a
portable,	 windproof,	 lightproof,	 robust	 and	 flexible	 system	 that	 meets	 all	 the	 needs	 of
survival	and	tactics.	It	takes	time	to	construct	a	shelter	using	tentsheets,	and	you	will	need
to	be	able	to	do	it	quickly	when	the	temperature	is	20	C	below	freezing,	so	practise	now.
And	learn	to	live	in	it.
The	 two-man	 tent	 group:	 The	 tentsheet	 is	 the	 basic	 unit	 from	 which	 you	 can	 make	 a
simple	 two-man	 tent,	 using	 two	 sheets.	 Kit	 layout	 is	 all	 important.	 These	 tents	 are
extremely	cramped	and	you	must	decide	where	everything	is	stored,	so	that	you	can	move
out	at	speed	and	your	oppo	can	pack	your	kit	when	you	are	not	there.
The	 four-man	 tent	 group:	 The	 way	 in	 which	 the	 tentsheet	 is	 folded	 and	 joined	 to
produce	different-size	tents	is	not	obvious	and	must	be	thoroughly	practised	in	dry	training
before	 you	 get	 out	 on	 the	 ground.	 Each	 man	 in	 the	 section	 must	 have	 an	 exact	 job
description	so	that	the	tent	is	erected	as	a	drill.
The	 five-man	 tent	 group:	 This	 is	 the	 usual	 half-section	 or	 fire-team	 layout	 complete
with	stove.	Ideally	you	should	not	use	ski	poles	in	the	construction	of	the	tent	as	you	may
need	them	in	a	hurry.
The	seven-man	tent	group:	Everyones	feet	face	the	door	and	the	cook	sleeps	next	to	the
stove.	If	you	are	operating	a	sentry	stag,	make	sure	the	stag	list	is	written	so	that	the	sentry
wakes	up	the	person	who	sleeps	next	to	him,	which	means	sentries	do	not	have	to	trample
over	people	looking	for	the	next	man	on	the	stag	list.
Storage	 and	 care	 of	 skis	 and	 weapons:	Weapons	 should	 be	 stored	 outside	 because,	 if
they	become	warm,	snow	will	melt	on	them	and	then	freeze	again	when	theyre	next	taken
outside.	 They	 are	 stored	 in	 numerical	 order	 so	 that	 their	 owners	 can	 find	 them	 easily.
However,	from	a	security	point	of	view,	keep	one	weapon	inside	the	tent	for	instant	use,
and	free	from	snow.
In	 cold	 temperatures	 lubricants	 tend	 to	 thicken,	 meaning	 that	 weapons	 may	 be	 more
sluggish,	or	even	fail	to	work	at	all.	Weapons	therefore	need	to	be	stripped,	and	leaned;
only	the	camming	surfaces	are	lubricated,	and	then	only	sparingly.
Skis	are	stored	horizontally	in	a	pit,	again	in	numerical	order,	with	brushwood	or	poles
underneath	 so	 that	 they	 do	 not	 freeze	 to	 the	 snow.	 The	 pit	 will	 absorb	 any	 new	 snow
during	the	night,	leaving	the	skis	exposed	so	you	will	be	able	to	find	them.
Striking	your	tent	or	tentsheet
This	 is	 not	 difficult,	 but	 you	 must	 get	 it	 down	 to	 a	 fine	 art:	 youll	 get	 cold	 if	 you	 find
yourself	standing	around.	Work	out	how	long	it	takes	you;	this	is	your	pull	pole	time.	It
should	be	around	15	minutes	when	properly	practised.	This	will	help	you	make	plans	to	go
straight	from	the	tent	to	work	that	keeps	you	warm.	Brush	off	ice	and	snow	before	packing
away,	 or	 you	 will	 be	 carrying	 unnecessary	 weight	 and	 it	 will	 take	 you	 longer	 to	 put	 the
shelter	up	again.
			Level	the	site:	Level	to	near	ground	level.	The	tent	group	commander	will	designate	the
area	to	dig.
			Find	insulation:	At	the	same	time,	designated	men	find	brushwood	and	undergrowth	to
use	as	insulation.
			Install	cooking	kit:	The	designated	cook	unpacks	the	cooking	kit,	lights	the	stove	and
gets	the	rations	ready	for	cooking.	The	lamp	is	lit.
			Lay	the	tent:	The	tent	is	laid	out	with	the	door	positioned	away	from	the	enemy	(and,
ideally,	away	from	the	prevailing	wind)	so	that	they	will	not	be	able	to	see	any	light.
			Raise	the	tent:	Peg	the	edges	down	and	raise	the	tent	on	its	own	poles,	if	you	have
them;	otherwise	use	brushwood	poles.	Do	not	use	your	skis	or	sticks	except	in	an
emergency.	The	cook	takes	the	lamp,	cooker,	rations,	etc	into	the	tent.
			Settle	in:	Weatherproof	the	edges	of	the	tent	with	snow	(thrown	over	brushwood,	which
prevents	icing	and	allows	easy	dismantling).	The	cook	begins	to	heat	the	water	(use
clean,	fresh	snow,	stored	in	plastic	bags).	Pass	in	sleeping	mats	and	bags	and	lay	them
out.	Make	sure	the	floor	is	flat	or	everyone	will	slide	during	the	night	and	lose	sleep,
and	the	snow	will	harden	into	uncomfortable	lumps.	Dig	a	hole	by	the	door.
			Food	and	warmth:	By	now	it	will	be	pretty	warm	from	the	stove	and	the	lamp.	Two
men	will	finish	off	the	outside	ski	pit,	weapons	rack,	fuel	pit	and	latrine,	but	everyone
else	is	thinking	about	food	and	admin,	such	as	weapon	and	equipment	maintenance.
When	you	have	eaten,	night	routine	will	begin.
Its	-20	C,	but	you	have	got	your	drills	right	and	so	you	kept	warm	while	the	shelter	was
erected.	 Now	 youre	 inside	 youre	 comfortable	 in	 your	 shirtsleeves!	 It	 only	 took	 15
minutes		and	thats	as	good	as	a	fully	trained	Arctic	soldier.
Once	 the	 tent	 is	 up,	 your	 immediate	 priority	 is	 camouflage.	 Issue	 white	 netting	 gives
good	cover,	but	you	must	use	poles	to	distort	its	outline	and	avoid	shadows	formed	by	the
shape	of	the	tent.	Snow	walls	around	the	tent	provide	cover	as	well	as	protection	from	the
elements.	The	fighting	position	can	be	camouflaged	with	a	few	branches	to	minimize	the
shadow	of	the	trench	from	the	air.
Tent	group	routine
The	 group	 will	 evolve	 its	 own	 routine	 depending	 on	 tactical	 conditions,	 but	 the
commander	and	cook	always	sleep	by	the	door.	Cooking	is	also	done	by	the	door	(in	case
of	fire	and	to	allow	moisture	to	escape)	or	in	the	cold	hole.	Other	points	for	comfortable
tent	life	are:
1.	Control	your	kit:	You	will	be	cramped,	so	keep	your	kit	packed	unless	you	need	it.
Dont	lose	your	gloves	or	hat.
2.	Keep	clothes	dry:	Dry	damp	clothing	by	hanging	it	in	the	ceiling	of	the	tent.	When
the	heat	is	off,	take	it	into	your	sleeping	bag;	this	includes	your	boots.
3.	Check	your	feet:	You	and	your	buddy	should	help	each	other	to	do	this.	Powder	them
and	put	on	dry	socks.	If	your	feet	are	cold,	rub	them	or,	even	better,	warm	them	in
your	buddys	armpits!	If	they	are	seriously	cold,	dont	rub	them;	just	use	the	armpit
method.
The	 tent	 group	 commander	 must	 make	 sure	 that	 the	 following	 are	 carried,	 and	 that	 they
work.
1.	Pulk
2.	Tent	(5-	or	10-man)
3.	Snowshoes	(if	not	being	worn)
4.	Snow	shovels	(2)
5.	Stove	and	spares	(2)
6.	Pressure	cooker
7.	Lantern	with	case	plus	spares,	including	mantlets	(1	or	2)
8.	Machete	(gollock)	and	case
9.	Saucepan
10.	Fuel	funnel
11.	Fuel	containers:	2-gal,	1-gal	or	half-gal
12.	Ski/pulk	repair	kit
Note:	The	amount	of	fuel	carried	will	depend	on	the	time	to	be	spent	in	the	field.
Making	a	fire
The	skill	to	make	a	fire	means	the	difference	between	death	and	survival.	You	should	have
waterproof	matches	in	your	kit.
1.	Dig	down	to	the	frozen	earth	for	your	firebase.	If	this	is	not	possible,	build	a	base	of
logs	over	the	snow.	You	need	a	layer	of	brushwood,	a	layer	of	snow,	then	another
layer	of	each,	finally	topped	off	with	good	thick	layers	of	logs.
2.	Build	your	fire	on	this	base.
3.	Use	tinder	to	start	the	fire.	If	tinder	is	a	problem,	you	can	always	find	dry	spruce
twigs	in	the	lowest	branches,	peel	off	birch	bark,	or	use	fir	root.	All	contain	high
concentrations	of	tar	and	burn	with	a	long-lasting	flame.	Fir	root	is	especially	good.
4.	If	you	need	to	use	fuel	to	help	the	fire	along,	dip	your	twigs	in	it	and	soak	them.
Dont	waste	fuel	by	pouring	it	on.
5.	Use	dead	tree	logs	as	the	main	fuel.	It	burns	best.	Live	birch	will	burn	if	split.
Eskimos	use	Arctic	bell-heather	(Cassiope	tetragona)	when	there	is	no	wood,	or
dung,	or	dry	grass.
Snow	shelters
Youve	been	separated	from	your	kit,	but	youve	got	your	first-and	second-line	survival	kit
with	you.	Its	a	long	way	to	base	camp	and	theres	only	just	over	an	hour	of	light	left.	A
light	 snow	 is	 beginning	 to	 fall,	 and	 the	 winds	 come	 up,	 but	 its	 not	 too	 bad	 yet.	 You
havent	 got	 a	 tent.	 Youre	 facing	 the	 prospect	 of	 a	 night	 in	 the	 open	 in	 worsening
conditions.	 This	 is	 an	 emergency	 survival	 situation.	 Stay	 calm.	 Think.	 Youve	 got	 a
number	of	options,	and	youve	practised	them	all.	And	best	of	all,	youve	got	your	rations!
The	simplest	way	of	building	a	shelter	is	to	use	snow.	You	can	make	a	snow	grave,	a
snow	hole	or	an	igloo;	all	three	are	better	than	a	tent.	Make	sure	the	entrance	is	lower	than
the	sleeping	bench;	this	will	trap	the	warm	air	in	the	living	space	near	the	ceiling.	Even	a
burning	candle	will	keep	the	temperature	at	about	0	C.	Always	smooth	off	the	ceiling	to
prevent	 dripping.	 This,	 though,	 will	 make	 the	 shelter	 airtight,	 which	 can	 lead	 to	 lack	 of
oxygen,	especially	if	you	are	using	a	cooker,	so	punch	a	ventilation	hole	using	a	ski	stick.
Keep	a	shovel	in	the	shelter	to	dig	yourself	out	if	it	blizzards	or	if	the	cave	collapses;	if
the	temperature	is	above	freezing	the	snow	conditions	will	not	be	quite	right	and	the	roof
may	start	to	fall	in.	For	this	reason,	dont	practise	building	snow	shelters	unless	its	below
freezing	point.
Snow	trenches
You	need	about	one	metre	of	snow		the	deeper	the	better		into	which	you	dig	a	simple
trench.	Make	the	bottom	wider	than	the	top,	especially	if	there	are	two	of	you.	If	its	not
quite	 deep	 enough	 build	 up	 a	 bit	 at	 the	 sides.	 Now	 smooth	 off	 the	 sleeping	 bench,
insulating	 it	 with	 brushwood,	 if	 you	 dont	 have	 your	 sleeping	 mat	 with	 you.	 Then	 dig	 a
cold	hole	next	to	the	door:	this	acts	as	a	sump	for	the	cold	air.	Then	dig	an	entrance	and
move	your	kit	inside,	and	put	the	roof	on.	This	can	be	tricky,	especially	if	your	trench	is
too	wide.	The	simplest	way,	if	the	snow	is	compact,	is	to	cut	blocks	and	place	them	over
the	 top,	 then	 add	 more	 snow.	 If	 you	 find	 you	 need	 support	 for	 the	 snow	 blocks	 use
brushwood	or	tent	sheets.	You	can	use	skis,	but	only	as	a	last	resort:	if	you	do,	put	them	in
upside-down,	as	this	helps	to	stop	them	freezing	in.	Then	add	more	snow.
Snow	hole	or	snow	cave
If	there	are	two	or	more	of	you,	you	need	a	large	bank	or	drift	of	snow	about	three	metres
wide	and	two	metres	deep.	An	avalanche	probe	will	come	in	handy	to	gauge	depth.	Put	on
waterproofs	if	you	have	them	as	you	will	get	wet.	There	are	two	methods	of	digging:	the
tunnel	method,	and	the	block-and-cave	method.	The	latter	can	be	used	when	the	snow	is
compact	enough	to	be	cut	in	blocks.	Dig	along	the	full	length	of	the	intended	cave,	using
as	many	men	as	will	fit,	while	one	digs	the	entrance	off	to	the	side.	Once	you	have	dug	the
sleeping	benches,	build	up	the	open	side	of	the	cave	with	the	excavated	snow	blocks	until
it	is	sealed	in.	Only	the	entrance	remains	open.
Using	 the	 tunnel	 method,	 only	 one	 man	 can	 work	 until	 the	 building	 of	 the	 sleeping
benches	is	started;	it	therefore	takes	much	longer	than	the	block-and-cave	method.
You	will	find	a	snowhole	rather	oppressive	at	first,	but	it	is	the	most	comfortable	and
warm	form	of	shelter	in	the	Arctic	and	much	preferred	by	Arctic	troops.
Snow	house	(igloo)
The	igloo		the	traditional	home	of	the	Eskimo		needs	experience	and	practice	to	build,
and	snow	must	be	of	the	right	quality	to	cut	into	blocks.	Loose	snow	is	useless;	and	the
more	granular	it	is,	the	smaller	the	igloo	must	be.
Work	from	the	inside,	cutting	out	the	centre	and	using	your	carefully-cut	blocks	to	form
the	base	of	the	wall.	Work	progressively	upwards	in	a	spiral,	shaping	the	blocks	as	you	go,
and	 leaning	 them	 just	 slightly	 further	 inwards	 with	 each	 spiral.	 Finally	 a	 key	 block	 is
inserted		carefully		either	by	widening	the	centre	hole	or	trimming	the	key	block	until	it
drops	gently	into	place.	The	wall	should	be	chest-	to	shoulder-high.
The	entrance	to	your	snow	house	should	be	small;	a	large	doorway	is	simply	an	easy
way	for	heat	to	escape.	Ideally,	it	should	be	an	S-shaped	tunnel	away	from	the	prevailing
wind.	In	deep	snow,	this	can	be	underground.	Construct	sleeping	benches	inside	and	fill	in
any	holes	in	the	walls	with	loose	snow.
Snow	wall
In	dire	emergency	a	simple	semi-circular	snow	wall	will	keep	the	worst	of	the	weather	at
bay	 and	 provide	 shelter	 from	 the	 wind,	 allowing	 you	 to	 cook	 and	 sleep	 for	 a	 limited
period.
Living	in	snow	shelters
Follow	these	rules	for	safety	and	comfort:
1.	Strip	off	to	avoid	sweating;	the	sweat	may	freeze	later.	But	wear	waterproofs	when
digging	or	you	will	get	soaked.
2.	Make	sure	your	shelter	is	adequately	ventilated	at	all	times.
3.	Mark	the	entrance	to	your	shelter	so	you	can	always	find	it.	This	will	also	help
rescuers	if	the	cave	collapses.
4.	Brush	loose	snow	from	yourselves	before	entering.	This	prevents	damp	developing
on	your	clothing	in	the	warm	interior	of	the	shelter.
5.	Take	all	your	equipment	in,	especially	a	shovel.
6.	Remove	wet	clothing	and	try	to	dry	it	overnight.
7.	Take	your	boots	into	your	sleeping	bag	and	keep	them	near	your	stomach	area.	This
will	help	to	dry	them.
8.	Dont	boil	water	for	too	long:	its	vapour	will	cause	condensation	and	dampness.
9.	Keep	a	candle	burning	to	give	light	and	warmth		but	keep	an	eye	on	it.
must	drink	well,	and	one	of	the	cooks	main	jobs	will	be	to	see	that	plenty	of	hot	water	is
available	to	top	up	Thermos	flasks.
You	 have	 four	 types	 of	 pack	 to	 choose	 from.	 Breakfast	 is	 always	 porridge	 and	 hot
chocolate.	The	main	meal	is	usually	eaten	in	the	evening,	and	you	carry	the	snack	pack	in
your	windproof	for	eating	throughout	the	rest	of	the	day.	You	may	get	a	little	fed	up	with
the	 chocolate,	 but	 eat	 it:	 it	 contributes	 as	 much	 as	 anything	 else	 to	 your	 diet	 and	 wellbeing.	 One	 little	 tip	 is	 to	 carry	 some	 curry	 powder	 with	 you	 to	 add	 to	 any	 food	 youre
getting	bored	with.
screwed	on,	and	use	the	filler	funnel	to	avoid	waste.	Remember,	the	naphtha	must	live	in
its	 pit	 outside	 your	 tent.	 Most	 lamps	 and	 cookers	 need	 pre-heating	 to	 generate	 a	 gaspressure	 build-up	 before	 you	 can	 light	 them.	 Use	 meta	 (methylated	 spirit	 impregnated
blocks)	to	do	this		never	use	naphtha.
Water
Thirst	is	a	major	problem	in	the	Arctic.	In	order	to	conserve	fuel	for	other	purposes,	the
survivor	often	deprives	himself	of	drinking	water	from	melting	ice	and	snow,	and	the	time
and	 energy	 required	 to	 chop	 and	 collect	 ice	 for	 water	 also	 limits	 the	 supply.	 You	 may
become	dangerously	dehydrated	in	the	Arctic	as	easily	as	in	the	desert.
Remember:
1.	You	need	about	50%	more	fuel	to	produce	the	same	quantity	of	water	from	snow	than
from	melting	ice.
2.	It	is	safe,	within	limits,	to	eat	snow,	as	long	as	you	allow	it	to	thaw	sufficiently	to	be
moulded	into	a	stick	or	ball.
3.	Do	not	eat	snow	in	its	natural	state:	it	will	cause	dehydration	and	chill	your	body.
4.	Do	not	eat	crushed	ice,	as	it	may	cause	injury	to	your	lips	and	tongue.
5.	Any	surface	that	absorbs	the	suns	heat	can	be	used	to	melt	ice	or	snow,	e.g.	a	flat
rock,	a	dark	tarpaulin	or	a	signal	panel.
6.	The	milky	water	of	glacial	streams	can	be	drunk	once	the	sediment	has	been	allowed
to	settle	out.
Rules	of	health
Keep	fit:	You	burn	enormous	amounts	of	energy	just	doing	simple	jobs.	The	fitter	you	are,
the	less	energy	you	burn,	and	you	can	work	without	becoming	exhausted.	This	reduces	the
danger	of	freezing.
Drink	plenty	of	water:	Dehydration	causes	tiredness.	Drink	even	if	you	are	not	thirsty.
Eat	your	rations:	 Even	 if	 youre	 not	 hungry,	 keep	 eating.	 Regular	 hot	 food	 will	 keep
you	at	your	peak.
Maintain	a	positive	attitude:	Keep	alert	and,	above	all	cheerful.	You	can	make	it!
Emergency	food
There	 is	 little	 to	 eat	 in	 the	 Arctic	 in	 winter,	 but	 in	 an	 emergency	 there	 are	 some
possibilities.	Look	out	for	bird	and	animal	tracks:	these	may	lead	you	to	their	sources	of
food,	which	will	probably	be	safe	to	eat.	But	beware:	if	you	find	berries	or	something	you
dont	recognize,	they	may	be	poisonous.	Try	a	small	quantity	on	your	tongue	first	of	all,
and	if	there	are	no	ill	effects	eat	a	little;	wait	up	to	eight	hours	and	then	eat	a	bit	more.	If
after	another	eight	hours	you	are	all	right,	you	can	be	reasonably	sure	that	the	food	is	safe.
Be	 especially	 wary	 of	 fungi:	 dont	 touch	 them	 in	 training	 unless	 one	 of	 you	 is	 a	 real
expert.
Kelp	and	many	types	of	seaweed	are	edible.	Look	out	too	for:
Rock	tripe:	Common	name	for	lichen	that	grows	on	stone	and	boulders.	Top	of	plant	is
usually	black.	An	irritant	when	raw,	a	survivors	staple	when	cooked.
Reindeer	moss:	All	of	the	plant	is	edible,	but	soak	before	boiling.
Crowberry:	The	small	black	berries	of	this	low-growing	shrub	are	an	important	source
of	Vitamin	C	for	the	Eskimo.
Arctic	willow:	Both	shoot	and	roots	are	edible.	Peel	first.
Iceland	moss:	 Comes	 in	 brown	 or	 grey-green	 forms.	 All	 parts	 of	 the	 plant	 are	 edible,
though	best	soaked	and	boiled.
Bearberry:	Grows	in	mats	with	pinky-white	flowers.	The	red	berries,	usefully,	can	be
eaten	raw.	The	leaves	make	a	tea.
Animals
Arctic	animals	range	from	reindeer,	moose	and	bear	(brown	and	polar)	to	hares,	rabbits,
squirrels	 and	 lemmings	 (look	 under	 rocks	 for	 these).	 You	 will	 also	 come	 across	 wolves
and	 foxes.	 Look	 at	 the	 snow	 in	 the	 mornings	 and	 you	 will	 realize	 from	 the	 number	 of
tracks	just	how	much	wildlife	there	is.	The	closer	to	the	treeline	or	shoreline	you	are,	the
more	abundant	wildlife	becomes,	even	in	winter.	Hunting	animals	is	a	skill,	but	you	will
soon	master	it	if	your	life	depends	on	it.	Points	to	remember	are:
			Always	hunt	up-wind	(with	the	wind	in	your	face).
			Move	slowly.
			Try	to	stalk	from	above.
			Crawl	if	you	are	on	exposed	ground;	move	while	the	animal	is	feeding,	and	freeze
when	it	lifts	its	head	up.
			Dont	take	too	long	a	shot,	and	if	using	issue	ammo	(which	has	solid	heads),	shoot
through	the	heart,	although	small	ground	game	may	have	to	be	shot	through	the	head.
			A	sharp	whistle	will	cause	most	animals	to	stop;	time	enough	to	give	you	the	chance	of
a	shot.
Seals	 and	 walruses	 are	 found	 along	 the	 coastline	 or,	 on	 a	 good	 day,	 lying	 next	 to	 their
breathing	 holes	 out	 on	 the	 ice.	 Both	 have	 large	 amounts	 of	 blubber,	 which	 is	 useful	 for
cooking,	 heating	 and	 lighting,	 and	 is	 also	 edible,	 along	 with	 the	 flesh.	 You	 need	 to	 take
great	care	when	stalking	a	seal,	and	ideally	you	should	shoot	it	through	the	head:	this	will
make	sure	it	cannot	reach	its	breathing	hole,	and	if	its	in	the	water	it	will	float.
REMEMBER	that	polar	bears	are	predators.	Ensure	that	you	are	not	hunted	yourself.
They	may	be	attracted	by	your	smell,	as	well	as	the	smell	of	any	kills	you	make.
Birds
The	most	common	Arctic	bird	is	the	ptarmigan	or	snow	grouse,	which	is	relatively	tame
and	can	be	killed	with	a	stick	or	stone	in	a	trap.	There	are	owls	and	ravens	too,	but	both
are	wily	and	you	will	need	a	baited	trap.	Near	the	coast,	you	will	find	gulls;	these	can	be
killed	with	a	gorge	hook.	To	trap	birds	you	need	some	sort	of	cage	system	to	be	triggered
as	the	bird	takes	the	bait	or	by	you	from	a	hidden	position.
Traps
Fall	log	trap	for	big	game:	Large	and	medium-sized	game	is	usually	caught	in	deadfalls.
However,	this	method	is	only	worthwhile	if	there	are	sufficient	quantities	of	larger	game
available.
Spring	and	spear	trap:	The	spear	trap	is	another	method	of	catching	larger	mammals,
but	requires	very	careful	construction	to	be	effective.
Trip	deadfall:	A	rock	deadfall	stretched	across	an	animal	trail	is	effective	as	long	as	you
are	able	to	canalize	the	animal	into	the	trap.
Travel
Deep	snow	means	deep	trouble	if	youre	on	the	move.	On	foot	or	in	an	ordinary	vehicle,
youve	got	very	little	chance	unless	youve	taken	precautions	beforehand.	As	well	as	the
difficulty	of	moving	through	the	snow	itself,	there	are	other	less	obvious	things	to	worry
about.	 To	 start	 with,	 deep	 snow	 will	 change	 the	 appearance	 of	 the	 countryside,	 turning
navigation	by	map	into	a	nightmare.	Secondly,	the	snow	will	hide	all	sorts	of	obstacles	and
dangers.	Falling	into	a	ditch	filled	with	three	metres	of	soft	snow	may	sound	like	it	could
be	fun,	but	the	reality	is	deadly.	You	would	find	it	very	difficult	to	climb	out	before	you
were	 overcome	 by	 exhaustion	 and	 died	 of	 exposure.	 That	 is,	 unless	 you	 drowned	 in	 the
snow	first.
Skiing
A	fit,	experienced	skier	can	keep	up	a	solid	10	kilometres	an	hour	for	days	on	end,	even
when	carrying	a	full	load	of	equipment.	Thats	an	awful	lot	more	than	you	could	manage
on	foot,	and	it	requires	a	lot	less	effort,	so	there	is	much	to	be	said	for	learning	how	to	do
it.
There	are	two	main	types	of	ski:	Alpine	skis	are	the	shorter	of	the	two	types,	and	have
fastenings	 for	 both	 the	 toe	 and	 heel	 of	 the	 boot;	 cross-country	 or	 Nordic	 skis	 are	 longer
and	narrower,	with	a	hinged	fastening	at	the	toe	only,	so	that	the	heel	can	be	raised.	This
allows	you	to	do	a	push/step	movement	that	covers	the	ground	remarkably	quickly.
Military	cross-country	skis
Standard	military	issue	skis	are	208	cm	(6	feet	10inches)	long	(big	by	Alpine	standards).
They	 have	 a	 hole	 in	 the	 tip	 to	 allow	 you	 to	 tow	 them	 in	 an	 improvised	 sledge,	 and	 are
grooved	 at	 the	 heel	 to	 accept	 mohair	 climbers.	 To	 the	 non-skier	 it	 may	 come	 as	 a
surprise	to	learn	that	you	can	actually	walk	uphill	wearing	skis.	Originally,	people	stuck
strips	of	sealskin	onto	the	soles	of	their	skis,	with	the	pile	of	the	short,	stiff	hairs	pointing
backwards.	The	British	Army	uses	mohair	instead,	but	the	effect	is	the	same.
The	 length	 of	 a	 pair	 of	 skis	 isnt	 terribly	 important,	 but	 the	 length	 of	 the	 poles	 is.
Theyre	 much	 longer	 than	 the	 poles	 used	 in	 downhill	 skiing,	 coming	 to	 just	 below	 the
shoulder.	In	the	British	forces	they	come	in	three	lengths:	51	inches	(130	cm),	54	inches
(137	 cm)	 and	 58	 inches	 (147	 cm).	 Dont	 damage	 the	 points	 of	 your	 poles.	 They	 are
intentionally	sharp	to	allow	you	to	get	a	purchase	on	hard	ice.
Improvising snowshoes
The	traditional	snowshoe	looks	a	bit	like	a	big	tennis	racket,	but	more	modern	versions	are
a	 rounded	 oblong	 shape,	 around	 50	 cm	 long	 and	 25	 to	 30	 cm	 wide,	 made	 up	 of	 a
lightweight	frame	interlaced	with	straps	of	some	sort.	These	straps	can	be	made	from	any
suitable	material,	and	so	can	the	frames,	which	means	that	at	a	pinch	you	can	make	a	pair
of	 snowshoes	 for	 yourself.	 Use	 stripped	 straight	 branches	 for	 the	 frame	 and	 webbing,
animal	hide	cut	into	strips	or	even	bark	for	the	cross	straps.
You	 dont	 need	 clever	 bindings	 on	 an	 improvised	 snowshoe:	 a	 single	 piece	 of	 rope,
doubled	and	knotted	twice	around	the	foot	and	ankle,	will	do	fine.	Do	not	bind	the	ankle	to
the	snowshoe		allow	it	to	lift	in	the	same	way	as	your	heel	lifts	while	walking	normally.
Walking	at	night
In	an	operational	or	hostile	situation,	travel	during	darkness,	unless	the	weather	has	closed
in	 sufficiently	 during	 the	 day	 to	 hide	 you	 in	 low	 cloud	 or	 fog.	 Even	 then	 take	 care:	 bad
weather	can	lift	very	quickly,	leaving	you	exposed	and	unprotected.	And	beware	travelling
in	white-out	conditions:	the	lack	of	contrasting	colours	makes	it	impossible	to	judge	the
nature	of	the	terrain.	And	do	not	travel	during	blizzards		they	are	deadly.	Moving	at	night
can	be	tricky,	as	any	light	from	stars	and	the	moon	is	made	even	brighter	when	reflected
off	the	snow.
vehicle.
If	you	fall	through	the	ice,	get	your	kit	off	and	up	onto	the	ice;	use	your	poles	to
help	 you	 out.	 Dont	 get	 too	 close	 to	 a	 team	 mate	 who	 has	 fallen	 through:	 youll
only	end	up	in	there	with	him.	Throw	him	a	line	so	that	you	can	help	him	out	from
a	safe	distance.	Hypothermia	will	set	in	very	quickly	after	immersion,	so	carry	out
emergency	re-warming	straight	away.
Distance
Its	very	difficult	to	judge	distances	in	the	Arctic	as	there	are	so	few	visual	clues,	and	the
clear	 air	 makes	 estimating	 distances	 difficult;	 they	 are	 more	 frequently	 underestimated
than	 overestimated.	 The	 simplest	 way	 of	 estimation	 is	 to	 pace	 out	 a	 given	 distance
yourself,	but	this	must	be	practised	to	be	anywhere	near	accurate.	Another	method	is	for
rope	or	some	signal	wire	of	a	given	length	(say	50	metres)	to	be	strung	between	two	men.
The	first	man	moves	off,	and	when	the	slack	is	taken	up	the	first	man	stops	and	the	second
man	joins	him,	and	then	repeats	the	exercise.	Simple	mathematics	can	be	used	to	estimate
the	distance	achieved	after	a	number	of	repetitions.
Weather	patterns
There	is	no	fixed	weather	pattern	in	Arctic	and	sub-Arctic	regions,	but	the	west	coast	of
Scandinavia	is	affected	by	the	meeting	of	the	warm	air	masses	off	the	Gulf	Stream	(which
keeps	 most	 of	 Norways	 ports	 ice-free)	 and	 the	 cold	 polar	 winds	 from	 the	 polar	 ice	 cap
and	 the	 land	 mass	 of	 the	 USSR.	 This	 leads	 to	 great	 instability	 along	 the	 coast,	 with
considerable	 variations	 in	 temperature,	 high	 snowfall,	 rain	 and	 fog.	 Mountain	 flying	 is
impeded	 by	 poor	 visibility,	 white-out	 and	 icing	 of	 rotor	 blades.	 High	 winds	 lead	 to
drifting,	 and	 snow	 builds	 up	 on	 downwind	 (lee)	 slopes,	 with	 a	 strong	 possibility	 of
avalanches.
When	planning	an	operation,	try	to	build	up	a	picture	of	the	weather	you	are	likely	to
meet.	As	well	as	checking	with	weather	stations,	get	the	feel	of	local	conditions.	Observe
the	clouds:	watch	for	a	build-up	in	the	mornings		particularly	of	layers	of	cloud	on	the
mountain-tops.	 Snow	 clouds	 are	 generally	 light	 in	 colour,	 with	 a	 slight	 yellow	 tinge.	 A
watery	moon	or	sun	can	also	indicate	poor	weather	to	come.	If	the	mountains	look	hard
and	 clear,	 this	 too	 is	 a	 bad	 sign.	 A	 south	 or	 south-westerly	 wind,	 or	 wind	 moving	 anticlockwise	 towards	 the	 south,	 also	 portends	 bad	 weather.	 There	 are	 many	 other	 smaller
indications,	but	these	are	the	main	ones	and	should	influence	your	plans.
Avalanches	are	likely	to	occur	after	heavy	snowfalls,	often	backed	by	a	wind,	or	after	a
period	 of	 rising	 temperatures.	 Sometimes	 they	 happen	 for	 no	 apparent	 reason.	 Slab
avalanches	 consist	 of	 wet	 snow	 that	 has	 been	 heavily	 compacted	 by	 wind;	 soft	 snow
avalanches	 involve	 loose	 powder	 snow	 travelling	 at	 up	 to	 400	 kilometres	 per	 hour	 and
creating	 enormous	 pressure	 waves	 in	 front	 of	 them.	 Avalanches	 occur	 on	 slopes	 greater
than	15	degrees	and	up	to	about	70	degrees.	A	powder	avalanche	may	occur	with	as	little
as	a	third	of	a	metre	of	snow	at	about	20-25	degrees,	and	wet	avalanches	on	slopes	as	low
as	15	degrees.
Transport
Mobility	 is	 the	 key	 to	 successful	 Arctic	 operations.	 A	 thorough	 understanding	 of	 the
capabilities	 of	 your	 vehicles,	 and	 the	 techniques	 needed	 to	 overcome	 the	 problems	 you
may	encounter,	is	vital	to	effective	movement.
A	 variety	 of	 over-snow	 tracked	 vehicles	 is	 available	 to	 help	 you	 move	 around	 the
difficult	terrain	of	the	Arctic.	Two	such	vehicles	are	the	BV	202	and	BV	206.	The	latter
vehicle	is	relatively	new,	whereas	the	BV	202	has	been	in	service	for	over	twenty	years.
The	infantry,	engineers	and	artillery	generally	have	one	of	these	vehicles	per	section,	but
fewer	in	logistic	units.	The	206	can	carry	everything	that	is	needed	by	a	section,	including
all	 the	 men,	 but	 the	 202	 can	 only	 carry	 the	 section	 kit,	 although	 it	 will	 pull	 sledges	 and
troops.
Skijoring
The	technique	of	pulling	troops	is	called	skijoring,	and	requires	a	lot	of	skill	to	master.
In	skijoring,	two	50-metre	ropes	are	attached	to	the	back	of	the	vehicle	at	each	corner.	The
troops	attach	themselves	to	the	outside	of	the	rope	by	twisting	their	ski	sticks	into	it;	the
weight	on	the	rope	ensures	that	the	ski	sticks	stay	in	place,	and	troops	just	hold	on	and	are
towed	along.	A	guard	sits	in	the	rear	of	the	vehicle	to	make	sure	that	the	vehicle	stops	if
any	 men	 fall,	 using	 a	 buzzer	 to	 communicate	 with	 the	 driver.	 Once	 the	 technique	 is
mastered,	troops	can	be	moved	very	quickly	with	little	exhaustion.	But	the	reverse	is	true
if	the	terrain	and	going	are	poor	and	can	result	in	chaos;	you	must	decide	carefully	when
to	skijor,	or	whether	it	would	be	quicker	to	ski.	Broken	birch	country	and	forests	are	very
difficult	to	skijor,	but	open	snow	fields	above	the	treeline	are	ideal	and	you	can	cover	up
to	 15	 kilometres	 per	 hour.	 Moving	 at	 speed	 through	 cold	 air	 can	 cause	 wind	 chill	 and
frostbite,	and	orders	of	dress	must	be	given.	You	should	normally	wear	the	Arctic	hat,	with
flaps	down,	a	face	mask	and	toe	covers.	Halts	may	have	to	be	taken	as	frequently	as	every
20	minutes	to	allow	blood	circulation	to	be	restored	to	reduce	the	risk	of	frostbite.
Vehicle	mobility
The	most	likely	problems	you	will	come	across	are	navigating,	traversing	a	slope,	ravines,
ice	 crossings,	 rivers	 and	 icy	 roads	 as	 well	 as	 heavily-laden	 vehicles	 becoming	 bogged
down	on	steep	inclines.	Route	planning	and	preparation	require	a	great	deal	of	time,	and
large	 numbers	 of	 troops	 may	 have	 to	 be	 used	 for	 route	 construction	 and	 maintenance
work.
To	overcome	some	of	the	problems	faced	by	vehicles	you	will	have	to	learn	a	number
of	tricks.	To	traverse	a	steep	hillside,	dig	a	road	to	avoid	shedding	tracks	or	overturning.	If
you	become	bogged	down,	anchor	your	skijoring	ropes	to	a	tree	and	the	other	ends	to	the
vehicle	tracks;	then	simply	drive	out	as	the	ropes	wrap	themselves	around	the	tracks.	Use
this	technique	to	maintain	grip	when	heavily-laden	vehicles	slip	on	icy	mountainous	roads.
Winching	is	another	option,	and	many	vehicles	are	now	fitted	with	efficient	winches	that
can	 be	 used	 with	 A	 frames	 to	 solve	 most	 problems.	 (Another	 tip:	 if	 your	 Land	 Rover
loses	 a	 back	 wheel,	 stick	 a	 stout	 log	 under	 the	 mud-guard	 into	 the	 suspension	 unit	 until
you	reach	safety;	the	end	of	the	log	simply	slides	on	the	ice-packed	road.)
Crossing	rivers
If	your	route	involves	crossing	a	lake	or	ice-covered	river,	an	ice	recce	must	be	done.	This
involves	drilling	holes	in	the	ice	with	an	auger	and	measuring	the	thickness.	Do	this	over
the	 entire	 length	 of	 the	 crossing	 at	 10-15	 metre	 intervals	 and	 at	 smaller	 intervals	 if	 you
think	 the	 ice	 may	 be	 rotten	 or	 unsupported.	 Sometimes	 you	 will	 find	 layers	 of	 water
between	the	ice		beware:	the	load-bearing	capabilities	are	considerably	weakened.
Make	sure	that	crossing-points	avoid	the	inflow	and	outflow	points	on	rivers	and	lakes,
or	 bends	 in	 rivers	 which	 accelerate	 the	 flow,	 and	 areas	 where	 banks	 are	 difficult	 to
prepare.	 Lakes	 behind	 hydro-dams	 are	 particularly	 dangerous	 as	 the	 water	 level	 falls	 in
winter	leaving	an	enormous	gap	between	the	ice	and	water		sometimes	up	to	20	metres.
You	wont	recover	a	man	or	vehicle	if	they	go	through	the	ice	in	these	conditions.
Even	 after	 making	 a	 sensible	 choice	 for	 a	 crossing-place,	 you	 will	 still	 encounter
problems.	The	underside	of	the	ice	may	melt	and	scour	as	the	weather	conditions	change,
and	 cracks	 will	 occur:	 cracks	 which	 are	 parallel	 to	 the	 direction	 of	 travel	 are	 the	 most
dangerous;	those	at	right-angles	less	so.	Cracks	can	be	repaired	by	filling	them	with	hay
and	straw	and	then	pumping	water	onto	the	surface	which	freezes	layer	by	layer.	This	is
the	 principle	 for	 reinforcing	 any	 crossing	 that	 is	 deteriorating,	 but	 timber	 planks,	 steel
mesh,	trackway,	hessian,	brushwood	and	other	materials	can	all	be	frozen	onto	the	surface
as	reinforcement.	The	idea	is	to	spread	the	load	as	widely	as	possible.	This	requires	a	great
deal	 of	 effort	 and	 if	 the	 temperature	 is	 in	 the	 region	 of	 -10	 C	 it	 is	 more	 economical	 to
pump	on	layers	of	water	to	build	up	the	depth	of	the	ice.
Ice	bridges
Find	 a	 slow-flowing	 straight	 section	 of	 river	 away	 from	 any	 previous	 crossing	 sites	 and
put	 out	 protection	 parties	 to	 cover	 the	 work	 party.	 Prepare	 and	 reinforce	 the	 banks	 and
mark	 out	 a	 suitable	 block	 from	 the	 upstream	 bank.	 Once	 cut,	 using	 ice	 saws,	 the	 bridge
can	 be	 floated	 into	 position	 using	 ice	 pitons	 and	 mooring	 lines.	 The	 bridge	 may	 weigh
several	tons	and	simple	pulleys	can	be	used	to	manoeuvre	it.	Once	in	position,	the	bridge
can	be	cemented	in	place	by	pumping	water	on	to	reinforcing	material	at	the	edges.
Approaches	to	bridges	will	also	deteriorate	as	the	ice	tends	to	be	thinner	at	the	banks.
The	bank	and	bridge	should	be	reinforced	with	timber	and	frozen	snow	to	form	a	base	for
an	 approach	 bridge	 on	 to	 the	 ice.	 This	 relieves	 the	 load	 on	 the	 ice	 near	 the	 bank	 and
maintains	 safe	 entry	 onto	 the	 main	 bridge.	 If	 there	 is	 open	 water	 between	 suitable	 ice
banks	you	can	cut	a	large	section	of	ice	and	float	it	into	position	to	bridge	the	gap.	The	ice
should	be	good	quality	and	of	considerable	depth		about	40-50	centimetres	initially		and
with	 temperatures	 below	 -10	 C	 it	 can	 be	 reinforced	 like	 a	 standard	 ice	 bridge	 if	 it	 is
needed	for	any	length	of	time.
The	 most	 robust	 type	 of	 bridge	 is	 one	 that	 fits	 into	 notches	 cut	 into	 both	 banks.	 The
notches	should	be	cut	with	standard	power	saws	and	must	be	at	least	20	feet	deep,	so	that
the	bridge	can	freeze	into	place	or	be	reinforced	if	it	does	not	fit	exactly.	Lines	attached
through	holes	in	the	ice	and	toggled	underneath	are	used	to	control	the	bridge	as	it	is	put
into	position.	If	the	ice	breaks,	this	technique	can	be	used	to	make	repairs,	as	the	ice	will
quickly	 re-freeze	 at	 low	 temperatures.	 Angle-iron	 pitons	 can	 be	 used	 instead	 of	 toggle
ropes,	but	these	are	not	always	readily	available.
Skewed	bridge
The	previous	type	of	bridge	is	probably	the	most	stable,	but	it	is	time-consuming	to	make.
A	skewed	bridge	can	be	used	as	an	alternative.	The	principles	of	its	construction	are	the
same,	 but	 the	 anchorage	 is	 less	 secure.	 The	 bridge	 has	 rounded	 ends	 that	 rest	 on	 both
banks,	which	are	again	anchored	by	either	toggled	ropes	or	pitons.	In	the	same	way	an	ice
ferry	 (an	 ice	 floe)	 can	 be	 constructed	 to	 move	 light	 loads;	 the	 load	 bearing/flotation
capacity	can	be	worked	out	using	a	simple	calculation.	The	ferry	is	hauled,	using	a	hand	or
vehicle	winch,	across	the	gap	collecting	and	delivering	its	load.
Remember,	ice	is	dangerous.	To	use	it	requires	a	great	deal	of	study	and	understanding,
which	 is	 built	 up	 by	 many	 years	 of	 experience.	 Ice	 recce	 is	 extremely	 time-consuming,
because	 the	 ice	 engineer	 cannot	 afford	 to	 make	 mistakes;	 but	 ice	 is	 one	 of	 natures
phenomena	that	can	be	used	to	great	advantage	to	speed	up	mobility	in	the	Arctic.
Vision
Low	light,	flat	light	or	white-out	blizzard	conditions	may	also	occur	when	drivers	will	be
unable	 to	 distinguish	 the	 type	 of	 terrain,	 any	 obstacles	 or	 direction,	 even	 on	 a	 marked
route.	The	main	problem	is	that	the	driver	has	nothing	to	focus	on,	and	no	depth	of	vision.
This	is	very	dangerous	as	he	may	drive	over	a	cliff.	The	only	solution	is	for	two	skiers	to
go	ahead	of	the	vehicle	and	act	as	reference	points	so	that	he	can	judge	the	rise	and	fall	of
the	land;	they	will	also	navigate	for	him.	If	the	conditions	are	really	bad	the	skiers	should
be	changed	every	20	minutes	to	stop	them	freezing.
Helicopters
Helicopters	 are	 an	 invaluable	 asset,	 speeding	 movement	 over	 the	 inhospitable	 terrain,
often	where	no	roads	or	track	communications	exist.	They	can	undertake	a	wide	range	of
roles	and	jobs		the	ferrying	of	men	and	supplies,	forward	and	flank	reconnaissance,	fire
direction,	 liaison,	 casevac	 and,	 if	 necessary,	 armed	 action.	 The	 main	 types	 used	 in	 the
Arctic	are	the	Puma,	Sea	King,	Lynx	and	Gazelle;	the	USA	uses	the	CH-53.
Helicopter	operations	are	not	easy	at	the	best	of	times,	and	in	the	Arctic	can	be	highly
dangerous.	Pilots,	ground	crew	and	the	troops	that	are	to	be	carried	all	need	considerable
raining.	The	biggest	enemy	of	course,	is	the	weather,	affecting	every	aspect	from	flying	to
maintenance.	 For	 example,	 the	 helicopter	 will	 need	 pre-heating	 before	 flying,	 which
means	 blowing	 warm	 air	 into	 the	 engine	 and	 body	 from	 hot-air	 generators.	 Visibility	 is
crucial	when	flying,	and	white-out	conditions	where	no	depth	or	landmark	can	be	seen
by	the	pilot	will	curtail	an	operation.	Another	danger	is	icing-up,	caused	by	being	caught
in	freezing	rain	or	sleet.
All	landing	sites	should,	where	possible,	be	flattened	by	an	oversnow	vehicle	to	create	a
hard	 landing-pad.	 This	 avoids	 snow	 being	 churned	 around	 by	 the	 blades,	 which	 is
hazardous	 to	 the	 aircraft,	 and	 to	 everyone	 on	 the	 ground:	 the	 pilot	 can	 lose	 his	 bearings
and	high-speed	whirling	air	can	cause	frostbite	within	minutes.	To	overcome	the	visibility
problem,	 mark	 the	 landing	 site	 with	 a	 black,	 snow-filled	 plastic	 bag	 or	 with	 coloured
smoke	that	stains	the	snow.	If	no	markers	are	available,	a	marshaller	will	have	to	lie	down
to	provide	a	marker.	To	avoid	frostbite	everyone	on	the	ground	must	wear	full	protective
clothing	and	masks,	particularly	the	ground	crew.
Maintenance
Maintenance	 is	 very	 difficult	 in	 cold	 temperatures,	 particularly	 at	 below	 -15	 C,	 where
skin	sticks	to	metal.	Heat	is	essential,	and	is	provided	by	a	portable	air	generator	inside	a
tent	or,	in	the	case	of	larger	helicopters,	a	large	cover	such	as	a	parachute.	Fluid	leaks	are
frequent	as	seals	can	contract	and	crack	with	the	cold,	so	ground	crew	must	be	particularly
alert.
Emplaning	and	deplaning
Drills	 for	 embarking	 and	 disembarking	 must	 be	 practised.	 Take	 great	 care	 to	 avoid
damaging	the	helicopter	with	the	large	quantities	of	heavy,	cumbersome	equipment,	such
as	skis	and	sticks,	that	must	be	manhandled	in	difficult	circumstances.	In	the	Arctic,	the
technique	is	that	the	helicopter	will	land	almost	on	top	of	you;	your	section	will	lie	beside
or	 on	 its	 equipment,	 acting	 as	 a	 marker,	 and	 the	 pilot	 will	 put	 down	 beside	 you.	 The
section	then	emplanes	through	one	door,	equipment	going	in	last.	You	strap	in	and	raise
your	right	arm	to	indicate	to	the	loadmaster	that	you	are	secure;	the	helicopter	then	takes
off.
When	deplaning,	Bergens	and	men	are	offloaded	through	both	doors,	but	the	pulk	and
skis	always	go	through	the	starboard	(right)	door.	Troops	should	adopt	fire	positions	until
the	aircraft	is	clear,	and	they	then	go	to	cover,	where	reorganisation	and	ski	fitting	takes
place.
Snow	scooters
Most	 forces	 who	 operate	 in	 the	 Arctic	 make	 use	 of	 snow	 scooters	 as	 a	 means	 of	 easing
travel	in	the	snow-covered	terrain.	In	the	military	context,	snow	scooters	have	their	plus
and	minus	sides.	They	can	carry	out	a	variety	of	roles:
1.	Liaison	and	communications	(dispatches)
2.	Casevac
3.	Line-laying
4.	Ammunition	resupply
5.	Route	recce	and	deep	patrols
6.	Weapons	deployment		off-route,	e.g.	anti-tank	weapons
However,	they	do	have	a	number	of	major	disadvantages.
First,	they	are	difficult	to	drive	without	considerable	training	and	experience.	Secondly,
their	 engines	 are	 temperamental,	 although	 the	 modern	 machines	 are	 much	 more	 reliable
and	robust;	they	need	constant	maintenance,	which	may	be	difficult	if	deployed	forward	of
their	 own	 troops.	 Thirdly,	 they	 need	 a	 reasonable	 amount	 of	 snow	 in	 which	 to	 operate
successfully,	so	route	planning	is	just	as	important	as	when	moving	vehicle-borne	or	ski
troops	to	a	target.	They	suffer	high	wear	on	open	roads	and	off	snow	they	are	difficult	to
manoeuvre.	A	wheel	can	be	attached	to	or	in	place	of	the	front	ski	for	road	use.
Snow	scooters	are	not	particularly	fast,	but	have	powerful	engines	and	a	wide	range	of
low	gears	to	cope	with	snow,	particularly	heavy	wet	snow,	which	tends	to	clog	the	driving
belts.	 The	 heavier	 machines,	 the	 workhorses,	 have	 twin	 tracks	 that	 give	 them	 greater
grip	and	thrust	through	all	types	of	snow	and	allow	them	to	pull	large	loads.
Driving	a	snow	scooter	demands	skill,	which	you	often	have	to	learn	the	hard	way!	The
trick	is	to	counterbalance	the	machine	in	the	traverse		it	will	always	try	to	slide	down	the
slope,	 turning	 over	 on	 you	 if	 it	 can.	 Leaning	 into	 the	 slope	 while	 driving	 across	 it	 is
physically	 and	 mentally	 demanding	 and	 takes	 confidence	 to	 master,	 particularly	 when
pulling	a	fully-laden	sledge,	but	it	is	exhilarating	and	fun,	and	once	mastered	will	allow
you	to	use	snow	scooters	as	a	significant	contribution	to	Arctic	operations.
Avalanches
Avalanches	 are	 difficult	 to	 predict,	 so	 avoid	 any	 slopes	 that	 look	 suspicious,	 especially
when	the	temperature	is	rising	or	after	blizzards.	Avoid	skiing	in	a	traverse	across	the	face,
but	if	you	have	to,	go	as	high	as	you	can,	and	only	one	person	at	a	time.	Try	to	move	from
firm	ground	to	firm	ground	if	possible,	to	reduce	the	risk	for	example	from	a	boulder	to	a
clump	 of	 trees.	 Appoint	 someone	 as	 sentry	 to	 observe	 the	 crossing	 at	 the	 bottom	 of	 the
slope	and	to	one	side	if	possible,	although	this	may	not	be	tactically	permissible.
Avalanche	awareness
Avalanches	come	in	four	different	types:
1.	Soft	slab:	snow	fallen	on	lee	slopes	which	fails	to	bond	with	older	snow.
2.	Hard	slab:	a	deceptively	hard	surface	formed	by	high	winds	and	cold	air	temperature.
3.	Airborne:	new	snow	falling	on	an	already	hard	crust.
4.	Wet	snow:	usual	in	spring	thaw,	often	after	a	rapid	temperature	rise.
Some	avalanches	can	reach	200	miles	per	hour	and	carry	with	them	thousands	of	tons	of
snow,	ice	and	rock	debris,	burying	a	victim	up	to	10	metres	below	the	surface.	Here	are
some	basic	precautions	to	keep	you	away	from	danger	areas.
			Stay	high.
			Dont	ski	across	rotten	snow,	new	falls	or	very	steep	slopes.
			Dont	travel	alone,	but	do	keep	a	safe	distance	between	group	members.
			Stay	out	of	gullies		you	never	know	what	will	come	down	from	above.
			Keep	a	close	watch	on	the	temperature,	both	of	the	air	and	of	the	snow;	check	them
often,	especially	in	the	spring.	Sudden	changes	bring	about	avalanches.
			Dig	pits	from	time	to	time	to	check	on	the	condition	of	the	snow	lower	down.
			Watch	for	recent	avalanche	signs;	they	often	come	in	groups.
			Keep	a	very,	very	careful	listening	watch.
			Dont	assume,	because	one	groups	got	across,	that	it	is	safe.	They	could	have	triggered
an	avalanche.
			Avoid	convex	parts	of	a	slope:	this	is	where	fracturing	of	the	slab	commonly	occurs.
			Keep	below	the	treeline		its	generally	safer.
			Keep	away	from	slopes	of	angles	of	between	30	and	45	degrees,	which	are	often	the
most	dangerous.
			The	deeper	the	snow,	the	greater	the	danger.
			Avoid	new	snow:	it	takes	a	minimum	of	2-3	days	to	settle.
			Travel	in	the	early	morning	before	full	sun-up.
			Do	not	adopt	a	lightning	never	strikes	twice	attitude,	or	assume	that	if	theres	been	an
avalanche	the	danger	is	past.	Avalanches	occur	in	the	same	place	all	the	time.
			On	ridges,	snow	accumulates	on	the	lee	side	in	overhanging	piles,	called	cornices.
These	often	extend	far	out	from	the	ridge	and	may	break	loose	if	stepped	on,	so	do	not
stray	unless	you	are	sure	of	your	ground.
Caught	in	an	avalanche
If	 you	 feel	 or	 hear	 an	 avalanche	 coming,	 you	 must	 move	 fast	 but	 carefully	 	 a	 fall	 now
will	 almost	 certainly	 mean	 your	 death.	 Dont	 panic.	 If	 you	 stay	 calm	 you	 have	 a	 good
chance	of	coming	out	of	it	unscathed.	Here	is	the	Rule	of	10:
1.	Ditch	your	kit.
2.	Find	out	where	you	are	in	relation	to	the	avalanche.	You	may	not	be	in	its	path.	If	its
going	to	miss	you,	dont	move.
3.	Look	out	for	your	team	mates.	Remember	their	positions.	You	may	have	to	dig	them
out.
4.	Ski	away	in	a	steep	traverse.	Dont	go	straight	down	the	fall	line.	The	avalanche	may
be	travelling	at	anything	up	to	200	miles	per	hour.
5.	If	you	are	in	the	path	of	an	avalanche	and	cannot	ski	out	of	the	way,	try	to	find	an
anchor	point	(a	boulder	or	tree)	or	sit	down	with	your	back	to	the	slope,	Bergen
behind	you,	having	kicked	off	your	skis	and	sticks.	Immediately	the	snow	hits	you,
begin	swimming,	and	try	to	stay	on	the	surface.	The	swimming	action	should	help	to
clear	an	air	space,	which	you	must	achieve	as	the	avalanche	comes	to	rest,	and	the
snow	re-sets.	Remain	as	calm	as	you	can;	there	is	little	point	in	wasting	energy	if	you
are	trapped	under	the	surface,	where	no-one	will	hear	you.
6.	If	you	get	caught	at	the	side	of	an	avalanche,	dig	outwards		its	easier.
7.	Make	an	airspace	around	your	nose	and	mouth,	but	keep	your	mouth	shut.	In	a
powder	avalanche,	try	to	get	a	cloth	over	your	nose	to	act	as	a	filter.
8.	Determine	which	way	is	up	and	down		perhaps	by	dribbling.
9.	Start	digging	your	way	out	before	the	avalanche	has	time	to	settle	and	freeze	into
position.
10.	If	youre	covered	in	powder	snow,	try	a	swimming	motion.	Backstroke	is	the	most
effective.
Rescue
If	attempting	a	rescue,	you	must	start	a	systematic	search	immediately,	in	two	phases.	Post
a	 sentry	 to	 watch	 for	 new	 avalanches,	 and	 send	 for	 help	 immediately.	 Organise	 a
helicopter	landing-site	close	by,	to	which	the	rescue	services	can	fly:	this	will	often	be	the
only	way	in.
Your	 buried	 person	 is	 likely	 to	 be	 somewhere	 in	 a	 vertical	 line	 from	 the	 point	 of
disappearance	to	the	bottom	of	the	slope.	The	first	phase	of	the	search	is	a	coarse	one:
starting	at	the	bottom,	with	a	man	every	half-metre,	using	avalanche	search	poles	or	ski
sticks	 to	 probe	 the	 snow	 every	 30	 cm.	 Maintain	 a	 tight	 pattern	 on	 the	 search	 line,	 and
probe	delicately	so	that	you	do	not	injure	the	lost	person.	If	you	touch	something	soft,	dig.
Mark	the	area	as	you	search	it.
Specially-trained	 search	 dogs	 are	 available	 in	 most	 countries	 where	 avalanche	 risk	 is
high,	 and	 they	 are	 invaluable.	 Ideally	 they	 should	 search	 the	 slope	 prior	 to	 any	 other
human	 interference,	 but	 this	 will	 not	 always	 be	 possible	 as	 time	 is	 important;	 however,
clear	the	slope	of	human	searchers	as	soon	as	dogs	become	available.
Modern	technology	has	also	provided	personal	radio	transponders	and	seekers.	They	are
generally	only	available	to	troops	who	are	at	high	risk,	such	as	reconnaissance	units,	who
work	in	small	groups	high	in	the	mountains.	The	beacon	works	by	sending	a	radio	bleep
every	 second.	 Everyones	 transponder	 is	 switched	 to	 send	 at	 the	 start	 of	 the	 patrol.	 If
anyone	 gets	 lost,	 all	 beacons	 are	 switched	 off	 except	 one	 or	 two	 that	 are	 switched	 to
receive.	Searchers	then	systematically	quarter	the	site	of	the	avalanche	looking	for	the
strongest	signal,	which	strengthens	as	they	get	close	to	their	target.	At	the	location	of	the
strongest	signal,	dig.
An	injured	man	should	be	treated	as	for	shock:	make	sure	his	airways	are	free,	keep	him
warm	and	give	him	a	warm	drink.	An	unconscious	man	will	need	artificial	resuscitation,
and	look	out	for	other	injuries	that	may	not	be	obvious.
Arctic	combat
Combat	 in	 the	 Arctic	 is	 probably	 the	 most	 challenging	 of	 all	 military	 skills.	 It	 is	 the
soldier,	either	as	an	individual	or	as	a	team,	against	the	cruellest	climate	in	the	world;	a
climate	with	no	sympathy	for	men	or	machines.	It	requires	constant	practice,	and	minute
attention	 to	 planning	 and	 detail,	 because	 if	 things	 go	 wrong	 there	 may	 be	 no	 way	 out.
Arctic	warfare	demands	the	highest	of	conventional	military	ability,	plus	a	whole	range	of
extra	skills.
Care	of	equipment
We	will	start	by	looking	at	the	basics.	You	will	have	to	learn	to	look	after	your	equipment
and	pay	special	attention	to	the	range	of	spares	that	you	must	carry.	Because	of	the	intense
cold,	equipment	tends	to	be	more	brittle	and	may	break	more	easily,	and	the	harsh	terrain
also	takes	its	toll.	Among	the	most	essential	items	that	should	be	carried	by	each	section
are	spare	ski	binding	straps,	poles	and	mittens	together	with	emergency	ski	tips.
Weapons
Your	 weapons	 also	 require	 special	 attention.	 Some	 of	 the	 main	 problems	 that	 you	 may
encounter	when	shooting	are:
			Working	parts	break	more	easily	at	low	temperatures.
			Ice	may	form	on	working	parts	after	firing.
			Ammunition	lethality	is	reduced,	and	it	may	become	fouled	by	ice	or	snow.
			Your	hands	are	less	effective	when	wearing	bulky	mittens.
			Weapons	need	a	firm	base	to	fire.
			Fog	that	forms	during	firing	may	interfere	with	the	optical	sights.
The	 above	 problems	 can	 be	 overcome,	 with	 maintenance	 becoming	 second	 nature.	 The
muzzles	of	all	weapons	require	a	cover	to	prevent	snow	from	entering	the	barrel	and	firing
mechanism.	Use	light	oil	(normally	a	mixture	of	oil	and	naptha/petrol)	to	lubricate,	but	if
this	 is	 not	 available,	 just	 dry-clean	 your	 weapons.	 To	 overcome	 sweating	 and	 thus
freezing,	leave	your	weapons	outside	your	tent	sheet.	Make	a	weapon	rack	and	cover	it	if
possible,	 but	 always	 remember	 to	 brush	 off	 any	 snow	 when	 picking	 up	 weapons.	 If	 the
temperature	is	above	freezing,	the	weapons	can	be	put	in	the	tent.
During	 pauses	 in	 firing	 you	 may	 find	 that	 the	 ammunition	 freezes	 in	 the	 barrel.	 To
overcome	 this,	 work	 the	 bolt/cocking	 handle	 every	 few	 minutes	 until	 there	 is	 no
possibility	of	freezing.	This	is	painstaking	work	and	could	take	up	to	an	hour,	but	is	well
worth	 it.	 Ice	 fog	 which	 forms	 around	 automatic	 weapons	 during	 high	 rates	 of	 fire	 may
force	 you	 to	 fire	 at	 a	 reduced	 rate.	 Alternative	 firing	 positions	 should	 be	 considered	 if
possible.	Also	take	care	of	your	ammunition,	keep	it	in	its	liner,	remove	any	oil	and	avoid
getting	snow	on	it.
Always	 ensure	 that	 your	 mittens	 are	 dry.	 If	 your	 mittens	 are	 wet	 when	 throwing	 a
grenade,	 it	 may	 freeze	 to	 them	 	 think	 of	 the	 effect	 of	 that	 if	 you	 had	 pulled	 the	 pin!
Another	useful	trick	to	prevent	the	grenade	sinking	in	the	snow	is	to	tie	it	to	crossed	sticks
or	a	board.	It	will	then	explode	near	the	surface	and	have	a	much	better	effect.	Remember
that	 all	 your	 weapons	 will	 sink	 in	 soft	 snow,	 and	 it	 will	 be	 difficult	 to	 attain	 muzzle
clearance.	You	must	put	feet	on	your	machine-gun	bipods,	light	mortars,	etc,	and	there
are	 special	 techniques	 for	 rifle	 shooting	 using	 ski	 sticks	 to	 prevent	 your	 elbows	 from
sinking	into	the	snow.	You	can	use	snowshoes	on	the	bipods,	but	most	light	machine	guns
are	specially	equipped	in	Arctic	trained	units.	Light	mortars	require	a	steel	plate	placed	on
the	compacted	snow,	which	the	unit	LAD	(Light	Aid	Detachment)	will	make.
Radios
Radios	and	batteries	should	be	looked	after,	particularly	batteries.	These	lose	their	power
in	half	the	time	in	Arctic	conditions	sometimes	even	quicker.	So	if	a	battery	is	not	in	use
make	 sure	 that	 it	 is	 on	 charge	 or	 in	 a	 warm	 place	 	 which	 may	 have	 to	 be	 inside	 your
smock	if	youre	on	the	move.
Individual	camouflage
Camouflage	 starts	 with	 the	 individual,	 and	 good	 use	 of	 a	 mixture	 of	 DPM	 (Disruptive
Pattern	 Material)	 and	 white	 overalls	 is	 important.	 For	 example,	 if	 you	 are	 working	 in	 a
forest	a	DPM	suit	is	probably	most	suitable,	whereas	near	the	treeline	or	snowline	a	white
jacket	or	white	trousers	may	be	worn.	Above	the	snowline	use	the	full	white	suit.	Weapons
and	webbing	must	be	camouflaged	using	white	tape,	and	special	helmet	and	Bergen	covers
in	 white	 are	 available.	 Adjust	 your	 camouflage	 to	 suit	 your	 background,	 and	 use	 cover
such	as	hollows,	broken	ground,	trees	and	birch	scrub	as	normal.
Movement	 is	 often	 the	 great	 giveaway,	 as	 it	 is	 very	 difficult	 to	 camouflage	 ski	 and
vehicle	 tracks.	 Where	 possible	 use	 the	 shape	 of	 the	 terrain,	 moving	 in	 hollows	 and
shadows.	 Tracks	 should	 run	 under	 tyres	 if	 possible,	 and	 sharp	 edges	 that	 might	 cast
shadows	 in	 bright	 sunlight	 should	 be	 broken	 up	 by	 the	 last	 man	 or	 vehicle	 dragging	 a
small	pine	tree	along	the	track.	In	a	camp	where	digging	is	necessary,	remove	snow	from
under	 the	 trees	 and	 throw	 it	 onto	 the	 tracks.	 This	 may	 deceive	 air	 recce	 but	 not	 ground
patrols,	although	it	all	adds	up	to	making	it	as	difficult	as	possible	for	the	enemy	to	spot
you.
The	disruption	of	sharp	edges	also	applies	to	field	defences,	the	entrances	to	tents	and
the	 tents	 themselves.	 Field	 defences	 should	 have	 rounded	 edges,	 smoothed	 to	 blend	 in
with	 the	 shape	 of	 the	 ground.	 Fill	 in	 the	 bottom	 of	 trenches	 with	 snow	 to	 prevent	 black
earth	 showing,	 and	 remember	 that	 tracks	 within	 the	 position	 will	 need	 filling	 and
smoothing	 daily.	 Pitch	 tents	 under	 trees	 or,	 if	 this	 is	 not	 possible,	 dig	 them	 in	 and
camouflage	with	white	nets	or	parachutes.	Use	track	plans	and	discipline,	particularly	in
camps,	 and	 try	 to	 set	 a	 series	 of	 deception	 tracks	 away	 from	 your	 position.	 Construct
dummy	 positions	 using	 spare	 tents	 to	 draw	 enemy	 fire	 and	 deceive	 the	 enemy	 about
your	strength.
Mountains
Mountains	 often	 contain	 vast	 tracts	 of	 open,	 unbroken	 snow	 fields,	 but	 the	 lower	 slopes
are	 generally	 covered	 in	 pine	 and	 dense	 birch	 scrub.	 No	 amount	 of	 snow	 can	 fill	 all
hollows	or	conceal	all	rock	and	scree,	so	natural	cover	does	not	exist.	You	will	have	to	use
deception	 extensively	 and	 reduce	 noise	 to	 a	 minimum,	 as	 sound	 travels	 over	 long
distances	in	still	air.	There	is	also	the	problem	of	human-induced	fogs	of	vehicle	exhausts
and	cooking	fires,	as	warm,	damp	air	condenses	in	the	cold	conditions.
Arctic	camp
We	will	now	look	at	how	the	above	techniques	can	be	applied	to	set	up	an	Arctic	camp.
Whatever	 the	 size	 of	 the	 camp,	 whether	 a	 patrol	 camp	 or	 a	 major	 formation	 base,	 the
principles	for	setting	it	up	are	the	same.	Select	the	site	carefully,	considering	concealment
defence,	routines	and	administration.
Initially	you	will	set	off	with	your	recce	party,	which	runs	one	or	two	hours	ahead	of	the
main	 body.	 The	 recce	 party	 will	 contain	 2ICs	 and	 guides	 from	 all	 your	 sub-units.	 What
will	you	be	looking	for?	A	map	study	may	have	produced	some	likely	areas	to	look	at:	you
need	 an	 easily	 defendable	 area	 with	 good	 concealment,	 good	 snow	 cover	 for	 digging	 in
and	 with	 the	 possibility	 of	 good	 administration.	 The	 position	 should	 avoid	 low-lying
ground,	 which	 is	 likely	 to	 be	 on	 a	 marsh	 and	 may	 get	 very	 cold.	 Try	 to	 find	 a	 piece	 of
forested	high	ground,	or	ground	that	is	broken	up	with	good	fields	of	fire,	limited	access
points	 or	 access	 routes	 which	 can	 be	 dominated	 by	 outposts.	 As	 far	 as	 administration	 is
concerned	 you	 will	 probably	 have	 to	 consider	 fresh	 water,	 covered	 vehicle	 access	 from
main	routes,	and	helicopter	landing	sites.
Having	made	your	selection,	mark	out	the	camp	and	brief	your	commanders	and	guides
on	areas,	defensive	work,	sentry	posts,	arcs	of	fire,	stand-to	positions,	track	plans,	areas
for	cutting	brush-wood,	latrines	and	a	host	of	other	measures.
The	jump-off
For	small	units	without	vehicles	the	entry	track	to	the	camp	will	be	a	jump-off	from	the
ski	 trail.	 A	 professional	 enemy	 may	 be	 able	 to	 detect	 the	 change	 in	 the	 track,	 and	 it	 is
possible	 to	 tell	 from	 a	 ski	 trail	 how	 many	 men	 actually	 passed	 along	 it,	 and	 in	 which
direction,	by	examining	the	number	and	angle	of	the	ski-pole	plants	in	the	snow	and	their
compactness.	The	idea	of	a	jump-off	is	that	the	patrol	halts,	but	the	lead	skier	or	skiers
lay	 a	 false	 trail	 beyond	 the	 jump-off.	 While	 they	 do	 this	 the	 remainder	 of	 the	 patrol
leaves	 the	 main	 track,	 often	 through	 a	 thicket	 or	 where	 the	 snow	 is	 broken.	 The	 skiers
laying	the	false	trail	then	return	to	the	jump-off,	camouflage	it	(it	may	be	disguised	as	a
fallen	man,	and	many	similar	dummy	jump-offs	will	have	been	laid	previously)	and	then
re-join	the	rest	of	the	patrol.	The	job	may	of	course	be	done	by	the	main	body,	depending
on	the	number	of	men	you	have	and	your	standard	SOPs	(Standard	Operating	Procedures).
Camp	discipline
When	the	main	body	arrives	at	the	camp,	the	sub-unit	commanders	are	briefed,	and	work
begins	with	the	minimum	of	noise	and	disturbance	to	the	snow.	A	track	plan	is	established
and	 should	 be	 used	 by	 everyone.	 Vehicles	 are	 tucked	 under	 trees	 and	 camouflaged;	 slit
trenches	are	dug;	tents	and	shelters	are	put	up;	weapon	racks	are	built	and	food	and	drink
are	 prepared.	 At	 last	 light,	 patrols	 depart	 to	 lay	 mines	 and	 trip	 flares	 and	 to	 establish
listening	posts	beyond	the	perimeter	on	likely	enemy	approaches.	Each	tent	group	has	a
man	on	sentry	duty,	connected	to	the	tent	group	commander	by	a	vine	or	string	to	ensure	a
silent	call-out.	Sentries	are	changed	every	hour,	and	in	extremely	cold	weather	as	often	as
every	 20	 minutes.	 The	 camp	 then	 settles	 into	 night	 routine,	 which	 includes	 minimum
movement	 (except	 for	 sentry	 changes	 and	 patrols	 leaving	 the	 camp),	 no	 lights	 and
minimum	 sound	 	 radios	 are	 on	 mute,	 but	 vehicles	 may	 have	 to	 be	 run	 occasionally	 to
keep	them	warm	and	their	batteries	charged.
Navigation
The	ability	to	navigate	accurately	in	the	Arctic	is	vital.	It	saves	time	and	energy,	and	poor
navigation	 could	 lead	 to	 death.	 The	 principles	 of	 navigation	 are	 the	 same	 as	 those	 in	 a
temperate	climate,	but	there	are	more	problems:	snow	changes	the	shape	and	nature	of	the
terrain,	and	it	is	much	more	difficult	to	relate	the	map	to	the	ground.	Add	to	this	white-out
conditions,	 when	 it	 is	 impossible	 to	 judge	 relief	 and	 distance,	 and	 freezing	 conditions,
when	it	is	difficult	to	handle	both	map	and	compass,	and	you	can	see	the	problems.	It	is
also	difficult	to	pace	distance	accurately,	particularly	on	skis,	so	you	must	rely	on	obvious
features		easier	said	than	found!
The	following	techniques	will	help	you.	First,	select	your	route	carefully	from	a	map.
This	is	vital	to	avoid	obstacles	such	as	steep	ravines	and	slopes,	forests	and	open	water.
Study	the	contours	in	detail	as	you	draw	in	your	route,	trying	to	ensure	gentle	gradients.
En	 route,	 try	 to	 navigate	 parallel	 to	 a	 major	 feature	 or	 aim	 at	 a	 marker.	 For	 example,	 a
river	bed	on	a	flank	will	act	as	a	guide;	or	navigate	towards	a	fixed	feature	such	as	a	hut,
tree	or	rocks.	You	can	use	a	star	for	short	periods	(20	minutes),	but	remember	that	stars
move.	If	you	are	navigating	towards	a	fixed	feature,	e.g.	a	hut	on	a	road,	aim	to	the	right
or	left	of	the	hut	by	a	few	miles.	Then	when	you	reach	the	road	you	know	you	are	on	one
If	 you	 lose	 your	 compass	 dont	 panic.	 Look	 out	 for	 the	 natural	 signs	 above	 and
remember	that	the	shadow	cast	by	a	straight	object	perpendicular	to	the	ground	at	midday
will	indicate	north	and	south.
Then	there	are	the	stars:	In	the	Northern	Hemisphere,	true	north	can	be	deduced	from
the	 constellation	 of	 the	 Great	 Bear	 (Ursa	 Major)	 which	 points	 to	 the	 North	 Star;	 in	 the
Southern	Hemisphere	the	southern	cross	indicates	the	direction	of	south.
Special	operations
In	spite	of	the	hostility	of	the	terrain	and	climate	in	the	Arctic,	there	is	still	a	requirement
for	the	specialist	skills	provided	by	the	Special	Forces.	Troops	who	are	specially	equipped
and	trained	in	deep	penetration	behind	enemy	lines	are	often	employed,	but	very	careful
logistic	 planning	 and	 subsequent	 mission	 supervision	 is	 required	 for	 success.	 Like	 other
troops,	Special	Forces	will	need	acclimatization,	and	they	should	also	have	the	experience
to	operate	independently.	Most	northern	armies	maintain	such	forces:	some	are	assigned	to
land	operations	and	others	to	operations	at	sea.
Soldiering	 in	 the	 Arctic	 requires	 determination,	 skill,	 and	 a	 great	 deal	 of	 hard	 work.
Troops	 will	 be	 delivered	 to	 the	 target	 by	 boat,	 submarine,	 parachute	 or	 helicopter,
followed	 by	 a	 long,	 hard	 ski	 march.	 Some	 armies	 use	 snow	 scooters,	 but	 these	 are	 only
suitable	if	the	terrain	is	reasonably	flat.	Most	movement	will	be	at	night,	and	if	a	large	unit
is	required	to	reach	the	target,	infiltration	tactics	will	be	required.	An	individuals	skiing
ability	 and	 fitness	 must	 be	 exceptional,	 and	 accurate	 navigation	 and	 survival	 skills	 are
required.
Most	 Special	 Forces	 will	 be	 involved	 in	 strategic	 tasks.	 These	 encompass	 simple
observation	and	reporting,	target	reconnaissance	and	attack,	sabotage,	ambush	on	lines	of
communication	 and	 beach	 reconnaissance,	 which	 is	 vital	 for	 successful	 amphibious
landings.
Remote	control
A	 wide	 range	 of	 remotely-fired	 devices	 should	 be	 positioned	 in	 the	 main	 killing	 area	 to
deal	 with	 armour,	 soft-skinned	 vehicles	 and	 personnel.	 The	 ambush	 may	 be	 initiated	 by
blowing	 two	 culverts	 with	 improvised	 changes	 at	 each	 end	 of	 the	 convoy.	 Antitank
weapons	 of	 the	 LAW	 type	 are	 strapped	 between	 two	 posts	 or	 a	 tree	 and	 a	 post,	 and	 are
aimed	 at	 a	 marker	 on	 the	 far	 side	 of	 the	 killing	 area.	 The	 firing	 mechanism	 is	 simply
operated	by	a	piece	of	string,	attached	to	a	piece	of	wood	to	give	sufficient	leverage	to	the
trigger	when	the	string	is	pulled	and	the	rocket	fired.
Various	types	of	mine	are	also	sown	for	both	defensive	and	offensive	use.	The	defensive
mines	will	largely	be	anti-personnel,	and	there	are	two	main	offensive	directional	mines:
first,	 the	 well-known	 Claymore-type	 mine	 (No.	 13)	 which	 fires	 a	 large	 number	 of	 ballbearings	 into	 a	 fixed	 killing	 area	 	 ideal	 for	 soft-skinned	 vehicles	 and	 troops;	 and
secondly,	the	anti-vehicle	mine,	which	will	damage	and	immobilize	most	vehicles.	If	the
killing	 area	 is	 properly	 mined	 and	 booby-trapped	 there	 would	 be	 little	 requirement	 for
supporting	fire	from	the	main	position.
Once the ambush is over, a rapid withdrawal is undertaken through the usual RVs.
Attacking	a	railway
To	 achieve	 the	 best	 effect	 when	 attacking	 a	 railway	 both	 a	 train	 and	 a	 line	 should	 be
destroyed	together.	In	order	to	cause	even	more	disruption	and	delay	the	recovery	of	the
train	and	repair	to	the	line,	the	area	around	the	ambush	site	should	be	booby-trapped.
The	most	suitable	places	to	launch	an	attack	are	embankments	or	cuttings,	or	where	the
train	 is	 likely	 to	 be	 travelling	 at	 high	 speeds.	 The	 area	 should	 be	 ideally	 be	 covered	 by
forest	 or	 brushwood,	 but	 the	 line	 should	 be	 visible	 from	 100-150	 metres.	 A	 further
obstacle	between	the	line	and	the	firing	position	would	also	provide	additional	cover.
The	 mines	 are	 dug	 in	 under	 the	 rails	 into	 the	 trackbed,	 which	 may	 require	 the	 use	 of
hammers	and	chisels	if	the	ground	is	solid	rock.	The	mines	are	then	linked	together	with	a
detonating	cord,	and	a	fuse	is	run	back	to	the	remote	firing-point,	the	base	of	a	tree	ideally,
where	it	terminates	in	a	firing-cap	pull	switch.	This	in	turn	is	attached	to	a	pull	cord.	Great
care	must	be	taken	to	bury	the	mine	and	fuse	and	to	camouflage	any	disturbances	to	the
ground.	Sometimes	snow	will	have	to	be	collected	from	an	area	well	away	from	the	line
and	used	to	fill	any	holes	produced	in	laying	the	device.
Remember	 to	 position	 sentries,	 linked	 by	 radio,	 well	 out	 to	 the	 flanks	 (at	 least	 400
metres	away).	The	line	may	be	patrolled	or	an	unexpected	train	may	use	the	line,	and	you
must	have	early	warning	so	you	can	return	to	cover.	Initiation	is	by	pull,	which	is	followed
by	immediate	withdrawal	along	a	pre-planned	route	using	the	usual	anti-tracking	and	antifollow-up	tactics.
As	can	be	seen,	Special	Forces	have	their	place	in	the	Arctic,	and	can	have	an	effect	that
far	outweighs	the	effort	and	resources	committed	to	the	tasks.	It	is	vital,	however,	that	any
such	operation	is	properly	prepared	and	mounted,	otherwise	it	will	end	in	disaster		and
never	more	so	than	in	the	Arctic.
PART	V
MISSIONS
False	identities
The	biggest	advantage	of	the	first	approach	is	that	once	you	have	got	through	the	identity
checks	at	the	frontier	you	will	be	able	to	live	openly	in	enemy	territory.	You	will	be	living
a	double	life,	with	slim	chances	of	survival	if	the	enemy	identify	you		but	no-one	said
Special	Forces	work	would	be	easy.	Disguising	your	identity	in	peacetime	is	essential	if
you	 are	 to	 succeed	 in	 such	 a	 task:	 this	 is	 why	 the	 US	 Special	 Forces	 do	 not	 allow	 their
personnel	to	be	filmed	after	they	complete	basic	training.
Covert	operations
Covert	 operations	 involve	 entering	 the	 enemys	 territory	 without	 his	 knowledge.	 It	 can
mean	trekking	across	a	border	in	remote	frontier	regions,	or	parachuting	from	an	aircraft	at
very	high	altitude	to	freefall	most	of	the	way.
Local assistance
Where	you	can	get	help	and	assistance	from	friendlies	already	in	place,	to	provide	food,
shelter	 and	 intelligence,	 overland	 infiltration	 is	 often	 the	 most	 effective	 of	 all.	 Because
drop	zones	and	landing	zones	are	unlikely	to	be	next	door	to	the	area	of	operations,	both
air	and	seaborne	insertions	will	probably	end	up	as	overland	journeys	as	well.	So	there	is	a
lot	to	be	said	for	relying	on	your	own	two	feet	rather	than	on	technology;	man	can	escape
detection	a	lot	more	easily	than	a	machine.	One	factor	is	common	to	all	three	methods	of
insertion	that	weve	looked	at	so	far		the	availability	of	people	on	the	ground	to	act	as
porters	and	guides	and	provide	security	for	the	infiltrators.	But	it	may	not	always	be	that
way.	 In	 some	 cases	 the	 members	 of	 your	 team	 will	 have	 to	 go	 in	 blind,	 relying
exclusively	on	your	own	skills	and	resources		not	to	mention	a	degree	of	luck!
The	DZ	or	LZ
The	first	stage	of	any	airborne	operation	is	the	identification	and	selection	of	Drop	Zones
(DZs)	or	Landing	Zones	(LZs).
Drop	zones	and	landing	zones	must	please	both	the	aircrew	who	are	to	fly	the	mission
and	the	reception	committee	who	will	be	there	to	meet	the	consignment	and	passengers.
From	the	aircrews	point	of	view	the	zone	should	be	easy	to	identify	from	above	and	the
countryside	around	it	relatively	free	of	obstacles.
All-round	access
Flat	or	rolling	countryside	is	best,	but	if	the	Special	Forces	operation	being	supported	is
located	in	mountainous	country,	this	may	not	be	possible.	In	that	case,	its	best	to	choose
sites	 on	 broad	 ridges	 or	 plateaux.	 Small	 enclosed	 valleys	 or	 hollows,	 completely
surrounded	by	hills,	should	be	avoided	whenever	possible.
To	 give	 the	 aircrew	 as	 much	 flexibility	 as	 possible	 in	 the	 route	 they	 will	 take	 to	 the
zone,	 it	 should	 be	 accessible	 from	 all	 directions.	 If	 an	 approach	 can	 only	 be	 made	 from
one	direction,	then	the	area	should	be	free	of	obstacles	for	five	kilometres	on	each	side	to
give	the	aircraft	space	to	perform	a	flat	turn.
desirable	when	making	the	drop,	leaving	your	supplies	drifting	on	the	wind	away	from	the
DZ.
1.	The	general	area	surrounding	the	drop	zone	must	be	relatively	free	from	obstacles
that	might	endanger	the	aircraft.	Flat	or	rolling	terrain	is	the	best,	but	plateaux	in	hilly
country	can	be	suitable.
2.	Small	valleys	surrounded	by	hills	should	not	be	used	for	drop	zones.
3.	For	night	operations	you	must	avoid	using	drop	zones	with	ground	rising	to	300
metres	within	16	km	of	the	site	level.
Even	particularly	tall	trees	can	be	a	potential	danger	to	an	aircraft	doing	a	low-level	drop.
Where	the	operation	is	to	take	place	at	130	metres	or	less,	the	safety	requirements	are	that
there	should	be	no	obstacle	higher	than	30	metres	within	8	kilometres,	if	possible.	Where
the	aircrew	have	no	choice	but	to	put	up	with	such	obstacles	in	the	immediate	area	of	the
DZ,	their	location	must	be	well	known.
Dispersion
The	 DZ	 should	 be	 equally	 accessible	 from	 all	 directions,	 so	 the	 best	 shape	 is	 round	 or
square,	even	though	the	various	packages	that	make	up	the	consignment	will	land	in	a	line
parallel	to	the	course	of	the	aircraft.	Dispersion		the	distance	between	the	points	where
each	component	will	hit	the	ground		is	mostly	controlled	by	the	speed	of	the	aircraft	over
the	ground,	and	the	time	it	takes	to	get	the	whole	consignment	out	through	the	hatch.
The	rule	of	thumb	for	low-level	operations	is	that	half	the	speed	of	the	aircraft	in	knots
(nautical	miles	per	hour:	100	knots		115	mph),	multiplied	by	the	time	it	takes	to	get	the
whole	consignment	out	of	the	aircraft,	will	give	the	dispersion	in	metres	on	the	ground.
possible	add	at	least	1,000	metres	to	each	end	as	a	safety	factor.	Sometimes	it	may
be	impossible	to	find	a	potential	DZ	as	wide	as	it	is	long	that	meets	all	the	other
requirements.
Dispersion	pattern
The	 first	 man	 or	 package	 out	 of	 the	 aircraft	 will	 obviously	 tend	 to	 land	 some	 distance
behind	the	last	man	out.	You	can	calculate	the	dispersion	as	follows:	half	the	speed	of	the
aircraft	in	knots	multiplied	by	the	exit	time	in	seconds,	equals	the	dispersion	distance	in
metres.	The	dispersion	distance	is	the	absolute	minimum	length	of	the	drop	zone.
The	surface
The	surface	of	the	DZ	should	be	level	and	free	from	obstructions	such	as	rocks,	fences,
trees	and	power	lines.	Where	personnel	are	to	be	dropped	at	high	altitude	(15,000	metres
and	higher),	try	to	locate	DZs	in	soft	snow	or	grassland.	Parachutes	fall	faster	in	the	thin,
high	air,	and	so	the	passenger	will	hit	the	ground	harder.
1.	Coastline	in	distinctive	stretches,	especially	with	breaking	surf	or	white	sand	beaches,
river	mouths	over	50	metres	wide,	or	sharp	promontories	or	inlets.
2.	Rivers	more	than	30	metres	wide.	Heavily	wooded	banks	will	reduce	their	visibility.
3.	Canals:	their	straight	course	and	consistent	width	make	them	easy	to	spot,	except
where	the	surrounding	countryside	follows	a	uniform	pattern.
4.	Lakes	at	least	a	square	kilometre	in	area	with	a	distinctive	shape	or	feature.
5.	Woods	and	forests	a	square	kilometre	and	more	in	size	with	clear-cut	boundaries	or
some	special	identifying	feature.
6.	Major	road	and	highway	intersections.
7.	Railways	especially	when	there	is	snow	on	the	ground.
correctly	 and	 quickly.	 Use	 correct	 voice	 procedure,	 apply	 the	 rules	 of	 BATCO	 and	 this
will	help	prevent	enemy	electronic	warfare	units	from	breaking	in	on	your	net.
Radio	voice
You	 must	 also	 be	 aware	 of	 your	 radio	 voice.	 It	 should	 differ	 from	 normal	 speech	 in	 the
following	respects:	Rhythm,	Speed,	Volume	and	Pitch	(RSVP).
Rhythm:	Divide	the	message	up	into	logical	portions,	and	deliver	it	at	an	even	rhythm
with	pauses.	Remember,	the	recipient	has	to	write	it	down.
Speed:	 BATCO	 delivered	 too	 quickly	 will	 lead	 to	 mistakes;	 delivery	 must	 be	 slightly
slower	than	normal	speech.
Volume:	 Speak	 slightly	 louder	 than	 normal,	 but	 dont	 shout	 	 this	 just	 distorts	 the
message.
Pitch:	Try	to	pitch	your	voice	slightly	higher	than	normal:	this	enhances	clarity.
aircraft	height	in	feet,	times	wind	velocity	in	knots,	times	a	constant		three	for	bundles,
four	for	personnel.	Release	Point	Markers	can	then	be	offset	according	to	the	likely	wind
drift.	Obstacles	along	the	flight	path	might	prevent	the	pilot	from	seeing	the	markers,	and
to	reduce	this	possibility	there	must	be	a	clearance	on	the	ground	of	15	metres	for	every
metre	 of	 the	 aircrafts	 height	 above	 the	 ground.	 An	 obstacle	 30	 metres	 high	 mustnt	 be
closer	than	450	metres	from	the	ground	markings.
Markers	 should	 be	 sited	 in	 such	 a	 way	 as	 to	 be	 visible	 only	 from	 the	 direction	 from
which	the	aircraft	is	approaching.	This	may	mean	screening	them	on	three	sides,	placing
them	in	pits	with	the	appropriate	side	sloping	or,	in	the	case	of	panels,	mounting	them	at
an	angle	of	45	degrees.
Helicopter	landing
For	maximum	effective	use	of	the	helicopter	you	should	position	the	landing	zone	to	allow
take-off	 and	 landing	 into	 the	 wind.	 At	 night	 the	 helicopter	 will	 usually	 have	 to	 land	 to
transfer	personnel	or	cargo,	but	during	daylight	hours	it	can	fly	a	couple	of	metres	off	the
ground	and	the	team	can	leap	out	of	the	back.
Altitude	and	temperature
Remember	 that	 at	 high	 altitudes	 and	 high	 temperatures	 the	 density	 of	 the	 air	 is	 sharply
reduced.	 This	 means	 the	 helicopter	 cannot	 carry	 as	 much	 cargo,	 and	 will	 need	 a	 longer
distance	to	take	off	and	land.
Approach	path
Helicopters	 need	 at	 least	 one	 approach	 path	 75	 metres	 wide.	 For	 a	 night	 landing	 a
helicopter	requires	a	minimum	space	90	metres	in	diameter.
Surface	and	slope
The	 surface	 chosen	 for	 the	 landing	 zone	 must	 be	 relatively	 level	 and	 free	 from
obstructions	such	as	logs,	rocks,	ditches	or	fences.	The	maximum	ground	slope	permitted
is	15	degrees.	In	dry	conditions	it	is	a	good	idea	to	dampen	the	area	to	reduce	the	tell-tale
dust	cloud	which	also	hampers	the	pilots	visibility.
Noise
The	 noise	 of	 a	 large	 helicopter	 such	 as	 the	 Chinook	 coming	 in	 to	 land	 will	 reveal	 your
position	 to	 any	 enemy	 forces	 nearby.	 For	 this	 reason,	 helicopter	 landings	 must	 be
conducted	away	from	the	enemy	unless	you	have	a	powerful	security	detail	in	position.
Water	landings
Helicopters	like	the	Chinook	can	land	in	a	water	course	provided	the	bottom	is	firm	and
the	water	no	more	than	46	cm	deep.
clean-up	sanitisation	of	the	drop	site,	and	that	includes	briefing	all	members	of	the
reception	committee	on	proper	procedures.	A	surveillance	team	should	keep	watch
over	the	DZ	for	48	hours	after	the	operation	to	warn	of	enemy	activity.
5)	Transportation	Party,	responsible	for	getting	personnel	and
Sterilization	procedures
The	 reception	 committee	 will	 clean	 up	 the	 drop	 zone	 after	 the	 operation.	 Heres	 a	 basic
check	list:
1.	Collect	cigarette	ends	and	food	wrappers;	mislaid	equipment;	human	waste.
2.	Collect	rigging	straps	and	parachute	line.
3.	Count	all	items	of	equipment	out	and	in.
4.	Bury	any	waste	or	unwanted	equipment,	preferably	in	a	number	of	different	places,	at
the	base	of	large	bushes.
5.	Erase	drag	marks,	footprints	and	impact	marks.	Use	a	leafy	branch	and	disguise	the
freshly-cut	end	on	the	tree	with	mud.
6.	Avoid	trampling	vegetation,	especially	in	cultivated	areas.
7.	Maintain	security	on	the	way	in	and	out	of	the	DZ.
Security
Because	security	and	concealment	are	so	important	to	Special	Forces	operations,	you	must
pay	a	lot	of	attention	to	these	considerations	when	selecting	reception	zones.	Three	factors
are	important:	freedom	from	enemy	interference	on	the	ground;	accessibility	by	means	of
concealed	or	secure	routes	for	the	reception	committee;	and	proximity	to	areas	suitable	for
hiding	supplies	and	equipment.
LOLEX
Vital	cargo	can	be	dropped	without	landing	with	a	technique	known	as	Low	Level
Parachute	 Extraction	 Resupply	 System	 (LOLEX).	 The	 aircraft	 flies	 a	 couple	 of
metres	above	the	ground	and	a	parachute	fitted	to	the	cargo	pulls	it	out	of	the	rear
door.
Waterborne	landings
Landing	from	the	sea
Special	Forces	operations	often	start	and	finish	on	a	beach.	Even	though	airborne	insertion
is	 faster	 and	 more	 flexible,	 when	 safety	 and	 secrecy	 are	 the	 first	 considerations	 the	 unit
commander	will	often	opt	to	go	in	by	ship	or	submarine,	landing	his	men	from	inflatable
boats	or	getting	them	to	swim.
Submarines	 are	 self-contained,	 safe	 from	 prying	 eyes.	 They	 mean	 that	 amphibious
special	 operations	 can	 be	 mounted	 at	 extremely	 long	 range	 	 from	 the	 other	 side	 of	 the
world	if	necessary.	The	long	journey	time	can	be	an	advantage	in	itself	because	it	allows
the	 operation	 to	 be	 studied,	 pulled	 apart	 and	 put	 back	 together	 again	 until	 it	 is	 close	 to
foolproof.
The	first	consideration	is	the	type	of	boat	available	to	carry	the	team	to	the	landing	site.
When	 security	 comes	 first,	 this	 will	 usually	 be	 a	 submarine,	 but	 that	 choice	 will	 put	 a
severe	limitation	on	the	amount	of	equipment	that	can	be	carried,	which	may	mean	that	a
resupply	 mission	 will	 be	 needed.	 However,	 for	 infiltrating	 small-groups	 of	 people	 into
existing	 operations,	 or	 for	 mounting	 hit-and-run	 raids,	 the	 submarine	 is	 ideal.	 Space	 is
very	 limited	 in	 submarines,	 but	 there	 is	 room	 in	 flooding	 compartments	 for	 kit	 such	 as
inflatable	boats	and	that	is	where	they	are	carried.
Submarines	 are	 self-contained,	 safe	 from	 prying	 eyes.	 They	 mean	 that	 amphibious
special	 operations	 can	 be	 mounted	 at	 extremely	 long	 range	 	 from	 the	 other	 side	 of	 the
world	if	necessary.	The	long	journey	time	can	be	an	advantage	in	itself	because	it	allows
the	 operation	 to	 be	 studied,	 pulled	 apart	 and	 put	 back	 together	 again	 until	 it	 is	 close	 to
foolproof.
The	mission	can	be	split	down	into	four	stages:
1.	Movement	to	the	disembarkation	point.	This	part	of	the	operation	is	normally	under
the	control	and	charge	of	regular	navy	personnel.
2.	Transfer	from	ocean-going	vessel	to	the	landing	craft	and	movement	to	the	landing
site.
3.	Disposal	of	the	landing	craft.	This	may	mean	destroying	it,	hiding	it	or	navy
personnel	ferrying	it	back	to	the	mother	ship.
4.	Sanitisation	of	the	landing	site	and	movement	to	the	operational	area.
Keep	fit
Physical	exercise	plays	a	big	part	in	the	shipboard	life	too,	to	ensure	that	the	team	is	in	top
condition	 for	 the	 operation.	 This	 is	 a	 particular	 problem	 when	 the	 mother	 ship	 is	 a
submarine	 making	 a	 completely	 submerged	 passage.	 The	 modern	 generation	 of
submarines	routinely	crosses	oceans	without	ever	surfacing,	and	theres	not	a	lot	of	space
on	board	for	callisthenics	or	aerobic	exercises!
Transferring	at	sea
From	a	surface	ship,	the	transfer	procedure	is	quite	simple.	The	landing	craft	are	inflated
and	 sent	 over	 the	 side.	 A	 scrambling	 net	 is	 let	 down,	 and	 the	 operational	 team	 install
themselves	in	the	inflatables,	stow	their	equipment	and	set	off	on	their	long	journey	to	the
beach.	 And	 it	 will	 be	 a	 long	 journey.	 To	 maintain	 security,	 the	 mother	 ship	 will	 never
come	above	the	horizon	as	seen	from	the	shore		maybe	a	distance	of	more	than	20	miles.
Outboard	 engines	 are	 notoriously	 noisy.	 There	 are	 electric	 versions	 which	 are	 almost
silent,	 but	 they	 have	 a	 very	 limited	 range.	 To	 get	 around	 this	 problem	 the	 landing	 craft
may	be	towed	in	close	to	shore	by	a	purpose-built	tug		low	to	the	water	and	fitted	with	a
heavily-silenced	 inboard	 engine.	 The	 landing	 craft	 then	 make	 their	 way	 the	 last	 two	 or
three	 miles	 to	 the	 beach	 under	 their	 own	 steam	 	 or	 rather,	 by	 the	 muscle	 power	 of	 the
Special	Forces	team	who	are	paddling	them.
Transferring	from	a	submarine	to	the	landing	craft	is	either	a	lot	easier,	or	a	lot	more
difficult,	 depending	 on	 which	 one	 of	 the	 three	 methods	 is	 chosen.	 If	 the	 submarine	 can
come	to	the	surface,	the	inflatables	can	be	dropped	over	the	side,	the	landing	party	boards,
and	away	they	go.	In	one	interesting	variation	to	this	method	the	boats	are	placed	on	the
deck	 of	 the	 submarine	 and	 the	 crew	 get	 aboard	 then	 the	 submarine	 submerges	 gently
beneath	 them.	 Alternatively,	 the	 submarine	 commander	 comes	 up	 to	 just	 below	 the
surface,	 exposing	 only	 the	 very	 tip	 of	 the	 conning	 tower	 and	 presenting	 a	 very	 small
picture,	 even	 to	 enemy	 radar.	 The	 landing	 party	 exits	 and	 either	 swims	 to	 the	 landing
point,	on	a	compass	bearing,	or	inflates	the	boats	in	the	water	and	paddles	in.	The	most
secure	technique	of	all	requires	the	landing	party	to	exit	the	submarine	underwater,	usually
with	 the	 boat	 completely	 stationary	 and	 sitting	 on	 the	 bottom.	 Team	 members	 wearing
SCUBA	(Self	Contained	Breathing	Apparatus)	then	emerge	from	a	hatch	connected	to	an
air-lock,	and	swim	under	water	to	the	landing	place.
free	ascents	using	the	submarines	ordinary	escape	hatch,	join	up	with	the	divers,
and	make	their	way	to	the	beach	in	the	normal	way.
Underwater	infiltration
As	radar	and	anti-aircraft	weapons	become	increasingly	effective,	underwater	infiltration
has	 become	 an	 increasingly	 important	 method	 of	 infiltrating	 Special	 Forces	 troops.	 The
key	 to	 any	 successful	 infiltration	 may	 be	 summed	 up	 as	 Short,	 Simple	 and	 Secure.
Underwater	operations	using	SCUBA	equipment	provide	an	extremely	secure	method	of
infiltrating	short	distances	by	water.
Shallow	depth
Try	to	make	your	approach	at	the	shallowest	possible	depth	so	that	your	air	supplies	last
longer,	and	you	and	your	equipment	do	not	suffer	the	problems	associated	with	sustained
diving	at	great	depths.	There	is	another	reason:	swimmer	detection	systems	find	it	harder
to	detect	people	at	shallow	depths.
Security
Part	 of	 the	 team	 should	 land	 ahead	 of	 the	 main	 body	 to	 check	 that	 the	 beach	 is	 clear.
Surfacing	and	removing	their	masks	outside	the	surf	zone,	the	security	team	goes	ashore
and	signals	Clear	to	the	rest	of	the	troops	when	it	has	examined	the	beach	area.
Combat	loads
Combat	loads	must	be	light	and	small	and	should	include	only	equipment,	weapons	and
ammunition	 needed	 for	 the	 mission.	 You	 must	 have	 a	 proper	 equipment	 unloading	 plan
and	preferably	have	it	rehearsed	before	landing.
PRECAUTIONS	AT	SEA
1.	Is	the	area	used	frequently	by	passing	enemy	patrol	boats?
2.	Fishing	boats	can	cause	embarrassing	confrontations	and	must	be	avoided.
3.	Rocks	and	any	other	hazards	that	are	likely	to	make	navigation	difficult	have	to
be	noted	and	passed	on.
4.	Sometimes	underwater	obstacles	will	be	in	the	way,	so	a	route	through	to	the
shoreline	has	to	be	checked.
5.	A	close	check	on	weather	conditions	is	important,	and	prior	to	the	raiding	force
landing	a	meteorological	report	should	be	sent	back.
6.	You	need	a	secure	landing	point	that	will	enable	the	raiding	force	to	disembark
safely	and	without	making	any	noise.
7.	The	reconnaissance	team	will	have	been	given	a	time	and	a	date	for	bringing	in
the	raiding	troops	and	by	this	time	all	their	work	must	be	complete.	They	should
know	the	lie	of	the	land	like	the	back	of	their	hands,	and	in	particular	which
routes	afford	the	best	cover.	Having	checked	the	state	of	the	sea	and	sent	their
met	report	back,	they	will	then	stand	by	at	the	landing	area	to	receive	the	raiding
troops.
conditions.	If	there	is	a	beach	party	it	can	help	with	visible	light,	well	shielded	and	only
allowed	 to	 shine	 out	 to	 sea;	 infra-red	 beacons,	 which	 the	 boat	 party	 can	 pick	 up	 using
special	goggles;	underwater	sound;	and	radio.
The	surf	zone	doesnt	stretch	very	far	out	from	the	shore.	When	the	landing	party	are
close	to	its	outer	limit	they	stop	and	maintain	position.	Scout	swimmers	get	into	the	water,
approach	the	beach	and	check	it	out.	When	they	are	sure	theres	no	enemy	activity	they
signal	the	rest	of	the	party	to	come	in.
There	 are	 no	 exceptions	 to	 this	 procedure.	 Even	 though	 there	 may	 be	 a	 reception
committee	 waiting	 with	 established	 perimeter	 security	 and	 reconnaissance	 patrols,	 the
landing	party	still	performs	its	own	reconnaissance.
The	raid	goes	ashore
The	 transit	 to	 the	 area	 may	 take	 some	 time,	 and	 distance	 will	 depend	 entirely	 on	 fuel
consumption.	 The	 troops	 must	 also	 be	 prepared	 for	 a	 wet	 and	 bumpy	 ride,	 and	 wear
adequate	clothing.
At	 a	 certain	 distance	 from	 the	 objective	 the	 boats	 slow	 their	 engines	 to	 cut	 down	 on
noise.	At	this	point	their	greatest	allies	will	be	wind	and	the	crash	of	the	sea,	which	will
disguise	 any	 noise	 they	 make.	 From	 there	 they	 move	 slowly	 up	 to	 a	 rendezvous	 point,
within	a	visible	distance	of	their	landing	site.	It	is	important	to	note	that	good	radar	can
pick	up	and	identify	small	boats,	and	you	should	remember	this	when	planning	the	route.
Once	at	this	RV	point	the	troops	wait	for	a	pre-arranged	signal	from	the	reconnaissance
team	 ashore	 to	 notify	 them	 that	 all	 is	 clear	 to	 move	 in.	 It	 may	 be	 that	 something	 has
occurred	ashore	and	therefore	no	signal	will	be	given,	in	which	case	the	boats	will	return.
Having	received	the	signal,	the	boats	move	in	with	engines	cut	and	the	troops	paddling.
This	depends	on	the	weather	conditions,	but	it	is	essential	that	from	here	on	as	little	sound
as	possible	is	made.	One	man	in	each	boat	has	a	gun	trained	on	the	shore	as	a	precaution.
Once	 in,	 everyone	 disembarks	 as	 quickly	 and	 quietly	 as	 possible,	 and	 moves	 to	 a	 given
area	to	await	the	next	stage.	Meanwhile,	the	boats	wait	in	the	most	concealed	area,	along
with	a	guard	force,	their	bows	pointing	back	out	to	sea.
The	raiding	force	commander	and	his	team	leaders	are	then	given	a	final	brief	by	the
recce	 team	 commander.	 This	 gives	 everyone	 an	 opportunity	 to	 confirm	 any	 last	 minute
details	and	to	make	any	changes.	Once	everyone	is	satisfied,	the	team	leaders	carry	out	a
briefing	for	their	teams	and	then	at	a	given	time,	they	move	off.	It	may	be	necessary	at	this
stage	 for	 teams	 to	 split	 and	 approach	 the	 target	 from	 different	 angles.	 In	 this	 case	 each
team	is	led	by	one	member	of	the	recce	force,	who	takes	them	up	to	a	starting	line.	Quite
often	 the	 recce	 team	 acts	 as	 a	 fire	 support	 group	 giving	 whatever	 help	 they	 can	 when
required.
River	raiding
Infiltration	 is	 by	 no	 means	 the	 only	 type	 of	 amphibious	 operation.	 There	 are	 lots	 of
important	military	targets	underwater,	in	the	water	or	close	alongside,	and	all	of	these	are
vulnerable	 to	 attack	 from	 combat	 divers	 either	 operating	 submerged	 or	 approaching
secretly,	 landing	 and	 approaching	 the	 target	 from	 an	 unexpected	 	 and	 therefore	 poorly-
guarded		direction.
Breathing	apparatus
Underwater	 operations	 like	 this	 generally	 require	 the	 diver	 to	 stay	 submerged	 for	 some
considerable	 time,	 and	 that	 means	 breathing	 apparatus.	 There	 are	 two	 types	 of	 SCUBA:
open-circuit,	where	the	bottles	are	filled	with	compressed	air	and	the	outbreath	is	vented
into	the	water;	and	the	closed-circuit	system,	where	the	diver	breathes	the	same	air	over
and	over	again,	each	breath	being	topped	up	with	pure	oxygen	carried	in	the	tanks,	and
exhaled	carbon	dioxide	absorbed	by	a	special	chemical.
Closed-circuit	SCUBA	is	particularly	difficult	and	dangerous	to	use,	and	even	preparing
the	 equipment	 is	 risky	 in	 itself	 	 pure	 oxygen	 is	 highly	 explosive	 in	 the	 right
circumstances.	The	advantage	is	that	it	doesnt	leave	a	stream	of	tell-tale	bubbles	to	give
away	the	divers	position.
Even	with	the	danger	of	being	spotted,	open-circuit	SCUBA	can	sometimes	be	used,	but
the	surface	of	the	water	must	be	broken	and	turbulent	to	minimize	the	risk.	The	advantage
is	in	its	ease	of	use	and	much	greater	safety.
As	 well	 as	 laying	 demolition	 charges,	 the	 combat	 diver	 may	 be	 called	 upon	 to
reconnoitre	 minefields	 and	 other	 underwater	 obstacles,	 check	 out	 harbours,	 docks	 and
dams,	establish	and	recover	underwater	caches	of	equipment,	and	find	essential	equipment
that	has	had	to	be	abandoned	in	an	emergency.
Because	 its	 bulky	 and	 difficult	 to	 conceal,	 equipment	 for	 underwater	 missions	 will
have	to	be	air-dropped	to	established	undercover	Special	Forces	teams	as	they	need	it.
Small	boat	operations
In	 many	 countries,	 rivers	 and	 inland	 waterways	 take	 the	 place	 of	 roads	 as	 the	 prime
communications	 routes,	 and	 Special	 Forces,	 with	 their	 comprehensive	 training,	 are	 very
well	equipped	to	make	good	use	of	them.	River	craft	and	small	inflatables	are	better	suited
to	 transportation	 than	 for	 use	 as	 fighting	 vehicles,	 however,	 though	 you	 must	 always	 be
prepared	 for	 ambushes,	 for	 example,	 which	 will	 force	 you	 to	 fight	 from	 the	 boat.	 This
possibility	 will	 influence	 the	 team	 leaders	 decision	 when	 it	 comes	 to	 choosing	 between
boats	or	travelling	overland.	The	one	great	advantage	to	travelling	by	boat	is	the	speed.	Its
quite	in	order	to	estimate	average	speeds	of	35	to	30	miles	per	hour	(55160	km/	hour)	in
areas	where	the	waterways	are	widely	used	and	kept	free	of	debris	and	other	obstructions
Inflatable	boats
Inflatables,	 which	 ride	 on	 top	 of	 the	 water,	 are	 much	 more	 manoeuvrable	 than
displacement	craft,	which	may	draw	anything	up	to	two-thirds	of	a	metre.	They	are	also
very	light	in	weight,	and	so	can	be	carried	for	short	distances	if	necessary.	Purpose-built
inflatable	assault	boats	do	have	their	disadvantages	however.	Theres	no	disguising	them:
their	outboard	engines	make	an	awful	lot	of	noise,	and	they	are	very	easily	damaged	by
waterlogged	trees	and	other	debris	floating	on	or	close	to	the	surface.
When	he	decides	whether	or	not	to	use	boats	in	a	particular	operation,	the	team	leader
has	to	think	of	the	operation	as	a	whole,	and	choose	the	ways	and	means	most	likely	to	get
the	job	done	successfully	and	in	the	shortest	possible	time.	The	rule	of	thumb	must	be:	use
boats	when	they	offer	a	quicker	way	of	getting	from	place	to	place;	abandon	them	and	set
off	 across	 country	 when	 that	 looks	 like	 the	 better	 solution.	 The	 same	 applies	 to	 using
divers:	hit	the	enemy	where	hes	weakest,	from	the	direction	hell	least	expect.
This	training	in	small	boats	and	underwater	operations	is	just	one	more	example	of	the
flexibility	 of	 the	 Special	 Forces	 soldier,	 ready	 to	 go	 anywhere	 and	 do	 anything	 at	 a
moments	notice.
experts,	 electronics	 technicians,	 and	 whatever	 specialist	 may	 be	 needed	 	 a	 pilot,	 for
example,	if	the	object	of	the	operation	were	to	steal	a	specific	enemy	aircraft.
The	 security	 group	 is	 there	 to	 protect	 them,	 to	 secure	 the	 area	 and	 stop	 enemy
reinforcements	from	becoming	involved	in	the	action,	to	stop	any	would-be	escapers,	and
to	cover	the	withdrawal	of	the	assault	group.
Special	Forces	units	have	a	well-deserved	reputation	for	aggressiveness.	Not	one	man
amongst	them	will	want	to	be	idling	away	his	time,	and	so	they	are	always	on	the	look-out
for	 potential	 targets.	 Before	 operation	 planning	 can	 begin,	 each	 one	 is	 assessed	 for
importance,	 accessibility	 and	 recoverability,	 taking	 into	 account	 distance	 and	 terrain	 and
the	strength	of	raiding	party	required.
Local	repercussions
Another	 important	 factor	 is	 the	 likely	 effect	 of	 the	 raid	 on	 friendly	 natives	 and	 others.
There	 are	 countless	 examples	 of	 tens	 of	 local	 people	 being	 executed	 for	 every	 one
occupying	 soldier	 killed.	 Planning	 for	 this	 possibility	 always	 forms	 part	 of	 the	 back-up
organisation	to	the	raid,	and	psychological	operations	experts	(psy-ops)	will	also	be	ready
to	exploit	any	successes	to	the	full.
Launching	a	raid
1.	Whatever	the	mission	and	whatever	the	size	of	the	raiding	party,	the	principles	of	a
guerrilla-style	raid	are	the	same.	The	actual	assault	team	must	be	protected	by
security	elements	who	will	prevent	enemy	interference	with	the	operation.
2.	As	the	explosive	specialist	lays	charges	underneath	a	railway,	for	example,	on-thespot	security	is	provided	by	a	small	team	of	Special	Forces	soldiers.	This	team	will
take	out	any	sentries	on	the	objective,	breach	or	demolish	obstacles	and	provide	close
protection	for	the	main	mission.
3.	After	the	target	has	been	destroyed,	the	security	groups	provide	cover	on	the	flanks
for	the	assault	team	to	retreat.	If	the	enemy	follow	the	raiders,	one	security	group
should	try	to	draw	them	away	from	the	main	assault	force.
Withdrawal
Dusk	 is	 the	 best	 time	 for	 withdrawal:	 it	 gives	 you	 the	 advantage	 of	 the	 last	 minutes	 of
daylight	to	exit	the	immediate	area	of	the	operation,	and	darkness	to	slow	the	enemy	down
during	 any	 follow-up.	 But	 in	 any	 event,	 choose	 the	 time	 very	 carefully,	 to	 give	 yourself
the	greatest	possible	advantage.
Withdrawal	after	a	large	raid	can	be	conducted	with	the	party	split	up	into	small	groups.
This	denies	the	enemy	a	large	target	for	an	air	or	ground	strike,	but	an	alert	and	aggressive
enemy	may	be	able	to	mop	up	the	force	one	unit	at	a	time.
In	some	circumstances	it	is	safer	for	the	entire	party	to	stay	together	and	operate	as	a
fighting	column,	but	it	will	all	depend	on	the	situation	of	enemy	forces,	the	terrain	and	the
distances	 to	 be	 covered.	 An	 overt	 withdrawal,	 with	 no	 attempt	 at	 secrecy,	 will	 require	 a
great	deal	of	external	support.	Theres	very	little	chance	that	the	extraction	force,	if	there
is	one,	will	escape	enemy	attention.
Intelligence
It	may	seem	obvious,	but	its	impossible	to	over-stress	the	value	of	accurate	intelligence.
There	are	three	main	sources.
1.	Local	agents
2.	Reconnaissance
3.	Satellite	and	high-level	flights
Local	knowledge	is	of	the	utmost	importance.	Whenever	possible,	friendly	locals	should
be	 recruited	 to	 act	 as	 guides,	 and	 may	 even	 be	 employed	 in	 the	 raiding	 party	 itself	 if
security	considerations	permit.
In	the	movement	towards	the	objective,	take	every	precaution	so	as	not	to	alert	hostile
troops	to	your	presence.	Avoid	contact,	but	make	sure	that	the	enemy	suffers	one	hundred
percent	casualties	if	the	worst	does	happen.
Blowing	up	bridges
For	 complicated	 structures,	 two	 sets	 of	 cutting	 charges	 are	 required	 to	 cause	 collapse	 of
the	bridge.	These	should	be	placed	equidistant	from	the	centre	of	support.	Cutting	charges
must	be	placed	on	beams	and	crossbraces	as	well	as	on	the	floor	plating.
Stone	arch	bridges	are	best	demolished	by	placing	a	charge	to	blow	out	the	keystones.
Small	 stone	 arch	 spans	 are	 easily	 demolished	 by	 a	 row	 of	 cutting	 charges	 across	 the
centre,	which	destroys	the	integrity	of	the	arch.
Remember	that	only	one	person	should	prepare,	place	and	fire	explosive	charges.	Never
divide	 responsibility:	 that	 is	 how	 expensive	 mistakes	 can	 occur.	 To	 destroy	 a	 bridge
abutment	use	18	kg	TNT	charges	in	holes	1.5	metres	deep	at	1.5	metre	intervals	across	the
width	of	the	bridge,	and	1.5	metres	behind	the	river	face	of	the	abutment.
Timber-cutting	charges
If	you	can	drill	into	the	wood	and	place	the	explosives	inside,	you	can	use	a	much	smaller
charge	for	exterior	explosives.	Calculate	the	charge	using	the	formula,	D2	divided	by	40.
(D	=	least	dimension	in	inches).	This	gives	the	number	of	pounds	of	TNT	needed.
Ambush
An	ambush	is	a	raid	on	a	moving	target.	The	only	real	difference	is	that	the	timetable	of
the	operation	becomes	much	sketchier	and	unreliable.	Even	excellent	intelligence	sources
cant	really	predict	the	enemys	operational	delays,	and	so	the	raiding	party	will	often	be
in	 position	 for	 some	 time	 before	 the	 target	 comes	 along,	 considerably	 increasing	 the
chances	of	detection.
Ambushes	are	conducted	to	destroy	or	capture	enemy	personnel	and	supplies	or	block
their	movement.	A	systematic	approach	can	channel	the	enemys	communications	and	resupply	 operations,	 and	 force	 him	 to	 concentrate	 his	 movements	 onto	 main	 roads	 and
railway	lines,	where	they	are	more	vulnerable	to	attack,	especially	from	air	strikes.
As	 the	 SAS	 discovered	 to	 its	 satisfaction	 in	 1965	 when	 undertaking	 a	 mission	 deep
inside	 Kalimintan	 during	 the	 Borneo	 Crisis,	 river	 craft	 are	 often	 best	 attacked	 from	 the
rear	(i.e.	when	the	craft	has	floated	past),	since	this	avoids	a	broadside	from	any	troops
on	board	and	may	well	set	the	fuel	tanks	on	fire.
Equipment
Could	you	survive	and	fight	if	you	were	captured	and	lost	all	your	equipment	except	the
clothes	 you	 stand	 up	 in?	 What	 if	 you	 were	 searched	 by	 an	 enemy	 soldier	 and	 had
everything	 in	 your	 pockets	 taken	 away	 from	 you?	 He	 might	 not	 be	 thorough	 enough,
though,	and	you	have	had	the	foresight	to	conceal	enough	equipment	in	your	clothing	to
enable	 you	 to	 escape.	 If	 you	 are	 captured,	 the	 man	 searching	 you	 is	 going	 to	 be	 so
interested	 in	 retrieving	 stuff	 such	 as	 notebooks,	 maps	 and	 knives	 that	 he	 will	 not	 even
think	about	looking	in	the	other	places	where	small	items	of	equipment	can	be	concealed.
Hiding	places
He	will	find	the	tobacco	tin	containing	your	survival	kit,	and	it	is	probably	best	not	to	hide
any	 equipment	 in	 your	 jacket	 or	 smock	 as	 this	 will	 probably	 be	 taken	 off	 you	 straight
away.	 Your	 shirt,	 jersey	 or	 trousers	 are,	 however,	 ideal	 hiding	 places	 for	 escape	 and
evasion	equipment.
squadron.
1.	Belt,	pouches	and	water	bottles
2.	SLR	magazines
3.	Rifle-cleaning	kit
4.	Purse	net
5.	Fishing	kit
6.	Snares
7.	Mess	tin	lid	and	rations
8.	Torch	and	filters
9.	Button-compass
10.	Wire	saw
11.	Fire-starting	kit
12.	Lock	picks	(note:	these	are	illegal	in	the	UK)
13.	Clasp	knife
14.	Prismatic	compass
15.	Mini	flares
16.	Millbank	bag	for	filtering	water
17.	Field	dressing
18.	Survival	ration
19.	Heliograph
20.	Silk	escape	map
Useful	things	to	conceal	in	clothing	are:
1.	Wire	saw
2.	Compass
3.	Sharpened	hacksaw	blade
4.	Fishing	kit
5.	Sewing	kit
6.	Condoms
7.	Scalpel	blades
8.	Map
9.	Firelighting	oil
You	can	usually	feed	the	wire	saw	into	the	waistband	of	your	combat	trousers:	remove	the
rings	from	the	saw,	and	replace	them	with	bootlace	or	nylon	cord.	Likewise,	you	can	feed
fishing	line	into	the	seams	of	your	clothing	or	under	the	collar	of	your	shirt.	Some	soldiers
remove	all	the	buttons	on	their	trousers	or	pockets	and	re-sew	them	using	fishing	line.
Fishing	 hooks	 are,	 however,	 a	 different	 problem.	 If	 you	 sew	 them	 into	 clothing
unprotected,	they	may	pierce	the	cloth	and	injure	you;	wrap	them	in	duct	tape	first.	The
same	applies	to	needles	and	scalpel	blades.
Boots	 are	 often	 cited	 as	 good	 hiding-places	 for	 escape	 and	 evasion	 equipment,	 but
beware:	walking	is	probably	the	only	way	you	will	be	able	to	travel,	and	if	your	boots	are
uncomfortable	or	unable	to	protect	your	feet	you	will	be	in	trouble.	If	you	have	very	thick
shock-absorbent	 insoles	 in	 your	 boots	 you	 can	 hide	 things	 beneath	 them,	 but	 check
regularly	to	make	sure	the	insole	is	not	being	worn	away.	Obviously	only	very	thin	items
can	be	concealed	this	way,	and	nothing	over	about	8	cm	long,	as	it	may	puncture	the	insole
and	your	foot	when	the	sole	of	the	boot	flexes.
Condoms	 also	 need	 to	 be	 concealed	 with	 care:	 if	 they	 are	 unprotected	 the	 plastic
wrapper	will	eventually	wear	and	damage	the	contents,	so	when	you	come	to	use	one	in	a
survival	situation	it	has	a	hole	in	it!	Strap	them	in	PVC	tape	(ideally,	a	minimum	of	five
should	be	carried).
If	you	can	conceal	a	flint	and	steel	firelighter	in	your	clothing	so	much	the	better,	but
make	sure	you	know	how	to	use	it	before	sewing	it	in,	otherwise	the	space	is	wasted.
Small	 compasses	 are	 fairly	 easy	 to	 conceal,	 and	 the	 small	 RAF	 button	 compass	 can
even	 be	 swallowed	 and	 retrieved	 at	 a	 later	 date!	 However,	 these	 compasses	 only	 really
give	an	indication	of	magnetic	North,	and	are	not	accurate	enough	for	bearings.
Rough	maps	of	your	operational	area	are	not	as	difficult	to	construct	as	you	may	think.
Pilots	and	Special	Forces	are	often	issued	with	elaborate	maps,	printed	on	cloth	or	silk	and
disguised	as	handkerchiefs	or	sewn	into	the	lining	of	clothing.
The	 most	 useful	 item	 of	 E	 &	 E	 kit	 is	 something	 you	 can	 usually	 guarantee	 not	 to	 be
without:	your	brain.	No-one	can	take	away	your	skill	or	experience	so	prepare	now.
One	painless	and	profitable	way	of	preparing	for	the	eventualities	of	escape,	evasion	or
being	taken	POW	is	to	read	the	memoirs	of	those	soldiers	who	have	done	these	things.	A
useful	library	of	escape	classics	comprises:
Airey	Neave,	They	 Have	 Their	 Exits.	 Neave	 was	 the	 first	 Brit	 to	 make	 a	 home	 run
from	Colditz	POW	camp	in	the	Second	World	War.
John	 McCain	 (with	 Mark	 Salter),	 Faith	 of	 My	 Fathers.	 The	 Republican	 politicians
account	of	his	years	as	a	US	Navy	pilot	held	POW	by	the	North	Vietnamese.
Chris	Ryan,	The	One	That	Got	Away.	Evasion	in	the	Iraqi	desert	by	a	22	SAS	NCO.
A.J.	Evans,	The	Escape	Club.	First	World	War	escape	classic.
M.C.C.	Harrison	and	H.A.	Cartwright,	Within	Four	Walls	 	 Another	 Great	 War	 POW
escape	classic.
CONDOMS
Every	Special	Forces	soldiers	friend,	for	all	sorts	of	improbable	reasons.	Can	be
used	as:
1.	Water	carriers:	Each	one	will	take	about	one	and	a	half	pints.	Remember	to	put
the	whole	thing	in	a	sock	for	support.
2.	Surgical	gloves:	Bullet	wounds	are	usually	already	highly	contaminated,	but	if
you	are	clearing	out	a	wound	put	condoms	on	your	fingers	to	reduce	the	chances
of	further	infection.
3.	Signalling	devices:	Useful	for	ground-to-air	signalling:	simply	blow	them	up
and	place	them	on	the	ground	in	the	desired	pattern.
4.	Waterproof	containers:	You	can	use	them	to	protect	kit	or	maps	and	for	hiding
things	internally,	and	for	keeping	water	out	of	weapons	and	radio	equipment.
REMEMBER
1.	Every	piece	of	kit	you	smuggle	through	the	first	search	will	help	you	to	escape.
2.	If	they	keep	searching,	eventually	they	will	find	everything.
3.	Make	sure	the	piece	of	kit	can	be	retrieved	once	you	have	escaped		e.g.	that	it
is	not	so	well	sewn	in	that	you	cant	get	at	it.
4.	Make	sure	you	know	how	to	use	the	kit	youve	hidden.
5.	Your	escape	map	should	be	a	very	simple	affair,	with	only	large	towns,	major
roads,	railways	and	rivers	marked	on	it.	Any	other	detail	would	be	useless	and
confusing.	Combined	with	your	simple	compass,	it	just	makes	sure	you	walk	in
the	right	direction.	It	is	best	drawn	on	rice	paper	or	airmail	paper,	folded	and
wrapped	in	Clingfilm	or	Saran	Wrap	and	sewn	behind	a	unit	or	rank	patch	or
hidden	under	the	insole	of	your	boot.
Evading	Dogs
Every	breath	you	take,	every	move	you	make,	a	dog	can	detect	it.	Perhaps	as	much	as	a
mile	away	under	the	right	conditions.	And	an	attack	dog,	trained	to	silence,	can	be	on	you
literally	before	you	know	it.	Travelling	at	15	metres	a	second	and	weighing	anything	up	to
45	kilograms,	it	is	as	lethal	as	any	bullet.	What	can	a	man	working	behind	enemy	lines	do
to	protect	himself	against	these	killers?	In	this	section	were	going	to	examine	some	of	the
dog	evasion	techniques	taught	to	British	Special	Forces	units.
Dogs	of	war	are	trained	to	do	specific	jobs.	Guard	and	attack	dogs	are	trained	to	detect,
engage	and,	in	some	cases,	to	savage	intruders	or	evaders	either	under	the	command	of	a
handler	 or	 running	 free.	 Search	 dogs	 are	 adept	 at	 picking	 up	 and	 finding	 the	 source	 of
airborne	 scents	 and	 are	 allowed	 to	 run	 free,	 going	 over	 an	 area	 of	 ground	 yard	 by	 yard.
Tracker	dogs,	on	the	other	hand,	run	on	a	long	leash	with	a	handler.	Ground	scents	are	the
trackers	speciality.	Search	and	tracker	dogs	lead	their	handlers	to	their	target,	but	do	not
usually	assault	the	fugitive,	leaving	that	to	the	attack	dogs,	to	the	handlers	or	their	combat
back-up.
Eyes	and	ears
Like	most	mammals	except	man	dogs	have	very	poor	eyesight.	They	dont	see	colours	at
all,	only	shades	of	grey,	and	then	not	very	clearly.	They	can	see	you	moving,	of	course,
and	 this	 is	 very	 likely	 to	 attract	 their	 attention.	 Because	 their	 eyes	 are	 low	 down	 to	 the
ground	theyre	quick	to	see	movement	above	the	skyline.	If	a	dogs	eyesight	is	only	half	as
good	as	mans,	its	range	of	hearing	is	twice	as	good.	How	far	away	they	can	hear	you	is
affected	 by	 weather	 conditions,	 especially	 wind	 and	 rain.	 If	 the	 wind	 is	 blowing	 away
from	 you	 and	 towards	 the	 dog,	 hes	 a	 lot	 more	 likely	 to	 hear	 you.	 Rain	 creates	 a
background	noise,	and	makes	individual	sounds	much	more	difficult	to	pick	out.	So	take
advantage	of	rain	to	get	on	the	move.
Its	not	just	that	a	dog	can	hear	you	a	long	way	off:	he	can	also	hear	sounds	that	man
cant.	 High-pitched	 squeaks	 and	 whistles	 that	 you	 dont	 know	 exist	 are	 part	 of	 a	 dogs
everyday	life.	So	tape	loose	pieces	of	equipment	to	stop	them	rubbing	and	catching.	Think
about	the	way	you	use	radios	and	other	items	of	hardware.	A	clink	of	cooking	utensils,	a
match	being	struck,	even	the	sound	of	the	flame	when	youre	cooking	your	meal,	can	give
away	your	position	to	a	well-trained	dog.
In	fact,	if	you	were	cooking	a	meal	the	chances	are	that	he	would	smell	you	first		from
anything	up	to	a	couple	of	miles	away	under	the	right	conditions!	Because	while	a	dogs
hearing	is	a	lot	keener	than	ours,	his	sense	of	smell	is	many	thousands	of	times	better.
The	 strongest	 human	 body	 odour	 comes	 from	 the	 sweat	 glands,	 especially	 under	 the
arms.	 Moving	 quickly,	 particularly	 when	 carrying	 a	 heavy	 load	 and	 wearing	 too	 many
clothes,	 makes	 you	 sweat	 heavily.	 So	 does	 being	 tense,	 nervous	 or	 frightened.	 Eating
various	 types	 of	 strongly	 flavoured	 food	 makes	 it	 worse,	 and	 so	 does	 not	 washing
regularly.	 And	 its	 not	 just	 the	 natural	 smells	 of	 our	 bodies	 that	 provide	 a	 target	 for	 the
tracker	 dogs	 nose.	 Clothing,	 especially	 when	 its	 wet;	 soap	 and	 deodorants;	 leather;
tobacco;	 polish	 and	 preservatives;	 petrol;	 oil;	 and	 many,	 many	 more	 smells	 that	 are	 a
natural	part	of	our	everyday	lives		all	can	give	a	dog	a	clue	to	your	presence.
A	 dog	 picks	 up	 scent	 in	 two	 different	 ways:	 from	 the	 air,	 and	 from	 contact	 with	 the
ground,	trees,	plants	and	buildings.	Airborne	scents	do	not	last	very	long;	they	are	blown
away	by	the	wind	quite	quickly.
Traces	of	movement
A	 ground	 scent,	 on	 the	 other	 hand,	 may	 be	 obvious	 to	 the	 dog	 for	 anything	 	 up	 to	 48
hours.	 Ground	 scents	 are	 caused	 not	 just	 by	 you	 leaving	 your	 own	 smell	 on	 things	 you
touch,	 but	 also	 by	 the	 movement	 itself.	 If	 youre	 walking	 on	 grass	 or	 pushing	 through
vegetation	 you	 will	 crush	 leaves	 and	 stems	 with	 every	 movement.	 Even	 on	 bare	 ground
you	 will	 release	 air	 and	 tiny	 quantities	 of	 moisture	 that	 have	 been	 trapped	 in	 the	 soil,
which	 smell	 quite	 different	 from	 the	 fresh	 air	 above	 the	 ground.	 From	 the	 scent
footprints	that	you	leave	behind	a	dog	can	even	tell	in	which	direction	youre	moving.
And	 because	 you	 push	 off	 each	 step	 with	 your	 toes,	 the	 front	 of	 the	 footprint	 is	 more
obvious	 than	 the	 heel,	 and	 it	 only	 takes	 a	 few	 steps	 for	 a	 dog	 to	 work	 out	 which	 way
youre	travelling.
Just	 as	 each	 persons	 footprints	 look	 slightly	 different	 to	 the	 eye,	 so	 to	 a	 dog	 is	 the
mixture	 of	 scents	 in	 the	 smell	 footprint	 slightly	 different.	 The	 dog	 recognizes	 this
difference,	 and	 so	 may	 be	 able	 to	 track	 one	 person	 even	 where	 there	 are	 a	 number	 of
he	will	be	more	difficult	to	deal	with	the	second	time.	When	hes	sunk	his	teeth	into	the
padding,	hes	within	reach,	and	you	can	deal	with	him.
attack	dog	or	a	tracker.	If	hes	a	tracker,	he	probably	wont	come	near	you.
2.	Move	as	fast	as	you	can.	Get	out	of	sight	of	the	handler.
3.	Get	rid	of	loose	pieces	of	clothing,	food	(especially	food		the	dog	may	be	distracted
by	it	when	he	comes	looking	for	you)	and	any	other	pieces	of	kit	that	arent	vital	to
your	mission	or	your	survival.
4.	If	the	dog	sticks	with	you,	you	must	kill	or	immobilize	it.
Short-term	evasion
Youre	a	short-term	evader	if	you	or	your	unit	are	temporarily	cut	off	from	the	main	body
of	your	forces.	This	can	happen	quite	frequently		while	youre	on	patrol,	for	instance	
and	 is	 actually	 the	 way	 of	 life	 of	 long-range	 patrol	 units	 (known	 as	 LURPS	 in	 the	 US
military).	When	you	know	youre	going	to	be	separated	from	the	main	force,	navigation
and	 fieldcraft	 are	 your	 best	 friends.	 Knowing	 where	 you	 are	 and	 which	 direction	 youre
heading	in	is	going	to	help	save	your	life,	and	your	own	skill	in	moving	cross-country	or
through	town	will	finish	the	job.
Long-term	evasion
Very	few	people	have	to	evade	the	enemy	for	long	periods	of	time	or	cross	long	stretches
of	enemy-held	territory.	The	only	people	likely	to	have	to	undertake	this	most	difficult	and
arduous	task	are	aircrew	who	have	been	shot	down,	and	escaped	prisoners	of	war,	though
patrols	are	sometimes	sent	so	far	out	that	the	same	principle	applies	to	them.
Try	to	relax.	Fear	and	tension	will	only	force	you	into	making	mistakes.	Time	is	on	your
side.	It	doesnt	matter	how	soon	you	get	back	to	your	own	people,	as	long	as	you	do	get
back.	This	may	mean	lying	up	for	weeks	or	even	months	and	applying	all	your	survival
skills.	 Under	 military	 law,	 a	 soldier	 must	 make	 every	 effort	 to	 return	 to	 his	 unit.	 If
captured,	 it	 is	 his	 duty	 to	 try	 to	 escape	 	 though	 few	 ever	 do	 so	 successfully.	 Getting
home	 will	 be	 a	 lot	 easier	 before	 youre	 captured.	 You	 must	 use	 all	 the	 tricks	 of
camouflage	and	concealment	to	stay	hidden	from	the	enemy.	Rely	on	your	own	resources.
Dont	trust	civilians	unless	you	absolutely	have	to.	Their	whole	way	of	life	will	be	strange
to	 you.	 A	 gesture	 that	 in	 your	 home	 town	 might	 mean	 welcome	 could	 mean	 the	 very
reverse	in	enemy	territory.
Its	not	a	good	idea		ever		to	try	to	disguise	yourself	as	a	native.	Even	if	your	colour
and	 clothes	 dont	 give	 you	 away,	 and	 you	 happen	 to	 speak	 the	 language,	 the	 smallest
gesture	 will	 be	 enough	 to	 show	 an	 experienced	 observer	 that	 youre	 not	 what	 youre
pretending	 to	 be.	 If	 you	 have	 been	 lucky	 enough	 to	 make	 contact	 with	 a	 friendly	 local
group,	be	guided	by	them		but	remember	that	no	conventions	of	war	apply	to	them.	Any
civilian	 found	 helping	 you	 will	 probably	 die	 for	 it.	 Take	 every	 opportunity	 to	 distance
yourself	 from	 your	 helpers.	 If	 you	 have	 to	 travel	 with	 a	 member	 of	 a	 local	 resistance
group,	for	instance,	dont	sit	together.	Arrange	a	system	of	simple	signals	so	that	you	dont
have	to	speak.	Be	ready	to	go	it	alone	at	any	moment,	and	dont	carry	anything	that	could
point	a	finger	of	suspicion	at	anyone	who	might	have	helped	you.	No	names	and	addresses
written	down;	no	marked	maps.	Remember	that	youre	a	representative	of	your	country	
perhaps	 the	 first	 one	 the	 natives	 have	 actually	 met.	 Even	 under	 the	 hardships	 that	 an
evader	must	endure,	its	up	to	you	to	make	a	good	impression.	Remember,	youre	fighting
a	war	that	requires	their	co-operation.
Communicating
If	 you	 do	 get	 the	 chance	 to	 talk	 to	 natives	 and	 feel	 secure	 enough	 to	 ask	 them	 for	 help,
communicating	 is	 going	 to	 be	 a	 big	 problem.	 The	 chances	 are	 you	 wont	 speak	 each
others	language,	so	youll	be	reduced	to	making	signs	and	gestures.	To	make	this	easier,
the	US,	for	example,	issues	each	soldier	with	what	is	known	as	a	Blood	Chit.	A	Blood
Chit	is	an	American	Flag,	printed	onto	cloth,	with	a	message	in	English,	and	all	the	other
languages	you	are	likely	to	come	across	in	the	area	in	which	fighting	is	taking	place.	The
last,	and	most	important	feature	of	the	Blood	Chit	is	a	unique	number	that	identifies	the
person	it	was	issued	to.	The	message	asks	for	help	and	assistance.	It	promises	that	this	will
be	 rewarded.	 Dont	 give	 up	 the	 Blood	 Chit	 itself.	 Anyone	 who	 helps	 you	 will	 get	 their
reward	 just	 by	 quoting	 the	 number.	 Give	 them	 the	 number	 but	 dont	 give	 them	 the	 chit
itself.
Build	them,	for	your	comfort	and	for	camouflage.	Dont	hide	in	caves	or	choose	isolated
cover.	Pick	an	unlikely	spot	that	stands	a	good	chance	of	being	over-looked.	If	possible,
try	to	hide	out	fairly	close	to	a	water	source,	and	go	for	high	rather	than	low	ground.
Once	in	position,	avoid	making	tracks.	Use	the	same	route	in	and	out.	Dont	leave	the
shelter	unless	you	have	to.	Keep	still	and	quiet,	and	stay	alert.	If	you	are	a	smoker,	throw
away	your	cigarettes	so	that	you	are	not	tempted.	Bury	all	refuse,	and	when	you	eventually
move	out,	dont	leave	any	traces	of	your	stay.
After	two	or	three	days	you	might	consider	moving	on.	Before	doing	so,	bear	in	mind
the	 Five	 Ps:	 Prior	 Planning	 Prevents	 Poor	 Performance.	 Decide	 where	 you	 are	 going
and,	if	possible,	plan	on	the	route.	Take	only	what	you	need.	By	now	you	will	have	an	idea
of	what	is	essential.	Conceal	everything	else.	As	always,	use	your	common	sense.	Move
only	at	night	and	avoid	people,	built	up	areas	and	roads.
During	your	trek	across	enemy	terrain	you	could	be	presented	with	an	opportunity	to	hit
at	 the	 enemy.	 You	 will	 definitely	 be	 in	 a	 unique	 position	 to	 observe	 him	 at	 first-hand.
Remember	anything	that	might	be	of	use	to	Intelligence.	This	is	assuming	you	can	pass	on
that	information	within	a	reasonable	span	of	time.
You	may	be	aware	of	an	escape	net	operating	in	the	country	you	are	in.	If	you	manage
to	contact	such	an	organisation	you	will,	initially,	probably	be	treated	with	distrust.	This	is
understandable,	 as	 such	 people	 survive	 by	 being	 extremely	 cautious.	 Once	 contact	 is
made,	be	prepared	to	be	left	alone	while	they	observe	your	reactions.	You	will	probably
then	be	blindfolded	before	being	taken	away	for	questioning.	If	the	escape	organisation	is
satisfied	 by	 your	 replies,	 you	 can	 then	 expect	 them	 to	 help	 you.	 Of	 course,	 the	 enemy
could	impersonate	such	a	group,	so	never	give	away	classified	information,	and	take	care
not	to	implicate	anybody	else.
In	 exceptional	 circumstances	 you	 could	 be	 in	 for	 a	 long	 journey	 before	 reaching	 the
safety	of	a	neutral	country.	You	could	be	shot	down	in	the	middle	of	summer		and	find
yourself	 still	 on	 the	 run	 at	 the	 onset	 of	 winter.	 Your	 trek	 to	 freedom	 could	 take	 months,
even	years.	One	German	paratrooper,	captured	by	the	Russians	during	the	Second	World
War,	took	three	years	to	reach	his	homeland	during	his	escape	from	Siberia!
If	the	prospects	of	a	long	uncomfortable	journey,	fraught	with	danger,	seems	too	grim,
try	to	remember	why	you	should	continue:
			An	evader	is	a	free	man!
			Special	Forces	soldiers	are	rarely	treated	kindly	by	the	enemy	(to	put	it	mildly).
			You	can	re-join	your	unit,	and	carry	on	serving	your	country	the	best	way	you	can.
			You	will	see	your	family	and	friends	again.
			Your	evasion	is	a	victory	over	the	enemy.
And	if	that	is	not	reason	enough,	bear	in	mind	that	according	to	regulations:	Any	person
	shall	be	guilty	of	an	offence	against	the	appropriate	section	if		he		fails	to	take	
any	reasonable	steps	to	re-join	HM	Service	which	are	available	to	him.
In	other	words	it	is	your	duty	to	survive,	to	escape	to	fight	again!
enemy.
If	you	lose	your	Blood	Chit,	report	it	straight	away.	Its	a	very	valuable	document.	If	it
falls	 into	 the	 hands	 of	 the	 enemys	 Intelligence	 Section	 they	 could	 very	 easily	 use	 it	 to
discover	which	members	of	the	local	population	are	likely	to	be	friendly	to	you,	and	this
will	probably	get	them	shot.	It	will	certainly	make	sure	that	no-one	trusts	the	chit		or	you.
It	may	be	possible	for	your	own	people	to	rescue	you,	most	likely	from	the	air.	To	stand
a	 chance	 of	 this	 being	 successful	 you	 must	 know	 the	 standard	 ground-to-air	 distress
signals.	 Dont	 call	 down	 a	 rescue	 attempt	 unless	 you	 are	 absolutely	 sure	 that	 the	 area	 is
safe.	 Remember	 that	 a	 helicopter	 is	 most	 vulnerable	 to	 attack	 when	 its	 taking	 off	 and
landing.	Make	sure	that	any	signals	can	be	removed	or	covered	up	very	quickly	in	case	an
enemy	air	patrol	should	appear.
THE	GO-PACK
Irrespective	of	whether	you	fly	in	a	single-seat	jet	or	a	multi-seat	aircraft,	you	will
always	 carry	 emergency	 survival	 equipment.	 The	 Personal	 Survival	 Pack	 (PSP)
carried	underneath	your	seat	holds	the	bulkier,	heavier	kit.	However,	the	PSP	may
well	get	lost	if	you	are	forced	to	bang	out	(eject)	in	combat.	In	the	event	of	coming
down	behind	enemy	lines	you	may	have	little	or	no	time	to	retrieve	it.
For	this	reason,	all	aircrew	should	carry	a	Go-Pack.	The	official	RAF	version
contains:	 a	 7	 foot	 x	 3	 foot	 polythene	 sleeping	 bag,	 fire-lighting	 kit,	 4	 grips,	 a
compass,	 4	 rubber	 bands,	 an	 instruction	 sheet,	 6	 plastic	 ties,	 one	 5	 foot	 x	 150	 lb
nylon	 cord	 and	 three	 6	 inch	 x	 10	 inch	 polythene	 bags.	 However,	 most	 aircrew
prefer	to	make	up	their	own	Go-Pack		the	contents	of	which	are	often	carried	in	a
container	such	as	an	Emergency	Flying	Ration	tin.	For	those	who	can	afford	a	little
extra	 room,	 a	 container	 measuring	 approximately	 18	 cm	 x	 10	 cm	 x	 4	 cm	 can
accommodate:	 a	 7	 foot	 x	 3	 foot	 sleeping	 bag,	 a	 candle,	 a	 Melinex	 sheet	 (space
blanket),	 fishing	 kit,	 fire-lighting	 kit,	 fire	 blocks,	 a	 compass,	 needles,	 a	 scalpel,
water	 purification	 tablets,	 cotton	 wool,	 nylon	 cord,	 brass	 wire,	 wire	 saw,	 water
carriers	 (i.e.	 unlubricated	 condoms),	 instruction	 sheet	 and	 a	 couple	 of	 Tampax
(ideal	for	fire-lighting).
Urban	Evasion
Urban	evasion,	like	its	rural	equivalent,	varies	according	to	the	climate	and	wealth	of	the
country	you	are	operating	in.	For	example,	a	country	with	strong	family	or	local	loyalties,
or	with	a	restrictive	political	regime,	will	be	harder	to	move	about	in	than	one	in	which
there	is	a	large	floating	population,	a	high	level	of	personal	wealth	and	public	transport
and	 facilities.	 The	 important	 considerations	 will	 be	 the	 sense	 of	 national	 threat	 and
suspicion	that	has	been	generated	by	war.
A	 large	 Western	 city	 can	 be	 a	 very	 anonymous	 place.	 Even	 to	 members	 of	 ethnic
minorities	it	offers	a	level	of	concealment.	Citizens	will	keep	to	themselves	and	as	long	as
your	manner	and	appearance	do	not	attract	attention	you	can	move	fairly	freely.	Always
include	 a	 shaving	 kit	 in	 your	 E	 &	 E	 gear	 	 unshaven	 men	 will	 always	 attract	 attention.
Trains,	 entertainment	 centres,	 etc.	 can	 offer	 protection	 from	 the	 weather	 by	 day	 and
sometimes	by	night:	evasion	is	not	helped	by	standing	around.
Movement	by	day
Generally,	moves	by	day	are	not	a	good	idea,	but	are	sometimes	unavoidable.	If	you	have
to	move	by	day:
1.	Be	confident:	look	as	if	you	know	where	you	are	going,	do	not	loiter	and	do	not
appear	furtive.
2.	Obtain	some	unobtrusive	clothing	and	try	to	assume	a	definite	identity;	e.g.	steal	a
donkey	jacket	and	carry	a	spade.
3.	Keep	clean,	and	shave	if	possible.
4.	If	you	can	get	hold	of	a	bike	you	are	doing	well,	but	assess	the	risk	before	you	steal
it.	Use	public	transport	if	you	are	completely	confident	that	you	know	how	the
system	works.
5.	Keep	away	from	stations	and	bus	terminals.
6.	Rivers	are	an	excellent	escape	route,	but	the	larger	ones	will	be	watched.
7.	Watch	out	for	children	and	dogs.	Children	are	not	bound	by	grown-up	conventions	of
social	behaviour,	and	when	they	see	something	peculiar	they	will	point	it	out	loudly.
Checkpoints
If	you	have	to	pass	through	an	area	covered	by	a	checkpoint,	imitate	the	silhouette	of	the
enemy	 sentries	 as	 far	 as	 possible,	 especially	 headgear,	 which	 is	 a	 common	 recognition
feature.	Learn	at	least	one	phrase	in	the	local	language	along	the	lines	of	Dont	shoot,	you
need	a	look-out	position	and,	most	importantly,	a	place	to	hide.	Many	modern	houses	are
built	to	well-known	specifications;	a	search	team	will	perhaps	have	plans,	or	at	least	have
a	 good	 knowledge	 of	 the	 type	 of	 house.	 Older	 houses,	 on	 the	 other	 hand,	 may	 have
common	 roof	 space	 that	 allows	 you	 to	 move	 from	 house	 to	 house	 in	 a	 run	 of	 terraced
buildings.	Flats	that	have	been	converted	from	larger	buildings	offer	good	hiding	places,
but	may	be	less	sound-proof.
The	 ideal	 hiding	 place	 should	 be	 small	 so	 that	 its	 presence	 does	 not	 detract	 from	 the
space	 or	 comfort	 of	 the	 house.	 However,	 it	 should	 not	 be	 so	 small	 that	 prolonged
occupation	 becomes	 uncomfortable.	 Water	 and	 a	 bucket	 for	 waste	 matter	 are	 the	 basic
priorities,	and	good	ventilation	is	essential.	A	bench	or	seat	is	welcome.	The	walls	of	the
hide	should	be	thick	enough	not	to	sound	hollow.	Various	types	of	sound	insulation	can	be
added	 to	 the	 inside	 to	 give	 the	 impression	 of	 a	 solid	 structure.	 Lay	 in	 a	 store	 of	 simple
foods	that	will	not	deteriorate	over	time	and	which	have	basic	wrappings.
When	you	have	prepared	the	inside	you	should	practise	a	crash-move		getting	into
the	hide	from	a	standing	start	from	somewhere	else	in	the	house	or	flat.	When	you	are
under	 cover,	 the	 householder	 will	 have	 to	 remove	 any	 trace	 of	 your	 presence	 in	 the
building.	 This	 can	 include	 extra	 food,	 and	 plates,	 books	 and	 magazines,	 clothing	 of	 the
wrong	 size	 or	 sex	 and	 even	 the	 extra	 toothbrush	 or	 towel	 in	 the	 bathroom.	 This	 type	 of
concealment	 assumes	 that	 your	 evasion	 is	 assisted	 by	 relatively	 well-paid	 people	 with	 a
circle	of	reliable	contacts.	Such	people	do	not	normally	have	a	traditional	fear	of	authority,
but	neither	do	they	have	the	skills	of	deception	and	concealment.
The	grey	man
The	mid-way	approach	to	evasion	is	to	adopt	the	grey	man	technique.	Here	you	aim	to
have	 as	 anonymous	 an	 appearance	 as	 possible.	 Clothing	 should	 be	 neutral,	 and	 your
behaviour	will	have	to	be	that	of	a	solid	citizen		such	people	do	not	sit	around	in	public
parks	or	search	through	dustbins:	they	are	on	their	way	to	or	from	work.
But	this	can	be	very	tiring,	and	you	will	need	a	good	command	of	the	local	language.
The	 advantage	 is	 that,	 unlike	 the	 vagrant,	 you	 are	 less	 vulnerable	 to	 assault	 by	 other
vagrants	or	bored	members	of	the	enemy	police	force.	Your	travel	through	the	country	is
less	likely	to	be	questioned,	but		and	this	is	critical		you	will	need	the	right	paperwork,
work	 permits,	 identity	 cards,	 even	 documents	 for	 travel	 in	 restricted	 areas	 such	 as	 the
border,	and	you	must	also	have	money.
It	may	be	that	you	can	make	the	transition	from	deep	cover	to	a	grey	man	role.	During
your	time	in	cover	you	will	be	able	to	learn	some	language	and	local	knowledge	before
venturing	out.
Seasonal	advantages
Though	 evasion	 and	 escape	 can	 be	 easier	 in	 the	 country	 in	 spring,	 summer	 and	 early
autumn,	the	city	can	have	attractions	in	the	winter.	The	major	disadvantage	is	that	contact
with	enemy	citizens	or	even	occupying	powers	is	inevitable,	and	this	can	compromise	you.
Jungle Evasion
rifle	where	it	can	be	retrieved	later.	When	you	approach	the	village,	do	so	openly	so	that
they	 have	 plenty	 of	 warning	 and	 will	 not	 be	 forced	 into	 a	 snap	 decision,	 such	 as	 killing
you.	Take	off	your	helmet,	and	bin	anything	that	makes	you	look	like	a	spaceman.	They
are	less	likely	to	kill	you	if	you	look	vaguely	like	them.	Items	such	as	survival	knives	and
water	bottles	or	footwear	will	be	examined;	be	prepared	to	demonstrate	them	in	the	spirit
of	 mutual	 interest	 	 the	 locals	 are	 professional	 hunters	 who	 kill	 to	 live,	 and	 should	 be
extended	respect	and	courtesy.
Village	leaders
It	is	a	fair	bet	that	the	older	men	are	the	village	leaders.	Treat	them	with	respect	and	you
will	ensure	that	the	village	will	respect	you		if	you	are	brash,	threatening,	or	offhand	with
them	you	will	probably	find	enemy	troops	on	your	tail	within	hours	of	your	exit	from	the
village.
Local	hospitality
It	is	worth	remembering	that	not	all	villages	in	remote	rural	locations	or	deep	jungle	see
their	government	as	friendly.	You	may	have	more	in	common	with	them	than	they	with	the
soldiers,	and	a	lost,	perhaps	wounded	and	frightened	man	will	merit	traditional	hospitality
extended	to	any	stranger.	But	do	not	overstay	your	welcome		the	villagers	resources	may
be	limited,	your	presence	will	become	known	through	tribal	gossip	and	sweeps	by	enemy
soldiers	may	pick	you	up.
The	 longer	 you	 stay,	 the	 more	 vulnerable	 you	 make	 the	 villagers	 to	 enemy	 reprisals.
One	night		or	a	brief	stop	-can	always	be	explained	away	to	the	enemy;	they	can	say	you
were	 armed	 and	 threatened	 them.	 If	 you	 stay	 longer	 it	 will	 be	 obvious	 that	 they	 cooperated	with	you.
Respect	for	women
An	important	rule	when	visiting	a	village	is	to	extend	a	dignified	respect	to	the	women	
whatever	their	age.	It	is	very	unlikely	that	they	have	the	same	values	as	your	culture.	If
you	are	in	a	group,	keep	an	eye	on	anyone	who	is	likely	to	breach	the	social	etiquettes.
Disguise	your	route
If	 you	 discuss	 your	 proposed	 route	 with	 the	 villagers,	 do	 not	 tell	 them	 which	 one	 you
decide	on,	and	do	not	leave	in	the	direction	you	intend	to	travel.	Go	west	if	you	plan	to	go
north,	and	change	route	after	you	are	away	from	sight.	The	villagers	may	wish	to	guide
you	on	your	way;	accept	with	gratitude	and	when	they	have	gone	cover	your	tracks.	Even
if	they	have	been	friendly,	they	may	be	naive	people	who	will	subsequently	betray	you.
Capture
If	you	are	captured,	you	are	required	to	tell	the	enemy	only	four	things:	your	name,	rank,
serial	number	and	date	of	birth.	Say	nothing	else.	Dont	refer	to	your	unit	by	name,	dont
talk	 about	 your	 superior	 officers,	 dont	 identify	 the	 leaders	 of	 your	 group.	 The	 smallest
piece	of	information	may	be	useful	to	the	enemy.
Interrogation
To	 the	 army	 on	 the	 move,	 taking	 prisoners	 is	 more	 than	 a	 waste	 of	 time:	 its	 a	 waste	 of
precious	manpower	to	guard	them	and	rations	to	feed	them.	Its	often	only	some	respect
for	the	laws	of	warfare	and	the	fear	that	they	would	be	treated	the	same	way	themselves
that	keep	them	from	shooting	everybody.
To	the	intelligence	specialist,	though,	the	prisoner	is	not	a	waste	of	time.	Hes	precious.
He	may	be	pure	gold.	The	information	about	troop	strengths	and	positions	that	he	has	in
his	 head	 	 perhaps	 not	 even	 realising	 that	 he	 has	 it	 	 could	 be	 the	 difference	 between	 a
battle	lost	and	a	battle	won.	The	US	Army	knows	this,	and	spends	a	lot	of	time	training	its
men	how	to	combat	enemy	interrogation	techniques.	Field	Manual	FM	21-76	is	the	source
for	this	section	on	how	to	get	through	a	hostile	interrogation	while	giving	away	as	little
information	as	possible.
Your	conduct
You	dont	have	to	tell	them	what	branch	of	the	service	youre	from,	though	they	may	be
able	 to	 guess	 that	 themselves	 from	 your	 uniform	 and	 equipment.	 Some	 personnel
traditionally	get	a	hard	time,	notably	members	of	Special	Forces	units	and	fliers.
Try	 not	 to	 get	 noticed	 and	 singled	 out	 for	 interrogation.	 Dont	 exhibit	 bravado	 or
humility.	Just	fade	into	the	background.	Theres	no	point	in	not	being	respectful	and	polite
	 in	 fact,	 to	 behave	 in	 any	 other	 way	 is	 extremely	 stupid.	 It	 will	 only	 earn	 you	 harsher
treatment	and	probably	get	you	beaten	up	and	deprived	of	food.	At	the	same	time,	dont
give	the	interrogator	the	idea	that	you	might	be	willing	to	co-operate.	All	youll	succeed	in
doing	is	prolonging	the	interrogation.
Theres	 a	 world	 of	 difference	 between	 acting	 ignorant	 and	 acting	 dumb.	 The
interrogator	may	say	something	like,	We	know	theres	a	build-up	of	troops	at	such-andsuch	 a	 location.	 Does	 it	 contain	 armour?	 If	 your	 answer	 was,	 I	 dont	 know,	 sir,	 Ive
never	been	in	that	location,	it	sounds	a	lot	more	convincing	than	Piss	off.	But	beware
of	seeming	to	be	trying	to	be	helpful.
Watch	 out	 for	 apparently	 innocent	 enemy	 personnel	 such	 as	 doctors,	 nurses,	 orderlies
and	cleaners.	Never	talk	in	front	of	them:	they	could	well	be	intelligence	agents,	operating
undercover		perhaps	not	even	revealing	themselves	to	other	enemy	agents	on	the	spot.
The	enemy	interrogator	will	be	very	keen	to	turn	you	into	a	collaborator,	too.	The	two
main	methods	are	threats		of	physical	torture	or	death,	to	you	or	to	another	member	of
your	squad	or	promises		and	bribes		of	better	treatment,	medical	attention	for	someone
badly	wounded,	or	almost	anything	else	that	seems	attractive.	After	all,	they	can	promise
you	anything		youre	not	going	to	get	it	anyway.
Tip:	 SAS	 troopers	 are	 taught	 to	 act	 tired	 if	 captured.	 The	 interrogator	 is	 more
likely	to	press	an	alert	man	than	one	seemingly	incapable	of	understanding	through
fatigue.
The	interrogators	skill
The	interrogator	prepares	himself	before	interrogating	his	prisoner:
1.	Intelligence:	The	interrogator	studies	any	information	he	may	have	acquired	from
initial	searches,	overheard	conversations	and	background	material	gleaned	by
intelligence	workers	operating	in	the	captives	own	country.
2.	Weak	or	strong?	He	also	builds	up	a	picture	of	the	POWs	make-up:	is	he	weak	or
strong?	Can	he	take	punishment?	What	gets	to	him?	Is	he	cold	or	emotional?	How
has	he	adjusted	to	POW	life?
3.	Softening-up:	Youll	be	softened	up,	either	by	rough	treatment,	starvation,	thirst,
sensory	deprivation	and	sleeplessness,	or	by	solitary	confinement.	The	interrogator
will	set	up	the	place	where	hell	ask	his	questions	so	that	its	intimidating	and
unfriendly.
4.	Disgrace:	He	will	try	to	destroy	your	confidence	by	disgracing	you	in	the	eyes	of
your	fellow	prisoners	or	your	family	or	comrades	at	home,	or	will	simply	try	to	make
you	feel	ashamed	of	yourself.
5.	Lesser	of	two	evils:	The	captor	will	give	you	a	choice	between	two	evils,	one	of
which	is	less	damaging	than	the	other.	He	knows	that	you	will	choose	the	least
damaging,	and	that	is	the	one	he	can	use	for	his	own	purposes.
6.	The	file:	Your	interrogator	may	start	by	asking	you	a	harmless	question	about
yourself.	If	you	give	a	false	answer	he	checks	his	intelligence	file	on	you	and	gives
you	the	right	one.	You	begin	to	think	this	guy	knows	everything.	Whats	the	use	of
holding	out?	Dont	give	in.	He	is	telling	you	the	little	he	does	know;	if	he	knew
everything	he	wouldnt	have	to	question	you	further.
7.	Hidden	eyes	and	ears:	You	may	have	looked	and	found	nothing,	but	the	enemy	has
probably	bugged	the	camp,	so	watch	what	you	say,	everywhere.
8.	The	silent	treatment:	You	may	be	put	into	solitary	confinement,	or	held	in	a	room
with	an	interrogator	who	says	nothing.	Dont	be	afraid	of	silence:	come	to	terms	with
it.
9.	Repetition	and	monotony:	Your	interrogator	may	ask	you	the	same	question	in	the
same	tone	over	and	over	again.	Let	him:	if	you	get	riled,	hell	win;	if	you	maintain
control,	the	psychological	victory	will	be	yours.
10.	Whats	the	use?	Why	hold	out?	Why	suffer?	You	are	at	our	mercy.	Well	get
the	information	out	of	you	anyhow.	Make	it	easier	on	yourself.	These	are	all
statements	that	you	must	learn	to	resist.
Be	on	guard
As	 well	 as	 trying	 to	 convince	 you	 that	 other	 prisoners	 have	 been	 co-operating,	 your
interrogator	will	try	to	get	information	from	you	about	them	which	in	turn	will	allow	him
to	put	subtle	pressures	on	anyone	you	talk	about	(the	Double	Game).	Dont	give	out	any
information	about	any	of	your	comrades.	Dont	admit	to	being	in	the	same	unit	with	them.
Watch	out	for	false	questionnaires	for	the	Red	Cross,	for	instance.	The	aid	organisations
need	 to	 know	 nothing	 more	 than	 your	 name,	 rank,	 number	 and	 date	 of	 birth.	 Any
information	 you	 provide	 on	 a	 form	 like	 this	 is	 only	 for	 the	 enemy	 intelligence	 officers
use.	Never	make	any	statement	of	any	kind.	Not	in	writing,	nor	spoken,	where	it	might	be
recorded.
Dont	 try	 to	 impress	 the	 interrogator	 by	 boasting	 about	 things	 that	 you	 and	 your	 unit
have	 done,	 whether	 theyre	 true	 or	 not.	 Hes	 not	 going	 to	 let	 you	 go	 because	 you	 make
yourself	out	to	be	some	sort	of	superman!	At	the	same	time,	dont	try	to	deceive	him	by
volunteering	false	information,	no	matter	how	subtly	you	think	you	do	it.	He	knows	the
wide	intelligence	picture	and	will	ask	you	the	same	questions	over	and	over	again,	perhaps
with	 days	 in	 between.	 Hell	 record	 everything	 you	 say,	 and	 look	 for	 differences	 in	 your
answers.	Dont	look	into	the	interrogators	eyes.	You	may	give	away	information	without
meaning	 to.	 Pick	 out	 a	 spot	 between	 his	 eyes	 or	 in	 the	 centre	 of	 his	 forehead	 and
concentrate	on	that.
Once	he	has	you	talking,	it	wont	take	a	skilled	interrogator	long	to	get	the	truth	out	of
you.	Dont	put	yourself	into	a	position	where	you	find	that	youre	having	a	conversation
with	him.	Let	him	do	all	the	talking,	and	limit	your	answers	to	No	and	I	dont	know
anything	about	that.
Never	drop	your	guard.	You	can	be	taken	off	for	further	interrogation	at	any	time,	at	any
hour	of	the	day	or	night.
Try	 to	 win	 a	 victory	 every	 time	 youre	 interrogated,	 no	 matter	 how	 small.	 Having
worked	out	how,	pass	it	on	to	your	fellows,	so	that	they	are	morally	stronger.	The	longer
the	interrogation	goes	on,	the	safer	you	are.	More	prisoners	will	be	arriving	and	needing
your	 interrogators	 time,	 and	 your	 information	 will	 become	 more	 and	 more	 out	 of	 date.
What	 will	 prolong	 the	 nightmare	 is	 your	 partial	 co-operation.	 One	 snippet	 of	 useful
information	 will	 convince	 your	 interrogator	 that	 he	 may	 be	 onto	 a	 good	 thing,	 and	 hell
carry	on	until	he	gets	the	lot,	no	matter	what	it	takes.
Forcing	co-operation
These	are	some	techniques	that	POWs	have	been	subjected	to	in	recent	times.
Torture
Technique:	 extreme	 dislocation	 of	 body	 parts,	 e.g.	 arms,	 legs,	 back,	 etc	 by	 twisting	 or
pulling;	 beating,	 slapping,	 gouging,	 kicking;	 inserting	 foreign	 objects	 such	 as	 bamboo
slivers	under	the	fingernails;	electric	shocks.
Effect:	 crippling;	 partial	 or	 total	 temporary	 or	 permanent	 loss	 of	 use	 of	 limbs	 and
senses;	loss	of	normal	mental	functioning;	extreme	pain;	lowering	or	breaking	of	ability	to
resist	 captors	 demands.	 TORTURE	 IS	 THE	 MAJOR	 MEANS	 OF	 FORCING
COMPLIANCE.
Threats
Technique:	Threats	of	solitary	confinement,	non-repatriation,	death	or	beatings	to	oneself
or	other	POWs;	threats	regarding	future	treatment;	threats	against	family.
Effect:	Unreasonable	anxiety;	loss	of	hope	and	confidence;	despair.
Now	and	then	treatment
Technique:	 Occasional	 favours	 such	 as	 release	 of	 food	 packages	 and	 better	 living
conditions;	promise	of	big	rewards	for	helping	captors.
Effect:	Tempts	the	POW	to	go	along	with	captors;	presents	the	captors	in	a	favourable
light;	makes	resistance	to	questioning	seem	a	bad	idea.
Isolation	or	solitary	confinement
Technique:	 Total	 or	 partial	 isolation	 by	 rank,	 race,	 degree	 of	 compliance,	 etc.	 or	 total
solitary	confinement.
Effect:	 Keeps	 POW	 away	 from	 anyone	 who	 can	 give	 any	 kind	 of	 support,	 moral,
physical	or	psychological.
Hints	that	captors	are	in	full	control	of	everything	in	camp
Technique:	Use	of	information	from	other	sources	to	make	POW	believe	the	captors	know
Surviving	as	a	prisoner
A	prisoner-of-war	camp	can	be	anything	from	a	huge	barbed-wire	compound	holding	tens
of	 thousands	 of	 men	 to	 a	 crude	 shelter	 in	 a	 jungle	 clearing	 and	 one	 or	 two	 men	 in	 a
bamboo	cage.	Once	your	interrogation	is	over	youre	of	very	little	use	to	the	enemy,	unless
he	can	exploit	you	for	political	purposes.	Youre	just	a	drain	on	his	resources.	The	men	he
has	to	use	to	guard	you,	the	food	and	medicines	he	has	to	send	to	keep	you	alive		all	of
these	 could	 be	 better	 used	 on	 the	 battlefield.	 So	 its	 going	 to	 be	 tough.	 The	 US
Government	has	spent	a	great	deal	of	time	and	money	to	find	out	what	gives	its	soldiers
the	best	possible	chance	of	getting	through	a	period	spent	as	a	POW.
Strength	through	unity
No	matter	how	few	of	you	there	are,	you	must	have	an	organisation.	One	man	must	be	in
command.	Chances	are	that	your	captors	will	try	to	force	someone	of	their	choice	on	you.
If	they	try	to	set	up	an	organisation	amongst	the	prisoners,	then	the	best	thing	to	do	is	to
appear	to	go	along.	But	youll	know	who	the	real	Senior	Ranking	Officer	is.	He,	not	the
enemys	puppet,	will	appoint	his	Adjutant,	his	Quartermaster,	his	Welfare,	Education	and
Entertainments	Officers,	and	set	up	the	rest	of	the	POW	infrastructure.
Eat	the	food
You	will	get	less,	worse	and	stranger	food	than	you	have	ever	had		a	poor	version	of	the
stuff	the	enemy	eats.	If	you	are	a	finicky	eater,	get	over	it.	Many	men	have	died	in	a	short
period	 of	 captivity	 because	 they	 could	 not	 adapt	 to	 the	 food	 	 they	 have	 starved
themselves	to	death.
Add	to	your	diet	with	roots,	weeds,	bark,	a	hidden	garden,	animals	or	reptiles.	Ants	and
grasshoppers	are	good	sources	of	protein.	Cat,	dog	and	monkey	meats	are	staples	of	many
diets.
Steal	from	your	captors.	If	your	Senior	Ranking	Officer	approves,	trade	with	the	enemy,
and	share	with	those	POWs	who	need	it	at	least	as	much	as	you	do.	If	its	edible,	eat	it.
The	enemy	knows	that	lack	of	enough	food	or	the	right	kinds	of	food	decreases	mental
and	physical	powers,	making	you	less	able	to	resist	and	easier	to	manipulate.	Therefore	he
will	withhold	food	to	make	you	do	what	he	wants.
Drink	the	water
You	must	drink,	even	though	your	water	smells	bad,	is	dirty	and	is	alive	with	bugs.	Strain
or	purify	it	with	chemicals	or	by	boiling	if	you	can.	Make	a	still	to	obtain	water	or	suck
the	juices	from	fruits.	Tomatoes	are	an	excellent	source	of	fluid.	Catch	rain	or	snow.	If	you
think,	youll	drink;	if	you	panic,	youll	dehydrate.
Exercise	for	survival
Try	to	take	some	sort	of	exercise	every	day.	Keep	up	your	muscle	tone,	but	dont	overdo	it
	you	wont	be	getting	the	proteins	and	carbohydrates	in	your	diet	that	will	allow	you	to
do	strenuous	exercise.
Keep	your	mind	active	too.	Try	to	be	learning	something	new	all	the	time.	If	youre	in	a
large	 camp,	 with	 lots	 of	 other	 people,	 the	 chances	 are	 that	 youll	 be	 able	 to	 learn	 pretty
much	anything	you	can	think	of.	Youll	have	skills	that	others	will	want	to	learn	too.
Play	can	be	just	as	important	as	work.	Not	just	physical	games	and	sports,	though	these
are	very	important,	but	entertainment	of	all	kinds.	Painting	and	drawing	and	writing	need
very	little	in	the	way	of	materials,	and	they	dont	just	keep	you	busy		they	allow	you	to
express	 yourself,	 your	 inner	 thoughts,	 in	 an	 important	 way.	 Remember,	 it	 may	 be	 hard
work	trying	to	stay	fit	and	healthy,	but	its	nothing	compared	to	the	problem	youll	have	if
you	lose	your	health	and	fitness	and	then	have	to	get	it	back	again.	Your	captors	will	like	it
a	lot	better	if	you	just	sit	around	doing	nothing	all	day	and	every	day,	weakening	your	own
morale	and	destroying	your	will	to	stay	awake	and	alive.	Dont	do	it!	Your	life	is	in	your
own	hands.
Join	in
The	men	appointed	to	the	jobs	of	Sports,	Education	and	Entertainments	Officers	will	want
to	set	up	as	many	activities	and	events	as	they	can.	Get	involved	in	them.	It	doesnt	matter
if	youre	not	too	good	at	whatever	it	is		what	matters	most	is	that	you	get	busy	and	active
and	stay	that	way.
The	folks	back	home
Keeping	in	touch	with	your	family	and	friends	is	very	important	for	both	sides.	You	need
to	 know	 youre	 not	 forgotten,	 and	 they	 need	 to	 know	 that	 youre	 as	 safe	 and	 well	 as
possible.
Letters	 and	 photographs	 are	 the	 only	 way	 youll	 be	 able	 to	 keep	 in	 contact,	 and	 the
enemy	 will	 know	 this	 and	 use	 it	 to	 weaken	 you.	 Be	 ready	 to	 share	 your	 letters,
photographs	and	parcels,	if	you	get	them,	with	the	people	around	you.	The	SRO	will	put
someone	in	charge	of	mail,	and	keep	an	accurate	list	of	letters	sent	and	received.
Outgoing	letters	are	often	a	source	of	intelligence	for	the	enemy.	Try	to	restrict	yourself
to	a	brief	note	like	Im	alive	and	well,	and	if	youre	in	any	doubt	about	the	value	to	the
enemy	 of	 something	 you	 want	 to	 say	 in	 a	 letter	 home,	 ask	 the	 SROs	 advice	 	 thats
another	one	of	the	many	things	hes	there	for.
Make	sure	that	you	circulate	any	scraps	of	news	that	you	get	in	your	letters.	The	best
way	 is	 for	 a	 group	 of	 people	 to	 produce	 a	 camp	 newspaper.	 It	 neednt	 be	 more	 than	 a
handwritten	sheet	that	gets	passed	on	from	person	to	person	around	the	camp.	If	thats	not
possible,	then	youll	have	to	do	it	by	word	of	mouth.
Get	one	over
Let	no	chance	go	by	to	get	one	over	on	the	enemy,	and	make	sure	that	everyone	knows
about	every	little	victory.	Give	all	the	guards	and	camp	personnel	nicknames		the	crueller
the	better!	Dont	use	them	to	their	faces,	of	course,	but	in	private	use	every	chance	you
have	to	make	fun	of	them.	Leave	them	in	no	doubt	of	what	you	think	of	them.
Camp	communication
There	are	many	ways	to	communicate	with	other	prisoners.	The	POW	isolation	barrier	and
enemy-imposed	 ban	 on	 communication	 must	 be	 broken.	 If	 you	 can	 see,	 hear	 or	 touch
other	 POWs,	 or	 if	 articles	 are	 brought	 into	 and	 taken	 out	 of	 your	 place	 of	 confinement,
you	can	communicate.
Sign	language
The	 standard	 deaf-mute	 language	 may	 be	 learned,	 but	 it	 is	 difficult.	 There	 is	 a	 simple
variation	that	is	quicker	to	learn,	using	hand	signals.	Either	hand	can	be	used.	Numbers	are
rotated	to	indicate	that	they	are	numbers	and	not	letters.	The	code	uses	the	standard	US
Navy	 hand	 signal	 numbers:	 zero	 is	 shown	 by	 rotating	 the	 letter	 O.	 Let	 your	 hand	 drop
slightly	after	each	series	of	letters	or	words.	To	indicate	I	understand,	the	receiver	may
nod	 slightly	 in	 a	 pre-arranged	 manner.	 Different	 body	 movement	 such	 as	 blinking	 the
eyes,	 flexing	 the	 hands	 or	 arms,	 shrugging	 the	 shoulders,	 etc.,	 	 all	 natural	 and
meaningless	to	the	enemy		can	be	worked	out	in	advance	to	indicate	different	responses.
Tap	codes
The	Morse	code	can	be	learned	quickly.	But	it	has	a	serious	drawback:	it	consists	of	dots
and	dashes	that	sometimes	cannot	be	distinguished.	There	is	a	better	system	that	consists
of	a	square	marked	off	in	25	sub-squares:	5	across	and	5	up	and	down,	with	the	letters	of
the	 alphabet	 in	 the	 sub-squares	 (the	 letter	 K	 is	 not	 used	 because	 it	 sounds	 like	 C).	 The
squares	running	from	left	to	right	are	rows;	the	squares	from	top	to	bottom	are	columns.
Taps	are	used	to	identify	the	letters.	The	first	series	of	taps	gives	the	row;	after	a	short
pause	the	second	series	of	taps	gives	the	column.	The	letter	is	in	the	block	where	the	row
and	column	meet.	To	find	the	letter	O,	for	example,	three	taps	would	designate	the	third
row	(L-M-N-O-P);	a	slight	pause	followed	by	four	taps	would	designate	the	fourth	column
(D-I-O-T-Y);	the	row	and	column	meet	at	the	letter	O.
A	longer	pause	indicates	the	end	of	a	word.	Two	taps	indicate	that	the	word	has	been
received.	A	series	of	rapid	taps	indicates	that	the	word	was	not	received	or	not	understood.
When	a	receiver	has	enough	letters	to	know	what	the	word	is,	he	gives	two	taps	and	the
sender	goes	on	to	the	next	word.	Each	time	the	code	is	broken	by	your	captors	you	can
rearrange	the	letters.
The	methods	of	getting	a	message	across	with	this	code	are	almost	unlimited.	The	code
can	 be	 tapped,	 whistled,	 winked,	 coughed,	 sneezed	 or	 hummed;	 you	 can	 nudge	 the	 guy
next	 to	 you;	 you	 can	 use	 finger	 movements,	 eye	 movements,	 twitches,	 broom	 strokes,
push-ups;	or	you	can	bang	objects	together.
Word	of	mouth
This	 can	 sometimes	 be	 dangerous.	 To	 disguise	 the	 content	 from	 the	 enemy,	 language
variations	 can	 be	 used	 	 subculture	 language	 (street	 language	 of	 minority	 groups),	 for
example,	or	pidgin	English,	ordinary	slang,	etc.
Talking	through	the	wall
Roll	up	a	blanket	in	the	shape	of	a	ring	doughnut	and	put	it	against	the	wall.	Put	your	face
in	the	centre	of	the	doughnut	and	talk	slowly.	The	receiver	puts	his	ear	against	the	wall	on
the	 other	 side	 or	 presses	 the	 open	 end	 of	 a	 cup	 against	 the	 wall	 with	 his	 ear	 against	 the
other	end.
Different	noises
Various	 sounds	 such	 as	 grunting,	 coughing,	 sneezing,	 blowing	 your	 nose,	 whistling	 or
humming	 can	 be	 used	 as	 pre-arranged	 signals	 to	 pass	 messages	 such	 as	 All	 is	 well,
Enemy	around,	Stop,	Go,	etc.
Writing	messages
You	will	not	usually	have	writing	materials	available,	but	you	can	improvise:	use	charred
wood,	 fruit	 juices,	 ashes	 mixed	 with	 any	 fluid,	 etc.	 Use	 any	 pointed	 object	 as	 a	 writing
implement.	 Leaves,	 wood,	 cloth,	 toilet	 paper	 and	 any	 material	 can	 be	 used	 as	 a	 writing
surface.
Mail	deliveries
As	well	as	personal	deliveries,	messages	can	be	left	in	any	hiding-place		latrines,	trees,
rocks,	crevices,	holes,	etc;	the	best	places	are	those	that	the	enemy	would	expect	you	to
visit	 normally.	 The	 hiding-places	 should	 be	 changed	 frequently,	 and	 couriers	 should
deposit	and	collect	their	dispatches	at	different	times.
Escape
The	first	hours
The	best	chances	to	escape	will	come	straight	after	your	capture.	Youll	still	be	close	to
your	 own	 forces,	 and	 so	 youll	 know	 which	 direction	 to	 head	 in,	 and	 you	 may	 even	 be
familiar	with	the	country.	Youll	be	fitter	and	healthier	than	after	any	time	in	captivity,	and
if	you	can	keep	your	wits	about	you,	you	may	be	able	to	take	advantage	of	the	confusion
that	is	usually	to	be	found	just	behind	the	fighting	front,	with	reinforcements	and	re-supply
trying	to	go	forward	and	medevac	and	empty	re-supply	units	trying	to	move	back.
Youll	 be	 in	 the	 hands	 of	 combat	 troops,	 not	 people	 trained	 in	 holding	 prisoners,	 and
their	inexperience	may	give	you	opportunities.	But	at	the	same	time	theyll	be	psyched	up
for	battle,	so	will	probably	shoot	rather	than	ask	questions.	They	might	just	shoot	you	for
the	fun	of	it.
For	all	these	reasons	every	army	has	a	plan	for	dealing	with	prisoners	of	war,	for	getting
them	out	of	the	combat	zone	as	quickly	as	possible,	so	that	they	can	be	interrogated	while
the	information	they	have	about	troop	strengths	and	movements	is	still	worth	something.
The	chances	are	that	if	youre	captured	on	your	own,	or	as	part	of	a	small	group,	you	will
be	 held	 somewhere	 like	 the	 regimental	 command	 post,	 and	 then	 transferred	 to	 the	 rear
echelon	headquarters	run	by	intelligence	security	units,	military	police	or	internal	security
troops.	This	will	not	be	far	from	the	fighting	front.
In	transit
When	 enough	 prisoners	 have	 accumulated,	 youll	 be	 moved	 back,	 being	 kept	 to	 open
country	 and	 avoiding	 towns	 and	 villages.	 The	 enemy	 is	 likely	 to	 be	 short	 of	 motor
transport		or,	at	least,	will	give	a	very	low	priority	to	the	transportation	of	prisoners,	so
you	 may	 well	 find	 yourself	 evacuated	 on	 foot.	 Hell	 be	 short	 of	 personnel,	 too,	 so	 the
POW	column	may	have	too	few	guards,	who	may	even	be	unfit	for	active	duty		walking
wounded	 perhaps,	 themselves	 on	 their	 way	 to	 rear-echelon	 hospitals.	 That	 means	 that
there	will	be	more	chances	to	escape.	If	the	guards	are	placed	at	the	head	and	tail	of	the
column,	as	is	often	the	case,	pass	the	word	through	the	ranks	of	prisoners	to	spread	out	and
make	the	line	of	marching	men	as	long	as	possible.
Keep	the	pace	as	slow	as	you	can.	At	a	bend	in	the	road,	you	may	suddenly	find	that	the
head	and	the	tail	are	out	of	each	others	sight,	which	means	that	men	in	the	centre	of	the
column	can	slip	away	to	either	side	of	the	road	and	get	quickly	into	some	kind	of	cover.
The	 larger	 the	 number	 of	 men	 who	 make	 the	 break,	 the	 greater	 are	 the	 chances	 of	 their
absence	being	noticed	straight	away.	One	or	two	men	missing	probably	wont	be	noticed
until	the	next	head	count	is	made,	and	that	may	not	be	until	the	end	of	the	day.
Take	advantage	of	any	diversion,	too.	Artillery	bombardment	and	attack	from	the	air	or
extreme	weather	conditions,	for	instance,	are	likely	to	cause	a	lot	of	confusion,	and	may
permit	men	to	slip	away	while	the	guards	attention	is	distracted.
If	 youre	 being	 transported	 by	 truck	 out	 of	 the	 combat	 zone,	 you	 will	 probably	 be
moved	by	night.	If	the	guards	are	not	alert	and	you	are	not	locked	inside	the	vehicle,	you
may	get	a	chance	to	jump	for	it	when	the	truck	slows	down		climbing	a	hill,	for	instance,
or	negotiating	a	section	of	damaged	road.	Try	to	sabotage	the	vehicles		put	sugar	or	sand
in	the	petrol,	for	example		so	that	they	are	forced	to	stop.	Once	again,	an	air	raid	may
give	you	the	necessary	cover.
Permanent	POW	camps	are	usually	placed	as	far	away	as	possible	from	the	battlefield
and	from	borders	with	neutral	or	enemy	territory,	so	the	last	move	will	probably	be	made
by	 train.	 Large	 groups	 of	 prisoners	 in	 transit	 are	 usually	 locked	 into	 freight	 cars,	 the
guards	relying	on	the	physical	security	of	the	locked	wagons	to	stop	escape	attempts.	The
conditions	inside	these	cars,	especially	during	a	long	journey	in	the	middle	of	summer	or
winter,	 can	 become	 lethal,	 and	 the	 fact	 that	 youll	 probably	 be	 packed	 in	 very	 tightly
doesnt	 help.	 Even	 so,	 because	 youll	 have	 long	 periods	 without	 observation	 this	 may
provide	your	best	chance.	Try	to	break	though	the	floor,	the	walls	(especially	at	a	window
or	a	ventilator)	or	the	roof.	If	youre	travelling	in	passenger	coaches,	then	you	have	two
other	advantages,	even	though	you	may	have	guards	to	worry	about:	its	much	easier	and
quicker	to	break	out	through	a	window	than	the	solid	sides	of	a	freight	wagon,	and	youll
probably	 be	 able	 to	 communicate	 in	 some	 way	 with	 prisoners	 in	 other	 compartments	 or
even	in	other	carriages.
Dont	 relax	 for	 a	 moment,	 but	 always	 stay	 alert	 to	 any	 possibility,	 because	 you	 never
know	if	youll	ever	get	another	chance.	If	youre	not	in	a	position	to	escape	yourself,	help
others	to	do	so	even	if	it	means	that	youll	be	punished	for	it	later.
In	the	camp
Escaping	 from	 an	 established	 prisoner-of-war	 camp	 is	 a	 much	 more	 difficult	 task	 than
making	a	break	from	a	train	or	from	a	column	of	marching	men.	The	camp	itself	will	have
been	 built	 specifically	 to	 keep	 you	 in:	 barbed	 wire,	 electronic	 surveillance,	 floodlights,
watch	towers,	dogs	and	thermal	imaging	for	tunnel	searches	are	just	some	of	the	weapons
at	 the	 enemys	 disposal.	 And	 even	 if	 you	 do	 succeed	 in	 getting	 out	 of	 the	 camp	 itself,
youre	 still	 faced	 with	 a	 difficult	 and	 dangerous	 journey	 through	 enemy	 territory,	 where
just	your	physical	appearance	may	be	enough	to	give	you	away.
The	escape	committee
Part	 of	 the	 prisoners	 secret	 organisation	 in	 the	 camp	 will	 be	 devoted	 to	 the	 business	 of
escaping.	There	will	be	very	few	ways	of	making	an	escape	from	a	camp,	and	each	time
an	attempt	is	made	it	will	cut	down	those	possibilities	even	further.	The	escape	committee
will	 co-ordinate	 escape	 attempts,	 to	 try	 to	 ensure	 that	 each	 one	 has	 the	 best	 possible
chance	of	success	and	also	set	up	the	infrastructure	that	each	will	need		tools,	diversions,
false	 documents,	 intelligence	 and	 so	 on.	 You	 should	 collect	 and	 hoard	 everything,	 even
useless	articles:	these	will	mask	the	useful	ones	if	you	are	searched	by	camp	guards.	Most
escape	 attempts	 will	 need	 this	 sort	 of	 organisation	 	 but	 that	 doesnt	 mean	 that	 you
shouldnt	go	for	it	on	your	own	if	a	chance	presents	itself	unexpectedly,	perhaps	from	a
labour	party	working	outside	the	camp.
Documents	and	disguises
Before	 you	 get	 too	 far	 in	 your	 escape	 planning,	 you	 have	 to	 think	 how	 youll	 cross	 the
enemy	 territory	 that	 lies	 between	 you	 and	 neutral	 or	 friendly	 forces.	 There	 are	 two
methods:	either	you	try	to	blend	in	with	the	local	population,	or	you	try	to	stay	hidden.	If
you	try	to	fit	in,	youll	need	clothing,	documents,	money	and	at	least	some	knowledge	of
the	language,	all	of	which	will	either	have	to	be	produced	inside	the	camp	or	stolen	once
you	get	outside.
In	 order	 to	 forge	 documents,	 you	 have	 to	 know	 what	 they	 look	 like	 to	 start	 with,	 and
you	must	have	the	right	sort	of	raw	material	available		paper,	inks	and	dyes,	pens	and	so
on,	 not	 to	 mention	 the	 skill	 to	 do	 it.	 And	 as	 magnetic	 encoding	 like	 that	 used	 on	 credit
cards	gets	more	common,	the	chances	decrease	of	producing	forged	documents	that	will
pass	any	sort	of	examination.
The	other	option	is	to	travel	in	secret,	using	your	survival	training	to	keep	out	of	enemy
hands.	In	many	ways	this	is	more	practical.	and	at	least	you	know	where	you	are	when	you
depend	only	on	your	own	skills.
POW	rescue
As	technology	takes	over	from	human	observation	and	scrutiny,	escape	has	become	more
and	more	difficult.	But	what	technology	has	taken	away	with	one	hand	it	has	given	back
with	the	other.	Spy	satellites	and	high-altitude	observation	flights	give	intelligence	officers
a	clear	view	of	every	part	of	the	Earths	surface.	That	means	you	have	a	way	of	signalling
to	your	own	people,	no	matter	where	on	Earth	you	may	be.	Theres	no	need	to	rush	it.	You
can	trace	out	the	letters	of	a	message	in	the	soil	of	a	compound		or	even	stand	around	in
groups	that	shape	the	letter	in	human	bodies		in	such	a	way	that	the	enemy	wont	even	be
aware	that	youre	doing	it.	Make	certain	that	each	arm	of	each	letter	is	at	least	two	metres
long	or	it	might	not	be	seen	from	above.	But	remember,	its	as	likely	to	be	seen	by	enemy
satellites	as	your	own.
You	can	also	signal	to	aircraft,	of	course.	To	attract	the	attention	of	friendly	aircraft	you
need	to	make	a	large	sign	which	will	stand	out:	again,	letters	should	have	arms	of	not	less
than	two	metres.	Alternatively	you	can	send	the	emergency	SOS	signal	in	Morse	code.
Look	around	for	any	useful	material:	stones,	fertilizer	sacks,	anything	that	can	be	arranged
into	 a	 shape	 to	 catch	 the	 pilots	 attention.	 Or	 when	 on	 parade	 in	 POW	 camp,	 form	 your
parade	up	so	that	it	spells	out	the	letters	SOS	as	shown	above.
Once	 your	 position	 has	 been	 identified	 either	 by	 these	 methods	 or	 by	 a	 successful
escaper	being	de-briefed,	a	coded	letter	getting	through,	or	an	enemy	national	selling	the
information,	it	may	be	possible	for	a	rescue	mission	to	be	put	together.	Even	if	youre	four
or	five	hundred	miles	from	the	nearest	friendly	border	or	sea	coast,	your	own	authorities
may	be	able	to	get	a	rescue	force	through.
The	 odds	 on	 a	 successful	 rescue	 will	 be	 a	 lot	 greater	 if	 theres	 a	 channel	 of
communication	from	the	would-be	rescuers	to	you,	and	that	probably	means	coded	radio
messages.	There	have	been	many	cases	of	prisoners	building	radio	receivers	in	camps,	and
here	technology	lends	a	hand	once	again,	modern	radio	receivers	being	small	enough	to	be
easily	hidden	in	all	sorts	of	places.
Avoid	stop-overs
Try	 to	 make	 sure	 that	 you	 have	 a	 direct	 route	 with	 no	 stop-overs	 	 this	 is	 particularly
important	with	the	Middle	East.	Some	airports	have	very	sloppy	security,	and	while	you
may	have	had	a	thorough	search	when	you	boarded	at	your	departure,	other	passengers	at
other	stops	may	board	less	thoroughly	checked.	If	there	is	a	stop-over,	a	walk	around	the
terminal	 will	 get	 you	 away	 from	 the	 vulnerable	 aircraft	 	 some	 terrorists	 have	 boarded
aircraft	disguised	as	cleaners	during	stop-overs,	so	a	stroll	reduces	your	chances	of	being
caught	in	the	hijack.
Be	a	grey	person
Your	dress	and	manner	will	also	make	you	a	target.	In	some	countries	blue	jeans	are	seen
as	Western	clothing,	and	so	are	suspect.	Ex-army	clothing	is	to	be	avoided,	combat	jackets
being	the	most	obvious.	Baggage	also	draws	attention	either	by	its	opulence	or	by	being
service-issue,	for	example	kitbags	or	rucksacks.
Labels	 should	 only	 have	 a	 business	 address,	 and	 the	 baggage	 should	 not	 sport	 hotel
labels	 from	 around	 the	 world	 (incidentally,	 these	 precautions	 also	 reduce	 the	 chance	 of
theft	 at	 airports).	 Jewellery,	 striking	 T-shirts	 and	 obvious	 ethnic	 clothing	 can	 also	 be	 a
liability	 and	 reduce	 your	 ability	 to	 be	 the	 grey	 man,	 a	 neutral	 unnoticed	 among	 the
passengers.
Finally,	your	passport	and	wallet	can	contain	a	goldmine	of	information.	Try	to	avoid
collecting	visa	stamps	from	countries	that	have	a	terrorist	problem		many	countries	will
stamp	entry	and	exit	visas	on	a	separate	piece	of	paper	if	you	ask.	Your	job	description	can
be	 a	 major	 liability	 	 government	 or	 service	 personnel	 are	 seen	 as	 targets	 by	 many
hijackers	and	natural	targets	for	hostage	executions.	Photographs	of	relatives	and	children
are	always	worth	including	in	your	wallet	or	passport.	You	will	be	seen	as	a	family	man	or
woman	 with	 dependents	 and	 thus	 a	 less	 suitable	 person	 for	 execution.	 At	 the	 other
extreme,	the	bathing-costume	picture	of	a	wife	or	girlfriend	may	cast	you	as	a	corrupt	and
decadent	Westerner	in	the	eyes	of	some	hijackers.
Action
If	 the	 worst	 happens	 and	 you	 are	 on	 the	 aircraft	 that	 has	 been	 hijacked,	 follow	 the	 old
army	adage:	Keep	your	eyes	open,	your	mouth	shut	and	never	volunteer	for	anything.
The	last	part	can	be	modified	if	it	allows	you	to	escape.	As	the	hijack	is	taking	place	the
armed	 men	 and	 women	 will	 be	 very	 nervous,	 and	 rapid	 or	 unexpected	 movements	 from
the	passengers	may	produce	violent	reactions.	They	may	assault	you,	note	you	as	a	future
execution	victim,	or	kill	you	as	a	suspected	sky	marshal.
HOW	TO	AVOID	AND	SURVIVE	A	HIJACK
1.	Travel	with	an	airline	that	has	no	or	few	political	enemies.
2.	Do	not	wear	army	or	ex-army	clothing.
3.	Do	not	carry	your	luggage	in	service-issue	kit	bags	or	rucksacks.
4.	If	the	plane	is	hijacked	keep	quiet	and	do	not	draw	attention	to	yourself.
5.	Observe	the	terrorists	activities	very	carefully:	if	you	do	escape	youll	be	able
Keep	cool
If,	however,	the	aircraft	arrives	at	a	neutral	or	friendly	country	where	the	hijackers	can
negotiate,	 the	 advisable	 course	 is	 to	 assess	 the	 situation.	 There	 may	 be	 friends	 of	 the
hostages	at	the	airport	who	will	take	over	the	negotiations	with	a	friendly	power	and	be
more	rational	than	the	men	and	women	who	hijacked	the	aircraft.	In	this	situation,	a	leader
for	 the	 passengers	 may	 emerge;	 he	 could	 be	 the	 pilot	 or	 a	 mature	 and	 experienced
passenger.	Such	a	person	will	be	able	to	make	representations	about	the	health	and	welfare
of	the	passengers.	By	this	stage	the	aircraft	and	passengers	will	have	become	bargaining
counters	and	their	safety	will	be	more	important.
Now	it	may	be	a	time	for	patient	waiting.	If	you	find	you	are	moved	from	the	aircraft	to
hotels	or	holding	areas,	try	to	take	some	hand	luggage	or	toiletries		there	may	be	nothing
when	you	arrive.	Staying	clean	and	presentable	will	also	sustain	your	morale.	The	in-flight
comforts	 will	 stop	 almost	 at	 once	 if	 a	 hijacking	 happens,	 since	 the	 stewardesses	 and
stewards	will	be	seen	as	conduits	for	information	as	they	move	around	the	aircraft.	It	is
advisable	 therefore	 to	 keep	 hand	 luggage	 that	 contains	 simple	 toiletries	 and	 any
medication	you	may	need	ready	to	hand.
For	many	people	hijacks,	like	other	man-made	or	natural	disasters,	are	experiences	that
happen	 to	 other	 people	 and	 are	 reported	 on	 the	 news.	 But	 they	 could	 happen	 to	 almost
anyone,	even	if	they	see	themselves	as	Mr	Average:	they	may	be	on	the	flight	with	an
important	traveller,	or	they	may	just	be	unlucky.
Sweating	it	out
Some	hijacks	are	over	in	hours.	But	others	can	last	for	days,	as	the	aircraft	is	directed	from
international	airport	to	international	airport.	While	in	flight,	the	air-conditioning	will	work
and	the	physical	conditions	will	not	be	too	bad.	On	the	ground,	however,	the	aircraft	will
be	 reliant	 on	 its	 Auxiliary	 Power	 Unit	 (APU),	 and	 so	 it	 can	 become	 hot	 and	 not	 very
comfortable.	 The	 passengers	 discomfort	 will	 be	 one	 of	 the	 bargaining	 counters	 that	 the
hijackers	will	use	as	they	talk	to	the	control	tower.	Lavatories	will	become	blocked,	and
food	will	be	reduced	to	light	snacks	from	the	galley.	Though	the	staff	at	the	control	tower
may	 be	 able	 to	 send	 food	 as	 the	 negotiations	 continue,	 this	 cannot	 be	 relied	 on.	 These
points	will	help	you	to	get	through	a	trying	and	frightening	time.
1.	Avoid	provoking	the	hijackers	by	unnecessary	demands	or	by	eye	contact	that	may	be
seen	as	critical.
2.	If	you	have	hand	luggage	that	can	be	reached	without	creating	problems,	you	may	be
able	to	use	your	sponge	bag	to	keep	clean	and	refreshed.
3.	Eat	any	snacks	or	sweets	you	have	packed,	but	avoid	snacks	that	will	make	you	very
thirsty.
4.	Try	to	contact	your	neighbours	and	take	an	interest	in	them.	It	will	take	your	mind	off
your	own	situation,	and	may	even	enable	you	to	place	some	leverage	on	the	hijackers
	for	instance,	if	your	neighbour	is	sick	or	elderly	he	may	be	evacuated	from	the
aircraft	as	a	humane	gesture.
5.	Contact	with	your	neighbours	will	also	allow	you	to	work	out	any	plan	of	action	that
may	present	itself		thus	the	single	hijacker	may	lay	himself	open	to	attack	by	the
passengers	if	he	turns	his	back	on	them	as	he	moves	along	the	aisles.	If	the	situation
deteriorates	and	an	attack	on	a	hijacker	is	the	only	option,	remember	that	a	tightly
rolled-up	newspaper	makes	a	surprisingly	effective	weapon		jab	the	rolled	end	into
the	hijackers	face.
6.	Avoid	a	rash	attack	on	a	hijacker.	You	may	be	happy	to	be	a	hero,	but	if	you	fail,	the
attack	puts	everyone	at	risk.	Random	shots	may	penetrate	the	fuselage	or	kill	or
injure	passengers.
7.	The	hijackers	may	also	see	the	whole	aircraft	as	a	threat	and	attempt	to	destroy	it	in
revenge.
8.	Attempts	to	disarm	hijackers	should	be	left	to	the	skilled,	experienced	and	brave,	not
the	amateur	and	enthusiastic.
Ever	since	the	series	of	skyjacks	in	the	late	1960s,	anti-terrorist	units	have	been	refining
a	series	of	methods	for	storming	a	plane	on	the	ground.	It	is	not	an	easy	task.	The	terrorists
have	 every	 advantage	 in	 their	 favour:	 they	 usually	 have	 a	 clear	 field	 of	 view	 and	 can
slaughter	the	passengers	in	a	matter	of	moments.	If	you	are	going	to	make	a	rescue	attempt
it	must	be	planned	to	the	last	detail	and	executed	with	split-second	timing.
Ending	a	hijack
In	some	instances	hijackers	have	released	men	and	women	who	are	sick	or	very	young	or
old.	These	people	will	be	vital,	since	they	will	give	information	on	the	hijackers	numbers
and	their	weapons	and	equipment.	They	will	also	provide	more	information	on	their	level
of	 training	 and	 motivation,	 though	 some	 of	 this	 will	 have	 been	 gleaned	 from	 the
conversations	with	the	control	tower.
continuing	discomfort.	Sometimes	the	negotiators	will	be	able	to	talk	the	hijackers	out	of
the	aircraft	with	no	need	to	assault	it,	and	no	loss	of	life.
Losing	patience
However,	once	hijackers	lose	patience	with	the	negotiating	team	and	start	killing	hostages
to	show	they	mean	business,	then	the	assault	team	must	be	ready	to	move	in	fast.	Since
hijackers	are	not	likely	to	have	weapons	with	rifle-calibre	ammunition,	your	team	could
wear	body	armour,	which	will	provide	sufficient	protection:	the	new	lighter-weight	Kevlar
armour	can	be	worn	without	reducing	efficiency.	The	use	of	body	armour	is	also	important
for	the	morale	of	the	assault	team.
New	ammunition
Some	 new	 plastic	 ammunition	 will	 slow	 down	 after	 a	 short	 range,	 but	 is	 lethal	 over	 the
short	 distances	 in	 which	 the	 action	 will	 take	 place.	 Automatics	 with	 large-capacity
magazines	like	the	Browning	High	Power	will	give	enough	ammunition	for	the	short	but
violent	action	that	will	follow	the	entry	into	the	aircraft.	However,	you	should	carry	spare
magazines	where	they	can	be	quickly	loaded	if	there	is	a	sustained	firefight.
NINE	QUESTIONS	THE	ASSAULT	TEAM	MUST	FACE
1.	How	many	hijackers	are	there?
2.	Where	is	each	one	stationed	in	the	aircraft?
3.	What	are	they	armed	with?
4.	Have	they	prepared	any	explosives	to	destroy	the	aircraft?
5.	How	fit	and	motivated	are	the	hijackers?
6.	How	many	passengers	are	aboard,	and	what	is	the	seating	plan?
7.	Can	the	hijackers	be	tricked	into	gathering	together	in	the	cabin	for	a	discussion
Standing	targets
This	is	the	moment	all	your	training	is	for,	when	life	or	death	hangs	on	your	split-second
reactions.	If	Intelligence	managed	to	provide	you	with	photos	of	the	terrorists,	at	least	you
have	some	means	of	identifying	your	target;	if	not,	then	you	must	sweep	through	going	for
anyone	standing	or	armed.
Hostage	survival
Keep	low
As	soon	as	the	action	starts,	slide	to	the	floor	under	your	seat	and	stay	there.	Do	not	move
into	the	aisles:	any	assaulting	troops	will	flatten	you	in	their	rush	to	dominate	the	aircraft.
Obey	all	orders	from	the	assault	team	without	question	or	protest.	Theyll	treat	everyone
as	 potential	 threats,	 so	 youll	 be	 handled	 very	 roughly	 until	 positively	 cleared.	 Tear	 gas
will	 probably	 be	 used,	 so	 bury	 your	 head	 in	 the	 seat	 cushions.	 Do	 not	 rub	 your	 eyes
especially	if	you	wear	contact	lenses.
Non-provocative	stance
Do	not	pick	up	weapons	as	you	flee	the	aircraft		you	may	be	shot	as	a	suspected	terrorist
when	 you	 get	 outside.	 As	 you	 exit,	 fall	 to	 the	 ground	 as	 though	 injured	 with	 your	 arms
outstretched,	and	stay	there	until	instructed	to	move	by	security	forces.
The	 passengers	 can	 be	 removed	 from	 the	 aircraft	 as	 soon	 as	 the	 hijackers	 are	 cleared
from	a	major	exit.	Station	members	of	your	team	by	the	exits	to	make	sure	no	hijackers	try
to	sneak	out	the	same	way	and	to	co-ordinate	the	security	forces	outside	the	aircraft.	There
have	 been	 cases	 when	 escaping	 passengers	 were	 shot	 by	 mistake	 as	 they	 fled	 from	 the
fighting.
when	 Sergeant	 Raymond	 Abbots	 of	 G	 squadron	 was	 killed,	 brought	 in	 a	 new	 training
practice	in	which	the	anti-terrorist	team	fires	at	virtual	life-size	terrorists	imaged	on	to
bullet-absorbent	walls	in	the	Killing	House.
In	any	hostage-rescue	situation,	the	anti-terrorist	team	has	a	veritable	arsenal	of	special
weapons	and	equipment.	Essentially,	kit	falls	into	three	types:	protective	clothing	for	the
SAS;	 devices	 to	 ensure	 quick	 breaking-and-entering;	 plus	 weaponry	 to	 eliminate	 the
terrorists.
SAS	 anti-terrorist	 troopers	 wear	 clothing	 that	 keeps	 out	 bullets,	 fire,	 smoke	 and	 gas.
Almost	 total	 protection,	 in	 other	 words.	 As	 standard	 issue	 comes	 the	 black	 assault	 suit
made	 from	 flameproof	 Arvex	 SNX	 574	 material,	 with	 the	 knee	 and	 elbow	 joints
reinforced	 by	 retardant	 Pantotex	 felt,	 enabling	 the	 wearer	 to	 crawl	 over	 hot	 and	 jagged
surfaces.	Extra	protection	comes	from	flameproof	gloves	and	underwear.	To	keep	out	the
bullets,	 troopers	 wear,	 over	 the	 assault	 suits,	 Kevlar	 assault	 vests	 and	 hard	 armour
consisting	of	contoured	ceramic	composite	plates.	This	body	armour	is	designed	to	defeat
all	 5.56	 mm	 and	 7.62	 mm	 rounds.	 A	 CT-12	 respirator,	 meanwhile,	 not	 only	 looks	 Darth
Vader-menacing,	 it	 filters	 out	 (through	 carbon	 and	 wool	 sieves)	 gas	 and	 smoke,	 while
communication	 is	 enabled	 by	 mini-earphones	 and	 a	 microphone.	 Other	 standard-issue
assault	clothing	includes	a	ballistic	helmet	and	an	assault	belt	rig,	made	of	leather,	to	carry
personal	weaponry.
If	an	SAS	rescue	is	ordered,	entry	into	the	building,	aircraft,	train	or	bus	commandeered
by	the	enemy	is	by	any	means	possible		as	long	as	its	fast.	The	quicker	the	SAS	can	get
to	the	terrorists,	the	greater	the	chance	of	saving	the	hostages.	The	best	entrance	of	all	is
the	 surprise	 one	 that	 lands	 the	 SAS	 right	 on	 top	 of	 the	 terrorists,	 thus	 dramatically
reducing	the	latters	ability	to	act.
To	 force	 doors,	 the	 SAS	 employs	 everything	 from	 mini	 hydraulic	 battering-rams	 to	 a
hefty	kick	of	the	boot.	Remington	870	pump-action	shotguns	loaded	with	Hatton	rounds
are	 sometimes	 used	 to	 blow	 off	 door	 locks,	 and	 if	 the	 door	 wont	 open	 then	 another
American	import	is	used		on	the	windows.	This	is	the	hooligan	bar,	a	metre-long	metal
bar	which	smashes	out	most	of	the	window,	with	a	pronged	end	that	then	removes	debris.
Explosives	are	usually	avoided,	because	of	the	danger	of	blast	damages	to	hostages		who
are	exactly	the	people	the	SAS	are	trying	to	save.	Even	so,	frame	charges	have	found	their
place	 in	 SAS	 operation	 (one	 was	 used	 to	 blow	 in	 the	 French	 windows	 of	 the	 Iranian
Embassy).	 Much	 the	 most	 effective	 means	 for	 a	 hole-in-the-wall	 entry	 is	 the	 so-called
Harvey	Wallbanger.	This	is	a	wall-breaching	cannon	that	uses	compressed	air	to	fire	a
water-filled	plastic	projectile.	The	projectile	breaches	the	wall,	but	as	soon	as	it	has	done
so	its	energy	is	dissipated	and	it	falls	harmlessly	to	the	ground.
Whatever	mode	of	entry	is	employed,	the	anti-terrorist	soldiers	go	into	the	building	or
transport	in	pairs.	One	trooper	moves,	while	the	other	gives	cover.	Backs	are	protected	and
a	wide	arc	of	fire	is	maintained.	On	closing	with	the	terrorists	and	the	hostages,	a	shouted
warning	is	given	by	the	SAS	to	the	hostages	to	lie	down.	Anyone	who	remains	standing,
anyone	who	is	armed	or	threatening,	will	be	shot	on	sight.	In	the	event	of	a	firefight	with
the	terrorists,	the	SAS	then	uses	its	superior	firepower.
The	true	superiority	of	SAS	firepower	lies	in	the	calibre	of	the	men	selected	for	the	SAS
and	 the	 training	 they	 receive.	 Even	 so,	 the	 calibre	 of	 SAS	 weaponry	 is	 unlikely	 to	 be
matched	by	that	of	the	terrorists.	The	main	weapon	of	the	SAS	anti-terrorist	soldier	is	the
Heckler	&	Koch	MP5	sub-machine	gun,	although	the	Heckler	&	Koch	Personal	Defence
Weapon	began	to	be	deployed	on	operations	in	2002.	The	PDW	is	capable	of	firing	950
rounds	a	minute	and,	with	armour-piercing	bullets,	can	cut	through	more	than	20	layers	of
Kevlar.
SMGs	are	by	no	means	the	only	weapons	of	the	anti-terrorist	trooper.	Strapped	to	the
leg	 of	 the	 assault	 team	 member	 is	 a	 Browning	 9	 mm	 Hi-Power	 pistol.	 This	 is	 a	 semiautomatic	pistol	which	holds	13	rounds	in	its	magazine.	Members	of	the	SAS	anti-terrorist
unit	 can	 fire	 all	 13	 rounds	 in	 under	 3	 seconds	 	 an	 annihilating	 rate	 of	 fire.	 Also	 to	 the
regiments	liking	is	the	Hi-Powers	reliability	and	simplicity:	it	works	even	when	covered
in	brick	dust	and	can	be	stripped	and	reassembled	in	seconds.	The	only	real	contender	for
the	title	of	SAS	Pistol	of	Choice	is	the	Swiss	SIG-Sauer	P226	which,	according	to	tests
done	by	the	Canadian	Mounties,	has	a	malfunction	rate	as	low	as	0.007.
One	more	piece	of	the	SAS	hostage-rescue	armoury	deserves	special	mention.	This	is
the	stun	grenade,	which	was	developed	by	Royal	Ordnance	Enfield	at	the	specific	request
of	the	SAS.
The	stun	grenade	when	detonated	produces	160	decibels	of	noise	and	300,000	candlesworth	 of	 light	 	 and	 anyone	 close	 by	 is	 immobilized	 for	 nearly	 four	 seconds	 but	 not
irreparably	 damaged.	 The	 magic	 ingredients	 are	 magnesium	 powder	 and	 fulminate	 of
mercury.	The	official	name	of	the	stun	grenade	is	the	G60.	SAS	troopers	know	it	by	the
appropriate	nickname	of	flash-bang.
APPENDIX:
SPECIAL	FORCES	UNITS	OF	THE
WORLD
ARGENTINA
Agrupacin	de	Buzos	Tcticos,	APBT,	The	Tactical	Divers	Group
Main	special	operations	force	of	the	Argentine	Navy.	Based	at	Base	Naval	Mar	del	Plata
(BNMP),	 the	 Buzos	 Tcticos	 was	 the	 first	 Special	 Forces	 division	 created	 in	 South
America;	 the	 unit	 was	 established	 in	 1952	 with	 instructors	 who	 were	 former	 X-MAS
Italian	divers.
Operations
There	 is	 some	 evidence	 that	 undercover	 Buzo	 Tctico	 personnel	 accompanied	 the
Argentinian	scrap	metal	merchants	who	took	over	South	Georgia	on	19	March	1982.	Later
in	the	Falklands	conflict	a	Buzo	Tctico	detachment,	landed	by	the	submarine	Sante	F,
recced	and	secured	the	Yorke	Bay	beaches.
AUSTRALIA
Special	Air	Service	Regiment	(SASR)
Established	in	1954	as	1st	Special	Air	Service	Company,	the	unit	was	expanded	to	three
sabre	squadrons	in	1964,	when	it	simultaneously	gained	regimental	status	as	the	Special
Air	 Service	 Regiment.	 Officially	 abbreviated	 to	 SASR,	 but	 usually	 known,	 like	 the
British	unit	that	inspired	it,	as	the	SAS.	The	SASR	motto,	like	that	of	the	GB	SAS	is	Who
Dares	Wins.	Under	the	direct	command	of	the	Australian	Special	Operations	Command,
the	 SASR	 is	 based	 at	 Campbell	 Barracks	 in	 Swanbourne,	 Perth,	 Western	 Australia.
Current	 strength:	 four	 squadrons	 of	 about	 75	 operators,	 each	 divided	 into	 three	 troops
(Water	Troop,	Land	Troop,	Free-Fall).	A	signal	squadron	(152)	is	attached.
BELGIUM
Special	Forces	Group
Traces	 its	 origin	 to	 the	 1942	 Belgian	 Independent	 Parachute	 Company,	 commanded	 by
Captain	 E.	 Blondeel;	 this	 later	 became	 the	 Belgian	 SAS	 Squadron.	 The	 lineage	 of	 the
Special	 Forces	 Group	 back	 to	 the	 Belgian	 SAS	 is	 somewhat	 tortuous	 (if	 not	 tenuous),
though	 some	 of	 the	 significant	 way-stops,	 in	 chronological	 order,	 are	 the	 SOE	 (Special
Detection	Unit),	the	ESR-GVP	(Specialized	Reconnaissance	Teams),	disbanded	in	1994;
the	new	LRRP,	which	had	a	relationship	with	its	predecessor;	and	was	in	turn	disbanded	in
2000	 to	 become	 the	 1st	 Company	 Special	 Forces.	 This	 was	 re-organized	 in	 2003	 as	 the
Special	Forces	Group.	Insignia	is	that	of	the	British	SAS,	the	flaming	sword;	mottoes	are
Who	Dares	Wins,	Far	Ahead	and	Never	Surrender.	In	its	various	incarnations	has
been	deployed	in	the	Congo	in	1964	(where	it	rescued	European	hostages),	Zaire	in	197879,	Rwanda	in	1990	and	1994,	and	Somalia	in	1993.
CANADA
Joint	Task	Force	2	(JTF2)	(Deuxime	Force	oprationnelle	interarmes,	FOI	2)
Principally,	though	not	exclusively,	a	counter-terrorist	unit,	which	was	established	in	1993
in	 the	 wake	 of	 the	 closure	 of	 the	 Royal	 Canadian	 Mounted	 Polices	 Special	 Emergency
Response	 Team.	 Members	 are	 mainly	 drawn	 from	 Princess	 Patricias	 Canadian	 Light
Infantry	 and	 the	 Canadian	 Airborne	 Regiment.	 The	 units	 strength	 is	 600	 personnel;	 the
motto	is	Facta	Non	Verba	(Deeds	Not	Words).	JTF2	has	been	deployed	in	Bosnia,	Haiti,
Iraq,	Rwanda,	Libya	and	Afghanistan.	The	unit	was	awarded	a	Presidential	Unit	Citation
by	the	US	government	for	service	in	Afghanistan	as	part	of	Task	Force	K-Bar.	Recognised
as	 Canadas	 premier	 Special	 Forces	 unit.	 The	 other	 units	 JTF2	 serves	 alongside	 in	 the
Canadian	Special	Operations	Forces	Command	are	the	Canadian	Joint	Incident	Response
Unit,	 427	 Special	 Operations	 Aviation	 Squadron	 and	 the	 Canadian	 Special	 Operations
Regiment.
FRANCE
GIGN	 (Groupement	 dIntervention	 de	 la	 Gendarmerie	 Nationale)	 Formed	 in	 1973	 and
essentially	 a	 counter-terrorist	 unit,	 drawn	 from	 the	 Gendarmerie	 Nationale,	 whose
hostage-rescue	 operations	 have	 included	 the	 release	 of	 30	 French	 school	 children	 at
Djibouti	(1976),	regaining	the	Grand	Mosque	in	Saudi	Arabia	(1979),	the	liberation	of	229
passengers	and	crew	from	Air	France	8969	in	Marseille	(1994),	and	operations	involving
the	arrest	of	war	criminals	in	Bosnia.
GERMANY
GSG-9	(Grenzscutzgruppe-9)
Formed	 in	 the	 wake	 of	 the	 Black	 September	 attack	 on	 Israeli	 athletes	 at	 the	 Munich
Olympic	Games	of	1972,	GSG-9	is	a	counter-terrorist	unit	drawn	from	the	para-military
police	force.	75%	of	applicants	are	rejected.	Celebrated	for	its	rescue	of	hostages,	held	by
the	Red	Army	Faction,	from	a	Lufthansa	707	in	Mogadishu,	October	1977;	code-named
Operation	Fire	Magic,	it	was	the	GSG-9s	first	real	test.
At	 1	 p.m.	 on	 13	 October	 1977,	 Lufthansa	 flight	 LH181	 had	 lifted	 off	 from	 Majorcas
Palma	 airport,	 with	 86	 passengers	 and	 5	 crew,	 and	 headed	 towards	 its	 destination,
Frankfurt.	It	never	made	it.	Shortly	after	take-off	four	terrorists,	two	men	and	two	women,
had	broken	into	the	flight	deck	and,	with	pistols	smuggled	aboard	in	their	hand	luggage,
threatened	 the	 pilot,	 Captain	 Jrgen	 Schumann	 and	 his	 co-pilot	 Jrgen	 Vietor.	 The
terrorists	 	 Zohair	 Youssif	 Akache	 (aka	 Captain	 Martyr	 Mahmoud),	 Suhaila	 Sayeh,
Wabil	Harb	and	Hind	Alameh		were	a	joint	cell	of	the	Popular	Front	for	the	Liberation	of
Palestine	and	the	Red	Army	Faction	called	the	Martyr	Halimeh	Commando	Unit.	They
demanded	the	release	of	eleven	members	of	the	Red	Army	Faction,	together	with	a	$15
million	 ransom.	 A	 haphazard	 flight	 across	 the	 skies	 of	 Europe,	 the	 Middle	 East	 and	 the
Horn	 of	 Africa	 ensued,	 as	 the	 skyjackers	 sought	 a	 safe	 haven	 for	 their	 commandeered
plane.	Meanwhile,	the	West	German	Chancellor,	Helmut	Schmidt,	approached	Britain	for
help	 	 specifically	 as	 to	 whether	 22	 SAS	 would	 aid	 GSG-9	 in	 a	 hostage-rescue.	 Major
Alastair	Morrison,	then	second-in-command	of	22	SAS,	and	Sergeant	Barry	Davies,	one
of	 the	 Regiments	 counter-terrorism	 experts,	 were	 duly	 dispatched	 to	 Dubai,	 where	 the
GSG-9	 team	 was	 assembling	 and	 where	 the	 hijacked	 plane	 was	 about	 to	 land.	 Morrison
and	Davies	took	a	box	of	flash-bangs,	the	SAS-invented	magnesium-based	concussion
grenades,	with	them.	In	Dubai,	they	found	GSG-9	commander	Ulrich	Wegner	and	two	of
his	men	under	virtual	arrest.
No	sooner	was	this	problem	sorted	out	than	the	hijacked	aircraft	flew	on	to	the	Republic
of	 Yemen.	 There	 the	 terrorists	 leader,	 Mahmoud,	 killed	 the	 captain	 of	 the	 airliner,
Schumann,	 for	 communicating	 with	 the	 security	 forces.	 The	 wild	 goose	 flight	 set	 off
again,	 the	 Lufthansa	 Boeing	 now	 proceeding	 to	 Somalia	 on	 17	 October,	 with	 co-pilot
Vietor	 in	 the	 control	 seat.	 Shortly	 after	 landing,	 the	 terrorists	 threatened	 to	 blow	 up	 the
aircraft	unless	all	their	demands	were	met.	They	then	threw	Schumanns	body	down	onto
the	runway	of	Mogadishu	airport.	Short	of	erecting	a	sign	saying	We	Mean	Business	the
terrorists	could	not	have	been	more	obvious	in	their	implacability.	There	was	now	no	real
possibility	of	a	peaceful	outcome,	short	of	conceding	every	one	of	the	terrorists	demands.
As	a	ruse	to	gain	some	time	for	the	GSG-9	team	to	organize	themselves,	negotiators	told
the	 terrorists	 that	 eleven	 Red	 Army	 Faction	 members	 were	 being	 released.	 Even	 as	 this
misinformation	 was	 being	 fed	 to	 the	 terrorists,	 the	 main	 body	 of	 the	 GSG-9	 team	 was
flying	in	from	Turkey,	and	Wegner,	Morrison	and	Davies	were	thrashing	out	the	plan	to
storm	the	airliner.	The	operation	was	codenamed	Fire	Magic		Feuerzauber.	At	1	a.m.
on	 18	 October,	 GSG-9	 assembled	 for	 the	 assault,	 and	 the	 teams	 snipers	 moved	 into
position.	Morrison	and	Davies	prepared	their	fireworks.	Thirty	minutes	later	the	twentytwo-man	assault	team	began	creeping	forward	half-crouched,	off	the	edge	of	the	runway
directly	 behind	 LH181.	 This	 was	 the	 aircrafts	 blind	 spot.	 To	 divert	 the	 attention	 of	 the
hijackers	leader,	Captain	Mahmoud,	the	control	tower	engaged	in	intense	conversation
about	the	fictitious	release	of	the	Red	Army	Faction	members;	while	Mahmoud	was	on	the
radio	 the	 assault	 ladders	 were	 erected	 against	 the	 Boeings	 metal	 body.	 Morrison	 and
Davies	 climbed	 cautiously	 on	 to	 the	 wings	 on	 either	 side	 of	 the	 aircraft,	 and	 the	 three
GSG-9	teams	climbed	to	the	emergency	doors.	At	2.07	a.m.		twenty-three	minutes	before
Mahmouds	final	deadline		an	oil	drum	was	rolled	onto	the	runway	in	front	of	the	aircraft
and	 set	 alight.	 While	 two	 of	 the	 terrorists	 rushed	 forward	 into	 the	 cockpit	 to	 see	 the
diversionary	 pyrotechnics,	 there	 was	 a	 massive	 blinding	 flash,	 courtesy	 of	 the	 SAS	 men
who	threw	their	flash-bangs	over	the	emergency	exit	and	cockpit.
In	 almost	 the	 same	 second,	 GSG-9	 troopers	 entered	 the	 aircraft	 via	 the	 rear	 starboard
door,	and	shot	a	bewildered	female	terrorist.	The	terrorist	leader,	Mahmoud,	was	quicker
on	 the	 uptake	 and	 rolled	 two	 grenades	 from	 the	 cabin	 towards	 the	 first	 class	 passenger
lounge,	where	they	exploded	with	a	dull	thud,	though	miraculously	caused	little	damage.
Inside	 the	 aircraft,	 recalled	 Barry	 Davies,	 gunfire	 rattled	 up	 and	 down	 the	 aircraft	 for
what	seemed	a	lifetime.
In	the	mayhem,	no	one	saw	the	terrorist	Soraya	dive	into	a	rear	toilet,	from	where	she
began	shooting.	She	was	wounded	and	incapacitated	by	a	return	of	fire.	With	the	rear	of
the	 aircraft	 secure,	 the	 fighting	 centred	 on	 the	 cockpit.	 It	 was	 soon	 over.	 Mahmoud	 was
stitched	by	an	MP5	burst,	and	Wegner	shot	the	last	terrorist	in	the	head	with	a	pistol.
As	 the	 joint	 GSG-9SAS	 team	 had	 calculated,	 the	 passengers,	 strapped	 to	 their	 seats,
were	 below	 the	 line	 of	 fire.	 Save	 for	 the	 fragments	 of	 white	 metal	 from	 Mahmouds
grenades	 which	 caused	 minor	 injuries	 to	 stewardess	 Gabriele	 Dillmann,	 two	 passengers
and	 one	 GSG-9	 operative	 there	 no	 friendly	 casualties.	 Hurriedly,	 the	 passengers	 and
crew	 were	 disembarked	 and	 escorted	 to	 the	 passenger	 lounge.	 Major	 Morrison,	 Davies,
recalled,	 was	 particularly	 courteous	 to	 one	 of	 the	 eleven	 German	 beauty	 queens	 who
happened	 to	 be	 amongst	 the	 passenger	 complement.	 Of	 the	 hijackers,	 Mahmoud	 died	 of
his	wounds,	leaving	Suhaila	Sayeh	as	the	sole	terrorist	survivor.
Watching	the	operation	from	the	control	tower	was	the	German	Minister	of	State,	Herr
Wischnewski.	 Immediately	 the	 assault	 was	 confirmed	 as	 successful	 by	 Wegner	 radioing
the	 code	 Frhlingszeit!	 Frhlingszeit!	 (Springtime!	 Springtime!),	 Wischnewski	 in
turn	 radioed	 the	 West	 German	 capital,	 Bonn:	 Tell	 the	 world	 Germany	 has	 done	 it,	 the
jobs	done.	It	was.
Other	missions	include	the	1993	arrest	of	RAF	terrorists	Birgit	Hogefeld	and	Wolfgang
Grams.
Current	strength	250	operatives.
ISRAEL
Sayeret	Maktal
See	pp6470.
NEW	ZEALAND
SAS	(NZSAS)
Established	in	June	1955	as	an	unconventional	warfare	unit,	and	almost	entirely	modelled
on	the	British	SAS,	down	to	the	beige	beret	and	the	motto	Who	Dares	Wins.	The	unit
has	 seen	 action	 in,	 among	 other	 theatres:	 Malaya,	 Borneo,	 Indonesia,	 Vietnam	 and
Afghanistan	 (for	 which	 it	 received	 a	 US	 Presidential	 Citation).	 Based	 in	 Auckland,	 the
NZSAS	was	granted	regimental	status	in	2013,	and	currently	comprises	HQ,	A,	B,	D,	E
and	Support	Squadrons.
POLAND
JW	 GROM	 (Jednostka	 Wojskowa	 GROM	 im.	 Cichociemnych	 Spadochroniarzy	 Armii
Krajowej)
Formed	in	1990,	principally	as	a	counter-terrorist	unit,	although	its	missions	in	practice
have	 been	 broader	 in	 scope;	 in	 Afghanistan,	 for	 instance,	 it	 has	 been	 tasked	 with
reconnaissance,	and	in	Iraq	it	was	detailed	to	seize	infrastructure	objectives.	Of	the	former
Communist	countries,	Polands	GROM	is	the	preferred	working	partner	of	most	Western
Special	Forces.
RUSSIA
CIS
Special	Forces	are	by	no	means	exclusive	to	the	Western	powers.	The	Soviet	Union	had	a
number	of	elite	units	in	the	army,	navy	and	marine	branches	of	the	military.	These	have
resurfaced	in	the	new	CIS,	the	confederation	of	countries	containing	many	of	the	former
component	republics	of	the	USSR.
Spetsnaz,	 the	 Soviets	 special-purpose	 troops,	 came	 under	 the	 direction	 of	 the	 GRU
(Main	Intelligence	Directorate)	and	consisted	of	16	Spetsnaz	brigades,	four	Spetsnaz	naval
brigades,	 4l	 independent	 Spetsnatz	 companies	 and	 the	 Spetsnaz	 regiments	 	 the	 latter
being	 available	 for	 senior	 commanders	 to	 use	 as	 the	 situation	 demanded.	 In	 peacetime,
Spetsnaz	numbered	some	30,000	men	in	the	event	of	war	or	crisis;	those	ranks	could	be
expanded	to	150,000.	The	conscript	collecting	centres	took	in	newcomers	twice	a	year		in
the	winter	period	or	the	summer	period.	Your	birthday	dictated	which	one	you	attended,	as
you	were	liable	for	service	immediately	after	your	eighteenth	birthday.	Women	were	not
subject	 to	 compulsory	 military	 service,	 but	 were	 selected	 through	 the	 Communist	 social
and	youth	organisations,	KOMSOMOL	and	DOSAAF,	if	they	were	interested	in	joining
the	Armed	Forces.	At	the	centre,	the	conscript	was	interviewed,	and	his	allegiance	to	the
Communist	 cause	 was	 evaluated	 along	 with	 his	 wider	 suitability	 for	 Special	 Forces.
Selection	was	of	a	similar	nature	and	calibre	to	that	for	the	SAS	and	Delta.	Among	other
tests,	 Spetsnaz	 candidates	 were	 faced	 with	 a	 5	 km	 ski	 course	 (to	 be	 completed	 in	 26-29
minutes),	alongside	the	familiar	endurance	runs.
Successful	 candidates	 were	 divided	 out	 among	 the	 various	 Spetznaz	 units,	 with	 the
crme	 de	 la	 crme	 going	 to	 the	 KGB	 and	 the	 GRU-controlled	 Alpha	 unit,	 a	 counterterrorist	force	founded	in	1974;	many	recruits	ended	up	in	the	naval	Spetsnaz	which,	with
1,300	men	(and	an	unknown	number	of	women)	was	the	largest	amphibious	Special	Force
in	the	world.	The	brigade	was	the	basic	Spetsnaz	unit,	comprising	400-1,300	men,	divided
into	otrady	of	about	200	men.	Patrols	were	usually	a	four-man	unit.
The	 Spetsnaz	 were	 well	 blooded	 in	 Afghanistan,	 where	 they	 exploited	 the	 carrying
capacity	 of	 the	 MIL	 MI.26	 Halo	 helicopter,	 probably	 the	 heaviest,	 most	 powerful
helicopter	 in	 the	 world.	 The	 first	 Spetsnaz	 units	 in	 action	 were	 from	 Alpha	 and	 the	 socalled	anti-VIP	companies	(euphemisms	for	assassination	units),	and	proved	themselves
to	be	as	murderous	as	their	job	title	suggested.	Alpha	is	generally	credited	with	being	the
unit	that	attacked	the	Presidential	palace	in	Kabul,	Afghanistan,	on	December	28	1980	and
murdered	 President	 Hafizullah	 Amin	 and	 his	 family.	 Spetsnaz	 were	 known	 to	 kill	 their
own	wounded	rather	than	let	them	fall	in	the	hands	of	the	enemy.	Follow-up	units	from
Army	Spetsnaz	took	the	war	to	the	Mujahideen	in	the	mountains.
Following	the	collapse	of	the	USSR	and	the	birth	of	the	CIS,	Spetsnaz	continued	much
as	they	always	had	done,	though	in	the	years	of	churn	they	tended	to	be	passed	around
from	 one	 military	 force	 to	 another.	 Eventually,	 the	 FSB	 (Federalnaia	 sluzhba
bezopasnosti,	 Federal	 Security	 Service)	 took	 over	 Alpha,	 but	 only	 after	 it	 had	 been
under	the	control	of	three	other	agencies,	including	the	police.
Alpha,	whose	strength	is	estimated	at	300	operatives,	continues	to	be	the	Russian	unit
closest	in	type	and	spirit	to	the	SAS	and	Delta;	like	those	units	it	has	found	itself	used	as	a
fire-brigade,	 performing	 missions	 well	 outside	 its	 original	 remit:	 it	 was	 heavily
committed	in	both	the	First	and	Second	Chechen	Wars	of	the	1990s.
UNITED	KINGDOM
22	SAS
Formed	in	1941	as	L	Detachment	(see	p48);	has	two	associated	territorial	units,	21	SAS
and	23	SAS.
Much	 of	 the	 purpose	 and	 point	 of	 the	 post-War	 SAS	 was	 given	 by	 Brigadier	 J.M.
Calvert	in	a	1945	document	Future	of	SAS	Troops:
We	 all	 have	 the	 future	 of	 the	 SAS	 at	 heart,	 not	 merely	 because	 we	 wish	 to	 see	 its
particular	survival	as	a	unit,	but	because	we	have	believed	in	the	principles	of	its	method
of	operations.	Many	of	the	above-named	officers	have	had	command	of	forces	which	have
had	a	similar	role	to	that	of	the	SAS,	as	well	as	being	in	the	SAS	at	one	time.	The	object	of
this	investigation	is	to	decide	whether	the	principles	of	operating	in	the	SAS	manner	are
correct.	If	they	are	correct,	what	types	of	units	should	undertake	operations	of	this	nature,
and	how	best	to	train	and	maintain	such	units	in	peace,	ready	for	war?	I	will	not	start	now
by	writing	about	the	principles	of	SAS,	which	have	been	an	intrinsic	part	of	your	life	for
the	past	few	years,	but	I	will	mention	what	I	think	are	some	of	the	most	important	points
which	need	bringing	out.	The	best	way	to	do	this	is	to	consider	the	usual	criticisms	of	the
SAS	type	of	force.
1.	The	Private	Army:	From	what	I	have	seen	in	different	parts	of	the	world,	forces	of
this	 nature	 tend	 to	 be	 so-called	 Private	 Armies,	 because	 there	 have	 been	 no	 normal
formations	 in	 existence	 to	 fulfil	 this	 function	 	 a	 role	 which	 has	 been	 found	 by	 all
commanders	to	be	a	most	vital	adjunct	to	their	plans.	It	has	only	been	due	to	the	drive	and
initiative	 of	 certain	 individuals	 backed	 up	 by	 senior	 commanders	 that	 these	 forces	 have
been	formed	and	have	carried	out	their	role.
2.	 The	 taking-up	 of	 Commanders	 valuable	 time:	 This	 has	 often	 been	 necessary
because	it	has	very	often	only	been	the	Comds	of	armies	who	have	realized	the	importance
of	operations	of	this	nature,	and	to	what	an	extent	they	can	help	their	plans.	The	difficulty
has	 been	 that	 more	 junior	 staff	 officers	 have	 not	 understood	 the	 object	 or	 principles	 of
such	 forces.	 They	 have	 either	 given	 us	 every	 help	 as	 they	 have	 thought	 us	 something
rather	wonderful,	or	they	have	thought	we	were	a	bloody	nuisance.	I	feel	that	the	best
way	 to	 overcome	 this	 is,	 that	 once	 the	 principle	 of	 the	 importance	 of	 Special	 Raiding
Forces	operating	behind	the	vital	points	of	the	enemys	lines	is	agreed	to,	it	should	become
an	 integral	 part	 of	 the	 training	 of	 the	 army	 at	 the	 Staff	 College,	 military	 colleges,	 and
during	 manoeuvres,	 etc.	 Students	 should	 be	 asked	 not	 only	 what	 orders	 or	 directors	 or
requests	they	have	to	give	to	the	artillery,	engineers,	air,	etc.,	but	also	what	directives	they
would	give	to	their	raiding	forces.	There	should	be	a	recognized	staff	officer	on	the	staffs
of	senior	formations	whose	job	it	is	to	deal	with	these	forces,	i.e.	the	equivalent	of	a	CRE
or	CRA.	This	should	also	be	included	in	the	text	books	FRS,	etc.
3.	These	forces,	like	airborne	forces,	are	only	required	when	we	pass	to	the	offensive,
which		judging	by	all	previous	wars		is	when	the	regular	army	has	been	nearly	wiped
out	 in	 rearguard	 actions	 whilst	 the	 citizen	 army	 forms,	 i.e.	 about	 3	 years	 after	 the
beginning	 of	 the	 war.	 The	 answer	 here,	 I	 feel,	 is	 that	 it	 is	 just	 when	 we	 are	 weak
everywhere	that	forces	of	this	nature	are	the	most	useful,	and	can	play	a	most	vital	part	in
keeping	the	enemy	all	over	the	world	occupied.	Also,	there	is	little	difference	between	the
roles	 of	 SAS	 and	 Auxiliary	 Forces	 who	 duck	 when	 the	 enemys	 offensive	 rolls	 over
them	and	then	operate	against	the	enemys	L	or	C	from	previously	constructed	bases.	An
SAS	 formation,	 by	 its	 organization	 and	 training,	 is	 ideally	 suited	 to	 operate	 in	 this
defensive	role.
4.	Overlapping	with	SOE	and	other	clandestine	organizations:	My	experience	is	that
SOE	and	SAS	are	complementary	to	each	other.	SAS	cannot	successfully	operate	without
good	intelligence,	guides,	etc.	SOE	can	only	do	a	certain	amount	before	requiring,	when
their	operations	become	overt,	highly	trained,	armed	bodies	in	uniform	to	operate	and	set
an	example	to	the	local	resistance.	SOE	are	the	white	hunters	and	produce	the	ground
organization	 on	 which	 SAS	 operates.	 All	 senior	 officers	 of	 SOE	 with	 whom	 I	 have
discussed	this	point	agree	to	this	principle.
5.	SAS	is	not	adaptable	to	all	countries.	This	has	already	been	proved	wrong.	SAS	is
probably	more	adaptable	to	changes	of	theatres	than	any	regular	formation.
Also,	as	I	have	said	in	4	above,	SAS	work	on	the	ground	organization	of	SOE.	It	is	for
SOE	to	be	a	world-wide	organization	with	an	organization	in	every	likely	country.	Then
when	necessary,	SAS	can	operate	on	this	organization	using	their	guides	and	intelligence
knowledge,	etc.
6.	 Volunteer	 units	 skim	 the	 regular	 units	 of	 their	 best	 officers	 and	 men.	 Volunteer
units	 such	 as	 SAS	 attract	 officers	 and	 men	 who	 have	 initiative,	 resourcefulness,
independence	of	spirit,	and	confidence	in	themselves.	In	a	regular	unit	there	are	far	less
opportunities	 of	 making	 use	 of	 these	 assets	 and,	 in	 fact,	 in	 many	 formations	 they	 are	 a
liability,	 as	 this	 individualistic	 attitude	 upsets	 the	 smooth	 working	 of	 a	 team.	 This	 is
especially	 true	 in	 European	 warfare	 where	 the	 individual	 must	 subordinate	 his	 natural
initiative	so	that	he	fits	into	a	part	of	the	machine.	Volunteer	units	such	as	the	Commandos
and	Chindits	(only	a	small	proportion	of	the	Chindits	were	volunteers	although	the	spirit
was	 there)	 have	 shown	 the	 rest	 of	 the	 army	 how	 to	 fight	 at	 a	 time	 when	 it	 was	 in	 low
morale	due	to	constant	defeat.	A	few	gladiators	raise	the	standard	of	all.	Analogies	are
racing	(car,	aeroplane,	horse,	etc.),	and	test	teams.
7.	Expense	per	man	is	greater	than	any	other	formation	and	is	not	worthwhile.	Men
in	 units	 of	 this	 nature	 probably	 fight	 three	 or	 four	 times	 more	 often	 than	 regular	 units.
They	 are	 always	 eager	 for	 a	 fight	 and	 therefore	 usually	 get	 it.	 If	 expense	 per	 man	 days
actually	in	contact	with	the	enemy	was	taken	into	account,	there	would	be	no	doubt	which
was	the	more	expensive	type	of	formation.	I	have	found,	as	you	will	have	done,	the	old
familiar	 faces	 on	 every	 front	 where	 we	 have	 seen	 trouble.	 I	 consider	 the	 expense	 is
definitely	 worth	 it	 without	 even	 taking	 into	 account	 the	 extra	 results.	 One	 SAS	 raid	 in
North	Africa	destroyed	more	aeroplanes	in	one	day	than	the	balloon	barrage	did	during	six
years	of	war.
8.	 Any	 normal	 battalion	 could	 do	 the	 same	 job.	 My	 experience	 shows	 that	 they
definitely	 cannot.	 In	 Norway	 in	 1940,	 a	 platoon	 of	 marines	 under	 a	 sergeant	 ran	 away
when	 left	 on	 its	 own,	 although	 they	 had	 orders	 to	 stay,	 when	 a	 few	 German	 lorries
appeared.	Mainly	owing	to	the	bad	leadership	of	this	parade-ground	sergeant,	they	were
all	jittery	and	useless	because	they	were	out	of	touch.	A	force	consisting	of	two	Gurkha
Coys	and	a	few	British	troops,	of	which	I	was	one,	was	left	behind	in	1942	in	Burma	to
attack	the	enemy	in	the	rear	if	they	appeared.	The	Commander,	a	good	Gurkha	officer	with
a	good	record,	when	confronted	with	a	perfect	opportunity	(Japs	landing	in	boats	onto	a
wide	 sandy	 beach	 completely	 unaware	 of	 our	 presence),	 avoided	 action	 in	 order	 to	 get
back	 to	 his	 Brigade	 because	 he	 was	 out	 of	 touch	 and	 could	 not	 receive	 orders.	 By
avoiding	action,	the	unit	went	into	a	waterless	area	and	more	perished	this	way	and	later
by	 drowning	 than	 if	 he	 had	 attacked.	 My	 experience	 with	 regular	 battalions	 under	 my
command	in	Burma	was	that	there	were	only	three	or	four	officers	in	any	battalion	who
could	be	relied	on	to	take	positive	action	if	they	were	on	their	own,	and	had	no	detailed
orders.	This	Ill	ave	to	ask	me	Dad	attitude	of	the	British	Army	is	its	worst	feature	in
my	opinion.	I	found	the	RAF	and	dominion	officers	far	better	in	this	respect.	I	have	not
had	experience	with	the	cavalry.	They	should	also	be	better.	Perhaps	cavalry	could	take	on
the	SAS	role	successfully?	I	admit	that	with	training	both	in	Burma	and	North	Africa	there
were	definite	improvements	amongst	the	infantry,	but	in	my	opinion,	no	normal	battalion	I
have	seen	could	carry	out	an	SAS	role	without	80%	reorganization.	I	have	written	frankly
and	have	laid	myself	open	to	obvious	criticism,	but	I	consider	this	such	a	vital	point	I	do
not	 mind	 how	 strongly	 I	 express	 myself.	 I	 have	 repeated	 this	 for	 five	 years	 and	 I	 have
nowhere	seen	anything	to	change	my	views,	least	of	all	in	Europe.	I	have	mentioned	some
points	above.	You	may	not	agree	with	my	ideas	but	I	write	them	down	as	these	criticisms
are	 the	 most	 normal	 ones	 I	 know.	 Other	 points	 in	 which	 the	 DTI	 wants	 to	 obtain
information	are:
1.	Obtaining	of	recruits.	Has	anybody	got	the	original	brochure	setting	out	the	terms
and	standards	required?
2.	Obtaining	of	stores	and	equipment.	Here	again,	I	imagine	SOE	has	been	the	main
source	of	special	stores.	My	own	HQ	is	producing	a	paper	on	this	when	in	England.
3.	Signal	communication.	This	is	of	course	one	of	the	most	important	parts	of	such	an
organization	and	it	has,	as	in	other	formations,	limited	the	scope	of	our	operation.
4.	Foreign	recruits	and	attached	civilians.
5.	Liaison	with	RAF	and	Navy.
6.	Command.	How	is	an	organization	of	this	sort	best	commanded	and	under	whom
should	they	be?
7.	Suggestions	re.	survival	in	peacetime	including	auxiliary	formation,	command,
technical	development,	etc.	You	may	expect	a	communication	from	Lt	Col	Wigham.
Please	give	your	views	quite	candidly.	They	certainly	need	not	agree	with	those	I
have	written	down.	I	am	sending	Lt	Col	Wigham	a	copy	of	this	letter	so	that	it	may
give	you	something	to	refer	to	if	necessary.	I	hope,	from	the	army	point	of	view,	and
for	all	that	you	have	worked	for	and	believed	in	during	the	last	few	years,	that	you
will	do	everything	you	can	to	help	Lt	Col	Wigham	to	obtain	all	the	information	that
he	requires.	We	can	no	longer	say	that	people	do	not	understand	if	we	do	not	take	this
chance	to	get	our	views	put	before	an	impartial	tribunal	whose	task	it	is	to	review
them	in	the	light	of	general	policy,	and	then	make	recommendations	to	the	CIGS.
Send	along	any	reports	or	documents	you	have	got.	Lt	Col	Wigham	is	thirsting	for
information.
[Mike	Calvert]	Brigadier,	Commander,
SAS	Troops	Sloe	House,	Halstead,	Essex.	12	Oct	1945
possible	measure	to	ensure	that	US	forces	were	thoroughly	briefed	and	were	able	to	profit
from	the	valuable	lessons	that	had	been	learned	by	earlier	SAS	deployments	into	Western
Iraq.	 I	 am	 completely	 convinced	 that	 had	 US	 forces	 not	 received	 these	 thorough
indoctrinations	 by	 SAS	 personnel	 US	 forces	 would	 have	 suffered	 a	 much	 higher	 rate	 of
casualties	 than	 was	 ultimately	 the	 case.	 Further,	 the	 SAS	 and	 US	 joint	 forces	 the
immediately	 merged	 into	 a	 combined	 fighting	 force	 where	 the	 synergetic	 effect	 of	 these
fine	 units	 ultimately	 caused	 the	 enemy	 to	 be	 convinced	 that	 they	 were	 facing	 forces	 in
Western	Iraq	that	were	more	than	tenfold	the	size	of	those	they	were	actually	facing.	As	a
result,	 large	 numbers	 of	 enemy	 forces	 that	 might	 otherwise	 have	 been	 deployed	 in	 the
eastern	theater	were	tied	down	in	western	Iraq.
5.	 The	 performance	 of	 22d	 Special	 Air	 Service	 (SAS)	 Regiment	 during	 Operation
Desert	 Storm	 was	 in	 the	 highest	 traditions	 of	 the	 professional	 military	 service	 and	 in
keeping	 with	 the	 proud	 history	 and	 tradition	 that	 has	 been	 established	 by	 that	 regiment.
Please	 ensure	 that	 this	 commendation	 receives	 appropriate	 attention	 and	 is	 passed	 on	 to
the	unit	and	its	members.
H.	NORMAN	SCHWARZKOPF
General,	US	Army	Commander	in	Chief
1992-2004:	Bosnia,	as	part	of	NATO	intervention.
1993:	Texas:	the	Waco	siege.
2000:	 Sierra	 Leone,	 including	 Operation	 Barras,	 rescue	 of	 captured	 members	 of	 the
Royal	Irish	Regiment.
2001-present:	Afghanistan,	including	Operation	Trent	attack	on	Al-Qaeda	opium	plant,
and	attempt	at	Tora	Bora	to	capture	Bin	Laden.
2003-present:	Iraq,	including	joint	black	operations	with	Delta	Force	(and	others)	as
part	 of	 Task	 Force	 Black/Task	 Force	 Knight,	 reputed	 to	 have	 captured	 or	 killed	 3,500
insurgents.
2011-present:	Libya.
unit	 at	 its	 specialist	 camp	 at	 Athlit	 in	 Palestine	 was	 gruelling,	 including	 many	 hours
instruction	in	the	use	of	folboats	and	Greek	caiques.
The	Greek	island	of	Simi,	occupied	by	the	Germans	in	1941,	was	a	favourite	stompingground	 of	 the	 British	 Special	 Boat	 Squadron	 during	 the	 Second	 World	 War.	 The	 SBS
raided	 Simi	 	 even	 controlled	 it	 temporarily	 	 on	 numerous	 occasions.	 As	 a	 result,	 the
Wehrmacht	was	forced	to	strengthen	the	islands	garrison	with	troops	diverted	from	other
fronts.	 It	 is	 estimated	 that	 as	 many	 as	 181,000	 German	 troops	 were	 tied	 down	 by	 the
actions	 of	 the	 250-strong	 SBS	 against	 Simi	 and	 the	 other	 Aegean	 islands.	 A	 memorable
picture	of	the	havoc	the	SBS	wrought	on	Simi	was	left	by	SBS	member	John	Lodwick,	in
his	book	The	Filibusters:
The	 Simi	 operation	 had	 been	 considered	 for	 some	 time,	 but	 as	 long	 as	 the	 enemy
possessed	 destroyers	 in	 the	 Aegean	 it	 had	 never	 looked	 practicable.	 Destroyers	 can
interfere	with	landing	operations,	even	at	long	range	and	at	short	notice.	At	the	beginning
of	 the	 year,	 there	 had	 been	 four	 destroyers	 in	 the	 Eastern	 Mediterranean.	 Only	 very
gradually	were	they	eliminated.
The	German	navy	in	those	waters	seldom	put	to	sea.	In	March,	one	of	these	ships	was
damaged	 by	 a	 British	 submarine.	 Later,	 a	 second	 received	 a	 bomb	 amidships	 from	 a
Beaufighter.	 Two	 remained	 lurking	 in	 Leros.	 In	 this	 emergency,	 Brigadier	 Turnbull
requested	 London	 to	 send	 him	 out	 a	 small	 party	 of	 Royal	 Marine	 Boom	 Commando
troops.	A	wise	move,	for	though	there	were	still	many	men	in	the	SBS	to	whom	folboating
was	second	nature,	the	art	of	infiltration	by	canoe	had	undoubtedly	declined	since	the	days
of	Tug	Wilson.	Folboats,	when	used	at	all,	were	now	used	to	land	personnel,	their	role
being	no	more	aggressive	than	that	of	a	gondola.
When	Turnbulls	marines	first	arrived	in	the	Middle	East	the	experts	were	inclined	to
scoff.	 Their	 attitude	 of	 condescension	 was	 abandoned	 when	 it	 was	 seen	 with	 what
precision	 the	 newcomers	 handled	 their	 craft.	 In	 mid-June	 they	 went	 into	 Portolago
Harbour,	Leros,	crossed	two	booms,	sank	the	surviving	destroyers	with	limpet	charges	and
emerged	without	loss.
The	way	was	now	clear	for	Simi.
On	6	July	Stewart	Macbeth	returned	to	base.	He	had	made	a	personal	reconnaissance	of
the	island	and	pinpointed	the	enemy	dispositions.	Two	days	later	the	striking	force,	under
Brigadier	Turnbull	himself,	comprising	ten	motor	launches,	two	schooners,	81	members	of
the	 SBS	 and	 139	 from	 the	 Greek	 Sacred	 Squadron,	 were	 concentrated	 in	 Penzik	 Bay,
Turkey,	 under	 camouflage.	 Three	 parties	 were	 constituted:	 Main	 Force,	 under	 the
Brigadier	with	Lapraik	deputizing;	West	Force,	under	Captain	Charles	Clynes;	and	South
Force,	under	Macbeth.	On	the	night	of	13	July	the	landings	were	made,	and	despite	great
enemy	vigilance,	passed	everywhere	unobserved.	The	only	casualties	suffered	consisted	of
two	Greek	officers	who	fell	into	the	water	with	heavy	packs.	They	were	drowned.
The	approach	marches	were	difficult,	but	all	three	forces	were	lying	up	and	overlooking
their	targets	before	dawn.	At	first	light	a	barrage	was	opened	upon	Simi	Castle		the	main
Enemy	stronghold		by	mortars	and	multiple	machine-guns.	Two	German	Ems	barges
which	had	left	harbour	a	few	minutes	before	zero	hour	now	came	scuttling	back.	They	had
sighted	the	force	of	five	British	launches	which	was	coming	in	to	bombard	the	castle.	Both
motor	launches	and	the	SBS	opened	fire	on	these	ships.	Presently,	large	white	flags	could
be	 seen	 waving	 from	 their	 bridges	 before	 they	 ran	 ashore	 and	 were	 captured	 in	 good
working	order.
Stud	 Stellin	 was	 clearing	 Molo	 Point.	 He	 had	 taken	 his	 first	 objective	 without
opposition.	 Ahead	 of	 him,	 Germans	 were	 running	 up	 the	 hill	 to	 man	 their	 machine-gun
posts.	I	took	a	shot	with	my	carbine,	said	Stud,	but	misfired.	I	therefore	called	upon
Private	 Whalen	 to	 give	 them	 the	 works.	 We	 strolled	 in	 with	 grenades,	 and	 I	 think	 that
everybody	went	a	little	mad.	Soon,	all	the	enemy	were	either	down	and	dead,	or	up	and
waving	their	hands.	Stellin	locked	these	prisoners	in	a	church,	left	a	sentry	outside	it	and
moved	on	to	his	next	objective.
Clynes,	scheduled	to	attack	gun	positions,	gave	them	three	minutes	softening	from	his
Brens	 and	 then	 ordered	 his	 Greeks	 to	 charge.	 All	 I	 can	 remember,	 then,	 he	 said,	 is	 a
general	surge	up	the	slope	and	two	small	and	pathetic	white	handkerchiefs	waving	at	the
top	of	it.	I	ordered	a	Cease	fire	all	round,	and	began	to	count	my	prisoners.
By	 0900	 hours,	 Main	 Force	 Headquarters	 and	 the	 Vickers	 machine-gun	 and	 mortar
troops	had	advanced	to	within	800	yards	of	the	castle.	Fire	was	intensified	upon	this	target
from	all	sides,	mortar	projectiles	crashing	on	the	battlements	and	nine-millimetre	tracers
searching	every	embrasure.	The	enemy	reaction	was	spirited	and	indicated	that	they	had
by	 no	 means	 abandoned	 hope.	 Stellin,	 moving	 his	 patrol	 to	 clear	 some	 caique	 yards,
received	most	of	the	attention.	The	stuff	started	to	whizz	about.	We	had	to	cross	a	bridge.
Somebody	in	the	castle	had	a	very	accurate	bead	on	that	bridge.	We	doubled,	but	LanceCorporal	Roberts,	Private	Majury	and	Marine	Kinghorn	became	pinned	down	under	a	low
parapet,	the	slightest	movement	causing	fire	to	be	brought	upon	them.	I	told	them	to	stay
there		They	did.	They	were	not	able	to	get	up	until	the	castle	surrendered	three	hours
later.	 Roberts,	 who	 attempted	 to	 while	 away	 the	 time	 by	 lighting	 a	 cigarette,	 raised	 his
head	an	inch	or	two.	He	received	a	bullet	graze	from	the	temple	to	the	neck.
Clynes	had	also	been	sent	down	to	the	caique	yard	with	orders	to	clear	it.	On	the	way	he
met	 Lieutenant	 Betts-Gray,	 who	 throughout	 the	 action	 did	 excellent	 liaison	 work.	 BettsGray	 was	 hugging	 the	 rocks,	 pursued	 by	 a	 hail	 of	 fire.	 Clynes	 and	 his	 patrol	 were
presently	pinned	down	in	their	turn.	Private	Bromley	was	hit	in	the	arm,	and	Betts-Gray,
who	had	had	miraculous	escapes	all	day,	in	the	buttocks	once,	and	in	the	back	twice,	was
assisted	into	a	house	and	put	to	bed.
To	the	south,	Macbeth	and	Bury,	with	their	forces,	had	assaulted	a	monastery	position
after	 considerable	 mortar	 preparation.	 The	 surviving	 enemy	 were	 driven	 down	 a
promontory	 towards	 the	 extremity	 of	 the	 island,	 where	 Macbeth	 called	 upon	 them	 to
surrender.	The	first	demand,	written	by	Bob	Bury,	was	rejected	haughtily	by	the	defenders
as	illegible.	It	was	rewritten	with	the	aid	of	a	young	Greek	girl,	who	volunteered	to	carry	it
through	the	lines.	This	civilian	armistice	commission	was	successful	and	thirty-three	more
of	the	enemy	laid	down	their	arms.
Around	the	castle,	the	situation	had	developed	into	a	stalemate,	with	mortar	fire	causing
the	 garrison	 casualties	 and	 discomfort,	 but	 not	 sufficient	 in	 itself	 to	 bring	 about	 their
surrender.	 Neither	 Brigadier	 Turnbull	 nor	 Lapraik	 considered	 that	 the	 position	 could	 be
taken	by	direct	assault.	They	decided	to	consolidate,	make	the	maximum	display	of	force
at	 their	 disposal	 and	 institute	 surrender	 parleys.	 Accordingly,	 Brigadier	 Turnbull	 sent	 a
German	 petty-officer,	 commanding	 one	 of	 the	 Ems	 barges,	 up	 under	 escort,	 with
instructions	to	inform	the	enemy	that	they	were	completely	surrounded,	that	the	rest	of	the
island	was	in	British	hands,	and	that	further	resistance	on	their	part	was	as	senseless	as	it
was	likely	to	prove	costly.
The	 petty-officer	 returned	 an	 hour	 later.	 It	 appeared	 that	 the	 enemy	 were	 prepared	 to
talk	business.	Lieutenant	Kenneth	Fox,	a	German	speaker,	now	returned	to	the	castle	with
the	same	man.	A	further	hour	elapsed	during	which	the	only	incident	was	the	emergence
of	 a	 party	 of	 Italian	 carabinieri	 from	 the	 stronghold,	 weeping,	 and	 waving	 a	 Red	 Cross
flag.	I	thought	I	recognized	one	of	these	fellows,	said	Lapraik,	and	sure	enough	it	was
the	old	rascal	who	had	given	us	so	much	trouble	during	our	previous	occupation	of	Simi.
He	grew	very	pale	when	he	saw	me	
Lieutenant-Commander	 Ramseyer,	 the	 naval	 liaison	 officer,	 was	 then	 sent	 up	 to
expedite	matters.	He	found	Fox	and	the	German	Commander	in	agitated	conference	and
himself	 in	 imminent	 danger	 from	 our	 mortar	 fire.	 At	 last,	 the	 capitulation	 was	 arranged
and	 the	 garrison	 marched	 out.	 They	 had	 barely	 been	 collected	 and	 counted	 when	 three
Messerschmitts	flew	over	the	port	and	dropped	anti-personnel	bombs.
Too	 bad,	 the	 German	 Commander	 is	 reported	 to	 have	 said,	 shaking	 his	 head.	 You
see,	thats	what	comes	of	being	late.	I	thought	they	had	forgotten	about	us.	I	radioed	for
them	five	hours	ago.	Prisoners	taken	in	this	action	totalled	151,	of	whom	seventeen	were
wounded.	 Twenty-one	 Germans	 and	 Italians	 had	 been	 killed.	 The	 SBS	 and	 Sacred
Squadron	 losses	 were	 as	 usual	 microscopic,	 and,	 apart	 from	 the	 two	 Greek	 officers
drowned,	not	a	single	man	was	killed.	Six	were	wounded.
As	 soon	 as	 the	 Messerchmitts	 had	 disappeared,	 tea	 was	 taken	 by	 both	 armies	 in	 the
caique	yards.	Sausages	were	fried	and	an	ox,	provided	by	the	delighted	population,	roasted
on	 a	 bowsprit.	 As	 for	 the	 prisoners,	 they	 were	 so	 delighted	 to	 find	 themselves	 treated
deferentially	instead	of	being	shot	out	of	hand,	that	they	revealed	the	existence	of	many	a
cache	 of	 wine	 in	 their	 living-quarters.	 Bottles	 were	 transferred	 to	 the	 SBS	 packs,	 to	 be
drunk	at	base.
Meanwhile,	Lapraik,	Macbeth,	and	Stellin,	well	known	on	the	island,	were	borne	to	the
town	 hall,	 where	 many	 speeches	 were	 made.	 The	 town	 jail	 was	 thrown	 open	 to	 the
accompaniment	of	a	furore	which	would	have	done	credit	to	the	storming	of	the	Bastille.
Unfortunately,	 only	 one	 prisoner	 was	 found	 inside	 and	 he,	 a	 Fascist,	 refused	 to	 be
liberated.
I	admired	these	islanders,	said	Lapraik,	intensely;	for	they	well	knew	that	we	could
not	 remain	 and	 were	 rightly	 apprehensive	 of	 reprisals.	 But	 this	 did	 not	 diminish	 in	 any
way	 their	 enthusiasm,	 though	 they	 were	 aware	 that	 hostile	 eyes	 were	 watching	 them,
recording	every	incident.	In	the	end,	we	caused	them	immense	relief	by	taking	the	fifteen
foremost	quislings	away	with	us.
General	demolitions	were	begun	by	Bill	Cumper	and	installations	as	varied	as	75	mm
gun	 emplacements,	 diesel	 fuel	 pumps	 and	 cable-heads,	 received	 generous	 charges.
Ammunition	and	explosive	dumps	provided	fireworks	to	suit	the	occasion.	In	the	harbour,
nineteen	German	caiques,	some	displacing	as	much	as	150	tons,	were	sunk.	At	midnight
the	 whole	 force	 sailed,	 the	 prisoners	 being	 crowded	 into	 the	 two	 Ems	 barges.	 Stellin,
with	his	patrol	and	Captain	Pyke,	Civil	Affairs	Officer,	remained	behind	as	rear	party,	with
instructions	 to	 report	 subsequent	 events	 on	 Simi,	 and	 to	 distribute	 nearly	 thirty	 tons	 of
food	which	had	been	brought	in	for	the	relief	of	the	civilian	population.
The	German	reaction	was	as	expected,	and	followed	the	traditional	pattern	of	attempted
intimidation	preceding	assault.	On	the	following	morning	the	town	was	heavily	bombed.
Stellin	and	his	men	sat	tight	in	their	slit	trenches.	When	it	was	all	over	they	emerged	to
find,	 as	 they	 had	 hoped,	 that	 two	 enemy	 motor	 launches	 were	 attempting	 to	 enter	 the
harbour.	Such	accurate	fire	was	opened	on	these	ships	that	they	withdrew,	blazing.	So	did
Stellin,	whose	keen	ear	had	detected	the	approach	of	more	bombers,	and	who	knew	that
this	was	the	prelude	to	re-occupation	of	the	island.	At	three	oclock,	from	one	of	the	more
remote	 mountains,	 he	 watched	 the	 German	 flag	 hoisted	 over	 the	 citadel.	 But	 Stellins
adventures	were	not	yet	over;	that	night	the	launch	re-embarking	his	party	encountered	an
E	boat	on	the	return	journey.	So	many	and	so	various	were	Stellins	store	of	captured
weapons	that	every	man	in	his	patrol	was	able	to	take	a	personal	hand	in	the	battle	with	a
machine-gun.	The	E	boat	was	left	in	a	sinking	condition.
The	SBS		the	inspiration	for	Alistair	Macleans	novel,	The	Guns	of	Navarone		was
disbanded	in	1945,	though	elements	were	brought	together	under	Blondie	Hasler	almost
immediately	 at	 Fremington,	 Devon,	 as	 the	 School	 of	 Combined	 Operations,	 Beach	 and
Boat	 Section	 (SCOBBS),	 which	 came	 under	 the	 control	 of	 the	 Royal	 Marines,	 who
renamed	SCOBBS	the	Special	Boat	Squadron.	The	SBS	was	among	the	first	British	units
in	action	in	the	Korean	War,	attacking	supply	lines	and	communications.	Despite	being	a
maritime	 special	 force,	 the	 SBS	 has	 constantly	 been	 deployed	 in	 land	 warfare,	 from
Borneo	 to	 Afghanistan.	 In	 1987	 the	 SBS	 was	 renamed	 Special	 Boat	 Service,	 and	 taken
under	 the	 control	 of	 the	 UK	 Special	 Forces	 (along	 with	 the	 SAS,	 and	 14th	 Intelligence
Detachment)	 in	 the	 same	 year,	 the	 SBS	 formed	 M	 Squadron	 as	 a	 dedicated	 maritime
counter-terrorist	force.
The	SBS,	based	at	Poole	in	Dorset,	is	organised	into	four	regular	squadrons:	C,	X,	M	&
Z;	a	reserve	element	augments	the	regulars.
Campaigns
1950-1:	Korea.
1964-71:	Borneo.
1972:	Members	of	SBS	(alongside	SAS	sergeant	and	bomb-disposal	expert)	parachute
into	Atlantic	to	board	the	cruise	liner	QE2,	the	subject	of	a	bomb	threat.
1970s:	SBS	deployed	to	Northern	Ireland,	mostly	for	covert	surveillance.
1982:	 Falklands	 Conflict:	 among	 other	 actions,	 SBS	 leads	 re-taking	 of	 South	 Georgia
and	clearing	on	Fanning	Head	on	Falklands.
1991:	 Operation	 Desert	 Storm:	 reconnaissance	 and	 sabotage	 missions	 in	 Kuwait	 and
Iraq.	 In	 recognition	 of	 the	 SBSs	 efforts	 in	 the	 Gulf,	 the	 Regiment	 was	 sent	 a	 Letter	 of
Commendation	by	the	Commander-in-Chief,	General	H.	Norman	Schwarzkopf.
UNITED	STATES
US	Navy	SEALS
See	p48.
US	Naval	Special	Warfare	Command	is	organized	into	the	following	configuration:
			Naval	Special	Warfare	Group	1:	SEAL	Teams	1,	3,	5,	7
			Naval	Special	Warfare	Group	2:	SEAL	Teams	2,	4,	8,	10
			Naval	Special	Warfare	Group	3:	SEAL	Delivery	Vehicle	Team	1
			Naval	Special	Warfare	Group	4:	Special	Boat	Teams	12,	20,	22
			Naval	Special	Warfare	Group	11:	SEAL	Teams	17,	18	(formerly	Operational	Support
Teams	1,	2)
The	 total	 number	 of	 Navy	 SEALs	 assigned	 to	 Naval	 Special	 Warfare	 Command	 is
approximately	 2,000.	 About	 half	 of	 the	 SEALs	 are	 based	 at	 Little	 Creek	 Naval
Amphibious	 Base	 and	 Dam	 Neck	 annex	 in	 Virginia	 (East	 Coast),	 and	 half	 at	 Naval
Amphibious	 Base	 Coronado,	 California	 (West	 Coast).	 The	 Seal	 Delivery	 Vehicle	 (SDV)
unit	is	based	at	Pearl	Harbor,	Hawaii.
Each	 SEAL	 Team	 is	 commanded	 by	 a	 Navy	 Commander.	 A	 SEAL	 Team	 has	 a	 Staff
Headquarters	 element	 and	 three	 40-man	 Troops.	 Each	 Troop	 consist	 of	 a	 Headquarters
element	 consisting	 of	 a	 Troop	 Commander,	 typically	 a	 Lieutenant	 Commander.	 Each
Troop	can	be	task-organized	for	operational	purposes	into	four	squads,	of	eight	45-man
fire	teams.
The	SEAL	insignia	is	a	winged	trident,	crossed	with	a	rifle	and	anchor.	The	SEAL	code
reads:
Loyalty	to	country,	team	and	team-mates.	Serve	with	honor	and	integrity	on	and	off	the
battlefield.	 Ready	 to	 lead.	 Ready	 to	 follow.	 Never	 quit.	 Take	 responsibility	 for	 your
actions	 and	 the	 actions	 of	 your	 team-mates.	 Excel	 as	 warriors	 through	 discipline	 and
innovation.	 Train	 for	 war.	 Fight	 to	 win.	 Defeat	 our	 nations	 enemies.	 Earn	 your	 Trident
every	day.
The	SEALs	also	have	a	Creed:
In	 times	 of	 war	 or	 uncertainty	 there	 is	 a	 special	 breed	 of	 warrior	 ready	 to	 answer	 our
Nations	call.	A	common	man	with	uncommon	desire	to	succeed.	Forged	by	adversity,	he
stands	 alongside	 Americas	 finest	 special	 operations	 forces	 to	 serve	 his	 country,	 the
American	people,	and	protect	their	way	of	life.	I	am	that	man.
My	 Trident	 is	 a	 symbol	 of	 honor	 and	 heritage.	 Bestowed	 upon	 me	 by	 the	 heroes	 that
have	gone	before,	it	embodies	the	trust	of	those	I	have	sworn	to	protect.	By	wearing	the
Trident	I	accept	the	responsibility	of	my	chosen	profession	and	way	of	life.	It	is	a	privilege
that	I	must	earn	every	day.
My	loyalty	to	Country	and	Team	is	beyond	reproach.	I	humbly	serve	as	a	guardian	to
my	fellow	Americans,	always	ready	to	defend	those	who	are	unable	to	defend	themselves.
I	do	not	advertise	the	nature	of	my	work,	nor	seek	recognition	for	my	actions.	I	voluntarily
accept	 the	 inherent	 hazards	 of	 my	 profession,	 placing	 the	 welfare	 and	 security	 of	 others
before	my	own.
I	serve	with	honor	on	and	off	the	battlefield.	The	ability	to	control	my	emotions	and	my
actions,	 regardless	 of	 circumstance,	 sets	 me	 apart	 from	 other	 men.	 Uncompromising
integrity	is	my	standard.	My	character	and	honor	are	steadfast.	My	word	is	my	bond.
We	expect	to	lead	and	be	led.	In	the	absence	of	orders	I	will	take	charge,	lead	my	teammates	and	accomplish	the	mission.	I	lead	by	example	in	all	situations.
I	 will	 never	 quit.	 I	 persevere	 and	 thrive	 on	 adversity.	 My	 Nation	 expects	 me	 to	 be
physically	 harder	 and	 mentally	 stronger	 than	 my	 enemies.	 If	 knocked	 down,	 I	 will	 get
back	 up,	 every	 time.	 I	 will	 draw	 on	 every	 remaining	 ounce	 of	 strength	 to	 protect	 my
teammates	and	to	accomplish	our	mission.	I	am	never	out	of	the	fight.
We	 demand	 discipline.	 We	 expect	 innovation.	 The	 lives	 of	 my	 team-mates	 and	 the
success	 of	 our	 mission	 depend	 on	 me	 	 my	 technical	 skill,	 tactical	 proficiency,	 and
attention	to	detail.	My	training	is	never	complete.
We	 train	 for	 war	 and	 fight	 to	 win.	 I	 stand	 ready	 to	 bring	 the	 full	 spectrum	 of	 combat
power	 to	 bear	 in	 order	 to	 achieve	 my	 mission	 and	 the	 goals	 established	 by	 my	 country.
The	execution	of	my	duties	will	be	swift	and	violent	when	required,	yet	guided	by	the	very
principles	that	I	serve	to	defend.
Brave	men	have	fought	and	died	building	the	proud	tradition	and	feared	reputation	that
I	am	bound	to	uphold.	In	the	worst	of	conditions,	the	legacy	of	my	team-mates	steadies
my	resolve	and	silently	guides	my	every	deed.	I	will	not	fail.
with	a	designated	sphere	of	the	world	to	watch	over.	The	Green	Berets	operate	under	the
auspices	of	the	Army	Special	Operations	Command,	which	itself	comes	under	the	control
of	the	United	States	Special	Operations	Command.
The	Special	Forces	Creed	is:
I	am	an	American	Special	Forces	soldier.	A	professional!
I	will	do	all	that	my	nation	requires	of	me.
I	am	a	volunteer,	knowing	well	the	hazards	of	my	profession.
I	 serve	 with	 the	 memory	 of	 those	 who	 have	 gone	 before	 me:	 Rogers	 Rangers,
Francis	Marion,	Mosbys	Rangers,	the	first	Special	Service	Forces	and	Ranger
Battalions	of	World	War	II,	the	Airborne	Ranger	Companies	of	Korea.
I	pledge	to	uphold	the	honor	and	integrity	of	all	I	am		in	all	I	do.
I	am	a	professional	soldier.
I	will	teach	and	fight	wherever	my	nation	requires.
I	will	strive	always,	to	excel	in	every	art	and	artifice	of	war.
I	 know	 that	 I	 will	 be	 called	 upon	 to	 perform	 tasks	 in	 isolation,	 far	 from	 familiar
faces	and	voices,	with	the	help	and	guidance	of	my	God.
I	will	keep	my	mind	and	body	clean,	alert	and	strong,	for	this	is	my	debt	to	those
who	depend	upon	me.
I	will	not	fail	those	with	whom	I	serve.
I	will	not	bring	shame	upon	myself	or	the	forces.
I	 will	 maintain	 myself,	 my	 arms,	 and	 my	 equipment	 in	 an	 immaculate	 state	 as
befits	a	Special	Forces	soldier.
I	will	never	surrender	though	I	be	the	last.
If	I	am	taken,	I	pray	that	I	may	have	the	strength	to	spit	upon	my	enemy.
My	goal	is	to	succeed	in	any	mission		and	live	to	succeed	again.
I	am	a	member	of	my	nations	chosen	soldiery.
God	grant	that	I	may	not	be	found	wanting,	that	I	will	not	fail	this	sacred	trust.
De	Oppresso	Liber
Delta	Force
Surprisingly,	the	Unites	States	of	America	was	slow	to	establish	a	specialist	anti-terrorist
and	 hostage	 rescue	 unit,	 although	 all	 too	 often	 it	 is	 Americans	 who	 are	 the	 victims	 of
attacks.	 It	 was	 not	 until	 November	 1977	 that	 the	 US	 Armys	 1st	 Special	 Forces
Operational	Detachment	Delta		Delta	Force		came	into	being.	The	driving	spirit	behind
Delta	 Force	 was	 Colonel	 Charles	 Beckwith,	 a	 Special	 Forces	 officer	 who	 had	 been
extremely	 impressed	 by	 Britains	 SAS	 during	 an	 exchange	 tour	 in	 1962-3.	 For	 several
years	he	badgered	the	Pentagon	into	setting	up	a	similar	unit	in	the	US	Army.	Selection	for
the	 new	 unit	 was	 very	 much	 SAS-style,	 with	 hard	 physical,	 mental	 and	 psychological
challenges	weeding	out	nine	out	of	ten	applicants.	Once	selected,	the	successful	candidate
is	sent	on	a	five-month	Operators	course,	where	he	is	introduced	to	the	many	and	varied
skills	that	an	anti-terrorist	commando	is	expected	to	master.	These	include	assault	tactics,
hostage	 management,	 communications,	 observation	 using	 the	 latest	 high-tech	 gear,
climbing,	small	boat	work	and	parachuting.	Since	the	majority	of	Delta	Force	candidates
are	 from	 Special	 Forces	 or	 Ranger	 units	 (about	 70%	 from	 Ranger	 units	 in	 fact),	 they
already	possess	many	of	these	skills,	but	even	so,	they	learn	a	lot	before	moving	to	their
operational	troop.
Delta	 Force	 is	 organised	 into	 operational	 squadrons;	 each	 squadron	 is	 broken	 down
further	 into	 troops;	 the	 troops	 into	 four-	 or	 five-man	 teams.	 There	 is	 also	 a	 signals
squadron	and	an	aviation	platoon,	which	operates	AH-6	and	MH-6	Little	Bird	helicopters.
Deltas	in-house	intelligence	section,	unusually	for	a	Special	Forces	unit,	employs	women.
The	 overall	 strength	 of	 Delta	 Force,	 which	 is	 based	 at	 Fort	 Bragg,	 North	 Carolina,	 is
around	2,500.
Marksmanship	 is	 a	 prime	 requirement	 in	 Delta	 Force,	 and	 Force	 members	 train	 up	 to
four	 hours	 a	 day,	 five	 days	 a	 week.	 Such	 intensive	 training	 leads	 to	 very	 high	 shooting
standards:	 Delta	 snipers	 are	 expected	 to	 make	 nine	 first-round	 hits	 out	 of	 ten	 at	 1,000
yards,	and	score	every	time	at	600	yards.
Like	 other	 elite	 counter-terrorist	 units,	 Delta	 Force	 has	 built	 its	 own	 Close	 Quarters
Battle	training	facility	(nicknamed	House	of	Horrors),	which	simulates	various	kinds	of
combat	situations,	from	hostage-taking	to	aircraft	hijacks.
Just	over	a	year	after	its	foundation,	the	Force	was	alerted	to	a	possible	rescue	mission
as	the	US	Embassy	in	Teheran	was	seized	and	the	embassy	staff	held	hostage.	This	was	far
from	 the	 mission	 they	 had	 trained	 for:	 penetrate	 hundreds	 of	 miles	 into	 hostile	 territory,
making	an	assault	in	the	middle	of	a	major	city	and	then	get	clear	with	100	or	more	freed
hostages.
Months	of	intensive	training	went	into	Operation	Eagle	Claw,	as	the	rescue	mission	was
called.	It	was	to	involve	Delta	Force	(who	are,	after	all,	the	US	Armys	door-busters),
Special	 Forces	 units	 from	 Germany,	 US	 Marine	 Corps	 helicopter	 pilots,	 US	 Navy
helicopters	and	ships	and	US	Air	Force	air	support.
The	 mission	 was	 a	 disaster,	 although	 through	 no	 real	 fault	 of	 the	 men	 who	 took	 part.
The	 rescue	 plan	 developed	 was	 highly	 complicated:	 in	 phase	 one	 of	 the	 operation,	 the
assault	force	was	to	fly	to	Masirah	airfield	in	Oman	in	Lockheed	C-141	Starlifters	of	the
USAF.	 At	 Masirah	 they	 were	 to	 trans-ship	 to	 three	 MC-130E	 Hercules	 flown	 by	 USAF
Special	 Operations	 Squadron	 crew,	 which	 would	 take	 them	 below	 radar	 level	 across	 the
Gulf	of	Oman	and	land	them	at	a	remote	spot	in	the	Dasht-e	Kavir	salt	desert	in	southern
Iran.	This	landing	site,	codenamed	Desert	One,	was	located	some	300	miles	south-east
of	Tehran.	Thirty	minutes	after	the	Hercules	landed	at	Desert	One,	the	eight	Sea	Stallions
were	 to	 land	 at	 the	 site.	 The	 Sea	 Stallions	 were	 minesweeping	 versions	 of	 the	 HH-53,
selected	because	of	their	range	and	carrying	capacity.	The	Sea	Stallions	were	to	be	flown
by	USMC	crews	from	the	Nimitz	 in	 the	 Indian	 Ocean	 to	 Desert	 One,	 where	 they	 would
refuel	from	EC-130E	Hercules	on	the	makeshift	landing	strip.
Major-General	 James	 Vaught,	 located	 at	 Wadi	 Qena	 airfield	 in	 Egypt,	 was	 in	 overall
command	of	the	rescue	mission;	Colonel	Beckwith	was	commander	of	the	rescue	forces
on	 the	 ground.	 Since	 Desert	 One	 was	 near	 a	 road,	 a	 twelve-man	 road-watch	 team,
comprised	of	Delta	men	and	Rangers,	was	included	in	the	main	party.	In	addition	to	the
road-watch	team,	this	comprised	a	thirteen-man	Green	Beret	A	Team	tasked	to	assault
the	Foreign	Ministry,	and	three	Delta	elements:	Blue	Element	(40	men)	was	to	secure
the	eastern	sector	of	the	Embassy	compound;	Red	Element	(40	men)	the	western	end;	and
White	Element	(13	men)	Roosevelt	Avenue.	After	refuelling	at	Desert	One,	the	eight	Sea
Stallions	were	to	fly	the	assault	force	to	a	forward	landing-zone,	where	the	men	would	be
dropped	 off;	 the	 Sea	 Stallions	 would	 then	 hide	 in	 a	 wadi	 14	 miles	 to	 the	 north.	 Four
Department	 of	 Defense	 agents,	 already	 infiltrated	 into	 Tehran,	 would	 meet	 the	 assault
forces	 drivers	 and	 collect	 six	 Mercedes	 Benz	 trucks,	 which	 would	 be	 used	 to	 ferry	 the
assault	force	to	their	destinations.
At	8.30	p.m.	the	assault	team	would	board	the	Merc	trucks	and	drive	into	Tehran.	The
rescue	 was	 timed	 to	 start	 at	 11	 p.m.	 After	 negotiating	 the	 Embassy	 guards,	 the	 Delta
elements	 were	 to	 release	 the	 hostages	 and,	 if	 possible,	 clear	 the	 poles	 the	 students	 had
erected	as	anti-landing	devices	so	the	helicopters	could	come	in.	If	this	was	not	possible,
the	 Delta	 boys	 were	 to	 take	 the	 hostages	 to	 a	 nearby	 football	 stadium,	 where	 the
helicopters	would	pick	them	up.	Simultaneous	with	the	Delta	assault,	the	Green	Beret	A
Team	 was	 to	 storm	 the	 Foreign	 Ministry,	 grab	 the	 three	 hostages,	 and	 take	 them	 to	 a
nearby	 car	 park	 for	 exfil	 (extraction).	 Meanwhile,	 a	 Ranger	 company	 was	 to	 capture
Manzariyeh	airfield	34	miles	south	of	Tehran,	where	C-141s	would	fly	in	and	collect	the
assault	 force	 and	 hostages,	 who	 had	 all	 been	 flown	 there	 from	 central	 Tehran	 by	 the
indispensable	Sea	Stallions.
Such	was	the	plan.	And	for	a	few	tantalizing	moments	it	worked	beautifully.	At	10	p.m.,
right	on	schedule,	the	first	MC-130	landed	at	Desert	One.	The	road	watch	team	unloaded
and	deployed		Colonel	Beckwith	de-planed	with	them,	and	enjoyed	some	breaths	of	cool
night	 air	 after	 the	 fug	 in	 the	 interior	 of	 the	 Starlifter.	 Moments	 later,	 a	 bus	 came	 rolling
along	the	highway,	right	into	the	perimeter	of	Desert	One.	After	shooting	the	buss	tyres,
the	 road-watch	 team	 herded	 the	 forty-five	 frightened	 passengers	 off	 and	 put	 them	 under
guard.	 Only	 moments	 later,	 to	 the	 dismay	 of	 the	 road-watch	 team,	 more	 vehicle	 lights
appeared	through	the	darkness	on	what	was	meant	to	be	a	quiet	desert	track.	This	time	it
was	 a	 petrol	 tanker.	 The	 road-watch	 team	 launched	 an	 M72	 Light	 Anti-tank	 Weapon,
which	set	the	tanker	alight.	The	driver	leaped	out,	jumped	into	the	cab	of	a	pick-up	behind,
and	went	off	into	the	night.	The	flames	from	the	tanker	reached	300	feet	into	the	air.	In
this	 eerie	 hellish	 glare	 the	 assault	 force	 waited	 for	 the	 Sea	 Stallions.	 And	 waited,	 and
waited.
Although	 the	 eight	 Sea	 Stallions	 took	 off	 at	 7.30	 p.m.	 local	 time,	 as	 scheduled	 from
Nimitz,	two	hours	into	the	600-mile	flight	Number	6	had	had	to	land	due	to	catastrophic
blade	failure.	The	crew	burned	any	sensitive	documents,	and	were	picked	by	heli	Number
8.	Nearly	an	hour	later	the	lead	RH-53Ds	flew	into	a	sandstorm,	with	the	pilots	having	to
fly	on	instruments.	Emerging	from	the	whirling	storm	of	dust,	the	pilots	breathed	a	sigh	of
relief	 to	 see	 stars	 in	 a	 clear	 sky.	 The	 respite	 was	 brief:	 the	 Sea	 Stallions	 then	 flew	 into
another,	 more	 violent	 dust	 storm,	 within	 the	 hour.	 Helicopter	 5	 then	 had	 a	 catastrophic
electrical	failure,	lost	use	of	its	navigation	and	flight	instruments,	and	was	forced	to	return
to	the	Nimitz.	 This	 left	 just	 six	 helicopters	 flying,	 the	 absolute	 minimum	 needed	 for	 the
main	 phase	 of	 the	 rescue	 missions.	 Helicopter	 Number	 3	 was	 the	 first	 to	 clear	 the
sandstorms,	arriving	at	Desert	One	fifty	minutes	late.	On	getting	out	of	the	heli,	the	pilot,
Major	James	Schaefer,	told	the	waiting	Beckwith,	Its	been	hell	of	a	trip.	Over	the	next
thirty	minutes,	the	remaining	helicopters	straggled	in,	their	pilots	to	a	man	exhausted	from
battling	 the	 elements.	 The	 schedule	 was	 now	 eighty-five	 minutes	 over	 time.	 As	 the
helicopters	refuelled	from	the	EC-130Es,	Beckwith	directed	the	emplaning	of	the	assault
force.	Despite	being	behind	time	and	down	to	six	helicopters,	the	mission	was	still	viable.
Just.
Then	came	the	mortal	blow;	it	was	discovered	that	helicopter	Number	2	had	hydraulic
problems	 and	 needed	 to	 be	 counted	 out.	 The	 mission	 now	 had	 less	 than	 the	 minimum
necessary	number	of	helicopters.	Colonel	Beckwith	was	left	with	Hobsons	choice:	abort,
and	accept	failure;	or,	try	for	success	at	impossible	odds.	The	overall	mission	commander,
General	Vaught,	was	asked	for	his	opinion	over	the	sat	comm.	Vaught	asked	Beckwith	to
consider	going	on	with	five.	For	agonising	minutes	Beckwith	tussled	over	whether	to	go
ahead,	or	go	back.	Then	he	announced,	Deltas	going	home.	By	radio	link	the	President
of	 the	 US,	 Jimmy	 Carter,	 concurred	 in	 the	 decision	 that	 the	 mission	 could	 not	 continue,
and	preparations	began	for	withdrawal	of	the	five	operational	helicopters,	the	C-130s,	and
the	rescue	force.	Wearily	the	assault	force	got	out	of	the	choppers,	and	began	loading	onto
the	C-130s.	It	was	nearly	2.40	a.m.
Something	had	to	be	done	about	the	helicopters.	Major	Seiffert,	the	commander	of	the
helicopter	force,	decided	they	would	try	to	fly	back	to	the	Nimitz.	Helicopter	Number	4,
however,	had	to	refuel,	since	it	had	been	on	the	ground	longest,	with	engines	idling.	This
meant	that	one	of	the	Sea	Stallions,	Bluebeard	3,	had	to	be	moved	from	directly	behind	the
required	EC-130	to	clear	a	space.	Bluebeard	3	took	off	and	banked	to	the	left;	due	to	the
dust	churned	up	by	the	rotor,	the	pilot	was	unable	to	see	properly	and	struck	the	EC-130s
vertical	 stabilizer	 with	 its	 main	 rotor,	 causing	 it	 to	 crash	 into	 the	 tanker	 aircraft.	 Both
planes	 exploded,	 blasting	 debris	 in	 all	 directions.	 Ordinance	 on	 board	 the	 helicopter
started	popping,	and	Redeye	missiles	began	pinwheeling	through	the	night	like	it	was	the
Fourth	of	July.	Eight	members	of	the	mission	died	in	the	explosion	and	subsequent	fire:
five	USAF	aircrew	in	the	EC-130	(Major	Richard	L.	Bakke,	Navigator;	Major	Harold	L
Lewis	Jr.,	Pilot	&	Aircraft	Commander;	TSgt	Joel	C.	Mayo,	Flight	Engineer;	Major	Lyn
D.	McIntosh,	Co-Pilot;	and	Captain	Charles	T.	McMillan,	Navigator);	and	three	USMC	in
the	 Sea	 Stallion	 (TSgt	 John	 D.	 Harvey,	 Cpl	 George	 N.	 Holmes	 Jr.,	 and	 SSgt	 Dewey	 L
Johnson).
Somehow,	 the	 sixty-four	 Delta	 men	 in	 the	 C-130	 managed	 to	 get	 out	 of	 the	 burning
aircraft,	rescuing	its	loadmaster	in	the	process.	With	the	heat	from	the	burning	C-130	and
Bluebeard	 3	 about	 to	 set	 a	 chopper	 nearby	 alight,	 it	 was	 decided	 to	 abandon	 the	 Sea
Stallions,	 others	 of	 which	 had	 been	 struck	 by	 shrapnel	 from	 the	 explosion	 or	 burning
ammunition.	 The	 Marine	 helicopter	 pilots	 scrambled	 aboard	 the	 C-130s.	 In	 the	 haste	 to
emplane,	not	all	the	helicopters	were	sanitized,	leaving	the	Iranians	a	gift	of	a	cache	of
classified	 information,	 plus	 two	 working	 choppers.	 What	 began	 as	 a	 Special	 Forces
mission	became	first	a	tragedy,	then	a	farce.	At	almost	3	a.m.,	after	being	on	the	ground
for	four	hours	and	fifty-six	minutes,	Delta	left	the	desert.
The	 command	 and	 control	 of	 the	 many	 disparate	 parts	 of	 the	 rescue	 operation	 were
shambolic.	The	big	MH-53	helicopters	could	not	cope	with	the	desert	sand,	and	there	were
not	enough	of	them.	After	three	had	broken	down	the	mission	had	to	be	scrubbed.	To	add
a	final	capper	to	the	whole	affair,	a	collision	at	the	Desert	One	airstrip	deep	inside	Iran
killed	eight	men	and	destroyed	a	C-130	and	a	helicopter.
Many	 lessons	 were	 learned	 from	 Operation	 Eagle	 Claw.	 The	 creation	 of	 the	 Joint
Special	Operations	Command	has	given	a	single	command	body	to	clandestine	operation
units	 of	 all	 US	 services,	 and	 the	 formation	 of	 the	 Counter-Terrorist	 Joint	 Task	 Force
(CTJTF)	at	Fort	Bragg	has	significantly	increased	US	capability	in	this	specialised	form	of
warfare.
Delta	 had	 much	 happier	 hunting	 in	 the	 second	 Gulf	 War,	 as	 part	 of	 Task	 Force,	 an
Allied	outfit	comprising	elements	from	Delta,	US	Navy	DEVGRU,	US	Navy	SEAL	Team
Three,	and	the	75th	Ranger	Regiment.	The	Force	was	approximately	1,500	strong.	At	the
end	of	June	2003,	an	Iraqi	building	contractor	told	the	101st	Airborne	Division	in	Mosul
that	 Saddams	 sons	 Uday	 and	 Qusay	 were	 holed	 up	 in	 one	 of	 his	 houses	 in	 Baghdads
Falah	district.	With	a	$15	million	bounty	on	the	heads	of	HVTs	One,	Two	and	Three,	such
tip-offs	were	running	at	a	dozen	a	day.	So	for	three	weeks	Uday	and	Qusay	remained	in
the	house	untroubled,	with	their	feet	up.	Finally	the	information	was	relayed	to	Task	Force
(TF)	20,	who	investigated	and	decided	that	the	intel	was	hot.
On	 22	 July	 a	 TF	 20	 assault	 team	 was	 assembled	 and	 a	 cordon	 placed	 around	 the
building	by	the	2nd	Brigade	of	the	101st.	An	interpreter	with	a	bullhorn	shouted	out	to	the
two	 men	 to	 surrender.	 Their	 reply	 was	 a	 barrage	 of	 machine-gun	 fire.	 Using	 C-4
explosives,	TF	20	operators	stormed	through	the	iron	front	gate	into	the	walled	compound.
From	there,	some	operators	began	clearing	the	first	floor,	while	others	climbed	the	back
stairs.	As	TF	20s	assault	team	began	working	its	way	into	the	building	it	came	under	fire
from	 positions	 behind	 reinforced	 concrete	 on	 the	 first	 and	 second	 floors.	 They	 retired
outside	into	the	street	where	grenades	were	dropped	on	them,	injuring	three	Special	Forces
operators	 and	 one	 of	 the	 paratroopers.	 An	 almighty	 firefight	 started	 up,	 with	 the	 2nd
Brigade	pouring	in	covering	fire	from	vehicle-mounted	fifty-calibre	machine-guns	as	TF
20	again	tried	to	penetrate	the	building.	However,	return	fire	from	the	building	kept	them
at	bay.	The	TF	operators	discovered	that	the	defenders	had	a	strong	position	at	the	head	of
the	stairs	making	any	internal	assault	calamitous.
Colonel	Joe	Anderson,	the	CO	of	2nd	Brigade,	decided	that	heavy	weapons	were	called
for,	and	ordered	a	strike	on	the	building	by	Kiowa	Warrior	helicopters,	which	fired	four
2.75-inch	rockets	at	the	target.	While	these	missed,	the	bullets	from	the	choppers	belt-fed
.50-calibre	 machine-guns	 did	 not	 and	 shot	 up	 the	 building.	 Again,	 TF	 20	 attempted	 to
assault	the	building,	and	again	was	repelled	by	small	arms	fire.	At	this,	Colonel	Anderson
decided	on	his	own	mini-me	version	of	shock	and	awe,	and	ordered	that	Tube-launched
Optically-tracked	 Wire-guided	 (TOW)	 missiles	 be	 fired	 at	 the	 house.	 Eighteen	 of	 them.
Colonel	Anderson	later	declared	that	his	goal	was	a	combination	of	shocking	them	if	they
were	 still	 alive	 and	 damaging	 the	 building	 structurally	 so	 that	 it	 was	 unfeasible	 to	 fight
in.
On	 finally	 entering	 the	 building,	 the	 operators	 from	 TF	 20	 found	 four	 bodies	 	 three
men	and	a	fourteen-year-old	boy.	Two	of	the	men	were	identified	by	their	DNA	and	dental
records	 as	 Uday	 and	 Qusay.	 The	 boy	 was	 Qusays	 son.	 While	 the	 killing	 of	 Uday	 and
Qusay	 Hussein	 demonstrated	 Americas	 resolve	 in	 Iraq	 and	 removed	 two	 key	 figures
around	which	insurgents	might	rally,	it	also	destroyed	a	crucial	lead	to	Number	One	HVT.
The	 dead	 bodies	 of	 Uday	 and	 Qusay	 could	 hardly	 be	 interrogated	 as	 to	 their	 fathers
whereabouts.
The	trail	seemed	to	go	cold.	In	the	back	rooms	of	Intelligence	units,	however,	people
were	starting	to	have	bright	ideas.	Hitherto,	the	main	mindset	was	fixed	on	searching	for
Saddam	 and	 the	 other	 leading	 Baathists	 around	 the	 capital,	 Baghdad.	 Yet	 the	 Baath
regime	had	been	a	modern	Arab	Socialist	crust	on	an	old	tribal	society.	Therefore,	the
best	way	of	getting	to	Saddam	was	to	piece	together	the	network	of	tribal	loyalties	in	the
Tikrit	area.	Saddams	birthplace	was	in	the	village	of	Owja	near	the	town	of	Tikrit,	beside
the	 Tigris,	 north-west	 of	 Baghdad.	 The	 area	 around	 Tikrit	 was	 where	 Saddam	 had	 his
extended	family,	and	where	his	tribe	was	based.	Such	was	the	Tikriti	domination	of	Iraq
that	 Saddam	 abolished	 the	 use	 of	 surnames	 to	 conceal	 the	 fact	 that	 so	 many	 of	 his	 key
supporters	 bore	 the	 same	 surname	 	 al-Tikriti	 	 as	 did	 Saddam	 himself.	 He	 had	 hidden
around	Tikrit	once	before,	in	1959,	when	on	the	run.	Perhaps	he	had	gone	to	ground	there
again?	 In	 which	 case,	 the	 focus	 of	 the	 piecing-to-gether	 of	 the	 tribal	 network	 should	 be
Tikrit.
The	 US	 4th	 Infantry	 Division,	 commanded	 by	 Colonel	 Hickey,	 took	 over	 the	 area
around	 Tikrit,	 and	 almost	 immediately	 the	 Intelligence	 officer	 (S-2)	 of	 the	 1st	 Brigades
Combat	 Team,	 Major	 Stan	 Murphy,	 begin	 developing	 an	 extended	 link	 diagram	 of	 the
network	of	tribal	figures	who	held	any	kind	of	position	under	Saddam,	especially	the	men
and	 boys	 who	 were	 his	 enablers	 	 the	 yes	 men	 and	 the	 errand	 boys.	 Major	 Murphys
intel	 was	 fed	 to	 Task	 Force	 20,	 which	 was	 renamed	 in	 July	 Task	 Force	 121.	 Hits	 on
suspected	 insurgents	 gradually	 brought	 more	 and	 more	 vital	 information.	 A	 raid	 on	 the
farm	 of	 one	 of	 Saddams	 bodyguards	 near	 Tikrit	 turned	 up	 jewellery	 worth	 $2	 million
belonging	 to	 Saddams	 wife,	 Sajida	 Khairallah	 Talfah,	 and	 $8	 million	 in	 US	 currency
secreted	away	in	two	fireproof	bank	boxes.	Better	still,	First	Lieutenant	Chris	Morriss	122	 platoon	 found	 the	 Saddam	 family	 photograph	 album.	 Captain	 Mark	 Stouffers	 A
Company,	 1-22,	 captured	 one	 of	 Saddams	 bodyguards.	 A	 joint	 Task	 Force	 1211st
Brigade	raid	on	16	June	captured	Abid	Hamid	Al-Tikriti	(HVT	Four).
Between	 July	 and	 December	 2003	 Task	 Force	 121	 made	 twelve	 unsuccessful	 raids	 to
capture	Saddam,	together	with	600	other	operations	against	targets	on	the	linked	diagram.
More	 than	 300	 interrogations	 were	 conducted.	 Again	 and	 again,	 the	 intel	 led	 to	 five
extended	 families	 based	 in	 Tikrit.	 An	 important	 break	 came	 on	 1	 December,	 when	 a
former	 driver	 divulged	 the	 name	 of	 Mohamed	 Ibrahim	 Omar	 al-Musslit.	 Ibrahim	 was
Saddams	 right-hand	 man,	 known	 to	 Task	 Force	 121	 as	 the	 Source	 or	 the	 Fatman.
Ibrahim	was	a	regular	face	in	the	Saddam	family	photo	album.	Over	the	next	two	weeks
nearly	 forty	 members	 of	 Ibrahims	 family	 were	 interrogated	 in	 an	 attempt	 to	 track	 him
down.
The	 turning-point	 came	 on	 12	 December	 2003.	 During	 a	 raid	 on	 a	 house	 in	 Baghdad
that	functioned	as	an	insurgency	HQ,	the	Fatman	was	picked	up	and	interrogated	by	Staff
Sergeant	Eric	Maddox.	By	now	it	was	5	a.m.	on	13	December,	and	Maddox	was	scheduled
to	leave	Iraq	at	8	a.m.	on	a	C-17	for	Doha.	Just	when	Maddox	was	about	to	abandon	hope,
Ibrahim	grudgingly	gave	up	a	location	where	Saddam	might	be	found.	On	this	intel,	a	600strong	 raiding	 force	 was	 assembled	 from	 1st	 Brigade,	 Fourth	 Infantry	 Division.	 The
raiding	force,	led	by	Colonel	James	Hickey,	would	isolate	and	secure	the	area.	After	this,
Task	 Force	 121	 would	 go	 in	 and	 get	 Saddam.	 At	 precisely	 8	 p.m.	 on	 13	 December	 two
sites,	Wolverine	1	and	Wolverine	2,	outside	the	town	of	Ad-Dawr,	were	searched	and
cleared	within	minutes.	There	was	no	trace	of	Saddam.	The	searchers	from	Task	Force	121
then	moved	in	on	a	mud	hut	in	a	palm	grove	just	to	the	north	of	Wolverine	1.	LieutenantColonel	Steve	Russell	was	the	Commanding	Officer	of	the	1st	Battalion,	22nd	Infantry	of
the	1st	Brigade.	He	takes	up	the	story:
Through	 their	 night	 vision	 goggles	 and	 thermal	 sights,	 soldiers	 of	 the	 4th	 ID	 could	 see
Special	Operators	moving	soundlessly	through	the	dark	night	to	the	target.	Occasionally,
the	red	beams	of	laser-aiming	lights	would	reflect	off	trees	and	leaves,	but	it	was	deathly
silent,	save	for	the	distant	hum	of	OH-58	Little	Birds	and	other	Special	Operations	aircraft
waiting	 for	 extraction,	 reinforcement,	 or	 attack.	 From	 his	 position,	 Saffeels	 could	 hear
noises	 in	 the	 darkness.	 He	 and	 his	 fellow	 soldiers	 grew	 a	 little	 jumpy,	 waiting	 for
Saddams	forces.	For	Bocanegra	the	scene	and	all	the	activity	became	more	intense.	The
assault	 force	 started	 clearing	 through	 the	 palm	 groves	 and	 came	 upon	 a	 little	 mud-hut
structure	with	a	courtyard.	In	that	courtyard	they	heard	a	noise.
At	2010,	with	Hickeys	troops	sealing	off	the	area,	Special	Operations	forces	burst	into
the	hut,	a	simple	construction	behind	a	fence	of	dried	palm	leaves.	It	had	been	an	orange
pickers	hut	with	one	room	and	an	open	kitchen.	They	immediately	seized	one	man	trying
to	escape	and	another	man	in	the	hut.	As	it	turned	out,	one	was	Saddams	cook;	the	other
was	the	cooks	brother	and	owner	of	the	property.	Inside,	they	found	that	the	hut	consisted
of	one	room	with	two	beds	and	a	refrigerator	containing	a	can	of	lemonade,	a	packet	of
hot	dogs,	a	can	of	Happy	Brand	tuna,	an	opened	box	of	Belgian	chocolates,	and	a	tube
of	 ointment.	 A	 poster	 of	 Noahs	 Ark	 hung	 on	 the	 mud-brick	 wall.	 There	 were	 also	 two
AK-47	assault	rifles,	various	packages	of	new	clothes,	and	a	green	footlocker	containing
$750,000	 in	 American	 hundred-dollar	 bills.	 More	 telling:	 an	 orange	 and	 white	 Toyota
Corolla	 taxi	 was	 parked	 outside.	 Rumors	 that	 Saddam	 had	 hidden	 in	 taxis	 and	 even
masqueraded	as	a	taxi	driver	appeared	to	be	true.
Saddam	 was	 nowhere	 to	 be	 seen.	 It	 looked	 like	 yet	 another	 dry	 hole	 when,	 suddenly,
one	of	the	detainees	broke	away	from	the	Special	Operators	and	ran,	telling	them	Saddam
was	hiding	elsewhere	and	he	would	lead	them	to	him.	His	sudden	desire	to	co-operate	and
zeal	 to	 get	 them	 out	 of	 there	 further	 convinced	 the	 operators	 they	 were	 close.	 At	 the
command	vehicle,	CW2	Gray	stood	next	to	Colonel	Hickey,	listening	to	the	radio	reports
from	 the	 Special	 Operation	 forces.	 Those	 two	 individuals	 were	 exactly	 who	 the	 source
stated	would	be	at	the	farm.	Things	were	going	well.	Reports	continued	to	come	in	that
Special	Operations	forces	were	still	searching	the	area	but	had	not	found	the	tunnels	that
the	 source	 had	 said	 Saddam	 would	 be	 hiding	 in.	 Hickey	 calmly	 told	 them	 to	 take	 their
time.	 Task	 Force	 Raider	 owned	 that	 portion	 of	 Iraq.	 Hed	 hold	 the	 cordon	 all	 night	 if
necessary.
Another	ten	minutes	went	by.	Still	nothing.	Outside	the	hut,	the	two	dozen	or	so	Special
Operators	 were	 preparing	 to	 move	 off	 and	 expand	 their	 search.	 Something	 caught	 an
operators	attention	in	the	darkness	of	the	moonless	night,	through	the	unearthly	glow	of
his	night-vision	goggles.	The	ground	just	didnt	look	quite	right.	The	sensation	of	an	odd
landscape	was	nothing	unusual	under	the	glow	of	a	night-vision	device,	but	it	just	didnt
feel	right,	either.	The	closer	the	operator	looked,	the	more	it	appeared	to	be	out	of	place.
The	bricks	and	dirt	were	spread	about	too	uniformly,	as	if	someone	were	trying	to	conceal
something.	A	thread	of	fabric	protruded	just	slightly	under	the	dirt.	Strange.
At	2030	hours,	the	operators	brushed	away	the	debris,	revealing	a	Styrofoam	plug.	True
to	 his	 training,	 one	 of	 the	 Special	 Operators	 pulled	 the	 pin	 on	 a	 hand	 grenade	 while	 his
colleagues	prepared	to	remove	the	plug	so	he	could	drop	it	in.	The	remaining	twenty	or	so
soldiers	 prepared	 to	 fire	 their	 weapons,	 if	 engaged.	 The	 plug	 revealed	 a	 hole;	 the	 hole
revealed	 a	 ratty-looking	 bearded	 man.	 The	 man	 raised	 his	 hands	 and	 announced:	 I	 am
Saddam	 Hussein.	 I	 am	 the	 President	 of	 Iraq,	 and	 I	 am	 willing	 to	 negotiate.	 The	 Task
Force	 121	 commando	 covering	 the	 hole	 calmly	 replied:	 President	 Bush	 sends	 his
regards.	Hickeys	radio	broke	the	silence	as	the	Special	Operator	reported	simply,	Sir,
we	may	have	the	jackpot.
Hickey	waited	breathlessly.	Back	on	the	objective,	several	Special	Operators	yanked	the
dishevelled,	 disoriented	 man	 to	 the	 surface,	 unavoidably	 scratching	 his	 head	 in	 the	 tight
confines	 of	 the	 hole.	 The	 operators	 quickly	 removed	 the	 9mm	 pistol	 from	 his	 belt	 and
checked	 him	 for	 the	 markings	 and	 other	 features	 that	 would	 preliminarily	 confirm	 they
had	 their	 man.	 They	 began	 to	 prepare	 him	 for	 transportation	 with	 the	 standard,	 empty
sandbag	 over	 his	 head	 and	 flex-cuffs	 on	 his	 hands.	 As	 they	 attempted	 to	 secure	 him,
Saddam	resisted		trying	to	shrug	off	the	operators,	acting	belligerent,	and	even	spitting	in
one	soldiers	face.	In	return,	he	was	treated	just	like	any	other	prisoner,	and	forcefully
subdued	to	the	ground,	where	several	operators	held	him	down	while	others	trussed	him
up.
Following	 his	 capture,	 Saddam	 was	 taken	 to	 the	 American	 base	 Camp	 Cropper	 near
Baghdad.	On	30	June	2004	Saddam	was	handed	over	to	the	interim	Iraqi	government	to
stand	trial	for	crimes	against	humanity.	The	trial	found	Saddam	Hussein	guilty,	and	he	was
sentenced	 to	 death.	 Although	 the	 verdict	 and	 sentencing	 were	 both	 appealed,	 they	 were
affirmed	 by	 Iraqs	 Supreme	 Court	 of	 Appeals.	 On	 30	 December	 2006,	 Saddam	 was
hanged.
Delta	 Forces	 structure	 is	 similar	 to	 the	 British	 22	 SAS,	 with	 Sabre	 Squadrons
containing	around	80	operators.	Each	sabre	squadron	is	further	broken	down	into	three
troops,	two	assault	troops,	and	one	sniper/recon	troop.	Based	at	Fort	Bragg,	Delta	Force	is
thought	to	number	around	800	personnel.
1983:
Invasion of Grenada.
1989:
Panama invasion.
1990-1:
Gulf War.
1993:
2001-present:
Afghanistan.
2001-present:
Iraq.
BIBLIOGRAPHY
Baker,	W.D.,	Dare	to	Win:	The	Story	of	the	New	Zealand	Special	Air	Service,	1978
Beckwith,	Charlie,	Delta	Force,	1984
Billire,	General	Sir	Peter	de	la,	Looking	for	Trouble,	1994
Bosiljevac,	T.L.,	SEALS,	1990
Cole,	Barbara,	Elite:	The	Story	of	the	Rhodesian	SAS,	1984
Collins,	John	M.,	Green	Berets,	SEALs	&	Spetsnaz,	1987
Cowles,	Virginia,	Phantom	Major,	1958
Crossland,	Peter	Yorky,	Victor	Two,	1996
Darman,	Peter,	A-Z	of	the	SAS,	1992
Dickens,	Peter,	SAS:	The	Jungle	Frontier,	1983
Farran,	Roy,	Winged	Dagger,	1948
Operation	Tombola,	1960
Flower,	Ken,	Serving	Secretly;Rhodesia	into	Zimbabwe	1964-1981,	1987
Fowler,	Will,	Weapons	and	Equipment	of	Special	Forces,	1996
Geraghty,	Tony,	Who	Dares	Wins,	1992
Harrison,	Derrick,	These	Men	are	Dangerous,	1957
Hislop,	J.H.,	Anything	But	a	Soldier,	1965
Hoe,	Alan,	David	Stirling,	1992
Horner,	DM,	SAS	Phantoms	of	the	Jungle:	A	History	of	the	Australian	SAS,	1989
Jeapes,	Tony,	SAS	Operation	Oman,	1980
Ladd,	James,	Commandos	and	Rangers	of	World	War	II,	1978
Lodwick,	John,	The	Filibusters,	1957
Perkins,	Roger,	Operation	Paraquat:	The	Battle	for	South	Georgia,	1986
Robinson,	Mike,	Fighting	Skills	of	the	SAS,	1991
Simpson	III,	Charles	M.,	Inside	the	Green	Berets,	1983
Smiley,	David,	Arabian	Assignment,	1965
Stanton,	Shelby	L.,	Green	Berets	at	War,	1985
Sutherland,	Lt-Col	Ian,	Special	Forces	of	the	United	States	Army,	1990
Suvorov,	Viktor,	Soviet	Military	Intelligence,	1986